Added and updated texts.
[gender-roles-text-analysis.git] / pg1260.txt
1 JANE EYRE
2 AN AUTOBIOGRAPHY
3
4
5 BY
6 CHARLOTTE BRONTE
7
8 _ILLUSTRATED BY F. H. TOWNSEND_
9
10 London
11 SERVICE & PATON
12 5 HENRIETTA STREET
13 1897
14
15 _The Illustrations_
16 _in this Volume are the copyright of_
17 SERVICE & PATON, _London_
18
19 TO
20 W. M. THACKERAY, ESQ.,
21
22 This Work
23 IS RESPECTFULLY INSCRIBED
24
25 BY
26 THE AUTHOR
27
28
29
30
31 PREFACE
32
33
34 A preface to the first edition of "Jane Eyre" being unnecessary, I gave
35 none: this second edition demands a few words both of acknowledgment and
36 miscellaneous remark.
37
38 My thanks are due in three quarters.
39
40 To the Public, for the indulgent ear it has inclined to a plain tale with
41 few pretensions.
42
43 To the Press, for the fair field its honest suffrage has opened to an
44 obscure aspirant.
45
46 To my Publishers, for the aid their tact, their energy, their practical
47 sense and frank liberality have afforded an unknown and unrecommended
48 Author.
49
50 The Press and the Public are but vague personifications for me, and I
51 must thank them in vague terms; but my Publishers are definite: so are
52 certain generous critics who have encouraged me as only large-hearted and
53 high-minded men know how to encourage a struggling stranger; to them,
54 _i.e._, to my Publishers and the select Reviewers, I say cordially,
55 Gentlemen, I thank you from my heart.
56
57 Having thus acknowledged what I owe those who have aided and approved me,
58 I turn to another class; a small one, so far as I know, but not,
59 therefore, to be overlooked. I mean the timorous or carping few who
60 doubt the tendency of such books as "Jane Eyre:" in whose eyes whatever
61 is unusual is wrong; whose ears detect in each protest against
62 bigotry--that parent of crime--an insult to piety, that regent of God on
63 earth. I would suggest to such doubters certain obvious distinctions; I
64 would remind them of certain simple truths.
65
66 Conventionality is not morality. Self-righteousness is not religion. To
67 attack the first is not to assail the last. To pluck the mask from the
68 face of the Pharisee, is not to lift an impious hand to the Crown of
69 Thorns.
70
71 These things and deeds are diametrically opposed: they are as distinct as
72 is vice from virtue. Men too often confound them: they should not be
73 confounded: appearance should not be mistaken for truth; narrow human
74 doctrines, that only tend to elate and magnify a few, should not be
75 substituted for the world-redeeming creed of Christ. There is--I repeat
76 it--a difference; and it is a good, and not a bad action to mark broadly
77 and clearly the line of separation between them.
78
79 The world may not like to see these ideas dissevered, for it has been
80 accustomed to blend them; finding it convenient to make external show
81 pass for sterling worth--to let white-washed walls vouch for clean
82 shrines. It may hate him who dares to scrutinise and expose--to rase the
83 gilding, and show base metal under it--to penetrate the sepulchre, and
84 reveal charnel relics: but hate as it will, it is indebted to him.
85
86 Ahab did not like Micaiah, because he never prophesied good concerning
87 him, but evil; probably he liked the sycophant son of Chenaannah better;
88 yet might Ahab have escaped a bloody death, had he but stopped his ears
89 to flattery, and opened them to faithful counsel.
90
91 There is a man in our own days whose words are not framed to tickle
92 delicate ears: who, to my thinking, comes before the great ones of
93 society, much as the son of Imlah came before the throned Kings of Judah
94 and Israel; and who speaks truth as deep, with a power as prophet-like
95 and as vital--a mien as dauntless and as daring. Is the satirist of
96 "Vanity Fair" admired in high places? I cannot tell; but I think if some
97 of those amongst whom he hurls the Greek fire of his sarcasm, and over
98 whom he flashes the levin-brand of his denunciation, were to take his
99 warnings in time--they or their seed might yet escape a fatal
100 Rimoth-Gilead.
101
102 Why have I alluded to this man? I have alluded to him, Reader, because I
103 think I see in him an intellect profounder and more unique than his
104 contemporaries have yet recognised; because I regard him as the first
105 social regenerator of the day--as the very master of that working corps
106 who would restore to rectitude the warped system of things; because I
107 think no commentator on his writings has yet found the comparison that
108 suits him, the terms which rightly characterise his talent. They say he
109 is like Fielding: they talk of his wit, humour, comic powers. He
110 resembles Fielding as an eagle does a vulture: Fielding could stoop on
111 carrion, but Thackeray never does. His wit is bright, his humour
112 attractive, but both bear the same relation to his serious genius that
113 the mere lambent sheet-lightning playing under the edge of the summer-
114 cloud does to the electric death-spark hid in its womb. Finally, I have
115 alluded to Mr. Thackeray, because to him--if he will accept the tribute
116 of a total stranger--I have dedicated this second edition of "JANE EYRE."
117
118 CURRER BELL.
119
120 _December_ 21_st_, 1847.
121
122
123
124
125 NOTE TO THE THIRD EDITION
126
127
128 I avail myself of the opportunity which a third edition of "Jane Eyre"
129 affords me, of again addressing a word to the Public, to explain that my
130 claim to the title of novelist rests on this one work alone. If,
131 therefore, the authorship of other works of fiction has been attributed
132 to me, an honour is awarded where it is not merited; and consequently,
133 denied where it is justly due.
134
135 This explanation will serve to rectify mistakes which may already have
136 been made, and to prevent future errors.
137
138 CURRER BELL.
139
140 _April_ 13_th_, 1848.
141
142
143
144
145 CHAPTER I
146
147
148 There was no possibility of taking a walk that day. We had been
149 wandering, indeed, in the leafless shrubbery an hour in the morning; but
150 since dinner (Mrs. Reed, when there was no company, dined early) the cold
151 winter wind had brought with it clouds so sombre, and a rain so
152 penetrating, that further out-door exercise was now out of the question.
153
154 I was glad of it: I never liked long walks, especially on chilly
155 afternoons: dreadful to me was the coming home in the raw twilight, with
156 nipped fingers and toes, and a heart saddened by the chidings of Bessie,
157 the nurse, and humbled by the consciousness of my physical inferiority to
158 Eliza, John, and Georgiana Reed.
159
160 The said Eliza, John, and Georgiana were now clustered round their mama
161 in the drawing-room: she lay reclined on a sofa by the fireside, and with
162 her darlings about her (for the time neither quarrelling nor crying)
163 looked perfectly happy. Me, she had dispensed from joining the group;
164 saying, "She regretted to be under the necessity of keeping me at a
165 distance; but that until she heard from Bessie, and could discover by her
166 own observation, that I was endeavouring in good earnest to acquire a
167 more sociable and childlike disposition, a more attractive and sprightly
168 manner--something lighter, franker, more natural, as it were--she really
169 must exclude me from privileges intended only for contented, happy,
170 little children."
171
172 "What does Bessie say I have done?" I asked.
173
174 "Jane, I don't like cavillers or questioners; besides, there is something
175 truly forbidding in a child taking up her elders in that manner. Be
176 seated somewhere; and until you can speak pleasantly, remain silent."
177
178 A breakfast-room adjoined the drawing-room, I slipped in there. It
179 contained a bookcase: I soon possessed myself of a volume, taking care
180 that it should be one stored with pictures. I mounted into the window-
181 seat: gathering up my feet, I sat cross-legged, like a Turk; and, having
182 drawn the red moreen curtain nearly close, I was shrined in double
183 retirement.
184
185 Folds of scarlet drapery shut in my view to the right hand; to the left
186 were the clear panes of glass, protecting, but not separating me from the
187 drear November day. At intervals, while turning over the leaves of my
188 book, I studied the aspect of that winter afternoon. Afar, it offered a
189 pale blank of mist and cloud; near a scene of wet lawn and storm-beat
190 shrub, with ceaseless rain sweeping away wildly before a long and
191 lamentable blast.
192
193 I returned to my book--Bewick's History of British Birds: the letterpress
194 thereof I cared little for, generally speaking; and yet there were
195 certain introductory pages that, child as I was, I could not pass quite
196 as a blank. They were those which treat of the haunts of sea-fowl; of
197 "the solitary rocks and promontories" by them only inhabited; of the
198 coast of Norway, studded with isles from its southern extremity, the
199 Lindeness, or Naze, to the North Cape--
200
201 "Where the Northern Ocean, in vast whirls,
202 Boils round the naked, melancholy isles
203 Of farthest Thule; and the Atlantic surge
204 Pours in among the stormy Hebrides."
205
206 Nor could I pass unnoticed the suggestion of the bleak shores of Lapland,
207 Siberia, Spitzbergen, Nova Zembla, Iceland, Greenland, with "the vast
208 sweep of the Arctic Zone, and those forlorn regions of dreary space,--that
209 reservoir of frost and snow, where firm fields of ice, the accumulation
210 of centuries of winters, glazed in Alpine heights above heights, surround
211 the pole, and concentre the multiplied rigours of extreme cold." Of
212 these death-white realms I formed an idea of my own: shadowy, like all
213 the half-comprehended notions that float dim through children's brains,
214 but strangely impressive. The words in these introductory pages
215 connected themselves with the succeeding vignettes, and gave significance
216 to the rock standing up alone in a sea of billow and spray; to the broken
217 boat stranded on a desolate coast; to the cold and ghastly moon glancing
218 through bars of cloud at a wreck just sinking.
219
220 I cannot tell what sentiment haunted the quite solitary churchyard, with
221 its inscribed headstone; its gate, its two trees, its low horizon,
222 girdled by a broken wall, and its newly-risen crescent, attesting the
223 hour of eventide.
224
225 The two ships becalmed on a torpid sea, I believed to be marine phantoms.
226
227 The fiend pinning down the thief's pack behind him, I passed over
228 quickly: it was an object of terror.
229
230 So was the black horned thing seated aloof on a rock, surveying a distant
231 crowd surrounding a gallows.
232
233 Each picture told a story; mysterious often to my undeveloped
234 understanding and imperfect feelings, yet ever profoundly interesting: as
235 interesting as the tales Bessie sometimes narrated on winter evenings,
236 when she chanced to be in good humour; and when, having brought her
237 ironing-table to the nursery hearth, she allowed us to sit about it, and
238 while she got up Mrs. Reed's lace frills, and crimped her nightcap
239 borders, fed our eager attention with passages of love and adventure
240 taken from old fairy tales and other ballads; or (as at a later period I
241 discovered) from the pages of Pamela, and Henry, Earl of Moreland.
242
243 With Bewick on my knee, I was then happy: happy at least in my way. I
244 feared nothing but interruption, and that came too soon. The breakfast-
245 room door opened.
246
247 "Boh! Madam Mope!" cried the voice of John Reed; then he paused: he
248 found the room apparently empty.
249
250 "Where the dickens is she!" he continued. "Lizzy! Georgy! (calling to
251 his sisters) Joan is not here: tell mama she is run out into the rain--bad
252 animal!"
253
254 "It is well I drew the curtain," thought I; and I wished fervently he
255 might not discover my hiding-place: nor would John Reed have found it out
256 himself; he was not quick either of vision or conception; but Eliza just
257 put her head in at the door, and said at once--
258
259 "She is in the window-seat, to be sure, Jack."
260
261 And I came out immediately, for I trembled at the idea of being dragged
262 forth by the said Jack.
263
264 "What do you want?" I asked, with awkward diffidence.
265
266 "Say, 'What do you want, Master Reed?'" was the answer. "I want you to
267 come here;" and seating himself in an arm-chair, he intimated by a
268 gesture that I was to approach and stand before him.
269
270 John Reed was a schoolboy of fourteen years old; four years older than I,
271 for I was but ten: large and stout for his age, with a dingy and
272 unwholesome skin; thick lineaments in a spacious visage, heavy limbs and
273 large extremities. He gorged himself habitually at table, which made him
274 bilious, and gave him a dim and bleared eye and flabby cheeks. He ought
275 now to have been at school; but his mama had taken him home for a month
276 or two, "on account of his delicate health." Mr. Miles, the master,
277 affirmed that he would do very well if he had fewer cakes and sweetmeats
278 sent him from home; but the mother's heart turned from an opinion so
279 harsh, and inclined rather to the more refined idea that John's
280 sallowness was owing to over-application and, perhaps, to pining after
281 home.
282
283 John had not much affection for his mother and sisters, and an antipathy
284 to me. He bullied and punished me; not two or three times in the week,
285 nor once or twice in the day, but continually: every nerve I had feared
286 him, and every morsel of flesh in my bones shrank when he came near.
287 There were moments when I was bewildered by the terror he inspired,
288 because I had no appeal whatever against either his menaces or his
289 inflictions; the servants did not like to offend their young master by
290 taking my part against him, and Mrs. Reed was blind and deaf on the
291 subject: she never saw him strike or heard him abuse me, though he did
292 both now and then in her very presence, more frequently, however, behind
293 her back.
294
295 Habitually obedient to John, I came up to his chair: he spent some three
296 minutes in thrusting out his tongue at me as far as he could without
297 damaging the roots: I knew he would soon strike, and while dreading the
298 blow, I mused on the disgusting and ugly appearance of him who would
299 presently deal it. I wonder if he read that notion in my face; for, all
300 at once, without speaking, he struck suddenly and strongly. I tottered,
301 and on regaining my equilibrium retired back a step or two from his
302 chair.
303
304 "That is for your impudence in answering mama awhile since," said he,
305 "and for your sneaking way of getting behind curtains, and for the look
306 you had in your eyes two minutes since, you rat!"
307
308 Accustomed to John Reed's abuse, I never had an idea of replying to it;
309 my care was how to endure the blow which would certainly follow the
310 insult.
311
312 "What were you doing behind the curtain?" he asked.
313
314 "I was reading."
315
316 "Show the book."
317
318 I returned to the window and fetched it thence.
319
320 "You have no business to take our books; you are a dependent, mama says;
321 you have no money; your father left you none; you ought to beg, and not
322 to live here with gentlemen's children like us, and eat the same meals we
323 do, and wear clothes at our mama's expense. Now, I'll teach you to
324 rummage my bookshelves: for they _are_ mine; all the house belongs to me,
325 or will do in a few years. Go and stand by the door, out of the way of
326 the mirror and the windows."
327
328 I did so, not at first aware what was his intention; but when I saw him
329 lift and poise the book and stand in act to hurl it, I instinctively
330 started aside with a cry of alarm: not soon enough, however; the volume
331 was flung, it hit me, and I fell, striking my head against the door and
332 cutting it. The cut bled, the pain was sharp: my terror had passed its
333 climax; other feelings succeeded.
334
335 "Wicked and cruel boy!" I said. "You are like a murderer--you are like a
336 slave-driver--you are like the Roman emperors!"
337
338 I had read Goldsmith's History of Rome, and had formed my opinion of
339 Nero, Caligula, etc. Also I had drawn parallels in silence, which I never
340 thought thus to have declared aloud.
341
342 "What! what!" he cried. "Did she say that to me? Did you hear her,
343 Eliza and Georgiana? Won't I tell mama? but first--"
344
345 He ran headlong at me: I felt him grasp my hair and my shoulder: he had
346 closed with a desperate thing. I really saw in him a tyrant, a murderer.
347 I felt a drop or two of blood from my head trickle down my neck, and was
348 sensible of somewhat pungent suffering: these sensations for the time
349 predominated over fear, and I received him in frantic sort. I don't very
350 well know what I did with my hands, but he called me "Rat! Rat!" and
351 bellowed out aloud. Aid was near him: Eliza and Georgiana had run for
352 Mrs. Reed, who was gone upstairs: she now came upon the scene, followed
353 by Bessie and her maid Abbot. We were parted: I heard the words--
354
355 "Dear! dear! What a fury to fly at Master John!"
356
357 "Did ever anybody see such a picture of passion!"
358
359 Then Mrs. Reed subjoined--
360
361 "Take her away to the red-room, and lock her in there." Four hands were
362 immediately laid upon me, and I was borne upstairs.
363
364
365
366
367 CHAPTER II
368
369
370 I resisted all the way: a new thing for me, and a circumstance which
371 greatly strengthened the bad opinion Bessie and Miss Abbot were disposed
372 to entertain of me. The fact is, I was a trifle beside myself; or rather
373 _out_ of myself, as the French would say: I was conscious that a moment's
374 mutiny had already rendered me liable to strange penalties, and, like any
375 other rebel slave, I felt resolved, in my desperation, to go all lengths.
376
377 "Hold her arms, Miss Abbot: she's like a mad cat."
378
379 "For shame! for shame!" cried the lady's-maid. "What shocking conduct,
380 Miss Eyre, to strike a young gentleman, your benefactress's son! Your
381 young master."
382
383 "Master! How is he my master? Am I a servant?"
384
385 "No; you are less than a servant, for you do nothing for your keep.
386 There, sit down, and think over your wickedness."
387
388 They had got me by this time into the apartment indicated by Mrs. Reed,
389 and had thrust me upon a stool: my impulse was to rise from it like a
390 spring; their two pair of hands arrested me instantly.
391
392 "If you don't sit still, you must be tied down," said Bessie. "Miss
393 Abbot, lend me your garters; she would break mine directly."
394
395 Miss Abbot turned to divest a stout leg of the necessary ligature. This
396 preparation for bonds, and the additional ignominy it inferred, took a
397 little of the excitement out of me.
398
399 "Don't take them off," I cried; "I will not stir."
400
401 In guarantee whereof, I attached myself to my seat by my hands.
402
403 "Mind you don't," said Bessie; and when she had ascertained that I was
404 really subsiding, she loosened her hold of me; then she and Miss Abbot
405 stood with folded arms, looking darkly and doubtfully on my face, as
406 incredulous of my sanity.
407
408 "She never did so before," at last said Bessie, turning to the Abigail.
409
410 "But it was always in her," was the reply. "I've told Missis often my
411 opinion about the child, and Missis agreed with me. She's an underhand
412 little thing: I never saw a girl of her age with so much cover."
413
414 Bessie answered not; but ere long, addressing me, she said--"You ought to
415 be aware, Miss, that you are under obligations to Mrs. Reed: she keeps
416 you: if she were to turn you off, you would have to go to the poorhouse."
417
418 I had nothing to say to these words: they were not new to me: my very
419 first recollections of existence included hints of the same kind. This
420 reproach of my dependence had become a vague sing-song in my ear: very
421 painful and crushing, but only half intelligible. Miss Abbot joined in--
422
423 "And you ought not to think yourself on an equality with the Misses Reed
424 and Master Reed, because Missis kindly allows you to be brought up with
425 them. They will have a great deal of money, and you will have none: it
426 is your place to be humble, and to try to make yourself agreeable to
427 them."
428
429 "What we tell you is for your good," added Bessie, in no harsh voice,
430 "you should try to be useful and pleasant, then, perhaps, you would have
431 a home here; but if you become passionate and rude, Missis will send you
432 away, I am sure."
433
434 "Besides," said Miss Abbot, "God will punish her: He might strike her
435 dead in the midst of her tantrums, and then where would she go? Come,
436 Bessie, we will leave her: I wouldn't have her heart for anything. Say
437 your prayers, Miss Eyre, when you are by yourself; for if you don't
438 repent, something bad might be permitted to come down the chimney and
439 fetch you away."
440
441 They went, shutting the door, and locking it behind them.
442
443 The red-room was a square chamber, very seldom slept in, I might say
444 never, indeed, unless when a chance influx of visitors at Gateshead Hall
445 rendered it necessary to turn to account all the accommodation it
446 contained: yet it was one of the largest and stateliest chambers in the
447 mansion. A bed supported on massive pillars of mahogany, hung with
448 curtains of deep red damask, stood out like a tabernacle in the centre;
449 the two large windows, with their blinds always drawn down, were half
450 shrouded in festoons and falls of similar drapery; the carpet was red;
451 the table at the foot of the bed was covered with a crimson cloth; the
452 walls were a soft fawn colour with a blush of pink in it; the wardrobe,
453 the toilet-table, the chairs were of darkly polished old mahogany. Out
454 of these deep surrounding shades rose high, and glared white, the piled-
455 up mattresses and pillows of the bed, spread with a snowy Marseilles
456 counterpane. Scarcely less prominent was an ample cushioned easy-chair
457 near the head of the bed, also white, with a footstool before it; and
458 looking, as I thought, like a pale throne.
459
460 This room was chill, because it seldom had a fire; it was silent, because
461 remote from the nursery and kitchen; solemn, because it was known to be
462 so seldom entered. The house-maid alone came here on Saturdays, to wipe
463 from the mirrors and the furniture a week's quiet dust: and Mrs. Reed
464 herself, at far intervals, visited it to review the contents of a certain
465 secret drawer in the wardrobe, where were stored divers parchments, her
466 jewel-casket, and a miniature of her deceased husband; and in those last
467 words lies the secret of the red-room--the spell which kept it so lonely
468 in spite of its grandeur.
469
470 Mr. Reed had been dead nine years: it was in this chamber he breathed his
471 last; here he lay in state; hence his coffin was borne by the
472 undertaker's men; and, since that day, a sense of dreary consecration had
473 guarded it from frequent intrusion.
474
475 My seat, to which Bessie and the bitter Miss Abbot had left me riveted,
476 was a low ottoman near the marble chimney-piece; the bed rose before me;
477 to my right hand there was the high, dark wardrobe, with subdued, broken
478 reflections varying the gloss of its panels; to my left were the muffled
479 windows; a great looking-glass between them repeated the vacant majesty
480 of the bed and room. I was not quite sure whether they had locked the
481 door; and when I dared move, I got up and went to see. Alas! yes: no
482 jail was ever more secure. Returning, I had to cross before the looking-
483 glass; my fascinated glance involuntarily explored the depth it revealed.
484 All looked colder and darker in that visionary hollow than in reality:
485 and the strange little figure there gazing at me, with a white face and
486 arms specking the gloom, and glittering eyes of fear moving where all
487 else was still, had the effect of a real spirit: I thought it like one of
488 the tiny phantoms, half fairy, half imp, Bessie's evening stories
489 represented as coming out of lone, ferny dells in moors, and appearing
490 before the eyes of belated travellers. I returned to my stool.
491
492 Superstition was with me at that moment; but it was not yet her hour for
493 complete victory: my blood was still warm; the mood of the revolted slave
494 was still bracing me with its bitter vigour; I had to stem a rapid rush
495 of retrospective thought before I quailed to the dismal present.
496
497 All John Reed's violent tyrannies, all his sisters' proud indifference,
498 all his mother's aversion, all the servants' partiality, turned up in my
499 disturbed mind like a dark deposit in a turbid well. Why was I always
500 suffering, always browbeaten, always accused, for ever condemned? Why
501 could I never please? Why was it useless to try to win any one's favour?
502 Eliza, who was headstrong and selfish, was respected. Georgiana, who had
503 a spoiled temper, a very acrid spite, a captious and insolent carriage,
504 was universally indulged. Her beauty, her pink cheeks and golden curls,
505 seemed to give delight to all who looked at her, and to purchase
506 indemnity for every fault. John no one thwarted, much less punished;
507 though he twisted the necks of the pigeons, killed the little pea-chicks,
508 set the dogs at the sheep, stripped the hothouse vines of their fruit,
509 and broke the buds off the choicest plants in the conservatory: he called
510 his mother "old girl," too; sometimes reviled her for her dark skin,
511 similar to his own; bluntly disregarded her wishes; not unfrequently tore
512 and spoiled her silk attire; and he was still "her own darling." I dared
513 commit no fault: I strove to fulfil every duty; and I was termed naughty
514 and tiresome, sullen and sneaking, from morning to noon, and from noon to
515 night.
516
517 My head still ached and bled with the blow and fall I had received: no
518 one had reproved John for wantonly striking me; and because I had turned
519 against him to avert farther irrational violence, I was loaded with
520 general opprobrium.
521
522 "Unjust!--unjust!" said my reason, forced by the agonising stimulus into
523 precocious though transitory power: and Resolve, equally wrought up,
524 instigated some strange expedient to achieve escape from insupportable
525 oppression--as running away, or, if that could not be effected, never
526 eating or drinking more, and letting myself die.
527
528 What a consternation of soul was mine that dreary afternoon! How all my
529 brain was in tumult, and all my heart in insurrection! Yet in what
530 darkness, what dense ignorance, was the mental battle fought! I could
531 not answer the ceaseless inward question--_why_ I thus suffered; now, at
532 the distance of--I will not say how many years, I see it clearly.
533
534 I was a discord in Gateshead Hall: I was like nobody there; I had nothing
535 in harmony with Mrs. Reed or her children, or her chosen vassalage. If
536 they did not love me, in fact, as little did I love them. They were not
537 bound to regard with affection a thing that could not sympathise with one
538 amongst them; a heterogeneous thing, opposed to them in temperament, in
539 capacity, in propensities; a useless thing, incapable of serving their
540 interest, or adding to their pleasure; a noxious thing, cherishing the
541 germs of indignation at their treatment, of contempt of their judgment. I
542 know that had I been a sanguine, brilliant, careless, exacting, handsome,
543 romping child--though equally dependent and friendless--Mrs. Reed would
544 have endured my presence more complacently; her children would have
545 entertained for me more of the cordiality of fellow-feeling; the servants
546 would have been less prone to make me the scapegoat of the nursery.
547
548 Daylight began to forsake the red-room; it was past four o'clock, and the
549 beclouded afternoon was tending to drear twilight. I heard the rain
550 still beating continuously on the staircase window, and the wind howling
551 in the grove behind the hall; I grew by degrees cold as a stone, and then
552 my courage sank. My habitual mood of humiliation, self-doubt, forlorn
553 depression, fell damp on the embers of my decaying ire. All said I was
554 wicked, and perhaps I might be so; what thought had I been but just
555 conceiving of starving myself to death? That certainly was a crime: and
556 was I fit to die? Or was the vault under the chancel of Gateshead Church
557 an inviting bourne? In such vault I had been told did Mr. Reed lie
558 buried; and led by this thought to recall his idea, I dwelt on it with
559 gathering dread. I could not remember him; but I knew that he was my own
560 uncle--my mother's brother--that he had taken me when a parentless infant
561 to his house; and that in his last moments he had required a promise of
562 Mrs. Reed that she would rear and maintain me as one of her own children.
563 Mrs. Reed probably considered she had kept this promise; and so she had,
564 I dare say, as well as her nature would permit her; but how could she
565 really like an interloper not of her race, and unconnected with her,
566 after her husband's death, by any tie? It must have been most irksome to
567 find herself bound by a hard-wrung pledge to stand in the stead of a
568 parent to a strange child she could not love, and to see an uncongenial
569 alien permanently intruded on her own family group.
570
571 A singular notion dawned upon me. I doubted not--never doubted--that if
572 Mr. Reed had been alive he would have treated me kindly; and now, as I
573 sat looking at the white bed and overshadowed walls--occasionally also
574 turning a fascinated eye towards the dimly gleaning mirror--I began to
575 recall what I had heard of dead men, troubled in their graves by the
576 violation of their last wishes, revisiting the earth to punish the
577 perjured and avenge the oppressed; and I thought Mr. Reed's spirit,
578 harassed by the wrongs of his sister's child, might quit its
579 abode--whether in the church vault or in the unknown world of the
580 departed--and rise before me in this chamber. I wiped my tears and
581 hushed my sobs, fearful lest any sign of violent grief might waken a
582 preternatural voice to comfort me, or elicit from the gloom some haloed
583 face, bending over me with strange pity. This idea, consolatory in
584 theory, I felt would be terrible if realised: with all my might I
585 endeavoured to stifle it--I endeavoured to be firm. Shaking my hair from
586 my eyes, I lifted my head and tried to look boldly round the dark room;
587 at this moment a light gleamed on the wall. Was it, I asked myself, a
588 ray from the moon penetrating some aperture in the blind? No; moonlight
589 was still, and this stirred; while I gazed, it glided up to the ceiling
590 and quivered over my head. I can now conjecture readily that this streak
591 of light was, in all likelihood, a gleam from a lantern carried by some
592 one across the lawn: but then, prepared as my mind was for horror, shaken
593 as my nerves were by agitation, I thought the swift darting beam was a
594 herald of some coming vision from another world. My heart beat thick, my
595 head grew hot; a sound filled my ears, which I deemed the rushing of
596 wings; something seemed near me; I was oppressed, suffocated: endurance
597 broke down; I rushed to the door and shook the lock in desperate effort.
598 Steps came running along the outer passage; the key turned, Bessie and
599 Abbot entered.
600
601 "Miss Eyre, are you ill?" said Bessie.
602
603 "What a dreadful noise! it went quite through me!" exclaimed Abbot.
604
605 "Take me out! Let me go into the nursery!" was my cry.
606
607 "What for? Are you hurt? Have you seen something?" again demanded
608 Bessie.
609
610 "Oh! I saw a light, and I thought a ghost would come." I had now got
611 hold of Bessie's hand, and she did not snatch it from me.
612
613 "She has screamed out on purpose," declared Abbot, in some disgust. "And
614 what a scream! If she had been in great pain one would have excused it,
615 but she only wanted to bring us all here: I know her naughty tricks."
616
617 "What is all this?" demanded another voice peremptorily; and Mrs. Reed
618 came along the corridor, her cap flying wide, her gown rustling stormily.
619 "Abbot and Bessie, I believe I gave orders that Jane Eyre should be left
620 in the red-room till I came to her myself."
621
622 "Miss Jane screamed so loud, ma'am," pleaded Bessie.
623
624 "Let her go," was the only answer. "Loose Bessie's hand, child: you
625 cannot succeed in getting out by these means, be assured. I abhor
626 artifice, particularly in children; it is my duty to show you that tricks
627 will not answer: you will now stay here an hour longer, and it is only on
628 condition of perfect submission and stillness that I shall liberate you
629 then."
630
631 "O aunt! have pity! Forgive me! I cannot endure it--let me be punished
632 some other way! I shall be killed if--"
633
634 "Silence! This violence is all most repulsive:" and so, no doubt, she
635 felt it. I was a precocious actress in her eyes; she sincerely looked on
636 me as a compound of virulent passions, mean spirit, and dangerous
637 duplicity.
638
639 Bessie and Abbot having retreated, Mrs. Reed, impatient of my now frantic
640 anguish and wild sobs, abruptly thrust me back and locked me in, without
641 farther parley. I heard her sweeping away; and soon after she was gone,
642 I suppose I had a species of fit: unconsciousness closed the scene.
643
644
645
646
647 CHAPTER III
648
649
650 The next thing I remember is, waking up with a feeling as if I had had a
651 frightful nightmare, and seeing before me a terrible red glare, crossed
652 with thick black bars. I heard voices, too, speaking with a hollow
653 sound, and as if muffled by a rush of wind or water: agitation,
654 uncertainty, and an all-predominating sense of terror confused my
655 faculties. Ere long, I became aware that some one was handling me;
656 lifting me up and supporting me in a sitting posture, and that more
657 tenderly than I had ever been raised or upheld before. I rested my head
658 against a pillow or an arm, and felt easy.
659
660 In five minutes more the cloud of bewilderment dissolved: I knew quite
661 well that I was in my own bed, and that the red glare was the nursery
662 fire. It was night: a candle burnt on the table; Bessie stood at the bed-
663 foot with a basin in her hand, and a gentleman sat in a chair near my
664 pillow, leaning over me.
665
666 I felt an inexpressible relief, a soothing conviction of protection and
667 security, when I knew that there was a stranger in the room, an
668 individual not belonging to Gateshead, and not related to Mrs. Reed.
669 Turning from Bessie (though her presence was far less obnoxious to me
670 than that of Abbot, for instance, would have been), I scrutinised the
671 face of the gentleman: I knew him; it was Mr. Lloyd, an apothecary,
672 sometimes called in by Mrs. Reed when the servants were ailing: for
673 herself and the children she employed a physician.
674
675 "Well, who am I?" he asked.
676
677 I pronounced his name, offering him at the same time my hand: he took it,
678 smiling and saying, "We shall do very well by-and-by." Then he laid me
679 down, and addressing Bessie, charged her to be very careful that I was
680 not disturbed during the night. Having given some further directions,
681 and intimates that he should call again the next day, he departed; to my
682 grief: I felt so sheltered and befriended while he sat in the chair near
683 my pillow; and as he closed the door after him, all the room darkened and
684 my heart again sank: inexpressible sadness weighed it down.
685
686 "Do you feel as if you should sleep, Miss?" asked Bessie, rather softly.
687
688 Scarcely dared I answer her; for I feared the next sentence might be
689 rough. "I will try."
690
691 "Would you like to drink, or could you eat anything?"
692
693 "No, thank you, Bessie."
694
695 "Then I think I shall go to bed, for it is past twelve o'clock; but you
696 may call me if you want anything in the night."
697
698 Wonderful civility this! It emboldened me to ask a question.
699
700 "Bessie, what is the matter with me? Am I ill?"
701
702 "You fell sick, I suppose, in the red-room with crying; you'll be better
703 soon, no doubt."
704
705 Bessie went into the housemaid's apartment, which was near. I heard her
706 say--
707
708 "Sarah, come and sleep with me in the nursery; I daren't for my life be
709 alone with that poor child to-night: she might die; it's such a strange
710 thing she should have that fit: I wonder if she saw anything. Missis was
711 rather too hard."
712
713 Sarah came back with her; they both went to bed; they were whispering
714 together for half-an-hour before they fell asleep. I caught scraps of
715 their conversation, from which I was able only too distinctly to infer
716 the main subject discussed.
717
718 "Something passed her, all dressed in white, and vanished"--"A great
719 black dog behind him"--"Three loud raps on the chamber door"--"A light in
720 the churchyard just over his grave," etc., etc.
721
722 At last both slept: the fire and the candle went out. For me, the
723 watches of that long night passed in ghastly wakefulness; strained by
724 dread: such dread as children only can feel.
725
726 No severe or prolonged bodily illness followed this incident of the red-
727 room; it only gave my nerves a shock of which I feel the reverberation to
728 this day. Yes, Mrs. Reed, to you I owe some fearful pangs of mental
729 suffering, but I ought to forgive you, for you knew not what you did:
730 while rending my heart-strings, you thought you were only uprooting my
731 bad propensities.
732
733 Next day, by noon, I was up and dressed, and sat wrapped in a shawl by
734 the nursery hearth. I felt physically weak and broken down: but my worse
735 ailment was an unutterable wretchedness of mind: a wretchedness which
736 kept drawing from me silent tears; no sooner had I wiped one salt drop
737 from my cheek than another followed. Yet, I thought, I ought to have
738 been happy, for none of the Reeds were there, they were all gone out in
739 the carriage with their mama. Abbot, too, was sewing in another room,
740 and Bessie, as she moved hither and thither, putting away toys and
741 arranging drawers, addressed to me every now and then a word of unwonted
742 kindness. This state of things should have been to me a paradise of
743 peace, accustomed as I was to a life of ceaseless reprimand and thankless
744 fagging; but, in fact, my racked nerves were now in such a state that no
745 calm could soothe, and no pleasure excite them agreeably.
746
747 Bessie had been down into the kitchen, and she brought up with her a tart
748 on a certain brightly painted china plate, whose bird of paradise,
749 nestling in a wreath of convolvuli and rosebuds, had been wont to stir in
750 me a most enthusiastic sense of admiration; and which plate I had often
751 petitioned to be allowed to take in my hand in order to examine it more
752 closely, but had always hitherto been deemed unworthy of such a
753 privilege. This precious vessel was now placed on my knee, and I was
754 cordially invited to eat the circlet of delicate pastry upon it. Vain
755 favour! coming, like most other favours long deferred and often wished
756 for, too late! I could not eat the tart; and the plumage of the bird,
757 the tints of the flowers, seemed strangely faded: I put both plate and
758 tart away. Bessie asked if I would have a book: the word _book_ acted as
759 a transient stimulus, and I begged her to fetch Gulliver's Travels from
760 the library. This book I had again and again perused with delight. I
761 considered it a narrative of facts, and discovered in it a vein of
762 interest deeper than what I found in fairy tales: for as to the elves,
763 having sought them in vain among foxglove leaves and bells, under
764 mushrooms and beneath the ground-ivy mantling old wall-nooks, I had at
765 length made up my mind to the sad truth, that they were all gone out of
766 England to some savage country where the woods were wilder and thicker,
767 and the population more scant; whereas, Lilliput and Brobdignag being, in
768 my creed, solid parts of the earth's surface, I doubted not that I might
769 one day, by taking a long voyage, see with my own eyes the little fields,
770 houses, and trees, the diminutive people, the tiny cows, sheep, and birds
771 of the one realm; and the corn-fields forest-high, the mighty mastiffs,
772 the monster cats, the tower-like men and women, of the other. Yet, when
773 this cherished volume was now placed in my hand--when I turned over its
774 leaves, and sought in its marvellous pictures the charm I had, till now,
775 never failed to find--all was eerie and dreary; the giants were gaunt
776 goblins, the pigmies malevolent and fearful imps, Gulliver a most
777 desolate wanderer in most dread and dangerous regions. I closed the
778 book, which I dared no longer peruse, and put it on the table, beside the
779 untasted tart.
780
781 Bessie had now finished dusting and tidying the room, and having washed
782 her hands, she opened a certain little drawer, full of splendid shreds of
783 silk and satin, and began making a new bonnet for Georgiana's doll.
784 Meantime she sang: her song was--
785
786 "In the days when we went gipsying,
787 A long time ago."
788
789 I had often heard the song before, and always with lively delight; for
790 Bessie had a sweet voice,--at least, I thought so. But now, though her
791 voice was still sweet, I found in its melody an indescribable sadness.
792 Sometimes, preoccupied with her work, she sang the refrain very low, very
793 lingeringly; "A long time ago" came out like the saddest cadence of a
794 funeral hymn. She passed into another ballad, this time a really doleful
795 one.
796
797 "My feet they are sore, and my limbs they are weary;
798 Long is the way, and the mountains are wild;
799 Soon will the twilight close moonless and dreary
800 Over the path of the poor orphan child.
801
802 Why did they send me so far and so lonely,
803 Up where the moors spread and grey rocks are piled?
804 Men are hard-hearted, and kind angels only
805 Watch o'er the steps of a poor orphan child.
806
807 Yet distant and soft the night breeze is blowing,
808 Clouds there are none, and clear stars beam mild,
809 God, in His mercy, protection is showing,
810 Comfort and hope to the poor orphan child.
811
812 Ev'n should I fall o'er the broken bridge passing,
813 Or stray in the marshes, by false lights beguiled,
814 Still will my Father, with promise and blessing,
815 Take to His bosom the poor orphan child.
816
817 There is a thought that for strength should avail me,
818 Though both of shelter and kindred despoiled;
819 Heaven is a home, and a rest will not fail me;
820 God is a friend to the poor orphan child."
821
822 "Come, Miss Jane, don't cry," said Bessie as she finished. She might as
823 well have said to the fire, "don't burn!" but how could she divine the
824 morbid suffering to which I was a prey? In the course of the morning Mr.
825 Lloyd came again.
826
827 "What, already up!" said he, as he entered the nursery. "Well, nurse,
828 how is she?"
829
830 Bessie answered that I was doing very well.
831
832 "Then she ought to look more cheerful. Come here, Miss Jane: your name
833 is Jane, is it not?"
834
835 "Yes, sir, Jane Eyre."
836
837 "Well, you have been crying, Miss Jane Eyre; can you tell me what about?
838 Have you any pain?"
839
840 "No, sir."
841
842 "Oh! I daresay she is crying because she could not go out with Missis in
843 the carriage," interposed Bessie.
844
845 "Surely not! why, she is too old for such pettishness."
846
847 I thought so too; and my self-esteem being wounded by the false charge, I
848 answered promptly, "I never cried for such a thing in my life: I hate
849 going out in the carriage. I cry because I am miserable."
850
851 "Oh fie, Miss!" said Bessie.
852
853 The good apothecary appeared a little puzzled. I was standing before
854 him; he fixed his eyes on me very steadily: his eyes were small and grey;
855 not very bright, but I dare say I should think them shrewd now: he had a
856 hard-featured yet good-natured looking face. Having considered me at
857 leisure, he said--
858
859 "What made you ill yesterday?"
860
861 "She had a fall," said Bessie, again putting in her word.
862
863 "Fall! why, that is like a baby again! Can't she manage to walk at her
864 age? She must be eight or nine years old."
865
866 "I was knocked down," was the blunt explanation, jerked out of me by
867 another pang of mortified pride; "but that did not make me ill," I added;
868 while Mr. Lloyd helped himself to a pinch of snuff.
869
870 As he was returning the box to his waistcoat pocket, a loud bell rang for
871 the servants' dinner; he knew what it was. "That's for you, nurse," said
872 he; "you can go down; I'll give Miss Jane a lecture till you come back."
873
874 Bessie would rather have stayed, but she was obliged to go, because
875 punctuality at meals was rigidly enforced at Gateshead Hall.
876
877 "The fall did not make you ill; what did, then?" pursued Mr. Lloyd when
878 Bessie was gone.
879
880 "I was shut up in a room where there is a ghost till after dark."
881
882 I saw Mr. Lloyd smile and frown at the same time.
883
884 "Ghost! What, you are a baby after all! You are afraid of ghosts?"
885
886 "Of Mr. Reed's ghost I am: he died in that room, and was laid out there.
887 Neither Bessie nor any one else will go into it at night, if they can
888 help it; and it was cruel to shut me up alone without a candle,--so cruel
889 that I think I shall never forget it."
890
891 "Nonsense! And is it that makes you so miserable? Are you afraid now in
892 daylight?"
893
894 "No: but night will come again before long: and besides,--I am
895 unhappy,--very unhappy, for other things."
896
897 "What other things? Can you tell me some of them?"
898
899 How much I wished to reply fully to this question! How difficult it was
900 to frame any answer! Children can feel, but they cannot analyse their
901 feelings; and if the analysis is partially effected in thought, they know
902 not how to express the result of the process in words. Fearful, however,
903 of losing this first and only opportunity of relieving my grief by
904 imparting it, I, after a disturbed pause, contrived to frame a meagre,
905 though, as far as it went, true response.
906
907 "For one thing, I have no father or mother, brothers or sisters."
908
909 "You have a kind aunt and cousins."
910
911 Again I paused; then bunglingly enounced--
912
913 "But John Reed knocked me down, and my aunt shut me up in the red-room."
914
915 Mr. Lloyd a second time produced his snuff-box.
916
917 "Don't you think Gateshead Hall a very beautiful house?" asked he. "Are
918 you not very thankful to have such a fine place to live at?"
919
920 "It is not my house, sir; and Abbot says I have less right to be here
921 than a servant."
922
923 "Pooh! you can't be silly enough to wish to leave such a splendid place?"
924
925 "If I had anywhere else to go, I should be glad to leave it; but I can
926 never get away from Gateshead till I am a woman."
927
928 "Perhaps you may--who knows? Have you any relations besides Mrs. Reed?"
929
930 "I think not, sir."
931
932 "None belonging to your father?"
933
934 "I don't know. I asked Aunt Reed once, and she said possibly I might
935 have some poor, low relations called Eyre, but she knew nothing about
936 them."
937
938 "If you had such, would you like to go to them?"
939
940 I reflected. Poverty looks grim to grown people; still more so to
941 children: they have not much idea of industrious, working, respectable
942 poverty; they think of the word only as connected with ragged clothes,
943 scanty food, fireless grates, rude manners, and debasing vices: poverty
944 for me was synonymous with degradation.
945
946 "No; I should not like to belong to poor people," was my reply.
947
948 "Not even if they were kind to you?"
949
950 I shook my head: I could not see how poor people had the means of being
951 kind; and then to learn to speak like them, to adopt their manners, to be
952 uneducated, to grow up like one of the poor women I saw sometimes nursing
953 their children or washing their clothes at the cottage doors of the
954 village of Gateshead: no, I was not heroic enough to purchase liberty at
955 the price of caste.
956
957 "But are your relatives so very poor? Are they working people?"
958
959 "I cannot tell; Aunt Reed says if I have any, they must be a beggarly
960 set: I should not like to go a begging."
961
962 "Would you like to go to school?"
963
964 Again I reflected: I scarcely knew what school was: Bessie sometimes
965 spoke of it as a place where young ladies sat in the stocks, wore
966 backboards, and were expected to be exceedingly genteel and precise: John
967 Reed hated his school, and abused his master; but John Reed's tastes were
968 no rule for mine, and if Bessie's accounts of school-discipline (gathered
969 from the young ladies of a family where she had lived before coming to
970 Gateshead) were somewhat appalling, her details of certain
971 accomplishments attained by these same young ladies were, I thought,
972 equally attractive. She boasted of beautiful paintings of landscapes and
973 flowers by them executed; of songs they could sing and pieces they could
974 play, of purses they could net, of French books they could translate;
975 till my spirit was moved to emulation as I listened. Besides, school
976 would be a complete change: it implied a long journey, an entire
977 separation from Gateshead, an entrance into a new life.
978
979 "I should indeed like to go to school," was the audible conclusion of my
980 musings.
981
982 "Well, well! who knows what may happen?" said Mr. Lloyd, as he got up.
983 "The child ought to have change of air and scene," he added, speaking to
984 himself; "nerves not in a good state."
985
986 Bessie now returned; at the same moment the carriage was heard rolling up
987 the gravel-walk.
988
989 "Is that your mistress, nurse?" asked Mr. Lloyd. "I should like to speak
990 to her before I go."
991
992 Bessie invited him to walk into the breakfast-room, and led the way out.
993 In the interview which followed between him and Mrs. Reed, I presume,
994 from after-occurrences, that the apothecary ventured to recommend my
995 being sent to school; and the recommendation was no doubt readily enough
996 adopted; for as Abbot said, in discussing the subject with Bessie when
997 both sat sewing in the nursery one night, after I was in bed, and, as
998 they thought, asleep, "Missis was, she dared say, glad enough to get rid
999 of such a tiresome, ill-conditioned child, who always looked as if she
1000 were watching everybody, and scheming plots underhand." Abbot, I think,
1001 gave me credit for being a sort of infantine Guy Fawkes.
1002
1003 On that same occasion I learned, for the first time, from Miss Abbot's
1004 communications to Bessie, that my father had been a poor clergyman; that
1005 my mother had married him against the wishes of her friends, who
1006 considered the match beneath her; that my grandfather Reed was so
1007 irritated at her disobedience, he cut her off without a shilling; that
1008 after my mother and father had been married a year, the latter caught the
1009 typhus fever while visiting among the poor of a large manufacturing town
1010 where his curacy was situated, and where that disease was then prevalent:
1011 that my mother took the infection from him, and both died within a month
1012 of each other.
1013
1014 Bessie, when she heard this narrative, sighed and said, "Poor Miss Jane
1015 is to be pitied, too, Abbot."
1016
1017 "Yes," responded Abbot; "if she were a nice, pretty child, one might
1018 compassionate her forlornness; but one really cannot care for such a
1019 little toad as that."
1020
1021 "Not a great deal, to be sure," agreed Bessie: "at any rate, a beauty
1022 like Miss Georgiana would be more moving in the same condition."
1023
1024 "Yes, I doat on Miss Georgiana!" cried the fervent Abbot. "Little
1025 darling!--with her long curls and her blue eyes, and such a sweet colour
1026 as she has; just as if she were painted!--Bessie, I could fancy a Welsh
1027 rabbit for supper."
1028
1029 "So could I--with a roast onion. Come, we'll go down." They went.
1030
1031
1032
1033
1034 CHAPTER IV
1035
1036
1037 From my discourse with Mr. Lloyd, and from the above reported conference
1038 between Bessie and Abbot, I gathered enough of hope to suffice as a
1039 motive for wishing to get well: a change seemed near,--I desired and
1040 waited it in silence. It tarried, however: days and weeks passed: I had
1041 regained my normal state of health, but no new allusion was made to the
1042 subject over which I brooded. Mrs. Reed surveyed me at times with a
1043 severe eye, but seldom addressed me: since my illness, she had drawn a
1044 more marked line of separation than ever between me and her own children;
1045 appointing me a small closet to sleep in by myself, condemning me to take
1046 my meals alone, and pass all my time in the nursery, while my cousins
1047 were constantly in the drawing-room. Not a hint, however, did she drop
1048 about sending me to school: still I felt an instinctive certainty that
1049 she would not long endure me under the same roof with her; for her
1050 glance, now more than ever, when turned on me, expressed an insuperable
1051 and rooted aversion.
1052
1053 Eliza and Georgiana, evidently acting according to orders, spoke to me as
1054 little as possible: John thrust his tongue in his cheek whenever he saw
1055 me, and once attempted chastisement; but as I instantly turned against
1056 him, roused by the same sentiment of deep ire and desperate revolt which
1057 had stirred my corruption before, he thought it better to desist, and ran
1058 from me tittering execrations, and vowing I had burst his nose. I had
1059 indeed levelled at that prominent feature as hard a blow as my knuckles
1060 could inflict; and when I saw that either that or my look daunted him, I
1061 had the greatest inclination to follow up my advantage to purpose; but he
1062 was already with his mama. I heard him in a blubbering tone commence the
1063 tale of how "that nasty Jane Eyre" had flown at him like a mad cat: he
1064 was stopped rather harshly--
1065
1066 "Don't talk to me about her, John: I told you not to go near her; she is
1067 not worthy of notice; I do not choose that either you or your sisters
1068 should associate with her."
1069
1070 Here, leaning over the banister, I cried out suddenly, and without at all
1071 deliberating on my words--
1072
1073 "They are not fit to associate with me."
1074
1075 Mrs. Reed was rather a stout woman; but, on hearing this strange and
1076 audacious declaration, she ran nimbly up the stair, swept me like a
1077 whirlwind into the nursery, and crushing me down on the edge of my crib,
1078 dared me in an emphatic voice to rise from that place, or utter one
1079 syllable during the remainder of the day.
1080
1081 "What would Uncle Reed say to you, if he were alive?" was my scarcely
1082 voluntary demand. I say scarcely voluntary, for it seemed as if my
1083 tongue pronounced words without my will consenting to their utterance:
1084 something spoke out of me over which I had no control.
1085
1086 "What?" said Mrs. Reed under her breath: her usually cold composed grey
1087 eye became troubled with a look like fear; she took her hand from my arm,
1088 and gazed at me as if she really did not know whether I were child or
1089 fiend. I was now in for it.
1090
1091 "My Uncle Reed is in heaven, and can see all you do and think; and so can
1092 papa and mama: they know how you shut me up all day long, and how you
1093 wish me dead."
1094
1095 Mrs. Reed soon rallied her spirits: she shook me most soundly, she boxed
1096 both my ears, and then left me without a word. Bessie supplied the
1097 hiatus by a homily of an hour's length, in which she proved beyond a
1098 doubt that I was the most wicked and abandoned child ever reared under a
1099 roof. I half believed her; for I felt indeed only bad feelings surging
1100 in my breast.
1101
1102 November, December, and half of January passed away. Christmas and the
1103 New Year had been celebrated at Gateshead with the usual festive cheer;
1104 presents had been interchanged, dinners and evening parties given. From
1105 every enjoyment I was, of course, excluded: my share of the gaiety
1106 consisted in witnessing the daily apparelling of Eliza and Georgiana, and
1107 seeing them descend to the drawing-room, dressed out in thin muslin
1108 frocks and scarlet sashes, with hair elaborately ringletted; and
1109 afterwards, in listening to the sound of the piano or the harp played
1110 below, to the passing to and fro of the butler and footman, to the
1111 jingling of glass and china as refreshments were handed, to the broken
1112 hum of conversation as the drawing-room door opened and closed. When
1113 tired of this occupation, I would retire from the stairhead to the
1114 solitary and silent nursery: there, though somewhat sad, I was not
1115 miserable. To speak truth, I had not the least wish to go into company,
1116 for in company I was very rarely noticed; and if Bessie had but been kind
1117 and companionable, I should have deemed it a treat to spend the evenings
1118 quietly with her, instead of passing them under the formidable eye of
1119 Mrs. Reed, in a room full of ladies and gentlemen. But Bessie, as soon
1120 as she had dressed her young ladies, used to take herself off to the
1121 lively regions of the kitchen and housekeeper's room, generally bearing
1122 the candle along with her. I then sat with my doll on my knee till the
1123 fire got low, glancing round occasionally to make sure that nothing worse
1124 than myself haunted the shadowy room; and when the embers sank to a dull
1125 red, I undressed hastily, tugging at knots and strings as I best might,
1126 and sought shelter from cold and darkness in my crib. To this crib I
1127 always took my doll; human beings must love something, and, in the dearth
1128 of worthier objects of affection, I contrived to find a pleasure in
1129 loving and cherishing a faded graven image, shabby as a miniature
1130 scarecrow. It puzzles me now to remember with what absurd sincerity I
1131 doated on this little toy, half fancying it alive and capable of
1132 sensation. I could not sleep unless it was folded in my night-gown; and
1133 when it lay there safe and warm, I was comparatively happy, believing it
1134 to be happy likewise.
1135
1136 Long did the hours seem while I waited the departure of the company, and
1137 listened for the sound of Bessie's step on the stairs: sometimes she
1138 would come up in the interval to seek her thimble or her scissors, or
1139 perhaps to bring me something by way of supper--a bun or a
1140 cheese-cake--then she would sit on the bed while I ate it, and when I had
1141 finished, she would tuck the clothes round me, and twice she kissed me,
1142 and said, "Good night, Miss Jane." When thus gentle, Bessie seemed to me
1143 the best, prettiest, kindest being in the world; and I wished most
1144 intensely that she would always be so pleasant and amiable, and never
1145 push me about, or scold, or task me unreasonably, as she was too often
1146 wont to do. Bessie Lee must, I think, have been a girl of good natural
1147 capacity, for she was smart in all she did, and had a remarkable knack of
1148 narrative; so, at least, I judge from the impression made on me by her
1149 nursery tales. She was pretty too, if my recollections of her face and
1150 person are correct. I remember her as a slim young woman, with black
1151 hair, dark eyes, very nice features, and good, clear complexion; but she
1152 had a capricious and hasty temper, and indifferent ideas of principle or
1153 justice: still, such as she was, I preferred her to any one else at
1154 Gateshead Hall.
1155
1156 It was the fifteenth of January, about nine o'clock in the morning:
1157 Bessie was gone down to breakfast; my cousins had not yet been summoned
1158 to their mama; Eliza was putting on her bonnet and warm garden-coat to go
1159 and feed her poultry, an occupation of which she was fond: and not less
1160 so of selling the eggs to the housekeeper and hoarding up the money she
1161 thus obtained. She had a turn for traffic, and a marked propensity for
1162 saving; shown not only in the vending of eggs and chickens, but also in
1163 driving hard bargains with the gardener about flower-roots, seeds, and
1164 slips of plants; that functionary having orders from Mrs. Reed to buy of
1165 his young lady all the products of her parterre she wished to sell: and
1166 Eliza would have sold the hair off her head if she could have made a
1167 handsome profit thereby. As to her money, she first secreted it in odd
1168 corners, wrapped in a rag or an old curl-paper; but some of these hoards
1169 having been discovered by the housemaid, Eliza, fearful of one day losing
1170 her valued treasure, consented to intrust it to her mother, at a usurious
1171 rate of interest--fifty or sixty per cent.; which interest she exacted
1172 every quarter, keeping her accounts in a little book with anxious
1173 accuracy.
1174
1175 Georgiana sat on a high stool, dressing her hair at the glass, and
1176 interweaving her curls with artificial flowers and faded feathers, of
1177 which she had found a store in a drawer in the attic. I was making my
1178 bed, having received strict orders from Bessie to get it arranged before
1179 she returned (for Bessie now frequently employed me as a sort of under-
1180 nurserymaid, to tidy the room, dust the chairs, &c.). Having spread the
1181 quilt and folded my night-dress, I went to the window-seat to put in
1182 order some picture-books and doll's house furniture scattered there; an
1183 abrupt command from Georgiana to let her playthings alone (for the tiny
1184 chairs and mirrors, the fairy plates and cups, were her property) stopped
1185 my proceedings; and then, for lack of other occupation, I fell to
1186 breathing on the frost-flowers with which the window was fretted, and
1187 thus clearing a space in the glass through which I might look out on the
1188 grounds, where all was still and petrified under the influence of a hard
1189 frost.
1190
1191 From this window were visible the porter's lodge and the carriage-road,
1192 and just as I had dissolved so much of the silver-white foliage veiling
1193 the panes as left room to look out, I saw the gates thrown open and a
1194 carriage roll through. I watched it ascending the drive with
1195 indifference; carriages often came to Gateshead, but none ever brought
1196 visitors in whom I was interested; it stopped in front of the house, the
1197 door-bell rang loudly, the new-comer was admitted. All this being
1198 nothing to me, my vacant attention soon found livelier attraction in the
1199 spectacle of a little hungry robin, which came and chirruped on the twigs
1200 of the leafless cherry-tree nailed against the wall near the casement.
1201 The remains of my breakfast of bread and milk stood on the table, and
1202 having crumbled a morsel of roll, I was tugging at the sash to put out
1203 the crumbs on the window-sill, when Bessie came running upstairs into the
1204 nursery.
1205
1206 "Miss Jane, take off your pinafore; what are you doing there? Have you
1207 washed your hands and face this morning?" I gave another tug before I
1208 answered, for I wanted the bird to be secure of its bread: the sash
1209 yielded; I scattered the crumbs, some on the stone sill, some on the
1210 cherry-tree bough, then, closing the window, I replied--
1211
1212 "No, Bessie; I have only just finished dusting."
1213
1214 "Troublesome, careless child! and what are you doing now? You look quite
1215 red, as if you had been about some mischief: what were you opening the
1216 window for?"
1217
1218 I was spared the trouble of answering, for Bessie seemed in too great a
1219 hurry to listen to explanations; she hauled me to the washstand,
1220 inflicted a merciless, but happily brief scrub on my face and hands with
1221 soap, water, and a coarse towel; disciplined my head with a bristly
1222 brush, denuded me of my pinafore, and then hurrying me to the top of the
1223 stairs, bid me go down directly, as I was wanted in the breakfast-room.
1224
1225 I would have asked who wanted me: I would have demanded if Mrs. Reed was
1226 there; but Bessie was already gone, and had closed the nursery-door upon
1227 me. I slowly descended. For nearly three months, I had never been
1228 called to Mrs. Reed's presence; restricted so long to the nursery, the
1229 breakfast, dining, and drawing-rooms were become for me awful regions, on
1230 which it dismayed me to intrude.
1231
1232 I now stood in the empty hall; before me was the breakfast-room door, and
1233 I stopped, intimidated and trembling. What a miserable little poltroon
1234 had fear, engendered of unjust punishment, made of me in those days! I
1235 feared to return to the nursery, and feared to go forward to the parlour;
1236 ten minutes I stood in agitated hesitation; the vehement ringing of the
1237 breakfast-room bell decided me; I _must_ enter.
1238
1239 "Who could want me?" I asked inwardly, as with both hands I turned the
1240 stiff door-handle, which, for a second or two, resisted my efforts. "What
1241 should I see besides Aunt Reed in the apartment?--a man or a woman?" The
1242 handle turned, the door unclosed, and passing through and curtseying low,
1243 I looked up at--a black pillar!--such, at least, appeared to me, at first
1244 sight, the straight, narrow, sable-clad shape standing erect on the rug:
1245 the grim face at the top was like a carved mask, placed above the shaft
1246 by way of capital.
1247
1248 Mrs. Reed occupied her usual seat by the fireside; she made a signal to
1249 me to approach; I did so, and she introduced me to the stony stranger
1250 with the words: "This is the little girl respecting whom I applied to
1251 you."
1252
1253 _He_, for it was a man, turned his head slowly towards where I stood, and
1254 having examined me with the two inquisitive-looking grey eyes which
1255 twinkled under a pair of bushy brows, said solemnly, and in a bass voice,
1256 "Her size is small: what is her age?"
1257
1258 "Ten years."
1259
1260 "So much?" was the doubtful answer; and he prolonged his scrutiny for
1261 some minutes. Presently he addressed me--"Your name, little girl?"
1262
1263 "Jane Eyre, sir."
1264
1265 In uttering these words I looked up: he seemed to me a tall gentleman;
1266 but then I was very little; his features were large, and they and all the
1267 lines of his frame were equally harsh and prim.
1268
1269 "Well, Jane Eyre, and are you a good child?"
1270
1271 Impossible to reply to this in the affirmative: my little world held a
1272 contrary opinion: I was silent. Mrs. Reed answered for me by an
1273 expressive shake of the head, adding soon, "Perhaps the less said on that
1274 subject the better, Mr. Brocklehurst."
1275
1276 "Sorry indeed to hear it! she and I must have some talk;" and bending
1277 from the perpendicular, he installed his person in the arm-chair opposite
1278 Mrs. Reed's. "Come here," he said.
1279
1280 I stepped across the rug; he placed me square and straight before him.
1281 What a face he had, now that it was almost on a level with mine! what a
1282 great nose! and what a mouth! and what large prominent teeth!
1283
1284 "No sight so sad as that of a naughty child," he began, "especially a
1285 naughty little girl. Do you know where the wicked go after death?"
1286
1287 "They go to hell," was my ready and orthodox answer.
1288
1289 "And what is hell? Can you tell me that?"
1290
1291 "A pit full of fire."
1292
1293 "And should you like to fall into that pit, and to be burning there for
1294 ever?"
1295
1296 "No, sir."
1297
1298 "What must you do to avoid it?"
1299
1300 I deliberated a moment; my answer, when it did come, was objectionable:
1301 "I must keep in good health, and not die."
1302
1303 "How can you keep in good health? Children younger than you die daily. I
1304 buried a little child of five years old only a day or two since,--a good
1305 little child, whose soul is now in heaven. It is to be feared the same
1306 could not be said of you were you to be called hence."
1307
1308 Not being in a condition to remove his doubt, I only cast my eyes down on
1309 the two large feet planted on the rug, and sighed, wishing myself far
1310 enough away.
1311
1312 "I hope that sigh is from the heart, and that you repent of ever having
1313 been the occasion of discomfort to your excellent benefactress."
1314
1315 "Benefactress! benefactress!" said I inwardly: "they all call Mrs. Reed
1316 my benefactress; if so, a benefactress is a disagreeable thing."
1317
1318 "Do you say your prayers night and morning?" continued my interrogator.
1319
1320 "Yes, sir."
1321
1322 "Do you read your Bible?"
1323
1324 "Sometimes."
1325
1326 "With pleasure? Are you fond of it?"
1327
1328 "I like Revelations, and the book of Daniel, and Genesis and Samuel, and
1329 a little bit of Exodus, and some parts of Kings and Chronicles, and Job
1330 and Jonah."
1331
1332 "And the Psalms? I hope you like them?"
1333
1334 "No, sir."
1335
1336 "No? oh, shocking! I have a little boy, younger than you, who knows six
1337 Psalms by heart: and when you ask him which he would rather have, a
1338 gingerbread-nut to eat or a verse of a Psalm to learn, he says: 'Oh! the
1339 verse of a Psalm! angels sing Psalms;' says he, 'I wish to be a little
1340 angel here below;' he then gets two nuts in recompense for his infant
1341 piety."
1342
1343 "Psalms are not interesting," I remarked.
1344
1345 "That proves you have a wicked heart; and you must pray to God to change
1346 it: to give you a new and clean one: to take away your heart of stone and
1347 give you a heart of flesh."
1348
1349 I was about to propound a question, touching the manner in which that
1350 operation of changing my heart was to be performed, when Mrs. Reed
1351 interposed, telling me to sit down; she then proceeded to carry on the
1352 conversation herself.
1353
1354 "Mr. Brocklehurst, I believe I intimated in the letter which I wrote to
1355 you three weeks ago, that this little girl has not quite the character
1356 and disposition I could wish: should you admit her into Lowood school, I
1357 should be glad if the superintendent and teachers were requested to keep
1358 a strict eye on her, and, above all, to guard against her worst fault, a
1359 tendency to deceit. I mention this in your hearing, Jane, that you may
1360 not attempt to impose on Mr. Brocklehurst."
1361
1362 Well might I dread, well might I dislike Mrs. Reed; for it was her nature
1363 to wound me cruelly; never was I happy in her presence; however carefully
1364 I obeyed, however strenuously I strove to please her, my efforts were
1365 still repulsed and repaid by such sentences as the above. Now, uttered
1366 before a stranger, the accusation cut me to the heart; I dimly perceived
1367 that she was already obliterating hope from the new phase of existence
1368 which she destined me to enter; I felt, though I could not have expressed
1369 the feeling, that she was sowing aversion and unkindness along my future
1370 path; I saw myself transformed under Mr. Brocklehurst's eye into an
1371 artful, noxious child, and what could I do to remedy the injury?
1372
1373 "Nothing, indeed," thought I, as I struggled to repress a sob, and
1374 hastily wiped away some tears, the impotent evidences of my anguish.
1375
1376 "Deceit is, indeed, a sad fault in a child," said Mr. Brocklehurst; "it
1377 is akin to falsehood, and all liars will have their portion in the lake
1378 burning with fire and brimstone; she shall, however, be watched, Mrs.
1379 Reed. I will speak to Miss Temple and the teachers."
1380
1381 "I should wish her to be brought up in a manner suiting her prospects,"
1382 continued my benefactress; "to be made useful, to be kept humble: as for
1383 the vacations, she will, with your permission, spend them always at
1384 Lowood."
1385
1386 "Your decisions are perfectly judicious, madam," returned Mr.
1387 Brocklehurst. "Humility is a Christian grace, and one peculiarly
1388 appropriate to the pupils of Lowood; I, therefore, direct that especial
1389 care shall be bestowed on its cultivation amongst them. I have studied
1390 how best to mortify in them the worldly sentiment of pride; and, only the
1391 other day, I had a pleasing proof of my success. My second daughter,
1392 Augusta, went with her mama to visit the school, and on her return she
1393 exclaimed: 'Oh, dear papa, how quiet and plain all the girls at Lowood
1394 look, with their hair combed behind their ears, and their long pinafores,
1395 and those little holland pockets outside their frocks--they are almost
1396 like poor people's children! and,' said she, 'they looked at my dress and
1397 mama's, as if they had never seen a silk gown before.'"
1398
1399 "This is the state of things I quite approve," returned Mrs. Reed; "had I
1400 sought all England over, I could scarcely have found a system more
1401 exactly fitting a child like Jane Eyre. Consistency, my dear Mr.
1402 Brocklehurst; I advocate consistency in all things."
1403
1404 "Consistency, madam, is the first of Christian duties; and it has been
1405 observed in every arrangement connected with the establishment of Lowood:
1406 plain fare, simple attire, unsophisticated accommodations, hardy and
1407 active habits; such is the order of the day in the house and its
1408 inhabitants."
1409
1410 "Quite right, sir. I may then depend upon this child being received as a
1411 pupil at Lowood, and there being trained in conformity to her position
1412 and prospects?"
1413
1414 "Madam, you may: she shall be placed in that nursery of chosen plants,
1415 and I trust she will show herself grateful for the inestimable privilege
1416 of her election."
1417
1418 "I will send her, then, as soon as possible, Mr. Brocklehurst; for, I
1419 assure you, I feel anxious to be relieved of a responsibility that was
1420 becoming too irksome."
1421
1422 "No doubt, no doubt, madam; and now I wish you good morning. I shall
1423 return to Brocklehurst Hall in the course of a week or two: my good
1424 friend, the Archdeacon, will not permit me to leave him sooner. I shall
1425 send Miss Temple notice that she is to expect a new girl, so that there
1426 will be no difficulty about receiving her. Good-bye."
1427
1428 "Good-bye, Mr. Brocklehurst; remember me to Mrs. and Miss Brocklehurst,
1429 and to Augusta and Theodore, and Master Broughton Brocklehurst."
1430
1431 "I will, madam. Little girl, here is a book entitled the 'Child's
1432 Guide,' read it with prayer, especially that part containing 'An account
1433 of the awfully sudden death of Martha G---, a naughty child addicted to
1434 falsehood and deceit.'"
1435
1436 With these words Mr. Brocklehurst put into my hand a thin pamphlet sewn
1437 in a cover, and having rung for his carriage, he departed.
1438
1439 Mrs. Reed and I were left alone: some minutes passed in silence; she was
1440 sewing, I was watching her. Mrs. Reed might be at that time some six or
1441 seven and thirty; she was a woman of robust frame, square-shouldered and
1442 strong-limbed, not tall, and, though stout, not obese: she had a somewhat
1443 large face, the under jaw being much developed and very solid; her brow
1444 was low, her chin large and prominent, mouth and nose sufficiently
1445 regular; under her light eyebrows glimmered an eye devoid of ruth; her
1446 skin was dark and opaque, her hair nearly flaxen; her constitution was
1447 sound as a bell--illness never came near her; she was an exact, clever
1448 manager; her household and tenantry were thoroughly under her control;
1449 her children only at times defied her authority and laughed it to scorn;
1450 she dressed well, and had a presence and port calculated to set off
1451 handsome attire.
1452
1453 Sitting on a low stool, a few yards from her arm-chair, I examined her
1454 figure; I perused her features. In my hand I held the tract containing
1455 the sudden death of the Liar, to which narrative my attention had been
1456 pointed as to an appropriate warning. What had just passed; what Mrs.
1457 Reed had said concerning me to Mr. Brocklehurst; the whole tenor of their
1458 conversation, was recent, raw, and stinging in my mind; I had felt every
1459 word as acutely as I had heard it plainly, and a passion of resentment
1460 fomented now within me.
1461
1462 Mrs. Reed looked up from her work; her eye settled on mine, her fingers
1463 at the same time suspended their nimble movements.
1464
1465 "Go out of the room; return to the nursery," was her mandate. My look or
1466 something else must have struck her as offensive, for she spoke with
1467 extreme though suppressed irritation. I got up, I went to the door; I
1468 came back again; I walked to the window, across the room, then close up
1469 to her.
1470
1471 _Speak_ I must: I had been trodden on severely, and _must_ turn: but how?
1472 What strength had I to dart retaliation at my antagonist? I gathered my
1473 energies and launched them in this blunt sentence--
1474
1475 "I am not deceitful: if I were, I should say I loved you; but I declare I
1476 do not love you: I dislike you the worst of anybody in the world except
1477 John Reed; and this book about the liar, you may give to your girl,
1478 Georgiana, for it is she who tells lies, and not I."
1479
1480 Mrs. Reed's hands still lay on her work inactive: her eye of ice
1481 continued to dwell freezingly on mine.
1482
1483 "What more have you to say?" she asked, rather in the tone in which a
1484 person might address an opponent of adult age than such as is ordinarily
1485 used to a child.
1486
1487 That eye of hers, that voice stirred every antipathy I had. Shaking from
1488 head to foot, thrilled with ungovernable excitement, I continued--
1489
1490 "I am glad you are no relation of mine: I will never call you aunt again
1491 as long as I live. I will never come to see you when I am grown up; and
1492 if any one asks me how I liked you, and how you treated me, I will say
1493 the very thought of you makes me sick, and that you treated me with
1494 miserable cruelty."
1495
1496 "How dare you affirm that, Jane Eyre?"
1497
1498 "How dare I, Mrs. Reed? How dare I? Because it is the _truth_. You
1499 think I have no feelings, and that I can do without one bit of love or
1500 kindness; but I cannot live so: and you have no pity. I shall remember
1501 how you thrust me back--roughly and violently thrust me back--into the
1502 red-room, and locked me up there, to my dying day; though I was in agony;
1503 though I cried out, while suffocating with distress, 'Have mercy! Have
1504 mercy, Aunt Reed!' And that punishment you made me suffer because your
1505 wicked boy struck me--knocked me down for nothing. I will tell anybody
1506 who asks me questions, this exact tale. People think you a good woman,
1507 but you are bad, hard-hearted. _You_ are deceitful!"
1508
1509 {How dare I, Mrs. Reed? How dare I? Because it is the truth: p30.jpg}
1510
1511 Ere I had finished this reply, my soul began to expand, to exult, with
1512 the strangest sense of freedom, of triumph, I ever felt. It seemed as if
1513 an invisible bond had burst, and that I had struggled out into unhoped-
1514 for liberty. Not without cause was this sentiment: Mrs. Reed looked
1515 frightened; her work had slipped from her knee; she was lifting up her
1516 hands, rocking herself to and fro, and even twisting her face as if she
1517 would cry.
1518
1519 "Jane, you are under a mistake: what is the matter with you? Why do you
1520 tremble so violently? Would you like to drink some water?"
1521
1522 "No, Mrs. Reed."
1523
1524 "Is there anything else you wish for, Jane? I assure you, I desire to be
1525 your friend."
1526
1527 "Not you. You told Mr. Brocklehurst I had a bad character, a deceitful
1528 disposition; and I'll let everybody at Lowood know what you are, and what
1529 you have done."
1530
1531 "Jane, you don't understand these things: children must be corrected for
1532 their faults."
1533
1534 "Deceit is not my fault!" I cried out in a savage, high voice.
1535
1536 "But you are passionate, Jane, that you must allow: and now return to the
1537 nursery--there's a dear--and lie down a little."
1538
1539 "I am not your dear; I cannot lie down: send me to school soon, Mrs.
1540 Reed, for I hate to live here."
1541
1542 "I will indeed send her to school soon," murmured Mrs. Reed _sotto voce_;
1543 and gathering up her work, she abruptly quitted the apartment.
1544
1545 I was left there alone--winner of the field. It was the hardest battle I
1546 had fought, and the first victory I had gained: I stood awhile on the
1547 rug, where Mr. Brocklehurst had stood, and I enjoyed my conqueror's
1548 solitude. First, I smiled to myself and felt elate; but this fierce
1549 pleasure subsided in me as fast as did the accelerated throb of my
1550 pulses. A child cannot quarrel with its elders, as I had done; cannot
1551 give its furious feelings uncontrolled play, as I had given mine, without
1552 experiencing afterwards the pang of remorse and the chill of reaction. A
1553 ridge of lighted heath, alive, glancing, devouring, would have been a
1554 meet emblem of my mind when I accused and menaced Mrs. Reed: the same
1555 ridge, black and blasted after the flames are dead, would have
1556 represented as meetly my subsequent condition, when half-an-hour's
1557 silence and reflection had shown me the madness of my conduct, and the
1558 dreariness of my hated and hating position.
1559
1560 Something of vengeance I had tasted for the first time; as aromatic wine
1561 it seemed, on swallowing, warm and racy: its after-flavour, metallic and
1562 corroding, gave me a sensation as if I had been poisoned. Willingly
1563 would I now have gone and asked Mrs. Reed's pardon; but I knew, partly
1564 from experience and partly from instinct, that was the way to make her
1565 repulse me with double scorn, thereby re-exciting every turbulent impulse
1566 of my nature.
1567
1568 I would fain exercise some better faculty than that of fierce speaking;
1569 fain find nourishment for some less fiendish feeling than that of sombre
1570 indignation. I took a book--some Arabian tales; I sat down and
1571 endeavoured to read. I could make no sense of the subject; my own
1572 thoughts swam always between me and the page I had usually found
1573 fascinating. I opened the glass-door in the breakfast-room: the
1574 shrubbery was quite still: the black frost reigned, unbroken by sun or
1575 breeze, through the grounds. I covered my head and arms with the skirt
1576 of my frock, and went out to walk in a part of the plantation which was
1577 quite sequestrated; but I found no pleasure in the silent trees, the
1578 falling fir-cones, the congealed relics of autumn, russet leaves, swept
1579 by past winds in heaps, and now stiffened together. I leaned against a
1580 gate, and looked into an empty field where no sheep were feeding, where
1581 the short grass was nipped and blanched. It was a very grey day; a most
1582 opaque sky, "onding on snaw," canopied all; thence flakes felt it
1583 intervals, which settled on the hard path and on the hoary lea without
1584 melting. I stood, a wretched child enough, whispering to myself over and
1585 over again, "What shall I do?--what shall I do?"
1586
1587 All at once I heard a clear voice call, "Miss Jane! where are you? Come
1588 to lunch!"
1589
1590 It was Bessie, I knew well enough; but I did not stir; her light step
1591 came tripping down the path.
1592
1593 "You naughty little thing!" she said. "Why don't you come when you are
1594 called?"
1595
1596 Bessie's presence, compared with the thoughts over which I had been
1597 brooding, seemed cheerful; even though, as usual, she was somewhat cross.
1598 The fact is, after my conflict with and victory over Mrs. Reed, I was not
1599 disposed to care much for the nursemaid's transitory anger; and I _was_
1600 disposed to bask in her youthful lightness of heart. I just put my two
1601 arms round her and said, "Come, Bessie! don't scold."
1602
1603 The action was more frank and fearless than any I was habituated to
1604 indulge in: somehow it pleased her.
1605
1606 "You are a strange child, Miss Jane," she said, as she looked down at me;
1607 "a little roving, solitary thing: and you are going to school, I
1608 suppose?"
1609
1610 I nodded.
1611
1612 "And won't you be sorry to leave poor Bessie?"
1613
1614 "What does Bessie care for me? She is always scolding me."
1615
1616 "Because you're such a queer, frightened, shy little thing. You should
1617 be bolder."
1618
1619 "What! to get more knocks?"
1620
1621 "Nonsense! But you are rather put upon, that's certain. My mother said,
1622 when she came to see me last week, that she would not like a little one
1623 of her own to be in your place.--Now, come in, and I've some good news
1624 for you."
1625
1626 "I don't think you have, Bessie."
1627
1628 "Child! what do you mean? What sorrowful eyes you fix on me! Well, but
1629 Missis and the young ladies and Master John are going out to tea this
1630 afternoon, and you shall have tea with me. I'll ask cook to bake you a
1631 little cake, and then you shall help me to look over your drawers; for I
1632 am soon to pack your trunk. Missis intends you to leave Gateshead in a
1633 day or two, and you shall choose what toys you like to take with you."
1634
1635 "Bessie, you must promise not to scold me any more till I go."
1636
1637 "Well, I will; but mind you are a very good girl, and don't be afraid of
1638 me. Don't start when I chance to speak rather sharply; it's so
1639 provoking."
1640
1641 "I don't think I shall ever be afraid of you again, Bessie, because I
1642 have got used to you, and I shall soon have another set of people to
1643 dread."
1644
1645 "If you dread them they'll dislike you."
1646
1647 "As you do, Bessie?"
1648
1649 "I don't dislike you, Miss; I believe I am fonder of you than of all the
1650 others."
1651
1652 "You don't show it."
1653
1654 "You little sharp thing! you've got quite a new way of talking. What
1655 makes you so venturesome and hardy?"
1656
1657 "Why, I shall soon be away from you, and besides"--I was going to say
1658 something about what had passed between me and Mrs. Reed, but on second
1659 thoughts I considered it better to remain silent on that head.
1660
1661 "And so you're glad to leave me?"
1662
1663 "Not at all, Bessie; indeed, just now I'm rather sorry."
1664
1665 "Just now! and rather! How coolly my little lady says it! I dare say
1666 now if I were to ask you for a kiss you wouldn't give it me: you'd say
1667 you'd _rather_ not."
1668
1669 "I'll kiss you and welcome: bend your head down." Bessie stooped; we
1670 mutually embraced, and I followed her into the house quite comforted.
1671 That afternoon lapsed in peace and harmony; and in the evening Bessie
1672 told me some of her most enchanting stories, and sang me some of her
1673 sweetest songs. Even for me life had its gleams of sunshine.
1674
1675
1676
1677
1678 CHAPTER V
1679
1680
1681 Five o'clock had hardly struck on the morning of the 19th of January,
1682 when Bessie brought a candle into my closet and found me already up and
1683 nearly dressed. I had risen half-an-hour before her entrance, and had
1684 washed my face, and put on my clothes by the light of a half-moon just
1685 setting, whose rays streamed through the narrow window near my crib. I
1686 was to leave Gateshead that day by a coach which passed the lodge gates
1687 at six a.m. Bessie was the only person yet risen; she had lit a fire in
1688 the nursery, where she now proceeded to make my breakfast. Few children
1689 can eat when excited with the thoughts of a journey; nor could I. Bessie,
1690 having pressed me in vain to take a few spoonfuls of the boiled milk and
1691 bread she had prepared for me, wrapped up some biscuits in a paper and
1692 put them into my bag; then she helped me on with my pelisse and bonnet,
1693 and wrapping herself in a shawl, she and I left the nursery. As we
1694 passed Mrs. Reed's bedroom, she said, "Will you go in and bid Missis good-
1695 bye?"
1696
1697 "No, Bessie: she came to my crib last night when you were gone down to
1698 supper, and said I need not disturb her in the morning, or my cousins
1699 either; and she told me to remember that she had always been my best
1700 friend, and to speak of her and be grateful to her accordingly."
1701
1702 "What did you say, Miss?"
1703
1704 "Nothing: I covered my face with the bedclothes, and turned from her to
1705 the wall."
1706
1707 "That was wrong, Miss Jane."
1708
1709 "It was quite right, Bessie. Your Missis has not been my friend: she has
1710 been my foe."
1711
1712 "O Miss Jane! don't say so!"
1713
1714 "Good-bye to Gateshead!" cried I, as we passed through the hall and went
1715 out at the front door.
1716
1717 The moon was set, and it was very dark; Bessie carried a lantern, whose
1718 light glanced on wet steps and gravel road sodden by a recent thaw. Raw
1719 and chill was the winter morning: my teeth chattered as I hastened down
1720 the drive. There was a light in the porter's lodge: when we reached it,
1721 we found the porter's wife just kindling her fire: my trunk, which had
1722 been carried down the evening before, stood corded at the door. It
1723 wanted but a few minutes of six, and shortly after that hour had struck,
1724 the distant roll of wheels announced the coming coach; I went to the door
1725 and watched its lamps approach rapidly through the gloom.
1726
1727 "Is she going by herself?" asked the porter's wife.
1728
1729 "Yes."
1730
1731 "And how far is it?"
1732
1733 "Fifty miles."
1734
1735 "What a long way! I wonder Mrs. Reed is not afraid to trust her so far
1736 alone."
1737
1738 The coach drew up; there it was at the gates with its four horses and its
1739 top laden with passengers: the guard and coachman loudly urged haste; my
1740 trunk was hoisted up; I was taken from Bessie's neck, to which I clung
1741 with kisses.
1742
1743 "Be sure and take good care of her," cried she to the guard, as he lifted
1744 me into the inside.
1745
1746 "Ay, ay!" was the answer: the door was slapped to, a voice exclaimed "All
1747 right," and on we drove. Thus was I severed from Bessie and Gateshead;
1748 thus whirled away to unknown, and, as I then deemed, remote and
1749 mysterious regions.
1750
1751 I remember but little of the journey; I only know that the day seemed to
1752 me of a preternatural length, and that we appeared to travel over
1753 hundreds of miles of road. We passed through several towns, and in one,
1754 a very large one, the coach stopped; the horses were taken out, and the
1755 passengers alighted to dine. I was carried into an inn, where the guard
1756 wanted me to have some dinner; but, as I had no appetite, he left me in
1757 an immense room with a fireplace at each end, a chandelier pendent from
1758 the ceiling, and a little red gallery high up against the wall filled
1759 with musical instruments. Here I walked about for a long time, feeling
1760 very strange, and mortally apprehensive of some one coming in and
1761 kidnapping me; for I believed in kidnappers, their exploits having
1762 frequently figured in Bessie's fireside chronicles. At last the guard
1763 returned; once more I was stowed away in the coach, my protector mounted
1764 his own seat, sounded his hollow horn, and away we rattled over the
1765 "stony street" of L-.
1766
1767 The afternoon came on wet and somewhat misty: as it waned into dusk, I
1768 began to feel that we were getting very far indeed from Gateshead: we
1769 ceased to pass through towns; the country changed; great grey hills
1770 heaved up round the horizon: as twilight deepened, we descended a valley,
1771 dark with wood, and long after night had overclouded the prospect, I
1772 heard a wild wind rushing amongst trees.
1773
1774 Lulled by the sound, I at last dropped asleep; I had not long slumbered
1775 when the sudden cessation of motion awoke me; the coach-door was open,
1776 and a person like a servant was standing at it: I saw her face and dress
1777 by the light of the lamps.
1778
1779 "Is there a little girl called Jane Eyre here?" she asked. I answered
1780 "Yes," and was then lifted out; my trunk was handed down, and the coach
1781 instantly drove away.
1782
1783 I was stiff with long sitting, and bewildered with the noise and motion
1784 of the coach: Gathering my faculties, I looked about me. Rain, wind, and
1785 darkness filled the air; nevertheless, I dimly discerned a wall before me
1786 and a door open in it; through this door I passed with my new guide: she
1787 shut and locked it behind her. There was now visible a house or
1788 houses--for the building spread far--with many windows, and lights
1789 burning in some; we went up a broad pebbly path, splashing wet, and were
1790 admitted at a door; then the servant led me through a passage into a room
1791 with a fire, where she left me alone.
1792
1793 I stood and warmed my numbed fingers over the blaze, then I looked round;
1794 there was no candle, but the uncertain light from the hearth showed, by
1795 intervals, papered walls, carpet, curtains, shining mahogany furniture:
1796 it was a parlour, not so spacious or splendid as the drawing-room at
1797 Gateshead, but comfortable enough. I was puzzling to make out the
1798 subject of a picture on the wall, when the door opened, and an individual
1799 carrying a light entered; another followed close behind.
1800
1801 The first was a tall lady with dark hair, dark eyes, and a pale and large
1802 forehead; her figure was partly enveloped in a shawl, her countenance was
1803 grave, her bearing erect.
1804
1805 "The child is very young to be sent alone," said she, putting her candle
1806 down on the table. She considered me attentively for a minute or two,
1807 then further added--
1808
1809 "She had better be put to bed soon; she looks tired: are you tired?" she
1810 asked, placing her hand on my shoulder.
1811
1812 "A little, ma'am."
1813
1814 "And hungry too, no doubt: let her have some supper before she goes to
1815 bed, Miss Miller. Is this the first time you have left your parents to
1816 come to school, my little girl?"
1817
1818 I explained to her that I had no parents. She inquired how long they had
1819 been dead: then how old I was, what was my name, whether I could read,
1820 write, and sew a little: then she touched my cheek gently with her
1821 forefinger, and saying, "She hoped I should be a good child," dismissed
1822 me along with Miss Miller.
1823
1824 The lady I had left might be about twenty-nine; the one who went with me
1825 appeared some years younger: the first impressed me by her voice, look,
1826 and air. Miss Miller was more ordinary; ruddy in complexion, though of a
1827 careworn countenance; hurried in gait and action, like one who had always
1828 a multiplicity of tasks on hand: she looked, indeed, what I afterwards
1829 found she really was, an under-teacher. Led by her, I passed from
1830 compartment to compartment, from passage to passage, of a large and
1831 irregular building; till, emerging from the total and somewhat dreary
1832 silence pervading that portion of the house we had traversed, we came
1833 upon the hum of many voices, and presently entered a wide, long room,
1834 with great deal tables, two at each end, on each of which burnt a pair of
1835 candles, and seated all round on benches, a congregation of girls of
1836 every age, from nine or ten to twenty. Seen by the dim light of the
1837 dips, their number to me appeared countless, though not in reality
1838 exceeding eighty; they were uniformly dressed in brown stuff frocks of
1839 quaint fashion, and long holland pinafores. It was the hour of study;
1840 they were engaged in conning over their to-morrow's task, and the hum I
1841 had heard was the combined result of their whispered repetitions.
1842
1843 Miss Miller signed to me to sit on a bench near the door, then walking up
1844 to the top of the long room she cried out--
1845
1846 "Monitors, collect the lesson-books and put them away!"
1847
1848 Four tall girls arose from different tables, and going round, gathered
1849 the books and removed them. Miss Miller again gave the word of command--
1850
1851 "Monitors, fetch the supper-trays!"
1852
1853 The tall girls went out and returned presently, each bearing a tray, with
1854 portions of something, I knew not what, arranged thereon, and a pitcher
1855 of water and mug in the middle of each tray. The portions were handed
1856 round; those who liked took a draught of the water, the mug being common
1857 to all. When it came to my turn, I drank, for I was thirsty, but did not
1858 touch the food, excitement and fatigue rendering me incapable of eating:
1859 I now saw, however, that it was a thin oaten cake shared into fragments.
1860
1861 The meal over, prayers were read by Miss Miller, and the classes filed
1862 off, two and two, upstairs. Overpowered by this time with weariness, I
1863 scarcely noticed what sort of a place the bedroom was, except that, like
1864 the schoolroom, I saw it was very long. To-night I was to be Miss
1865 Miller's bed-fellow; she helped me to undress: when laid down I glanced
1866 at the long rows of beds, each of which was quickly filled with two
1867 occupants; in ten minutes the single light was extinguished, and amidst
1868 silence and complete darkness I fell asleep.
1869
1870 The night passed rapidly. I was too tired even to dream; I only once
1871 awoke to hear the wind rave in furious gusts, and the rain fall in
1872 torrents, and to be sensible that Miss Miller had taken her place by my
1873 side. When I again unclosed my eyes, a loud bell was ringing; the girls
1874 were up and dressing; day had not yet begun to dawn, and a rushlight or
1875 two burned in the room. I too rose reluctantly; it was bitter cold, and
1876 I dressed as well as I could for shivering, and washed when there was a
1877 basin at liberty, which did not occur soon, as there was but one basin to
1878 six girls, on the stands down the middle of the room. Again the bell
1879 rang: all formed in file, two and two, and in that order descended the
1880 stairs and entered the cold and dimly lit schoolroom: here prayers were
1881 read by Miss Miller; afterwards she called out--
1882
1883 "Form classes!"
1884
1885 A great tumult succeeded for some minutes, during which Miss Miller
1886 repeatedly exclaimed, "Silence!" and "Order!" When it subsided, I saw
1887 them all drawn up in four semicircles, before four chairs, placed at the
1888 four tables; all held books in their hands, and a great book, like a
1889 Bible, lay on each table, before the vacant seat. A pause of some
1890 seconds succeeded, filled up by the low, vague hum of numbers; Miss
1891 Miller walked from class to class, hushing this indefinite sound.
1892
1893 A distant bell tinkled: immediately three ladies entered the room, each
1894 walked to a table and took her seat. Miss Miller assumed the fourth
1895 vacant chair, which was that nearest the door, and around which the
1896 smallest of the children were assembled: to this inferior class I was
1897 called, and placed at the bottom of it.
1898
1899 Business now began, the day's Collect was repeated, then certain texts of
1900 Scripture were said, and to these succeeded a protracted reading of
1901 chapters in the Bible, which lasted an hour. By the time that exercise
1902 was terminated, day had fully dawned. The indefatigable bell now sounded
1903 for the fourth time: the classes were marshalled and marched into another
1904 room to breakfast: how glad I was to behold a prospect of getting
1905 something to eat! I was now nearly sick from inanition, having taken so
1906 little the day before.
1907
1908 The refectory was a great, low-ceiled, gloomy room; on two long tables
1909 smoked basins of something hot, which, however, to my dismay, sent forth
1910 an odour far from inviting. I saw a universal manifestation of
1911 discontent when the fumes of the repast met the nostrils of those
1912 destined to swallow it; from the van of the procession, the tall girls of
1913 the first class, rose the whispered words--
1914
1915 "Disgusting! The porridge is burnt again!"
1916
1917 "Silence!" ejaculated a voice; not that of Miss Miller, but one of the
1918 upper teachers, a little and dark personage, smartly dressed, but of
1919 somewhat morose aspect, who installed herself at the top of one table,
1920 while a more buxom lady presided at the other. I looked in vain for her
1921 I had first seen the night before; she was not visible: Miss Miller
1922 occupied the foot of the table where I sat, and a strange,
1923 foreign-looking, elderly lady, the French teacher, as I afterwards found,
1924 took the corresponding seat at the other board. A long grace was said
1925 and a hymn sung; then a servant brought in some tea for the teachers, and
1926 the meal began.
1927
1928 Ravenous, and now very faint, I devoured a spoonful or two of my portion
1929 without thinking of its taste; but the first edge of hunger blunted, I
1930 perceived I had got in hand a nauseous mess; burnt porridge is almost as
1931 bad as rotten potatoes; famine itself soon sickens over it. The spoons
1932 were moved slowly: I saw each girl taste her food and try to swallow it;
1933 but in most cases the effort was soon relinquished. Breakfast was over,
1934 and none had breakfasted. Thanks being returned for what we had not got,
1935 and a second hymn chanted, the refectory was evacuated for the
1936 schoolroom. I was one of the last to go out, and in passing the tables,
1937 I saw one teacher take a basin of the porridge and taste it; she looked
1938 at the others; all their countenances expressed displeasure, and one of
1939 them, the stout one, whispered--
1940
1941 "Abominable stuff! How shameful!"
1942
1943 A quarter of an hour passed before lessons again began, during which the
1944 schoolroom was in a glorious tumult; for that space of time it seemed to
1945 be permitted to talk loud and more freely, and they used their privilege.
1946 The whole conversation ran on the breakfast, which one and all abused
1947 roundly. Poor things! it was the sole consolation they had. Miss Miller
1948 was now the only teacher in the room: a group of great girls standing
1949 about her spoke with serious and sullen gestures. I heard the name of
1950 Mr. Brocklehurst pronounced by some lips; at which Miss Miller shook her
1951 head disapprovingly; but she made no great effort to check the general
1952 wrath; doubtless she shared in it.
1953
1954 A clock in the schoolroom struck nine; Miss Miller left her circle, and
1955 standing in the middle of the room, cried--
1956
1957 "Silence! To your seats!"
1958
1959 Discipline prevailed: in five minutes the confused throng was resolved
1960 into order, and comparative silence quelled the Babel clamour of tongues.
1961 The upper teachers now punctually resumed their posts: but still, all
1962 seemed to wait. Ranged on benches down the sides of the room, the eighty
1963 girls sat motionless and erect; a quaint assemblage they appeared, all
1964 with plain locks combed from their faces, not a curl visible; in brown
1965 dresses, made high and surrounded by a narrow tucker about the throat,
1966 with little pockets of holland (shaped something like a Highlander's
1967 purse) tied in front of their frocks, and destined to serve the purpose
1968 of a work-bag: all, too, wearing woollen stockings and country-made
1969 shoes, fastened with brass buckles. Above twenty of those clad in this
1970 costume were full-grown girls, or rather young women; it suited them ill,
1971 and gave an air of oddity even to the prettiest.
1972
1973 I was still looking at them, and also at intervals examining the
1974 teachers--none of whom precisely pleased me; for the stout one was a
1975 little coarse, the dark one not a little fierce, the foreigner harsh and
1976 grotesque, and Miss Miller, poor thing! looked purple, weather-beaten,
1977 and over-worked--when, as my eye wandered from face to face, the whole
1978 school rose simultaneously, as if moved by a common spring.
1979
1980 What was the matter? I had heard no order given: I was puzzled. Ere I
1981 had gathered my wits, the classes were again seated: but as all eyes were
1982 now turned to one point, mine followed the general direction, and
1983 encountered the personage who had received me last night. She stood at
1984 the bottom of the long room, on the hearth; for there was a fire at each
1985 end; she surveyed the two rows of girls silently and gravely. Miss
1986 Miller approaching, seemed to ask her a question, and having received her
1987 answer, went back to her place, and said aloud--
1988
1989 "Monitor of the first class, fetch the globes!"
1990
1991 While the direction was being executed, the lady consulted moved slowly
1992 up the room. I suppose I have a considerable organ of veneration, for I
1993 retain yet the sense of admiring awe with which my eyes traced her steps.
1994 Seen now, in broad daylight, she looked tall, fair, and shapely; brown
1995 eyes with a benignant light in their irids, and a fine pencilling of long
1996 lashes round, relieved the whiteness of her large front; on each of her
1997 temples her hair, of a very dark brown, was clustered in round curls,
1998 according to the fashion of those times, when neither smooth bands nor
1999 long ringlets were in vogue; her dress, also in the mode of the day, was
2000 of purple cloth, relieved by a sort of Spanish trimming of black velvet;
2001 a gold watch (watches were not so common then as now) shone at her
2002 girdle. Let the reader add, to complete the picture, refined features; a
2003 complexion, if pale, clear; and a stately air and carriage, and he will
2004 have, at least, as clearly as words can give it, a correct idea of the
2005 exterior of Miss Temple--Maria Temple, as I afterwards saw the name
2006 written in a prayer-book intrusted to me to carry to church.
2007
2008 The superintendent of Lowood (for such was this lady) having taken her
2009 seat before a pair of globes placed on one of the tables, summoned the
2010 first class round her, and commenced giving a lesson on geography; the
2011 lower classes were called by the teachers: repetitions in history,
2012 grammar, &c., went on for an hour; writing and arithmetic succeeded, and
2013 music lessons were given by Miss Temple to some of the elder girls. The
2014 duration of each lesson was measured by the clock, which at last struck
2015 twelve. The superintendent rose--
2016
2017 "I have a word to address to the pupils," said she.
2018
2019 The tumult of cessation from lessons was already breaking forth, but it
2020 sank at her voice. She went on--
2021
2022 "You had this morning a breakfast which you could not eat; you must be
2023 hungry:--I have ordered that a lunch of bread and cheese shall be served
2024 to all."
2025
2026 The teachers looked at her with a sort of surprise.
2027
2028 "It is to be done on my responsibility," she added, in an explanatory
2029 tone to them, and immediately afterwards left the room.
2030
2031 The bread and cheese was presently brought in and distributed, to the
2032 high delight and refreshment of the whole school. The order was now
2033 given "To the garden!" Each put on a coarse straw bonnet, with strings
2034 of coloured calico, and a cloak of grey frieze. I was similarly
2035 equipped, and, following the stream, I made my way into the open air.
2036
2037 The garden was a wide inclosure, surrounded with walls so high as to
2038 exclude every glimpse of prospect; a covered verandah ran down one side,
2039 and broad walks bordered a middle space divided into scores of little
2040 beds: these beds were assigned as gardens for the pupils to cultivate,
2041 and each bed had an owner. When full of flowers they would doubtless
2042 look pretty; but now, at the latter end of January, all was wintry blight
2043 and brown decay. I shuddered as I stood and looked round me: it was an
2044 inclement day for outdoor exercise; not positively rainy, but darkened by
2045 a drizzling yellow fog; all under foot was still soaking wet with the
2046 floods of yesterday. The stronger among the girls ran about and engaged
2047 in active games, but sundry pale and thin ones herded together for
2048 shelter and warmth in the verandah; and amongst these, as the dense mist
2049 penetrated to their shivering frames, I heard frequently the sound of a
2050 hollow cough.
2051
2052 As yet I had spoken to no one, nor did anybody seem to take notice of me;
2053 I stood lonely enough: but to that feeling of isolation I was accustomed;
2054 it did not oppress me much. I leant against a pillar of the verandah,
2055 drew my grey mantle close about me, and, trying to forget the cold which
2056 nipped me without, and the unsatisfied hunger which gnawed me within,
2057 delivered myself up to the employment of watching and thinking. My
2058 reflections were too undefined and fragmentary to merit record: I hardly
2059 yet knew where I was; Gateshead and my past life seemed floated away to
2060 an immeasurable distance; the present was vague and strange, and of the
2061 future I could form no conjecture. I looked round the convent-like
2062 garden, and then up at the house--a large building, half of which seemed
2063 grey and old, the other half quite new. The new part, containing the
2064 schoolroom and dormitory, was lit by mullioned and latticed windows,
2065 which gave it a church-like aspect; a stone tablet over the door bore
2066 this inscription:--
2067
2068 "Lowood Institution.--This portion was rebuilt A.D. ---, by Naomi
2069 Brocklehurst, of Brocklehurst Hall, in this county." "Let your light so
2070 shine before men, that they may see your good works, and glorify your
2071 Father which is in heaven."--St. Matt. v. 16.
2072
2073 I read these words over and over again: I felt that an explanation
2074 belonged to them, and was unable fully to penetrate their import. I was
2075 still pondering the signification of "Institution," and endeavouring to
2076 make out a connection between the first words and the verse of Scripture,
2077 when the sound of a cough close behind me made me turn my head. I saw a
2078 girl sitting on a stone bench near; she was bent over a book, on the
2079 perusal of which she seemed intent: from where I stood I could see the
2080 title--it was "Rasselas;" a name that struck me as strange, and
2081 consequently attractive. In turning a leaf she happened to look up, and
2082 I said to her directly--
2083
2084 "Is your book interesting?" I had already formed the intention of asking
2085 her to lend it to me some day.
2086
2087 "I like it," she answered, after a pause of a second or two, during which
2088 she examined me.
2089
2090 "What is it about?" I continued. I hardly know where I found the
2091 hardihood thus to open a conversation with a stranger; the step was
2092 contrary to my nature and habits: but I think her occupation touched a
2093 chord of sympathy somewhere; for I too liked reading, though of a
2094 frivolous and childish kind; I could not digest or comprehend the serious
2095 or substantial.
2096
2097 "You may look at it," replied the girl, offering me the book.
2098
2099 I did so; a brief examination convinced me that the contents were less
2100 taking than the title: "Rasselas" looked dull to my trifling taste; I saw
2101 nothing about fairies, nothing about genii; no bright variety seemed
2102 spread over the closely-printed pages. I returned it to her; she
2103 received it quietly, and without saying anything she was about to relapse
2104 into her former studious mood: again I ventured to disturb her--
2105
2106 "Can you tell me what the writing on that stone over the door means? What
2107 is Lowood Institution?"
2108
2109 "This house where you are come to live."
2110
2111 "And why do they call it Institution? Is it in any way different from
2112 other schools?"
2113
2114 "It is partly a charity-school: you and I, and all the rest of us, are
2115 charity-children. I suppose you are an orphan: are not either your
2116 father or your mother dead?"
2117
2118 "Both died before I can remember."
2119
2120 "Well, all the girls here have lost either one or both parents, and this
2121 is called an institution for educating orphans."
2122
2123 "Do we pay no money? Do they keep us for nothing?"
2124
2125 "We pay, or our friends pay, fifteen pounds a year for each."
2126
2127 "Then why do they call us charity-children?"
2128
2129 "Because fifteen pounds is not enough for board and teaching, and the
2130 deficiency is supplied by subscription."
2131
2132 "Who subscribes?"
2133
2134 "Different benevolent-minded ladies and gentlemen in this neighbourhood
2135 and in London."
2136
2137 "Who was Naomi Brocklehurst?"
2138
2139 "The lady who built the new part of this house as that tablet records,
2140 and whose son overlooks and directs everything here."
2141
2142 "Why?"
2143
2144 "Because he is treasurer and manager of the establishment."
2145
2146 "Then this house does not belong to that tall lady who wears a watch, and
2147 who said we were to have some bread and cheese?"
2148
2149 "To Miss Temple? Oh, no! I wish it did: she has to answer to Mr.
2150 Brocklehurst for all she does. Mr. Brocklehurst buys all our food and
2151 all our clothes."
2152
2153 "Does he live here?"
2154
2155 "No--two miles off, at a large hall."
2156
2157 "Is he a good man?"
2158
2159 "He is a clergyman, and is said to do a great deal of good."
2160
2161 "Did you say that tall lady was called Miss Temple?"
2162
2163 "Yes."
2164
2165 "And what are the other teachers called?"
2166
2167 "The one with red cheeks is called Miss Smith; she attends to the work,
2168 and cuts out--for we make our own clothes, our frocks, and pelisses, and
2169 everything; the little one with black hair is Miss Scatcherd; she teaches
2170 history and grammar, and hears the second class repetitions; and the one
2171 who wears a shawl, and has a pocket-handkerchief tied to her side with a
2172 yellow ribband, is Madame Pierrot: she comes from Lisle, in France, and
2173 teaches French."
2174
2175 "Do you like the teachers?"
2176
2177 "Well enough."
2178
2179 "Do you like the little black one, and the Madame ---?--I cannot
2180 pronounce her name as you do."
2181
2182 "Miss Scatcherd is hasty--you must take care not to offend her; Madame
2183 Pierrot is not a bad sort of person."
2184
2185 "But Miss Temple is the best--isn't she?"
2186
2187 "Miss Temple is very good and very clever; she is above the rest, because
2188 she knows far more than they do."
2189
2190 "Have you been long here?"
2191
2192 "Two years."
2193
2194 "Are you an orphan?"
2195
2196 "My mother is dead."
2197
2198 "Are you happy here?"
2199
2200 "You ask rather too many questions. I have given you answers enough for
2201 the present: now I want to read."
2202
2203 But at that moment the summons sounded for dinner; all re-entered the
2204 house. The odour which now filled the refectory was scarcely more
2205 appetising than that which had regaled our nostrils at breakfast: the
2206 dinner was served in two huge tin-plated vessels, whence rose a strong
2207 steam redolent of rancid fat. I found the mess to consist of indifferent
2208 potatoes and strange shreds of rusty meat, mixed and cooked together. Of
2209 this preparation a tolerably abundant plateful was apportioned to each
2210 pupil. I ate what I could, and wondered within myself whether every
2211 day's fare would be like this.
2212
2213 After dinner, we immediately adjourned to the schoolroom: lessons
2214 recommenced, and were continued till five o'clock.
2215
2216 The only marked event of the afternoon was, that I saw the girl with whom
2217 I had conversed in the verandah dismissed in disgrace by Miss Scatcherd
2218 from a history class, and sent to stand in the middle of the large
2219 schoolroom. The punishment seemed to me in a high degree ignominious,
2220 especially for so great a girl--she looked thirteen or upwards. I
2221 expected she would show signs of great distress and shame; but to my
2222 surprise she neither wept nor blushed: composed, though grave, she stood,
2223 the central mark of all eyes. "How can she bear it so quietly--so
2224 firmly?" I asked of myself. "Were I in her place, it seems to me I
2225 should wish the earth to open and swallow me up. She looks as if she
2226 were thinking of something beyond her punishment--beyond her situation:
2227 of something not round her nor before her. I have heard of day-dreams--is
2228 she in a day-dream now? Her eyes are fixed on the floor, but I am sure
2229 they do not see it--her sight seems turned in, gone down into her heart:
2230 she is looking at what she can remember, I believe; not at what is really
2231 present. I wonder what sort of a girl she is--whether good or naughty."
2232
2233 Soon after five p.m. we had another meal, consisting of a small mug of
2234 coffee, and half-a-slice of brown bread. I devoured my bread and drank
2235 my coffee with relish; but I should have been glad of as much more--I was
2236 still hungry. Half-an-hour's recreation succeeded, then study; then the
2237 glass of water and the piece of oat-cake, prayers, and bed. Such was my
2238 first day at Lowood.
2239
2240
2241
2242
2243 CHAPTER VI
2244
2245
2246 The next day commenced as before, getting up and dressing by rushlight;
2247 but this morning we were obliged to dispense with the ceremony of
2248 washing; the water in the pitchers was frozen. A change had taken place
2249 in the weather the preceding evening, and a keen north-east wind,
2250 whistling through the crevices of our bedroom windows all night long, had
2251 made us shiver in our beds, and turned the contents of the ewers to ice.
2252
2253 Before the long hour and a half of prayers and Bible-reading was over, I
2254 felt ready to perish with cold. Breakfast-time came at last, and this
2255 morning the porridge was not burnt; the quality was eatable, the quantity
2256 small. How small my portion seemed! I wished it had been doubled.
2257
2258 In the course of the day I was enrolled a member of the fourth class, and
2259 regular tasks and occupations were assigned me: hitherto, I had only been
2260 a spectator of the proceedings at Lowood; I was now to become an actor
2261 therein. At first, being little accustomed to learn by heart, the
2262 lessons appeared to me both long and difficult; the frequent change from
2263 task to task, too, bewildered me; and I was glad when, about three
2264 o'clock in the afternoon, Miss Smith put into my hands a border of muslin
2265 two yards long, together with needle, thimble, &c., and sent me to sit in
2266 a quiet corner of the schoolroom, with directions to hem the same. At
2267 that hour most of the others were sewing likewise; but one class still
2268 stood round Miss Scatcherd's chair reading, and as all was quiet, the
2269 subject of their lessons could be heard, together with the manner in
2270 which each girl acquitted herself, and the animadversions or
2271 commendations of Miss Scatcherd on the performance. It was English
2272 history: among the readers I observed my acquaintance of the verandah: at
2273 the commencement of the lesson, her place had been at the top of the
2274 class, but for some error of pronunciation, or some inattention to stops,
2275 she was suddenly sent to the very bottom. Even in that obscure position,
2276 Miss Scatcherd continued to make her an object of constant notice: she
2277 was continually addressing to her such phrases as the following:--
2278
2279 "Burns" (such it seems was her name: the girls here were all called by
2280 their surnames, as boys are elsewhere), "Burns, you are standing on the
2281 side of your shoe; turn your toes out immediately." "Burns, you poke
2282 your chin most unpleasantly; draw it in." "Burns, I insist on your
2283 holding your head up; I will not have you before me in that attitude,"
2284 &c. &c.
2285
2286 A chapter having been read through twice, the books were closed and the
2287 girls examined. The lesson had comprised part of the reign of Charles
2288 I., and there were sundry questions about tonnage and poundage and ship-
2289 money, which most of them appeared unable to answer; still, every little
2290 difficulty was solved instantly when it reached Burns: her memory seemed
2291 to have retained the substance of the whole lesson, and she was ready
2292 with answers on every point. I kept expecting that Miss Scatcherd would
2293 praise her attention; but, instead of that, she suddenly cried out--
2294
2295 "You dirty, disagreeable girl! you have never cleaned your nails this
2296 morning!"
2297
2298 Burns made no answer: I wondered at her silence. "Why," thought I, "does
2299 she not explain that she could neither clean her nails nor wash her face,
2300 as the water was frozen?"
2301
2302 My attention was now called off by Miss Smith desiring me to hold a skein
2303 of thread: while she was winding it, she talked to me from time to time,
2304 asking whether I had ever been at school before, whether I could mark,
2305 stitch, knit, &c.; till she dismissed me, I could not pursue my
2306 observations on Miss Scatcherd's movements. When I returned to my seat,
2307 that lady was just delivering an order of which I did not catch the
2308 import; but Burns immediately left the class, and going into the small
2309 inner room where the books were kept, returned in half a minute, carrying
2310 in her hand a bundle of twigs tied together at one end. This ominous
2311 tool she presented to Miss Scatcherd with a respectful curtesy; then she
2312 quietly, and without being told, unloosed her pinafore, and the teacher
2313 instantly and sharply inflicted on her neck a dozen strokes with the
2314 bunch of twigs. Not a tear rose to Burns' eye; and, while I paused from
2315 my sewing, because my fingers quivered at this spectacle with a sentiment
2316 of unavailing and impotent anger, not a feature of her pensive face
2317 altered its ordinary expression.
2318
2319 "Hardened girl!" exclaimed Miss Scatcherd; "nothing can correct you of
2320 your slatternly habits: carry the rod away."
2321
2322 Burns obeyed: I looked at her narrowly as she emerged from the
2323 book-closet; she was just putting back her handkerchief into her pocket,
2324 and the trace of a tear glistened on her thin cheek.
2325
2326 The play-hour in the evening I thought the pleasantest fraction of the
2327 day at Lowood: the bit of bread, the draught of coffee swallowed at five
2328 o'clock had revived vitality, if it had not satisfied hunger: the long
2329 restraint of the day was slackened; the schoolroom felt warmer than in
2330 the morning--its fires being allowed to burn a little more brightly, to
2331 supply, in some measure, the place of candles, not yet introduced: the
2332 ruddy gloaming, the licensed uproar, the confusion of many voices gave
2333 one a welcome sense of liberty.
2334
2335 On the evening of the day on which I had seen Miss Scatcherd flog her
2336 pupil, Burns, I wandered as usual among the forms and tables and laughing
2337 groups without a companion, yet not feeling lonely: when I passed the
2338 windows, I now and then lifted a blind, and looked out; it snowed fast, a
2339 drift was already forming against the lower panes; putting my ear close
2340 to the window, I could distinguish from the gleeful tumult within, the
2341 disconsolate moan of the wind outside.
2342
2343 Probably, if I had lately left a good home and kind parents, this would
2344 have been the hour when I should most keenly have regretted the
2345 separation; that wind would then have saddened my heart; this obscure
2346 chaos would have disturbed my peace! as it was, I derived from both a
2347 strange excitement, and reckless and feverish, I wished the wind to howl
2348 more wildly, the gloom to deepen to darkness, and the confusion to rise
2349 to clamour.
2350
2351 Jumping over forms, and creeping under tables, I made my way to one of
2352 the fire-places; there, kneeling by the high wire fender, I found Burns,
2353 absorbed, silent, abstracted from all round her by the companionship of a
2354 book, which she read by the dim glare of the embers.
2355
2356 "Is it still 'Rasselas'?" I asked, coming behind her.
2357
2358 "Yes," she said, "and I have just finished it."
2359
2360 And in five minutes more she shut it up. I was glad of this. "Now,"
2361 thought I, "I can perhaps get her to talk." I sat down by her on the
2362 floor.
2363
2364 "What is your name besides Burns?"
2365
2366 "Helen."
2367
2368 "Do you come a long way from here?"
2369
2370 "I come from a place farther north, quite on the borders of Scotland."
2371
2372 "Will you ever go back?"
2373
2374 "I hope so; but nobody can be sure of the future."
2375
2376 "You must wish to leave Lowood?"
2377
2378 "No! why should I? I was sent to Lowood to get an education; and it
2379 would be of no use going away until I have attained that object."
2380
2381 "But that teacher, Miss Scatcherd, is so cruel to you?"
2382
2383 "Cruel? Not at all! She is severe: she dislikes my faults."
2384
2385 "And if I were in your place I should dislike her; I should resist her.
2386 If she struck me with that rod, I should get it from her hand; I should
2387 break it under her nose."
2388
2389 "Probably you would do nothing of the sort: but if you did, Mr.
2390 Brocklehurst would expel you from the school; that would be a great grief
2391 to your relations. It is far better to endure patiently a smart which
2392 nobody feels but yourself, than to commit a hasty action whose evil
2393 consequences will extend to all connected with you; and besides, the
2394 Bible bids us return good for evil."
2395
2396 "But then it seems disgraceful to be flogged, and to be sent to stand in
2397 the middle of a room full of people; and you are such a great girl: I am
2398 far younger than you, and I could not bear it."
2399
2400 "Yet it would be your duty to bear it, if you could not avoid it: it is
2401 weak and silly to say you _cannot bear_ what it is your fate to be
2402 required to bear."
2403
2404 I heard her with wonder: I could not comprehend this doctrine of
2405 endurance; and still less could I understand or sympathise with the
2406 forbearance she expressed for her chastiser. Still I felt that Helen
2407 Burns considered things by a light invisible to my eyes. I suspected she
2408 might be right and I wrong; but I would not ponder the matter deeply;
2409 like Felix, I put it off to a more convenient season.
2410
2411 "You say you have faults, Helen: what are they? To me you seem very
2412 good."
2413
2414 "Then learn from me, not to judge by appearances: I am, as Miss Scatcherd
2415 said, slatternly; I seldom put, and never keep, things, in order; I am
2416 careless; I forget rules; I read when I should learn my lessons; I have
2417 no method; and sometimes I say, like you, I cannot _bear_ to be subjected
2418 to systematic arrangements. This is all very provoking to Miss
2419 Scatcherd, who is naturally neat, punctual, and particular."
2420
2421 "And cross and cruel," I added; but Helen Burns would not admit my
2422 addition: she kept silence.
2423
2424 "Is Miss Temple as severe to you as Miss Scatcherd?"
2425
2426 At the utterance of Miss Temple's name, a soft smile flitted over her
2427 grave face.
2428
2429 "Miss Temple is full of goodness; it pains her to be severe to any one,
2430 even the worst in the school: she sees my errors, and tells me of them
2431 gently; and, if I do anything worthy of praise, she gives me my meed
2432 liberally. One strong proof of my wretchedly defective nature is, that
2433 even her expostulations, so mild, so rational, have not influence to cure
2434 me of my faults; and even her praise, though I value it most highly,
2435 cannot stimulate me to continued care and foresight."
2436
2437 "That is curious," said I, "it is so easy to be careful."
2438
2439 "For _you_ I have no doubt it is. I observed you in your class this
2440 morning, and saw you were closely attentive: your thoughts never seemed
2441 to wander while Miss Miller explained the lesson and questioned you. Now,
2442 mine continually rove away; when I should be listening to Miss Scatcherd,
2443 and collecting all she says with assiduity, often I lose the very sound
2444 of her voice; I fall into a sort of dream. Sometimes I think I am in
2445 Northumberland, and that the noises I hear round me are the bubbling of a
2446 little brook which runs through Deepden, near our house;--then, when it
2447 comes to my turn to reply, I have to be awakened; and having heard
2448 nothing of what was read for listening to the visionary brook, I have no
2449 answer ready."
2450
2451 "Yet how well you replied this afternoon."
2452
2453 "It was mere chance; the subject on which we had been reading had
2454 interested me. This afternoon, instead of dreaming of Deepden, I was
2455 wondering how a man who wished to do right could act so unjustly and
2456 unwisely as Charles the First sometimes did; and I thought what a pity it
2457 was that, with his integrity and conscientiousness, he could see no
2458 farther than the prerogatives of the crown. If he had but been able to
2459 look to a distance, and see how what they call the spirit of the age was
2460 tending! Still, I like Charles--I respect him--I pity him, poor murdered
2461 king! Yes, his enemies were the worst: they shed blood they had no right
2462 to shed. How dared they kill him!"
2463
2464 Helen was talking to herself now: she had forgotten I could not very well
2465 understand her--that I was ignorant, or nearly so, of the subject she
2466 discussed. I recalled her to my level.
2467
2468 "And when Miss Temple teaches you, do your thoughts wander then?"
2469
2470 "No, certainly, not often; because Miss Temple has generally something to
2471 say which is newer than my own reflections; her language is singularly
2472 agreeable to me, and the information she communicates is often just what
2473 I wished to gain."
2474
2475 "Well, then, with Miss Temple you are good?"
2476
2477 "Yes, in a passive way: I make no effort; I follow as inclination guides
2478 me. There is no merit in such goodness."
2479
2480 "A great deal: you are good to those who are good to you. It is all I
2481 ever desire to be. If people were always kind and obedient to those who
2482 are cruel and unjust, the wicked people would have it all their own way:
2483 they would never feel afraid, and so they would never alter, but would
2484 grow worse and worse. When we are struck at without a reason, we should
2485 strike back again very hard; I am sure we should--so hard as to teach the
2486 person who struck us never to do it again."
2487
2488 "You will change your mind, I hope, when you grow older: as yet you are
2489 but a little untaught girl."
2490
2491 "But I feel this, Helen; I must dislike those who, whatever I do to
2492 please them, persist in disliking me; I must resist those who punish me
2493 unjustly. It is as natural as that I should love those who show me
2494 affection, or submit to punishment when I feel it is deserved."
2495
2496 "Heathens and savage tribes hold that doctrine, but Christians and
2497 civilised nations disown it."
2498
2499 "How? I don't understand."
2500
2501 "It is not violence that best overcomes hate--nor vengeance that most
2502 certainly heals injury."
2503
2504 "What then?"
2505
2506 "Read the New Testament, and observe what Christ says, and how He acts;
2507 make His word your rule, and His conduct your example."
2508
2509 "What does He say?"
2510
2511 "Love your enemies; bless them that curse you; do good to them that hate
2512 you and despitefully use you."
2513
2514 "Then I should love Mrs. Reed, which I cannot do; I should bless her son
2515 John, which is impossible."
2516
2517 In her turn, Helen Burns asked me to explain, and I proceeded forthwith
2518 to pour out, in my own way, the tale of my sufferings and resentments.
2519 Bitter and truculent when excited, I spoke as I felt, without reserve or
2520 softening.
2521
2522 Helen heard me patiently to the end: I expected she would then make a
2523 remark, but she said nothing.
2524
2525 "Well," I asked impatiently, "is not Mrs. Reed a hard-hearted, bad
2526 woman?"
2527
2528 "She has been unkind to you, no doubt; because you see, she dislikes your
2529 cast of character, as Miss Scatcherd does mine; but how minutely you
2530 remember all she has done and said to you! What a singularly deep
2531 impression her injustice seems to have made on your heart! No ill-usage
2532 so brands its record on my feelings. Would you not be happier if you
2533 tried to forget her severity, together with the passionate emotions it
2534 excited? Life appears to me too short to be spent in nursing animosity
2535 or registering wrongs. We are, and must be, one and all, burdened with
2536 faults in this world: but the time will soon come when, I trust, we shall
2537 put them off in putting off our corruptible bodies; when debasement and
2538 sin will fall from us with this cumbrous frame of flesh, and only the
2539 spark of the spirit will remain,--the impalpable principle of light and
2540 thought, pure as when it left the Creator to inspire the creature: whence
2541 it came it will return; perhaps again to be communicated to some being
2542 higher than man--perhaps to pass through gradations of glory, from the
2543 pale human soul to brighten to the seraph! Surely it will never, on the
2544 contrary, be suffered to degenerate from man to fiend? No; I cannot
2545 believe that: I hold another creed: which no one ever taught me, and
2546 which I seldom mention; but in which I delight, and to which I cling: for
2547 it extends hope to all: it makes Eternity a rest--a mighty home, not a
2548 terror and an abyss. Besides, with this creed, I can so clearly
2549 distinguish between the criminal and his crime; I can so sincerely
2550 forgive the first while I abhor the last: with this creed revenge never
2551 worries my heart, degradation never too deeply disgusts me, injustice
2552 never crushes me too low: I live in calm, looking to the end."
2553
2554 Helen's head, always drooping, sank a little lower as she finished this
2555 sentence. I saw by her look she wished no longer to talk to me, but
2556 rather to converse with her own thoughts. She was not allowed much time
2557 for meditation: a monitor, a great rough girl, presently came up,
2558 exclaiming in a strong Cumberland accent--
2559
2560 "Helen Burns, if you don't go and put your drawer in order, and fold up
2561 your work this minute, I'll tell Miss Scatcherd to come and look at it!"
2562
2563 Helen sighed as her reverie fled, and getting up, obeyed the monitor
2564 without reply as without delay.
2565
2566
2567
2568
2569 CHAPTER VII
2570
2571
2572 My first quarter at Lowood seemed an age; and not the golden age either;
2573 it comprised an irksome struggle with difficulties in habituating myself
2574 to new rules and unwonted tasks. The fear of failure in these points
2575 harassed me worse than the physical hardships of my lot; though these
2576 were no trifles.
2577
2578 During January, February, and part of March, the deep snows, and, after
2579 their melting, the almost impassable roads, prevented our stirring beyond
2580 the garden walls, except to go to church; but within these limits we had
2581 to pass an hour every day in the open air. Our clothing was insufficient
2582 to protect us from the severe cold: we had no boots, the snow got into
2583 our shoes and melted there: our ungloved hands became numbed and covered
2584 with chilblains, as were our feet: I remember well the distracting
2585 irritation I endured from this cause every evening, when my feet
2586 inflamed; and the torture of thrusting the swelled, raw, and stiff toes
2587 into my shoes in the morning. Then the scanty supply of food was
2588 distressing: with the keen appetites of growing children, we had scarcely
2589 sufficient to keep alive a delicate invalid. From this deficiency of
2590 nourishment resulted an abuse, which pressed hardly on the younger
2591 pupils: whenever the famished great girls had an opportunity, they would
2592 coax or menace the little ones out of their portion. Many a time I have
2593 shared between two claimants the precious morsel of brown bread
2594 distributed at tea-time; and after relinquishing to a third half the
2595 contents of my mug of coffee, I have swallowed the remainder with an
2596 accompaniment of secret tears, forced from me by the exigency of hunger.
2597
2598 Sundays were dreary days in that wintry season. We had to walk two miles
2599 to Brocklebridge Church, where our patron officiated. We set out cold,
2600 we arrived at church colder: during the morning service we became almost
2601 paralysed. It was too far to return to dinner, and an allowance of cold
2602 meat and bread, in the same penurious proportion observed in our ordinary
2603 meals, was served round between the services.
2604
2605 At the close of the afternoon service we returned by an exposed and hilly
2606 road, where the bitter winter wind, blowing over a range of snowy summits
2607 to the north, almost flayed the skin from our faces.
2608
2609 I can remember Miss Temple walking lightly and rapidly along our drooping
2610 line, her plaid cloak, which the frosty wind fluttered, gathered close
2611 about her, and encouraging us, by precept and example, to keep up our
2612 spirits, and march forward, as she said, "like stalwart soldiers." The
2613 other teachers, poor things, were generally themselves too much dejected
2614 to attempt the task of cheering others.
2615
2616 How we longed for the light and heat of a blazing fire when we got back!
2617 But, to the little ones at least, this was denied: each hearth in the
2618 schoolroom was immediately surrounded by a double row of great girls, and
2619 behind them the younger children crouched in groups, wrapping their
2620 starved arms in their pinafores.
2621
2622 A little solace came at tea-time, in the shape of a double ration of
2623 bread--a whole, instead of a half, slice--with the delicious addition of
2624 a thin scrape of butter: it was the hebdomadal treat to which we all
2625 looked forward from Sabbath to Sabbath. I generally contrived to reserve
2626 a moiety of this bounteous repast for myself; but the remainder I was
2627 invariably obliged to part with.
2628
2629 The Sunday evening was spent in repeating, by heart, the Church
2630 Catechism, and the fifth, sixth, and seventh chapters of St. Matthew; and
2631 in listening to a long sermon, read by Miss Miller, whose irrepressible
2632 yawns attested her weariness. A frequent interlude of these performances
2633 was the enactment of the part of Eutychus by some half-dozen of little
2634 girls, who, overpowered with sleep, would fall down, if not out of the
2635 third loft, yet off the fourth form, and be taken up half dead. The
2636 remedy was, to thrust them forward into the centre of the schoolroom, and
2637 oblige them to stand there till the sermon was finished. Sometimes their
2638 feet failed them, and they sank together in a heap; they were then
2639 propped up with the monitors' high stools.
2640
2641 I have not yet alluded to the visits of Mr. Brocklehurst; and indeed that
2642 gentleman was from home during the greater part of the first month after
2643 my arrival; perhaps prolonging his stay with his friend the archdeacon:
2644 his absence was a relief to me. I need not say that I had my own reasons
2645 for dreading his coming: but come he did at last.
2646
2647 One afternoon (I had then been three weeks at Lowood), as I was sitting
2648 with a slate in my hand, puzzling over a sum in long division, my eyes,
2649 raised in abstraction to the window, caught sight of a figure just
2650 passing: I recognised almost instinctively that gaunt outline; and when,
2651 two minutes after, all the school, teachers included, rose _en masse_, it
2652 was not necessary for me to look up in order to ascertain whose entrance
2653 they thus greeted. A long stride measured the schoolroom, and presently
2654 beside Miss Temple, who herself had risen, stood the same black column
2655 which had frowned on me so ominously from the hearthrug of Gateshead. I
2656 now glanced sideways at this piece of architecture. Yes, I was right: it
2657 was Mr. Brocklehurst, buttoned up in a surtout, and looking longer,
2658 narrower, and more rigid than ever.
2659
2660 I had my own reasons for being dismayed at this apparition; too well I
2661 remembered the perfidious hints given by Mrs. Reed about my disposition,
2662 &c.; the promise pledged by Mr. Brocklehurst to apprise Miss Temple and
2663 the teachers of my vicious nature. All along I had been dreading the
2664 fulfilment of this promise,--I had been looking out daily for the "Coming
2665 Man," whose information respecting my past life and conversation was to
2666 brand me as a bad child for ever: now there he was.
2667
2668 He stood at Miss Temple's side; he was speaking low in her ear: I did not
2669 doubt he was making disclosures of my villainy; and I watched her eye
2670 with painful anxiety, expecting every moment to see its dark orb turn on
2671 me a glance of repugnance and contempt. I listened too; and as I
2672 happened to be seated quite at the top of the room, I caught most of what
2673 he said: its import relieved me from immediate apprehension.
2674
2675 "I suppose, Miss Temple, the thread I bought at Lowton will do; it struck
2676 me that it would be just of the quality for the calico chemises, and I
2677 sorted the needles to match. You may tell Miss Smith that I forgot to
2678 make a memorandum of the darning needles, but she shall have some papers
2679 sent in next week; and she is not, on any account, to give out more than
2680 one at a time to each pupil: if they have more, they are apt to be
2681 careless and lose them. And, O ma'am! I wish the woollen stockings were
2682 better looked to!--when I was here last, I went into the kitchen-garden
2683 and examined the clothes drying on the line; there was a quantity of
2684 black hose in a very bad state of repair: from the size of the holes in
2685 them I was sure they had not been well mended from time to time."
2686
2687 He paused.
2688
2689 "Your directions shall be attended to, sir," said Miss Temple.
2690
2691 "And, ma'am," he continued, "the laundress tells me some of the girls
2692 have two clean tuckers in the week: it is too much; the rules limit them
2693 to one."
2694
2695 "I think I can explain that circumstance, sir. Agnes and Catherine
2696 Johnstone were invited to take tea with some friends at Lowton last
2697 Thursday, and I gave them leave to put on clean tuckers for the
2698 occasion."
2699
2700 Mr. Brocklehurst nodded.
2701
2702 "Well, for once it may pass; but please not to let the circumstance occur
2703 too often. And there is another thing which surprised me; I find, in
2704 settling accounts with the housekeeper, that a lunch, consisting of bread
2705 and cheese, has twice been served out to the girls during the past
2706 fortnight. How is this? I looked over the regulations, and I find no
2707 such meal as lunch mentioned. Who introduced this innovation? and by
2708 what authority?"
2709
2710 "I must be responsible for the circumstance, sir," replied Miss Temple:
2711 "the breakfast was so ill prepared that the pupils could not possibly eat
2712 it; and I dared not allow them to remain fasting till dinner-time."
2713
2714 "Madam, allow me an instant. You are aware that my plan in bringing up
2715 these girls is, not to accustom them to habits of luxury and indulgence,
2716 but to render them hardy, patient, self-denying. Should any little
2717 accidental disappointment of the appetite occur, such as the spoiling of
2718 a meal, the under or the over dressing of a dish, the incident ought not
2719 to be neutralised by replacing with something more delicate the comfort
2720 lost, thus pampering the body and obviating the aim of this institution;
2721 it ought to be improved to the spiritual edification of the pupils, by
2722 encouraging them to evince fortitude under temporary privation. A brief
2723 address on those occasions would not be mistimed, wherein a judicious
2724 instructor would take the opportunity of referring to the sufferings of
2725 the primitive Christians; to the torments of martyrs; to the exhortations
2726 of our blessed Lord Himself, calling upon His disciples to take up their
2727 cross and follow Him; to His warnings that man shall not live by bread
2728 alone, but by every word that proceedeth out of the mouth of God; to His
2729 divine consolations, "If ye suffer hunger or thirst for My sake, happy
2730 are ye." Oh, madam, when you put bread and cheese, instead of burnt
2731 porridge, into these children's mouths, you may indeed feed their vile
2732 bodies, but you little think how you starve their immortal souls!"
2733
2734 Mr. Brocklehurst again paused--perhaps overcome by his feelings. Miss
2735 Temple had looked down when he first began to speak to her; but she now
2736 gazed straight before her, and her face, naturally pale as marble,
2737 appeared to be assuming also the coldness and fixity of that material;
2738 especially her mouth, closed as if it would have required a sculptor's
2739 chisel to open it, and her brow settled gradually into petrified
2740 severity.
2741
2742 Meantime, Mr. Brocklehurst, standing on the hearth with his hands behind
2743 his back, majestically surveyed the whole school. Suddenly his eye gave
2744 a blink, as if it had met something that either dazzled or shocked its
2745 pupil; turning, he said in more rapid accents than he had hitherto used--
2746
2747 "Miss Temple, Miss Temple, what--_what_ is that girl with curled hair?
2748 Red hair, ma'am, curled--curled all over?" And extending his cane he
2749 pointed to the awful object, his hand shaking as he did so.
2750
2751 "It is Julia Severn," replied Miss Temple, very quietly.
2752
2753 "Julia Severn, ma'am! And why has she, or any other, curled hair? Why,
2754 in defiance of every precept and principle of this house, does she
2755 conform to the world so openly--here in an evangelical, charitable
2756 establishment--as to wear her hair one mass of curls?"
2757
2758 "Julia's hair curls naturally," returned Miss Temple, still more quietly.
2759
2760 "Naturally! Yes, but we are not to conform to nature; I wish these girls
2761 to be the children of Grace: and why that abundance? I have again and
2762 again intimated that I desire the hair to be arranged closely, modestly,
2763 plainly. Miss Temple, that girl's hair must be cut off entirely; I will
2764 send a barber to-morrow: and I see others who have far too much of the
2765 excrescence--that tall girl, tell her to turn round. Tell all the first
2766 form to rise up and direct their faces to the wall."
2767
2768 Miss Temple passed her handkerchief over her lips, as if to smooth away
2769 the involuntary smile that curled them; she gave the order, however, and
2770 when the first class could take in what was required of them, they
2771 obeyed. Leaning a little back on my bench, I could see the looks and
2772 grimaces with which they commented on this manoeuvre: it was a pity Mr.
2773 Brocklehurst could not see them too; he would perhaps have felt that,
2774 whatever he might do with the outside of the cup and platter, the inside
2775 was further beyond his interference than he imagined.
2776
2777 He scrutinised the reverse of these living medals some five minutes, then
2778 pronounced sentence. These words fell like the knell of doom--
2779
2780 "All those top-knots must be cut off."
2781
2782 Miss Temple seemed to remonstrate.
2783
2784 "Madam," he pursued, "I have a Master to serve whose kingdom is not of
2785 this world: my mission is to mortify in these girls the lusts of the
2786 flesh; to teach them to clothe themselves with shame-facedness and
2787 sobriety, not with braided hair and costly apparel; and each of the young
2788 persons before us has a string of hair twisted in plaits which vanity
2789 itself might have woven; these, I repeat, must be cut off; think of the
2790 time wasted, of--"
2791
2792 Mr. Brocklehurst was here interrupted: three other visitors, ladies, now
2793 entered the room. They ought to have come a little sooner to have heard
2794 his lecture on dress, for they were splendidly attired in velvet, silk,
2795 and furs. The two younger of the trio (fine girls of sixteen and
2796 seventeen) had grey beaver hats, then in fashion, shaded with ostrich
2797 plumes, and from under the brim of this graceful head-dress fell a
2798 profusion of light tresses, elaborately curled; the elder lady was
2799 enveloped in a costly velvet shawl, trimmed with ermine, and she wore a
2800 false front of French curls.
2801
2802 These ladies were deferentially received by Miss Temple, as Mrs. and the
2803 Misses Brocklehurst, and conducted to seats of honour at the top of the
2804 room. It seems they had come in the carriage with their reverend
2805 relative, and had been conducting a rummaging scrutiny of the room
2806 upstairs, while he transacted business with the housekeeper, questioned
2807 the laundress, and lectured the superintendent. They now proceeded to
2808 address divers remarks and reproofs to Miss Smith, who was charged with
2809 the care of the linen and the inspection of the dormitories: but I had no
2810 time to listen to what they said; other matters called off and enchanted
2811 my attention.
2812
2813 Hitherto, while gathering up the discourse of Mr. Brocklehurst and Miss
2814 Temple, I had not, at the same time, neglected precautions to secure my
2815 personal safety; which I thought would be effected, if I could only elude
2816 observation. To this end, I had sat well back on the form, and while
2817 seeming to be busy with my sum, had held my slate in such a manner as to
2818 conceal my face: I might have escaped notice, had not my treacherous
2819 slate somehow happened to slip from my hand, and falling with an
2820 obtrusive crash, directly drawn every eye upon me; I knew it was all over
2821 now, and, as I stooped to pick up the two fragments of slate, I rallied
2822 my forces for the worst. It came.
2823
2824 "A careless girl!" said Mr. Brocklehurst, and immediately after--"It is
2825 the new pupil, I perceive." And before I could draw breath, "I must not
2826 forget I have a word to say respecting her." Then aloud: how loud it
2827 seemed to me! "Let the child who broke her slate come forward!"
2828
2829 Of my own accord I could not have stirred; I was paralysed: but the two
2830 great girls who sit on each side of me, set me on my legs and pushed me
2831 towards the dread judge, and then Miss Temple gently assisted me to his
2832 very feet, and I caught her whispered counsel--
2833
2834 "Don't be afraid, Jane, I saw it was an accident; you shall not be
2835 punished."
2836
2837 The kind whisper went to my heart like a dagger.
2838
2839 "Another minute, and she will despise me for a hypocrite," thought I; and
2840 an impulse of fury against Reed, Brocklehurst, and Co. bounded in my
2841 pulses at the conviction. I was no Helen Burns.
2842
2843 "Fetch that stool," said Mr. Brocklehurst, pointing to a very high one
2844 from which a monitor had just risen: it was brought.
2845
2846 "Place the child upon it."
2847
2848 And I was placed there, by whom I don't know: I was in no condition to
2849 note particulars; I was only aware that they had hoisted me up to the
2850 height of Mr. Brocklehurst's nose, that he was within a yard of me, and
2851 that a spread of shot orange and purple silk pelisses and a cloud of
2852 silvery plumage extended and waved below me.
2853
2854 Mr. Brocklehurst hemmed.
2855
2856 "Ladies," said he, turning to his family, "Miss Temple, teachers, and
2857 children, you all see this girl?"
2858
2859 Of course they did; for I felt their eyes directed like burning-glasses
2860 against my scorched skin.
2861
2862 "You see she is yet young; you observe she possesses the ordinary form of
2863 childhood; God has graciously given her the shape that He has given to
2864 all of us; no signal deformity points her out as a marked character. Who
2865 would think that the Evil One had already found a servant and agent in
2866 her? Yet such, I grieve to say, is the case."
2867
2868 A pause--in which I began to steady the palsy of my nerves, and to feel
2869 that the Rubicon was passed; and that the trial, no longer to be shirked,
2870 must be firmly sustained.
2871
2872 "My dear children," pursued the black marble clergyman, with pathos,
2873 "this is a sad, a melancholy occasion; for it becomes my duty to warn
2874 you, that this girl, who might be one of God's own lambs, is a little
2875 castaway: not a member of the true flock, but evidently an interloper and
2876 an alien. You must be on your guard against her; you must shun her
2877 example; if necessary, avoid her company, exclude her from your sports,
2878 and shut her out from your converse. Teachers, you must watch her: keep
2879 your eyes on her movements, weigh well her words, scrutinise her actions,
2880 punish her body to save her soul: if, indeed, such salvation be possible,
2881 for (my tongue falters while I tell it) this girl, this child, the native
2882 of a Christian land, worse than many a little heathen who says its
2883 prayers to Brahma and kneels before Juggernaut--this girl is--a liar!"
2884
2885 Now came a pause of ten minutes, during which I, by this time in perfect
2886 possession of my wits, observed all the female Brocklehursts produce
2887 their pocket-handkerchiefs and apply them to their optics, while the
2888 elderly lady swayed herself to and fro, and the two younger ones
2889 whispered, "How shocking!" Mr. Brocklehurst resumed.
2890
2891 "This I learned from her benefactress; from the pious and charitable lady
2892 who adopted her in her orphan state, reared her as her own daughter, and
2893 whose kindness, whose generosity the unhappy girl repaid by an
2894 ingratitude so bad, so dreadful, that at last her excellent patroness was
2895 obliged to separate her from her own young ones, fearful lest her vicious
2896 example should contaminate their purity: she has sent her here to be
2897 healed, even as the Jews of old sent their diseased to the troubled pool
2898 of Bethesda; and, teachers, superintendent, I beg of you not to allow the
2899 waters to stagnate round her."
2900
2901 With this sublime conclusion, Mr. Brocklehurst adjusted the top button of
2902 his surtout, muttered something to his family, who rose, bowed to Miss
2903 Temple, and then all the great people sailed in state from the room.
2904 Turning at the door, my judge said--
2905
2906 "Let her stand half-an-hour longer on that stool, and let no one speak to
2907 her during the remainder of the day."
2908
2909 There was I, then, mounted aloft; I, who had said I could not bear the
2910 shame of standing on my natural feet in the middle of the room, was now
2911 exposed to general view on a pedestal of infamy. What my sensations were
2912 no language can describe; but just as they all rose, stifling my breath
2913 and constricting my throat, a girl came up and passed me: in passing, she
2914 lifted her eyes. What a strange light inspired them! What an
2915 extraordinary sensation that ray sent through me! How the new feeling
2916 bore me up! It was as if a martyr, a hero, had passed a slave or victim,
2917 and imparted strength in the transit. I mastered the rising hysteria,
2918 lifted up my head, and took a firm stand on the stool. Helen Burns asked
2919 some slight question about her work of Miss Smith, was chidden for the
2920 triviality of the inquiry, returned to her place, and smiled at me as she
2921 again went by. What a smile! I remember it now, and I know that it was
2922 the effluence of fine intellect, of true courage; it lit up her marked
2923 lineaments, her thin face, her sunken grey eye, like a reflection from
2924 the aspect of an angel. Yet at that moment Helen Burns wore on her arm
2925 "the untidy badge;" scarcely an hour ago I had heard her condemned by
2926 Miss Scatcherd to a dinner of bread and water on the morrow because she
2927 had blotted an exercise in copying it out. Such is the imperfect nature
2928 of man! such spots are there on the disc of the clearest planet; and eyes
2929 like Miss Scatcherd's can only see those minute defects, and are blind to
2930 the full brightness of the orb.
2931
2932
2933
2934
2935 CHAPTER VIII
2936
2937
2938 Ere the half-hour ended, five o'clock struck; school was dismissed, and
2939 all were gone into the refectory to tea. I now ventured to descend: it
2940 was deep dusk; I retired into a corner and sat down on the floor. The
2941 spell by which I had been so far supported began to dissolve; reaction
2942 took place, and soon, so overwhelming was the grief that seized me, I
2943 sank prostrate with my face to the ground. Now I wept: Helen Burns was
2944 not here; nothing sustained me; left to myself I abandoned myself, and my
2945 tears watered the boards. I had meant to be so good, and to do so much
2946 at Lowood: to make so many friends, to earn respect and win affection.
2947 Already I had made visible progress: that very morning I had reached the
2948 head of my class; Miss Miller had praised me warmly; Miss Temple had
2949 smiled approbation; she had promised to teach me drawing, and to let me
2950 learn French, if I continued to make similar improvement two months
2951 longer: and then I was well received by my fellow-pupils; treated as an
2952 equal by those of my own age, and not molested by any; now, here I lay
2953 again crushed and trodden on; and could I ever rise more?
2954
2955 "Never," I thought; and ardently I wished to die. While sobbing out this
2956 wish in broken accents, some one approached: I started up--again Helen
2957 Burns was near me; the fading fires just showed her coming up the long,
2958 vacant room; she brought my coffee and bread.
2959
2960 "Come, eat something," she said; but I put both away from me, feeling as
2961 if a drop or a crumb would have choked me in my present condition. Helen
2962 regarded me, probably with surprise: I could not now abate my agitation,
2963 though I tried hard; I continued to weep aloud. She sat down on the
2964 ground near me, embraced her knees with her arms, and rested her head
2965 upon them; in that attitude she remained silent as an Indian. I was the
2966 first who spoke--
2967
2968 "Helen, why do you stay with a girl whom everybody believes to be a
2969 liar?"
2970
2971 "Everybody, Jane? Why, there are only eighty people who have heard you
2972 called so, and the world contains hundreds of millions."
2973
2974 "But what have I to do with millions? The eighty, I know, despise me."
2975
2976 "Jane, you are mistaken: probably not one in the school either despises
2977 or dislikes you: many, I am sure, pity you much."
2978
2979 "How can they pity me after what Mr. Brocklehurst has said?"
2980
2981 "Mr. Brocklehurst is not a god: nor is he even a great and admired man:
2982 he is little liked here; he never took steps to make himself liked. Had
2983 he treated you as an especial favourite, you would have found enemies,
2984 declared or covert, all around you; as it is, the greater number would
2985 offer you sympathy if they dared. Teachers and pupils may look coldly on
2986 you for a day or two, but friendly feelings are concealed in their
2987 hearts; and if you persevere in doing well, these feelings will ere long
2988 appear so much the more evidently for their temporary suppression.
2989 Besides, Jane"--she paused.
2990
2991 "Well, Helen?" said I, putting my hand into hers: she chafed my fingers
2992 gently to warm them, and went on--
2993
2994 "If all the world hated you, and believed you wicked, while your own
2995 conscience approved you, and absolved you from guilt, you would not be
2996 without friends."
2997
2998 "No; I know I should think well of myself; but that is not enough: if
2999 others don't love me I would rather die than live--I cannot bear to be
3000 solitary and hated, Helen. Look here; to gain some real affection from
3001 you, or Miss Temple, or any other whom I truly love, I would willingly
3002 submit to have the bone of my arm broken, or to let a bull toss me, or to
3003 stand behind a kicking horse, and let it dash its hoof at my chest--"
3004
3005 "Hush, Jane! you think too much of the love of human beings; you are too
3006 impulsive, too vehement; the sovereign hand that created your frame, and
3007 put life into it, has provided you with other resources than your feeble
3008 self, or than creatures feeble as you. Besides this earth, and besides
3009 the race of men, there is an invisible world and a kingdom of spirits:
3010 that world is round us, for it is everywhere; and those spirits watch us,
3011 for they are commissioned to guard us; and if we were dying in pain and
3012 shame, if scorn smote us on all sides, and hatred crushed us, angels see
3013 our tortures, recognise our innocence (if innocent we be: as I know you
3014 are of this charge which Mr. Brocklehurst has weakly and pompously
3015 repeated at second-hand from Mrs. Reed; for I read a sincere nature in
3016 your ardent eyes and on your clear front), and God waits only the
3017 separation of spirit from flesh to crown us with a full reward. Why,
3018 then, should we ever sink overwhelmed with distress, when life is so soon
3019 over, and death is so certain an entrance to happiness--to glory?"
3020
3021 I was silent; Helen had calmed me; but in the tranquillity she imparted
3022 there was an alloy of inexpressible sadness. I felt the impression of
3023 woe as she spoke, but I could not tell whence it came; and when, having
3024 done speaking, she breathed a little fast and coughed a short cough, I
3025 momentarily forgot my own sorrows to yield to a vague concern for her.
3026
3027 Resting my head on Helen's shoulder, I put my arms round her waist; she
3028 drew me to her, and we reposed in silence. We had not sat long thus,
3029 when another person came in. Some heavy clouds, swept from the sky by a
3030 rising wind, had left the moon bare; and her light, streaming in through
3031 a window near, shone full both on us and on the approaching figure, which
3032 we at once recognised as Miss Temple.
3033
3034 "I came on purpose to find you, Jane Eyre," said she; "I want you in my
3035 room; and as Helen Burns is with you, she may come too."
3036
3037 We went; following the superintendent's guidance, we had to thread some
3038 intricate passages, and mount a staircase before we reached her
3039 apartment; it contained a good fire, and looked cheerful. Miss Temple
3040 told Helen Burns to be seated in a low arm-chair on one side of the
3041 hearth, and herself taking another, she called me to her side.
3042
3043 "Is it all over?" she asked, looking down at my face. "Have you cried
3044 your grief away?"
3045
3046 "I am afraid I never shall do that."
3047
3048 "Why?"
3049
3050 "Because I have been wrongly accused; and you, ma'am, and everybody else,
3051 will now think me wicked."
3052
3053 "We shall think you what you prove yourself to be, my child. Continue to
3054 act as a good girl, and you will satisfy us."
3055
3056 "Shall I, Miss Temple?"
3057
3058 "You will," said she, passing her arm round me. "And now tell me who is
3059 the lady whom Mr. Brocklehurst called your benefactress?"
3060
3061 "Mrs. Reed, my uncle's wife. My uncle is dead, and he left me to her
3062 care."
3063
3064 "Did she not, then, adopt you of her own accord?"
3065
3066 "No, ma'am; she was sorry to have to do it: but my uncle, as I have often
3067 heard the servants say, got her to promise before he died that she would
3068 always keep me."
3069
3070 "Well now, Jane, you know, or at least I will tell you, that when a
3071 criminal is accused, he is always allowed to speak in his own defence.
3072 You have been charged with falsehood; defend yourself to me as well as
3073 you can. Say whatever your memory suggests is true; but add nothing and
3074 exaggerate nothing."
3075
3076 I resolved, in the depth of my heart, that I would be most moderate--most
3077 correct; and, having reflected a few minutes in order to arrange
3078 coherently what I had to say, I told her all the story of my sad
3079 childhood. Exhausted by emotion, my language was more subdued than it
3080 generally was when it developed that sad theme; and mindful of Helen's
3081 warnings against the indulgence of resentment, I infused into the
3082 narrative far less of gall and wormwood than ordinary. Thus restrained
3083 and simplified, it sounded more credible: I felt as I went on that Miss
3084 Temple fully believed me.
3085
3086 In the course of the tale I had mentioned Mr. Lloyd as having come to see
3087 me after the fit: for I never forgot the, to me, frightful episode of the
3088 red-room: in detailing which, my excitement was sure, in some degree, to
3089 break bounds; for nothing could soften in my recollection the spasm of
3090 agony which clutched my heart when Mrs. Reed spurned my wild supplication
3091 for pardon, and locked me a second time in the dark and haunted chamber.
3092
3093 I had finished: Miss Temple regarded me a few minutes in silence; she
3094 then said--
3095
3096 "I know something of Mr. Lloyd; I shall write to him; if his reply agrees
3097 with your statement, you shall be publicly cleared from every imputation;
3098 to me, Jane, you are clear now."
3099
3100 She kissed me, and still keeping me at her side (where I was well
3101 contented to stand, for I derived a child's pleasure from the
3102 contemplation of her face, her dress, her one or two ornaments, her white
3103 forehead, her clustered and shining curls, and beaming dark eyes), she
3104 proceeded to address Helen Burns.
3105
3106 "How are you to-night, Helen? Have you coughed much to-day?"
3107
3108 "Not quite so much, I think, ma'am."
3109
3110 "And the pain in your chest?"
3111
3112 "It is a little better."
3113
3114 Miss Temple got up, took her hand and examined her pulse; then she
3115 returned to her own seat: as she resumed it, I heard her sigh low. She
3116 was pensive a few minutes, then rousing herself, she said cheerfully--
3117
3118 "But you two are my visitors to-night; I must treat you as such." She
3119 rang her bell.
3120
3121 "Barbara," she said to the servant who answered it, "I have not yet had
3122 tea; bring the tray and place cups for these two young ladies."
3123
3124 And a tray was soon brought. How pretty, to my eyes, did the china cups
3125 and bright teapot look, placed on the little round table near the fire!
3126 How fragrant was the steam of the beverage, and the scent of the toast!
3127 of which, however, I, to my dismay (for I was beginning to be hungry)
3128 discerned only a very small portion: Miss Temple discerned it too.
3129
3130 "Barbara," said she, "can you not bring a little more bread and butter?
3131 There is not enough for three."
3132
3133 Barbara went out: she returned soon--
3134
3135 "Madam, Mrs. Harden says she has sent up the usual quantity."
3136
3137 Mrs. Harden, be it observed, was the housekeeper: a woman after Mr.
3138 Brocklehurst's own heart, made up of equal parts of whalebone and iron.
3139
3140 "Oh, very well!" returned Miss Temple; "we must make it do, Barbara, I
3141 suppose." And as the girl withdrew she added, smiling, "Fortunately, I
3142 have it in my power to supply deficiencies for this once."
3143
3144 Having invited Helen and me to approach the table, and placed before each
3145 of us a cup of tea with one delicious but thin morsel of toast, she got
3146 up, unlocked a drawer, and taking from it a parcel wrapped in paper,
3147 disclosed presently to our eyes a good-sized seed-cake.
3148
3149 "I meant to give each of you some of this to take with you," said she,
3150 "but as there is so little toast, you must have it now," and she
3151 proceeded to cut slices with a generous hand.
3152
3153 We feasted that evening as on nectar and ambrosia; and not the least
3154 delight of the entertainment was the smile of gratification with which
3155 our hostess regarded us, as we satisfied our famished appetites on the
3156 delicate fare she liberally supplied.
3157
3158 Tea over and the tray removed, she again summoned us to the fire; we sat
3159 one on each side of her, and now a conversation followed between her and
3160 Helen, which it was indeed a privilege to be admitted to hear.
3161
3162 Miss Temple had always something of serenity in her air, of state in her
3163 mien, of refined propriety in her language, which precluded deviation
3164 into the ardent, the excited, the eager: something which chastened the
3165 pleasure of those who looked on her and listened to her, by a controlling
3166 sense of awe; and such was my feeling now: but as to Helen Burns, I was
3167 struck with wonder.
3168
3169 The refreshing meal, the brilliant fire, the presence and kindness of her
3170 beloved instructress, or, perhaps, more than all these, something in her
3171 own unique mind, had roused her powers within her. They woke, they
3172 kindled: first, they glowed in the bright tint of her cheek, which till
3173 this hour I had never seen but pale and bloodless; then they shone in the
3174 liquid lustre of her eyes, which had suddenly acquired a beauty more
3175 singular than that of Miss Temple's--a beauty neither of fine colour nor
3176 long eyelash, nor pencilled brow, but of meaning, of movement, of
3177 radiance. Then her soul sat on her lips, and language flowed, from what
3178 source I cannot tell. Has a girl of fourteen a heart large enough,
3179 vigorous enough, to hold the swelling spring of pure, full, fervid
3180 eloquence? Such was the characteristic of Helen's discourse on that, to
3181 me, memorable evening; her spirit seemed hastening to live within a very
3182 brief span as much as many live during a protracted existence.
3183
3184 They conversed of things I had never heard of; of nations and times past;
3185 of countries far away; of secrets of nature discovered or guessed at:
3186 they spoke of books: how many they had read! What stores of knowledge
3187 they possessed! Then they seemed so familiar with French names and
3188 French authors: but my amazement reached its climax when Miss Temple
3189 asked Helen if she sometimes snatched a moment to recall the Latin her
3190 father had taught her, and taking a book from a shelf, bade her read and
3191 construe a page of Virgil; and Helen obeyed, my organ of veneration
3192 expanding at every sounding line. She had scarcely finished ere the bell
3193 announced bedtime! no delay could be admitted; Miss Temple embraced us
3194 both, saying, as she drew us to her heart--
3195
3196 "God bless you, my children!"
3197
3198 Helen she held a little longer than me: she let her go more reluctantly;
3199 it was Helen her eye followed to the door; it was for her she a second
3200 time breathed a sad sigh; for her she wiped a tear from her cheek.
3201
3202 On reaching the bedroom, we heard the voice of Miss Scatcherd: she was
3203 examining drawers; she had just pulled out Helen Burns's, and when we
3204 entered Helen was greeted with a sharp reprimand, and told that to-morrow
3205 she should have half-a-dozen of untidily folded articles pinned to her
3206 shoulder.
3207
3208 "My things were indeed in shameful disorder," murmured Helen to me, in a
3209 low voice: "I intended to have arranged them, but I forgot."
3210
3211 Next morning, Miss Scatcherd wrote in conspicuous characters on a piece
3212 of pasteboard the word "Slattern," and bound it like a phylactery round
3213 Helen's large, mild, intelligent, and benign-looking forehead. She wore
3214 it till evening, patient, unresentful, regarding it as a deserved
3215 punishment. The moment Miss Scatcherd withdrew after afternoon school, I
3216 ran to Helen, tore it off, and thrust it into the fire: the fury of which
3217 she was incapable had been burning in my soul all day, and tears, hot and
3218 large, had continually been scalding my cheek; for the spectacle of her
3219 sad resignation gave me an intolerable pain at the heart.
3220
3221 About a week subsequently to the incidents above narrated, Miss Temple,
3222 who had written to Mr. Lloyd, received his answer: it appeared that what
3223 he said went to corroborate my account. Miss Temple, having assembled
3224 the whole school, announced that inquiry had been made into the charges
3225 alleged against Jane Eyre, and that she was most happy to be able to
3226 pronounce her completely cleared from every imputation. The teachers
3227 then shook hands with me and kissed me, and a murmur of pleasure ran
3228 through the ranks of my companions.
3229
3230 Thus relieved of a grievous load, I from that hour set to work afresh,
3231 resolved to pioneer my way through every difficulty: I toiled hard, and
3232 my success was proportionate to my efforts; my memory, not naturally
3233 tenacious, improved with practice; exercise sharpened my wits; in a few
3234 weeks I was promoted to a higher class; in less than two months I was
3235 allowed to commence French and drawing. I learned the first two tenses
3236 of the verb _Etre_, and sketched my first cottage (whose walls, by-the-
3237 bye, outrivalled in slope those of the leaning tower of Pisa), on the
3238 same day. That night, on going to bed, I forgot to prepare in
3239 imagination the Barmecide supper of hot roast potatoes, or white bread
3240 and new milk, with which I was wont to amuse my inward cravings: I
3241 feasted instead on the spectacle of ideal drawings, which I saw in the
3242 dark; all the work of my own hands: freely pencilled houses and trees,
3243 picturesque rocks and ruins, Cuyp-like groups of cattle, sweet paintings
3244 of butterflies hovering over unblown roses, of birds picking at ripe
3245 cherries, of wren's nests enclosing pearl-like eggs, wreathed about with
3246 young ivy sprays. I examined, too, in thought, the possibility of my
3247 ever being able to translate currently a certain little French story
3248 which Madame Pierrot had that day shown me; nor was that problem solved
3249 to my satisfaction ere I fell sweetly asleep.
3250
3251 Well has Solomon said--"Better is a dinner of herbs where love is, than a
3252 stalled ox and hatred therewith."
3253
3254 I would not now have exchanged Lowood with all its privations for
3255 Gateshead and its daily luxuries.
3256
3257
3258
3259
3260 CHAPTER IX
3261
3262
3263 But the privations, or rather the hardships, of Lowood lessened. Spring
3264 drew on: she was indeed already come; the frosts of winter had ceased;
3265 its snows were melted, its cutting winds ameliorated. My wretched feet,
3266 flayed and swollen to lameness by the sharp air of January, began to heal
3267 and subside under the gentler breathings of April; the nights and
3268 mornings no longer by their Canadian temperature froze the very blood in
3269 our veins; we could now endure the play-hour passed in the garden:
3270 sometimes on a sunny day it began even to be pleasant and genial, and a
3271 greenness grew over those brown beds, which, freshening daily, suggested
3272 the thought that Hope traversed them at night, and left each morning
3273 brighter traces of her steps. Flowers peeped out amongst the leaves;
3274 snow-drops, crocuses, purple auriculas, and golden-eyed pansies. On
3275 Thursday afternoons (half-holidays) we now took walks, and found still
3276 sweeter flowers opening by the wayside, under the hedges.
3277
3278 I discovered, too, that a great pleasure, an enjoyment which the horizon
3279 only bounded, lay all outside the high and spike-guarded walls of our
3280 garden: this pleasure consisted in prospect of noble summits girdling a
3281 great hill-hollow, rich in verdure and shadow; in a bright beck, full of
3282 dark stones and sparkling eddies. How different had this scene looked
3283 when I viewed it laid out beneath the iron sky of winter, stiffened in
3284 frost, shrouded with snow!--when mists as chill as death wandered to the
3285 impulse of east winds along those purple peaks, and rolled down "ing" and
3286 holm till they blended with the frozen fog of the beck! That beck itself
3287 was then a torrent, turbid and curbless: it tore asunder the wood, and
3288 sent a raving sound through the air, often thickened with wild rain or
3289 whirling sleet; and for the forest on its banks, _that_ showed only ranks
3290 of skeletons.
3291
3292 April advanced to May: a bright serene May it was; days of blue sky,
3293 placid sunshine, and soft western or southern gales filled up its
3294 duration. And now vegetation matured with vigour; Lowood shook loose its
3295 tresses; it became all green, all flowery; its great elm, ash, and oak
3296 skeletons were restored to majestic life; woodland plants sprang up
3297 profusely in its recesses; unnumbered varieties of moss filled its
3298 hollows, and it made a strange ground-sunshine out of the wealth of its
3299 wild primrose plants: I have seen their pale gold gleam in overshadowed
3300 spots like scatterings of the sweetest lustre. All this I enjoyed often
3301 and fully, free, unwatched, and almost alone: for this unwonted liberty
3302 and pleasure there was a cause, to which it now becomes my task to
3303 advert.
3304
3305 Have I not described a pleasant site for a dwelling, when I speak of it
3306 as bosomed in hill and wood, and rising from the verge of a stream?
3307 Assuredly, pleasant enough: but whether healthy or not is another
3308 question.
3309
3310 That forest-dell, where Lowood lay, was the cradle of fog and fog-bred
3311 pestilence; which, quickening with the quickening spring, crept into the
3312 Orphan Asylum, breathed typhus through its crowded schoolroom and
3313 dormitory, and, ere May arrived, transformed the seminary into an
3314 hospital.
3315
3316 Semi-starvation and neglected colds had predisposed most of the pupils to
3317 receive infection: forty-five out of the eighty girls lay ill at one
3318 time. Classes were broken up, rules relaxed. The few who continued well
3319 were allowed almost unlimited license; because the medical attendant
3320 insisted on the necessity of frequent exercise to keep them in health:
3321 and had it been otherwise, no one had leisure to watch or restrain them.
3322 Miss Temple's whole attention was absorbed by the patients: she lived in
3323 the sick-room, never quitting it except to snatch a few hours' rest at
3324 night. The teachers were fully occupied with packing up and making other
3325 necessary preparations for the departure of those girls who were
3326 fortunate enough to have friends and relations able and willing to remove
3327 them from the seat of contagion. Many, already smitten, went home only
3328 to die: some died at the school, and were buried quietly and quickly, the
3329 nature of the malady forbidding delay.
3330
3331 While disease had thus become an inhabitant of Lowood, and death its
3332 frequent visitor; while there was gloom and fear within its walls; while
3333 its rooms and passages steamed with hospital smells, the drug and the
3334 pastille striving vainly to overcome the effluvia of mortality, that
3335 bright May shone unclouded over the bold hills and beautiful woodland out
3336 of doors. Its garden, too, glowed with flowers: hollyhocks had sprung up
3337 tall as trees, lilies had opened, tulips and roses were in bloom; the
3338 borders of the little beds were gay with pink thrift and crimson double
3339 daisies; the sweetbriars gave out, morning and evening, their scent of
3340 spice and apples; and these fragrant treasures were all useless for most
3341 of the inmates of Lowood, except to furnish now and then a handful of
3342 herbs and blossoms to put in a coffin.
3343
3344 But I, and the rest who continued well, enjoyed fully the beauties of the
3345 scene and season; they let us ramble in the wood, like gipsies, from
3346 morning till night; we did what we liked, went where we liked: we lived
3347 better too. Mr. Brocklehurst and his family never came near Lowood now:
3348 household matters were not scrutinised into; the cross housekeeper was
3349 gone, driven away by the fear of infection; her successor, who had been
3350 matron at the Lowton Dispensary, unused to the ways of her new abode,
3351 provided with comparative liberality. Besides, there were fewer to feed;
3352 the sick could eat little; our breakfast-basins were better filled; when
3353 there was no time to prepare a regular dinner, which often happened, she
3354 would give us a large piece of cold pie, or a thick slice of bread and
3355 cheese, and this we carried away with us to the wood, where we each chose
3356 the spot we liked best, and dined sumptuously.
3357
3358 My favourite seat was a smooth and broad stone, rising white and dry from
3359 the very middle of the beck, and only to be got at by wading through the
3360 water; a feat I accomplished barefoot. The stone was just broad enough
3361 to accommodate, comfortably, another girl and me, at that time my chosen
3362 comrade--one Mary Ann Wilson; a shrewd, observant personage, whose
3363 society I took pleasure in, partly because she was witty and original,
3364 and partly because she had a manner which set me at my ease. Some years
3365 older than I, she knew more of the world, and could tell me many things I
3366 liked to hear: with her my curiosity found gratification: to my faults
3367 also she gave ample indulgence, never imposing curb or rein on anything I
3368 said. She had a turn for narrative, I for analysis; she liked to inform,
3369 I to question; so we got on swimmingly together, deriving much
3370 entertainment, if not much improvement, from our mutual intercourse.
3371
3372 And where, meantime, was Helen Burns? Why did I not spend these sweet
3373 days of liberty with her? Had I forgotten her? or was I so worthless as
3374 to have grown tired of her pure society? Surely the Mary Ann Wilson I
3375 have mentioned was inferior to my first acquaintance: she could only tell
3376 me amusing stories, and reciprocate any racy and pungent gossip I chose
3377 to indulge in; while, if I have spoken truth of Helen, she was qualified
3378 to give those who enjoyed the privilege of her converse a taste of far
3379 higher things.
3380
3381 True, reader; and I knew and felt this: and though I am a defective
3382 being, with many faults and few redeeming points, yet I never tired of
3383 Helen Burns; nor ever ceased to cherish for her a sentiment of
3384 attachment, as strong, tender, and respectful as any that ever animated
3385 my heart. How could it be otherwise, when Helen, at all times and under
3386 all circumstances, evinced for me a quiet and faithful friendship, which
3387 ill-humour never soured, nor irritation never troubled? But Helen was
3388 ill at present: for some weeks she had been removed from my sight to I
3389 knew not what room upstairs. She was not, I was told, in the hospital
3390 portion of the house with the fever patients; for her complaint was
3391 consumption, not typhus: and by consumption I, in my ignorance,
3392 understood something mild, which time and care would be sure to
3393 alleviate.
3394
3395 I was confirmed in this idea by the fact of her once or twice coming
3396 downstairs on very warm sunny afternoons, and being taken by Miss Temple
3397 into the garden; but, on these occasions, I was not allowed to go and
3398 speak to her; I only saw her from the schoolroom window, and then not
3399 distinctly; for she was much wrapped up, and sat at a distance under the
3400 verandah.
3401
3402 One evening, in the beginning of June, I had stayed out very late with
3403 Mary Ann in the wood; we had, as usual, separated ourselves from the
3404 others, and had wandered far; so far that we lost our way, and had to ask
3405 it at a lonely cottage, where a man and woman lived, who looked after a
3406 herd of half-wild swine that fed on the mast in the wood. When we got
3407 back, it was after moonrise: a pony, which we knew to be the surgeon's,
3408 was standing at the garden door. Mary Ann remarked that she supposed
3409 some one must be very ill, as Mr. Bates had been sent for at that time of
3410 the evening. She went into the house; I stayed behind a few minutes to
3411 plant in my garden a handful of roots I had dug up in the forest, and
3412 which I feared would wither if I left them till the morning. This done,
3413 I lingered yet a little longer: the flowers smelt so sweet as the dew
3414 fell; it was such a pleasant evening, so serene, so warm; the still
3415 glowing west promised so fairly another fine day on the morrow; the moon
3416 rose with such majesty in the grave east. I was noting these things and
3417 enjoying them as a child might, when it entered my mind as it had never
3418 done before:--
3419
3420 "How sad to be lying now on a sick bed, and to be in danger of dying!
3421 This world is pleasant--it would be dreary to be called from it, and to
3422 have to go who knows where?"
3423
3424 And then my mind made its first earnest effort to comprehend what had
3425 been infused into it concerning heaven and hell; and for the first time
3426 it recoiled, baffled; and for the first time glancing behind, on each
3427 side, and before it, it saw all round an unfathomed gulf: it felt the one
3428 point where it stood--the present; all the rest was formless cloud and
3429 vacant depth; and it shuddered at the thought of tottering, and plunging
3430 amid that chaos. While pondering this new idea, I heard the front door
3431 open; Mr. Bates came out, and with him was a nurse. After she had seen
3432 him mount his horse and depart, she was about to close the door, but I
3433 ran up to her.
3434
3435 "How is Helen Burns?"
3436
3437 "Very poorly," was the answer.
3438
3439 "Is it her Mr. Bates has been to see?"
3440
3441 "Yes."
3442
3443 "And what does he say about her?"
3444
3445 "He says she'll not be here long."
3446
3447 This phrase, uttered in my hearing yesterday, would have only conveyed
3448 the notion that she was about to be removed to Northumberland, to her own
3449 home. I should not have suspected that it meant she was dying; but I
3450 knew instantly now! It opened clear on my comprehension that Helen Burns
3451 was numbering her last days in this world, and that she was going to be
3452 taken to the region of spirits, if such region there were. I experienced
3453 a shock of horror, then a strong thrill of grief, then a desire--a
3454 necessity to see her; and I asked in what room she lay.
3455
3456 "She is in Miss Temple's room," said the nurse.
3457
3458 "May I go up and speak to her?"
3459
3460 "Oh no, child! It is not likely; and now it is time for you to come in;
3461 you'll catch the fever if you stop out when the dew is falling."
3462
3463 The nurse closed the front door; I went in by the side entrance which led
3464 to the schoolroom: I was just in time; it was nine o'clock, and Miss
3465 Miller was calling the pupils to go to bed.
3466
3467 It might be two hours later, probably near eleven, when I--not having
3468 been able to fall asleep, and deeming, from the perfect silence of the
3469 dormitory, that my companions were all wrapt in profound repose--rose
3470 softly, put on my frock over my night-dress, and, without shoes, crept
3471 from the apartment, and set off in quest of Miss Temple's room. It was
3472 quite at the other end of the house; but I knew my way; and the light of
3473 the unclouded summer moon, entering here and there at passage windows,
3474 enabled me to find it without difficulty. An odour of camphor and burnt
3475 vinegar warned me when I came near the fever room: and I passed its door
3476 quickly, fearful lest the nurse who sat up all night should hear me. I
3477 dreaded being discovered and sent back; for I _must_ see Helen,--I must
3478 embrace her before she died,--I must give her one last kiss, exchange
3479 with her one last word.
3480
3481 Having descended a staircase, traversed a portion of the house below, and
3482 succeeded in opening and shutting, without noise, two doors, I reached
3483 another flight of steps; these I mounted, and then just opposite to me
3484 was Miss Temple's room. A light shone through the keyhole and from under
3485 the door; a profound stillness pervaded the vicinity. Coming near, I
3486 found the door slightly ajar; probably to admit some fresh air into the
3487 close abode of sickness. Indisposed to hesitate, and full of impatient
3488 impulses--soul and senses quivering with keen throes--I put it back and
3489 looked in. My eye sought Helen, and feared to find death.
3490
3491 Close by Miss Temple's bed, and half covered with its white curtains,
3492 there stood a little crib. I saw the outline of a form under the
3493 clothes, but the face was hid by the hangings: the nurse I had spoken to
3494 in the garden sat in an easy-chair asleep; an unsnuffed candle burnt
3495 dimly on the table. Miss Temple was not to be seen: I knew afterwards
3496 that she had been called to a delirious patient in the fever-room. I
3497 advanced; then paused by the crib side: my hand was on the curtain, but I
3498 preferred speaking before I withdrew it. I still recoiled at the dread
3499 of seeing a corpse.
3500
3501 "Helen!" I whispered softly, "are you awake?"
3502
3503 She stirred herself, put back the curtain, and I saw her face, pale,
3504 wasted, but quite composed: she looked so little changed that my fear was
3505 instantly dissipated.
3506
3507 "Can it be you, Jane?" she asked, in her own gentle voice.
3508
3509 "Oh!" I thought, "she is not going to die; they are mistaken: she could
3510 not speak and look so calmly if she were."
3511
3512 I got on to her crib and kissed her: her forehead was cold, and her cheek
3513 both cold and thin, and so were her hand and wrist; but she smiled as of
3514 old.
3515
3516 "Why are you come here, Jane? It is past eleven o'clock: I heard it
3517 strike some minutes since."
3518
3519 "I came to see you, Helen: I heard you were very ill, and I could not
3520 sleep till I had spoken to you."
3521
3522 "You came to bid me good-bye, then: you are just in time probably."
3523
3524 "Are you going somewhere, Helen? Are you going home?"
3525
3526 "Yes; to my long home--my last home."
3527
3528 "No, no, Helen!" I stopped, distressed. While I tried to devour my
3529 tears, a fit of coughing seized Helen; it did not, however, wake the
3530 nurse; when it was over, she lay some minutes exhausted; then she
3531 whispered--
3532
3533 "Jane, your little feet are bare; lie down and cover yourself with my
3534 quilt."
3535
3536 I did so: she put her arm over me, and I nestled close to her. After a
3537 long silence, she resumed, still whispering--
3538
3539 "I am very happy, Jane; and when you hear that I am dead, you must be
3540 sure and not grieve: there is nothing to grieve about. We all must die
3541 one day, and the illness which is removing me is not painful; it is
3542 gentle and gradual: my mind is at rest. I leave no one to regret me
3543 much: I have only a father; and he is lately married, and will not miss
3544 me. By dying young, I shall escape great sufferings. I had not
3545 qualities or talents to make my way very well in the world: I should have
3546 been continually at fault."
3547
3548 "But where are you going to, Helen? Can you see? Do you know?"
3549
3550 "I believe; I have faith: I am going to God."
3551
3552 "Where is God? What is God?"
3553
3554 "My Maker and yours, who will never destroy what He created. I rely
3555 implicitly on His power, and confide wholly in His goodness: I count the
3556 hours till that eventful one arrives which shall restore me to Him,
3557 reveal Him to me."
3558
3559 "You are sure, then, Helen, that there is such a place as heaven, and
3560 that our souls can get to it when we die?"
3561
3562 "I am sure there is a future state; I believe God is good; I can resign
3563 my immortal part to Him without any misgiving. God is my father; God is
3564 my friend: I love Him; I believe He loves me."
3565
3566 "And shall I see you again, Helen, when I die?"
3567
3568 "You will come to the same region of happiness: be received by the same
3569 mighty, universal Parent, no doubt, dear Jane."
3570
3571 Again I questioned, but this time only in thought. "Where is that
3572 region? Does it exist?" And I clasped my arms closer round Helen; she
3573 seemed dearer to me than ever; I felt as if I could not let her go; I lay
3574 with my face hidden on her neck. Presently she said, in the sweetest
3575 tone--
3576
3577 "How comfortable I am! That last fit of coughing has tired me a little;
3578 I feel as if I could sleep: but don't leave me, Jane; I like to have you
3579 near me."
3580
3581 "I'll stay with you, _dear_ Helen: no one shall take me away."
3582
3583 "Are you warm, darling?"
3584
3585 "Yes."
3586
3587 "Good-night, Jane."
3588
3589 "Good-night, Helen."
3590
3591 She kissed me, and I her, and we both soon slumbered.
3592
3593 When I awoke it was day: an unusual movement roused me; I looked up; I
3594 was in somebody's arms; the nurse held me; she was carrying me through
3595 the passage back to the dormitory. I was not reprimanded for leaving my
3596 bed; people had something else to think about; no explanation was
3597 afforded then to my many questions; but a day or two afterwards I learned
3598 that Miss Temple, on returning to her own room at dawn, had found me laid
3599 in the little crib; my face against Helen Burns's shoulder, my arms round
3600 her neck. I was asleep, and Helen was--dead.
3601
3602 Her grave is in Brocklebridge churchyard: for fifteen years after her
3603 death it was only covered by a grassy mound; but now a grey marble tablet
3604 marks the spot, inscribed with her name, and the word "Resurgam."
3605
3606
3607
3608
3609 CHAPTER X
3610
3611
3612 Hitherto I have recorded in detail the events of my insignificant
3613 existence: to the first ten years of my life I have given almost as many
3614 chapters. But this is not to be a regular autobiography. I am only
3615 bound to invoke Memory where I know her responses will possess some
3616 degree of interest; therefore I now pass a space of eight years almost in
3617 silence: a few lines only are necessary to keep up the links of
3618 connection.
3619
3620 When the typhus fever had fulfilled its mission of devastation at Lowood,
3621 it gradually disappeared from thence; but not till its virulence and the
3622 number of its victims had drawn public attention on the school. Inquiry
3623 was made into the origin of the scourge, and by degrees various facts
3624 came out which excited public indignation in a high degree. The
3625 unhealthy nature of the site; the quantity and quality of the children's
3626 food; the brackish, fetid water used in its preparation; the pupils'
3627 wretched clothing and accommodations--all these things were discovered,
3628 and the discovery produced a result mortifying to Mr. Brocklehurst, but
3629 beneficial to the institution.
3630
3631 Several wealthy and benevolent individuals in the county subscribed
3632 largely for the erection of a more convenient building in a better
3633 situation; new regulations were made; improvements in diet and clothing
3634 introduced; the funds of the school were intrusted to the management of a
3635 committee. Mr. Brocklehurst, who, from his wealth and family
3636 connections, could not be overlooked, still retained the post of
3637 treasurer; but he was aided in the discharge of his duties by gentlemen
3638 of rather more enlarged and sympathising minds: his office of inspector,
3639 too, was shared by those who knew how to combine reason with strictness,
3640 comfort with economy, compassion with uprightness. The school, thus
3641 improved, became in time a truly useful and noble institution. I
3642 remained an inmate of its walls, after its regeneration, for eight years:
3643 six as pupil, and two as teacher; and in both capacities I bear my
3644 testimony to its value and importance.
3645
3646 During these eight years my life was uniform: but not unhappy, because it
3647 was not inactive. I had the means of an excellent education placed
3648 within my reach; a fondness for some of my studies, and a desire to excel
3649 in all, together with a great delight in pleasing my teachers, especially
3650 such as I loved, urged me on: I availed myself fully of the advantages
3651 offered me. In time I rose to be the first girl of the first class; then
3652 I was invested with the office of teacher; which I discharged with zeal
3653 for two years: but at the end of that time I altered.
3654
3655 Miss Temple, through all changes, had thus far continued superintendent
3656 of the seminary: to her instruction I owed the best part of my
3657 acquirements; her friendship and society had been my continual solace;
3658 she had stood me in the stead of mother, governess, and, latterly,
3659 companion. At this period she married, removed with her husband (a
3660 clergyman, an excellent man, almost worthy of such a wife) to a distant
3661 county, and consequently was lost to me.
3662
3663 From the day she left I was no longer the same: with her was gone every
3664 settled feeling, every association that had made Lowood in some degree a
3665 home to me. I had imbibed from her something of her nature and much of
3666 her habits: more harmonious thoughts: what seemed better regulated
3667 feelings had become the inmates of my mind. I had given in allegiance to
3668 duty and order; I was quiet; I believed I was content: to the eyes of
3669 others, usually even to my own, I appeared a disciplined and subdued
3670 character.
3671
3672 But destiny, in the shape of the Rev. Mr. Nasmyth, came between me and
3673 Miss Temple: I saw her in her travelling dress step into a post-chaise,
3674 shortly after the marriage ceremony; I watched the chaise mount the hill
3675 and disappear beyond its brow; and then retired to my own room, and there
3676 spent in solitude the greatest part of the half-holiday granted in honour
3677 of the occasion.
3678
3679 I walked about the chamber most of the time. I imagined myself only to
3680 be regretting my loss, and thinking how to repair it; but when my
3681 reflections were concluded, and I looked up and found that the afternoon
3682 was gone, and evening far advanced, another discovery dawned on me,
3683 namely, that in the interval I had undergone a transforming process; that
3684 my mind had put off all it had borrowed of Miss Temple--or rather that
3685 she had taken with her the serene atmosphere I had been breathing in her
3686 vicinity--and that now I was left in my natural element, and beginning to
3687 feel the stirring of old emotions. It did not seem as if a prop were
3688 withdrawn, but rather as if a motive were gone: it was not the power to
3689 be tranquil which had failed me, but the reason for tranquillity was no
3690 more. My world had for some years been in Lowood: my experience had been
3691 of its rules and systems; now I remembered that the real world was wide,
3692 and that a varied field of hopes and fears, of sensations and
3693 excitements, awaited those who had courage to go forth into its expanse,
3694 to seek real knowledge of life amidst its perils.
3695
3696 I went to my window, opened it, and looked out. There were the two wings
3697 of the building; there was the garden; there were the skirts of Lowood;
3698 there was the hilly horizon. My eye passed all other objects to rest on
3699 those most remote, the blue peaks; it was those I longed to surmount; all
3700 within their boundary of rock and heath seemed prison-ground, exile
3701 limits. I traced the white road winding round the base of one mountain,
3702 and vanishing in a gorge between two; how I longed to follow it farther!
3703 I recalled the time when I had travelled that very road in a coach; I
3704 remembered descending that hill at twilight; an age seemed to have
3705 elapsed since the day which brought me first to Lowood, and I had never
3706 quitted it since. My vacations had all been spent at school: Mrs. Reed
3707 had never sent for me to Gateshead; neither she nor any of her family had
3708 ever been to visit me. I had had no communication by letter or message
3709 with the outer world: school-rules, school-duties, school-habits and
3710 notions, and voices, and faces, and phrases, and costumes, and
3711 preferences, and antipathies--such was what I knew of existence. And now
3712 I felt that it was not enough; I tired of the routine of eight years in
3713 one afternoon. I desired liberty; for liberty I gasped; for liberty I
3714 uttered a prayer; it seemed scattered on the wind then faintly blowing. I
3715 abandoned it and framed a humbler supplication; for change, stimulus:
3716 that petition, too, seemed swept off into vague space: "Then," I cried,
3717 half desperate, "grant me at least a new servitude!"
3718
3719 Here a bell, ringing the hour of supper, called me downstairs.
3720
3721 I was not free to resume the interrupted chain of my reflections till
3722 bedtime: even then a teacher who occupied the same room with me kept me
3723 from the subject to which I longed to recur, by a prolonged effusion of
3724 small talk. How I wished sleep would silence her. It seemed as if,
3725 could I but go back to the idea which had last entered my mind as I stood
3726 at the window, some inventive suggestion would rise for my relief.
3727
3728 Miss Gryce snored at last; she was a heavy Welshwoman, and till now her
3729 habitual nasal strains had never been regarded by me in any other light
3730 than as a nuisance; to-night I hailed the first deep notes with
3731 satisfaction; I was debarrassed of interruption; my half-effaced thought
3732 instantly revived.
3733
3734 "A new servitude! There is something in that," I soliloquised (mentally,
3735 be it understood; I did not talk aloud), "I know there is, because it
3736 does not sound too sweet; it is not like such words as Liberty,
3737 Excitement, Enjoyment: delightful sounds truly; but no more than sounds
3738 for me; and so hollow and fleeting that it is mere waste of time to
3739 listen to them. But Servitude! That must be matter of fact. Any one
3740 may serve: I have served here eight years; now all I want is to serve
3741 elsewhere. Can I not get so much of my own will? Is not the thing
3742 feasible? Yes--yes--the end is not so difficult; if I had only a brain
3743 active enough to ferret out the means of attaining it."
3744
3745 I sat up in bed by way of arousing this said brain: it was a chilly
3746 night; I covered my shoulders with a shawl, and then I proceeded _to
3747 think_ again with all my might.
3748
3749 "What do I want? A new place, in a new house, amongst new faces, under
3750 new circumstances: I want this because it is of no use wanting anything
3751 better. How do people do to get a new place? They apply to friends, I
3752 suppose: I have no friends. There are many others who have no friends,
3753 who must look about for themselves and be their own helpers; and what is
3754 their resource?"
3755
3756 I could not tell: nothing answered me; I then ordered my brain to find a
3757 response, and quickly. It worked and worked faster: I felt the pulses
3758 throb in my head and temples; but for nearly an hour it worked in chaos;
3759 and no result came of its efforts. Feverish with vain labour, I got up
3760 and took a turn in the room; undrew the curtain, noted a star or two,
3761 shivered with cold, and again crept to bed.
3762
3763 A kind fairy, in my absence, had surely dropped the required suggestion
3764 on my pillow; for as I lay down, it came quietly and naturally to my
3765 mind.--"Those who want situations advertise; you must advertise in the
3766 _---shire Herald_."
3767
3768 "How? I know nothing about advertising."
3769
3770 Replies rose smooth and prompt now:--
3771
3772 "You must enclose the advertisement and the money to pay for it under a
3773 cover directed to the editor of the _Herald_; you must put it, the first
3774 opportunity you have, into the post at Lowton; answers must be addressed
3775 to J.E., at the post-office there; you can go and inquire in about a week
3776 after you send your letter, if any are come, and act accordingly."
3777
3778 This scheme I went over twice, thrice; it was then digested in my mind; I
3779 had it in a clear practical form: I felt satisfied, and fell asleep.
3780
3781 With earliest day, I was up: I had my advertisement written, enclosed,
3782 and directed before the bell rang to rouse the school; it ran thus:--
3783
3784 "A young lady accustomed to tuition" (had I not been a teacher two
3785 years?) "is desirous of meeting with a situation in a private family
3786 where the children are under fourteen" (I thought that as I was barely
3787 eighteen, it would not do to undertake the guidance of pupils nearer my
3788 own age). "She is qualified to teach the usual branches of a good English
3789 education, together with French, Drawing, and Music" (in those days,
3790 reader, this now narrow catalogue of accomplishments, would have been
3791 held tolerably comprehensive). "Address, J.E., Post-office, Lowton, ---
3792 shire."
3793
3794 This document remained locked in my drawer all day: after tea, I asked
3795 leave of the new superintendent to go to Lowton, in order to perform some
3796 small commissions for myself and one or two of my fellow-teachers;
3797 permission was readily granted; I went. It was a walk of two miles, and
3798 the evening was wet, but the days were still long; I visited a shop or
3799 two, slipped the letter into the post-office, and came back through heavy
3800 rain, with streaming garments, but with a relieved heart.
3801
3802 The succeeding week seemed long: it came to an end at last, however, like
3803 all sublunary things, and once more, towards the close of a pleasant
3804 autumn day, I found myself afoot on the road to Lowton. A picturesque
3805 track it was, by the way; lying along the side of the beck and through
3806 the sweetest curves of the dale: but that day I thought more of the
3807 letters, that might or might not be awaiting me at the little burgh
3808 whither I was bound, than of the charms of lea and water.
3809
3810 My ostensible errand on this occasion was to get measured for a pair of
3811 shoes; so I discharged that business first, and when it was done, I
3812 stepped across the clean and quiet little street from the shoemaker's to
3813 the post-office: it was kept by an old dame, who wore horn spectacles on
3814 her nose, and black mittens on her hands.
3815
3816 "Are there any letters for J.E.?" I asked.
3817
3818 She peered at me over her spectacles, and then she opened a drawer and
3819 fumbled among its contents for a long time, so long that my hopes began
3820 to falter. At last, having held a document before her glasses for nearly
3821 five minutes, she presented it across the counter, accompanying the act
3822 by another inquisitive and mistrustful glance--it was for J.E.
3823
3824 "Is there only one?" I demanded.
3825
3826 "There are no more," said she; and I put it in my pocket and turned my
3827 face homeward: I could not open it then; rules obliged me to be back by
3828 eight, and it was already half-past seven.
3829
3830 Various duties awaited me on my arrival. I had to sit with the girls
3831 during their hour of study; then it was my turn to read prayers; to see
3832 them to bed: afterwards I supped with the other teachers. Even when we
3833 finally retired for the night, the inevitable Miss Gryce was still my
3834 companion: we had only a short end of candle in our candlestick, and I
3835 dreaded lest she should talk till it was all burnt out; fortunately,
3836 however, the heavy supper she had eaten produced a soporific effect: she
3837 was already snoring before I had finished undressing. There still
3838 remained an inch of candle: I now took out my letter; the seal was an
3839 initial F.; I broke it; the contents were brief.
3840
3841 "If J.E., who advertised in the _---shire Herald_ of last Thursday,
3842 possesses the acquirements mentioned, and if she is in a position to give
3843 satisfactory references as to character and competency, a situation can
3844 be offered her where there is but one pupil, a little girl, under ten
3845 years of age; and where the salary is thirty pounds per annum. J.E. is
3846 requested to send references, name, address, and all particulars to the
3847 direction:--
3848
3849 "Mrs. Fairfax, Thornfield, near Millcote, ---shire."
3850
3851 I examined the document long: the writing was old-fashioned and rather
3852 uncertain, like that of an elderly lady. This circumstance was
3853 satisfactory: a private fear had haunted me, that in thus acting for
3854 myself, and by my own guidance, I ran the risk of getting into some
3855 scrape; and, above all things, I wished the result of my endeavours to be
3856 respectable, proper, _en regle_. I now felt that an elderly lady was no
3857 bad ingredient in the business I had on hand. Mrs. Fairfax! I saw her
3858 in a black gown and widow's cap; frigid, perhaps, but not uncivil: a
3859 model of elderly English respectability. Thornfield! that, doubtless,
3860 was the name of her house: a neat orderly spot, I was sure; though I
3861 failed in my efforts to conceive a correct plan of the premises.
3862 Millcote, ---shire; I brushed up my recollections of the map of England,
3863 yes, I saw it; both the shire and the town. ---shire was seventy miles
3864 nearer London than the remote county where I now resided: that was a
3865 recommendation to me. I longed to go where there was life and movement:
3866 Millcote was a large manufacturing town on the banks of the A-; a busy
3867 place enough, doubtless: so much the better; it would be a complete
3868 change at least. Not that my fancy was much captivated by the idea of
3869 long chimneys and clouds of smoke--"but," I argued, "Thornfield will,
3870 probably, be a good way from the town."
3871
3872 Here the socket of the candle dropped, and the wick went out.
3873
3874 Next day new steps were to be taken; my plans could no longer be confined
3875 to my own breast; I must impart them in order to achieve their success.
3876 Having sought and obtained an audience of the superintendent during the
3877 noontide recreation, I told her I had a prospect of getting a new
3878 situation where the salary would be double what I now received (for at
3879 Lowood I only got 15 pounds per annum); and requested she would break the
3880 matter for me to Mr. Brocklehurst, or some of the committee, and
3881 ascertain whether they would permit me to mention them as references. She
3882 obligingly consented to act as mediatrix in the matter. The next day she
3883 laid the affair before Mr. Brocklehurst, who said that Mrs. Reed must be
3884 written to, as she was my natural guardian. A note was accordingly
3885 addressed to that lady, who returned for answer, that "I might do as I
3886 pleased: she had long relinquished all interference in my affairs." This
3887 note went the round of the committee, and at last, after what appeared to
3888 me most tedious delay, formal leave was given me to better my condition
3889 if I could; and an assurance added, that as I had always conducted myself
3890 well, both as teacher and pupil, at Lowood, a testimonial of character
3891 and capacity, signed by the inspectors of that institution, should
3892 forthwith be furnished me.
3893
3894 This testimonial I accordingly received in about a month, forwarded a
3895 copy of it to Mrs. Fairfax, and got that lady's reply, stating that she
3896 was satisfied, and fixing that day fortnight as the period for my
3897 assuming the post of governess in her house.
3898
3899 I now busied myself in preparations: the fortnight passed rapidly. I had
3900 not a very large wardrobe, though it was adequate to my wants; and the
3901 last day sufficed to pack my trunk,--the same I had brought with me eight
3902 years ago from Gateshead.
3903
3904 The box was corded, the card nailed on. In half-an-hour the carrier was
3905 to call for it to take it to Lowton, whither I myself was to repair at an
3906 early hour the next morning to meet the coach. I had brushed my black
3907 stuff travelling-dress, prepared my bonnet, gloves, and muff; sought in
3908 all my drawers to see that no article was left behind; and now having
3909 nothing more to do, I sat down and tried to rest. I could not; though I
3910 had been on foot all day, I could not now repose an instant; I was too
3911 much excited. A phase of my life was closing to-night, a new one opening
3912 to-morrow: impossible to slumber in the interval; I must watch feverishly
3913 while the change was being accomplished.
3914
3915 "Miss," said a servant who met me in the lobby, where I was wandering
3916 like a troubled spirit, "a person below wishes to see you."
3917
3918 "The carrier, no doubt," I thought, and ran downstairs without inquiry. I
3919 was passing the back-parlour or teachers' sitting-room, the door of which
3920 was half open, to go to the kitchen, when some one ran out--
3921
3922 "It's her, I am sure!--I could have told her anywhere!" cried the
3923 individual who stopped my progress and took my hand.
3924
3925 I looked: I saw a woman attired like a well-dressed servant, matronly,
3926 yet still young; very good-looking, with black hair and eyes, and lively
3927 complexion.
3928
3929 "Well, who is it?" she asked, in a voice and with a smile I half
3930 recognised; "you've not quite forgotten me, I think, Miss Jane?"
3931
3932 In another second I was embracing and kissing her rapturously: "Bessie!
3933 Bessie! Bessie!" that was all I said; whereat she half laughed, half
3934 cried, and we both went into the parlour. By the fire stood a little
3935 fellow of three years old, in plaid frock and trousers.
3936
3937 "That is my little boy," said Bessie directly.
3938
3939 "Then you are married, Bessie?"
3940
3941 "Yes; nearly five years since to Robert Leaven, the coachman; and I've a
3942 little girl besides Bobby there, that I've christened Jane."
3943
3944 "And you don't live at Gateshead?"
3945
3946 "I live at the lodge: the old porter has left."
3947
3948 "Well, and how do they all get on? Tell me everything about them,
3949 Bessie: but sit down first; and, Bobby, come and sit on my knee, will
3950 you?" but Bobby preferred sidling over to his mother.
3951
3952 "You're not grown so very tall, Miss Jane, nor so very stout," continued
3953 Mrs. Leaven. "I dare say they've not kept you too well at school: Miss
3954 Reed is the head and shoulders taller than you are; and Miss Georgiana
3955 would make two of you in breadth."
3956
3957 "Georgiana is handsome, I suppose, Bessie?"
3958
3959 "Very. She went up to London last winter with her mama, and there
3960 everybody admired her, and a young lord fell in love with her: but his
3961 relations were against the match; and--what do you think?--he and Miss
3962 Georgiana made it up to run away; but they were found out and stopped. It
3963 was Miss Reed that found them out: I believe she was envious; and now she
3964 and her sister lead a cat and dog life together; they are always
3965 quarrelling--"
3966
3967 "Well, and what of John Reed?"
3968
3969 "Oh, he is not doing so well as his mama could wish. He went to college,
3970 and he got--plucked, I think they call it: and then his uncles wanted him
3971 to be a barrister, and study the law: but he is such a dissipated young
3972 man, they will never make much of him, I think."
3973
3974 "What does he look like?"
3975
3976 "He is very tall: some people call him a fine-looking young man; but he
3977 has such thick lips."
3978
3979 "And Mrs. Reed?"
3980
3981 "Missis looks stout and well enough in the face, but I think she's not
3982 quite easy in her mind: Mr. John's conduct does not please her--he spends
3983 a deal of money."
3984
3985 "Did she send you here, Bessie?"
3986
3987 "No, indeed: but I have long wanted to see you, and when I heard that
3988 there had been a letter from you, and that you were going to another part
3989 of the country, I thought I'd just set off, and get a look at you before
3990 you were quite out of my reach."
3991
3992 "I am afraid you are disappointed in me, Bessie." I said this laughing:
3993 I perceived that Bessie's glance, though it expressed regard, did in no
3994 shape denote admiration.
3995
3996 "No, Miss Jane, not exactly: you are genteel enough; you look like a
3997 lady, and it is as much as ever I expected of you: you were no beauty as
3998 a child."
3999
4000 I smiled at Bessie's frank answer: I felt that it was correct, but I
4001 confess I was not quite indifferent to its import: at eighteen most
4002 people wish to please, and the conviction that they have not an exterior
4003 likely to second that desire brings anything but gratification.
4004
4005 "I dare say you are clever, though," continued Bessie, by way of solace.
4006 "What can you do? Can you play on the piano?"
4007
4008 "A little."
4009
4010 There was one in the room; Bessie went and opened it, and then asked me
4011 to sit down and give her a tune: I played a waltz or two, and she was
4012 charmed.
4013
4014 "The Miss Reeds could not play as well!" said she exultingly. "I always
4015 said you would surpass them in learning: and can you draw?"
4016
4017 "That is one of my paintings over the chimney-piece." It was a landscape
4018 in water colours, of which I had made a present to the superintendent, in
4019 acknowledgment of her obliging mediation with the committee on my behalf,
4020 and which she had framed and glazed.
4021
4022 "Well, that is beautiful, Miss Jane! It is as fine a picture as any Miss
4023 Reed's drawing-master could paint, let alone the young ladies themselves,
4024 who could not come near it: and have you learnt French?"
4025
4026 "Yes, Bessie, I can both read it and speak it."
4027
4028 "And you can work on muslin and canvas?"
4029
4030 "I can."
4031
4032 "Oh, you are quite a lady, Miss Jane! I knew you would be: you will get
4033 on whether your relations notice you or not. There was something I
4034 wanted to ask you. Have you ever heard anything from your father's
4035 kinsfolk, the Eyres?"
4036
4037 "Never in my life."
4038
4039 "Well, you know Missis always said they were poor and quite despicable:
4040 and they may be poor; but I believe they are as much gentry as the Reeds
4041 are; for one day, nearly seven years ago, a Mr. Eyre came to Gateshead
4042 and wanted to see you; Missis said you were at school fifty miles off; he
4043 seemed so much disappointed, for he could not stay: he was going on a
4044 voyage to a foreign country, and the ship was to sail from London in a
4045 day or two. He looked quite a gentleman, and I believe he was your
4046 father's brother."
4047
4048 "What foreign country was he going to, Bessie?"
4049
4050 "An island thousands of miles off, where they make wine--the butler did
4051 tell me--"
4052
4053 "Madeira?" I suggested.
4054
4055 "Yes, that is it--that is the very word."
4056
4057 "So he went?"
4058
4059 "Yes; he did not stay many minutes in the house: Missis was very high
4060 with him; she called him afterwards a 'sneaking tradesman.' My Robert
4061 believes he was a wine-merchant."
4062
4063 "Very likely," I returned; "or perhaps clerk or agent to a
4064 wine-merchant."
4065
4066 Bessie and I conversed about old times an hour longer, and then she was
4067 obliged to leave me: I saw her again for a few minutes the next morning
4068 at Lowton, while I was waiting for the coach. We parted finally at the
4069 door of the Brocklehurst Arms there: each went her separate way; she set
4070 off for the brow of Lowood Fell to meet the conveyance which was to take
4071 her back to Gateshead, I mounted the vehicle which was to bear me to new
4072 duties and a new life in the unknown environs of Millcote.
4073
4074
4075
4076
4077 CHAPTER XI
4078
4079
4080 A new chapter in a novel is something like a new scene in a play; and
4081 when I draw up the curtain this time, reader, you must fancy you see a
4082 room in the George Inn at Millcote, with such large figured papering on
4083 the walls as inn rooms have; such a carpet, such furniture, such
4084 ornaments on the mantelpiece, such prints, including a portrait of George
4085 the Third, and another of the Prince of Wales, and a representation of
4086 the death of Wolfe. All this is visible to you by the light of an oil
4087 lamp hanging from the ceiling, and by that of an excellent fire, near
4088 which I sit in my cloak and bonnet; my muff and umbrella lie on the
4089 table, and I am warming away the numbness and chill contracted by sixteen
4090 hours' exposure to the rawness of an October day: I left Lowton at four
4091 o'clock a.m., and the Millcote town clock is now just striking eight.
4092
4093 Reader, though I look comfortably accommodated, I am not very tranquil in
4094 my mind. I thought when the coach stopped here there would be some one
4095 to meet me; I looked anxiously round as I descended the wooden steps the
4096 "boots" placed for my convenience, expecting to hear my name pronounced,
4097 and to see some description of carriage waiting to convey me to
4098 Thornfield. Nothing of the sort was visible; and when I asked a waiter
4099 if any one had been to inquire after a Miss Eyre, I was answered in the
4100 negative: so I had no resource but to request to be shown into a private
4101 room: and here I am waiting, while all sorts of doubts and fears are
4102 troubling my thoughts.
4103
4104 It is a very strange sensation to inexperienced youth to feel itself
4105 quite alone in the world, cut adrift from every connection, uncertain
4106 whether the port to which it is bound can be reached, and prevented by
4107 many impediments from returning to that it has quitted. The charm of
4108 adventure sweetens that sensation, the glow of pride warms it; but then
4109 the throb of fear disturbs it; and fear with me became predominant when
4110 half-an-hour elapsed and still I was alone. I bethought myself to ring
4111 the bell.
4112
4113 "Is there a place in this neighbourhood called Thornfield?" I asked of
4114 the waiter who answered the summons.
4115
4116 "Thornfield? I don't know, ma'am; I'll inquire at the bar." He
4117 vanished, but reappeared instantly--
4118
4119 "Is your name Eyre, Miss?"
4120
4121 "Yes."
4122
4123 "Person here waiting for you."
4124
4125 I jumped up, took my muff and umbrella, and hastened into the
4126 inn-passage: a man was standing by the open door, and in the lamp-lit
4127 street I dimly saw a one-horse conveyance.
4128
4129 "This will be your luggage, I suppose?" said the man rather abruptly when
4130 he saw me, pointing to my trunk in the passage.
4131
4132 "Yes." He hoisted it on to the vehicle, which was a sort of car, and
4133 then I got in; before he shut me up, I asked him how far it was to
4134 Thornfield.
4135
4136 "A matter of six miles."
4137
4138 "How long shall we be before we get there?"
4139
4140 "Happen an hour and a half."
4141
4142 He fastened the car door, climbed to his own seat outside, and we set
4143 off. Our progress was leisurely, and gave me ample time to reflect; I
4144 was content to be at length so near the end of my journey; and as I
4145 leaned back in the comfortable though not elegant conveyance, I meditated
4146 much at my ease.
4147
4148 "I suppose," thought I, "judging from the plainness of the servant and
4149 carriage, Mrs. Fairfax is not a very dashing person: so much the better;
4150 I never lived amongst fine people but once, and I was very miserable with
4151 them. I wonder if she lives alone except this little girl; if so, and if
4152 she is in any degree amiable, I shall surely be able to get on with her;
4153 I will do my best; it is a pity that doing one's best does not always
4154 answer. At Lowood, indeed, I took that resolution, kept it, and
4155 succeeded in pleasing; but with Mrs. Reed, I remember my best was always
4156 spurned with scorn. I pray God Mrs. Fairfax may not turn out a second
4157 Mrs. Reed; but if she does, I am not bound to stay with her! let the
4158 worst come to the worst, I can advertise again. How far are we on our
4159 road now, I wonder?"
4160
4161 I let down the window and looked out; Millcote was behind us; judging by
4162 the number of its lights, it seemed a place of considerable magnitude,
4163 much larger than Lowton. We were now, as far as I could see, on a sort
4164 of common; but there were houses scattered all over the district; I felt
4165 we were in a different region to Lowood, more populous, less picturesque;
4166 more stirring, less romantic.
4167
4168 The roads were heavy, the night misty; my conductor let his horse walk
4169 all the way, and the hour and a half extended, I verily believe, to two
4170 hours; at last he turned in his seat and said--
4171
4172 "You're noan so far fro' Thornfield now."
4173
4174 Again I looked out: we were passing a church; I saw its low broad tower
4175 against the sky, and its bell was tolling a quarter; I saw a narrow
4176 galaxy of lights too, on a hillside, marking a village or hamlet. About
4177 ten minutes after, the driver got down and opened a pair of gates: we
4178 passed through, and they clashed to behind us. We now slowly ascended a
4179 drive, and came upon the long front of a house: candlelight gleamed from
4180 one curtained bow-window; all the rest were dark. The car stopped at the
4181 front door; it was opened by a maid-servant; I alighted and went in.
4182
4183 "Will you walk this way, ma'am?" said the girl; and I followed her across
4184 a square hall with high doors all round: she ushered me into a room whose
4185 double illumination of fire and candle at first dazzled me, contrasting
4186 as it did with the darkness to which my eyes had been for two hours
4187 inured; when I could see, however, a cosy and agreeable picture presented
4188 itself to my view.
4189
4190 A snug small room; a round table by a cheerful fire; an arm-chair high-
4191 backed and old-fashioned, wherein sat the neatest imaginable little
4192 elderly lady, in widow's cap, black silk gown, and snowy muslin apron;
4193 exactly like what I had fancied Mrs. Fairfax, only less stately and
4194 milder looking. She was occupied in knitting; a large cat sat demurely
4195 at her feet; nothing in short was wanting to complete the beau-ideal of
4196 domestic comfort. A more reassuring introduction for a new governess
4197 could scarcely be conceived; there was no grandeur to overwhelm, no
4198 stateliness to embarrass; and then, as I entered, the old lady got up and
4199 promptly and kindly came forward to meet me.
4200
4201 "How do you do, my dear? I am afraid you have had a tedious ride; John
4202 drives so slowly; you must be cold, come to the fire."
4203
4204 "Mrs. Fairfax, I suppose?" said I.
4205
4206 "Yes, you are right: do sit down."
4207
4208 She conducted me to her own chair, and then began to remove my shawl and
4209 untie my bonnet-strings; I begged she would not give herself so much
4210 trouble.
4211
4212 "Oh, it is no trouble; I dare say your own hands are almost numbed with
4213 cold. Leah, make a little hot negus and cut a sandwich or two: here are
4214 the keys of the storeroom."
4215
4216 And she produced from her pocket a most housewifely bunch of keys, and
4217 delivered them to the servant.
4218
4219 "Now, then, draw nearer to the fire," she continued. "You've brought
4220 your luggage with you, haven't you, my dear?"
4221
4222 "Yes, ma'am."
4223
4224 "I'll see it carried into your room," she said, and bustled out.
4225
4226 "She treats me like a visitor," thought I. "I little expected such a
4227 reception; I anticipated only coldness and stiffness: this is not like
4228 what I have heard of the treatment of governesses; but I must not exult
4229 too soon."
4230
4231 She returned; with her own hands cleared her knitting apparatus and a
4232 book or two from the table, to make room for the tray which Leah now
4233 brought, and then herself handed me the refreshments. I felt rather
4234 confused at being the object of more attention than I had ever before
4235 received, and, that too, shown by my employer and superior; but as she
4236 did not herself seem to consider she was doing anything out of her place,
4237 I thought it better to take her civilities quietly.
4238
4239 "Shall I have the pleasure of seeing Miss Fairfax to-night?" I asked,
4240 when I had partaken of what she offered me.
4241
4242 "What did you say, my dear? I am a little deaf," returned the good lady,
4243 approaching her ear to my mouth.
4244
4245 I repeated the question more distinctly.
4246
4247 "Miss Fairfax? Oh, you mean Miss Varens! Varens is the name of your
4248 future pupil."
4249
4250 "Indeed! Then she is not your daughter?"
4251
4252 "No,--I have no family."
4253
4254 I should have followed up my first inquiry, by asking in what way Miss
4255 Varens was connected with her; but I recollected it was not polite to ask
4256 too many questions: besides, I was sure to hear in time.
4257
4258 "I am so glad," she continued, as she sat down opposite to me, and took
4259 the cat on her knee; "I am so glad you are come; it will be quite
4260 pleasant living here now with a companion. To be sure it is pleasant at
4261 any time; for Thornfield is a fine old hall, rather neglected of late
4262 years perhaps, but still it is a respectable place; yet you know in
4263 winter-time one feels dreary quite alone in the best quarters. I say
4264 alone--Leah is a nice girl to be sure, and John and his wife are very
4265 decent people; but then you see they are only servants, and one can't
4266 converse with them on terms of equality: one must keep them at due
4267 distance, for fear of losing one's authority. I'm sure last winter (it
4268 was a very severe one, if you recollect, and when it did not snow, it
4269 rained and blew), not a creature but the butcher and postman came to the
4270 house, from November till February; and I really got quite melancholy
4271 with sitting night after night alone; I had Leah in to read to me
4272 sometimes; but I don't think the poor girl liked the task much: she felt
4273 it confining. In spring and summer one got on better: sunshine and long
4274 days make such a difference; and then, just at the commencement of this
4275 autumn, little Adela Varens came and her nurse: a child makes a house
4276 alive all at once; and now you are here I shall be quite gay."
4277
4278 My heart really warmed to the worthy lady as I heard her talk; and I drew
4279 my chair a little nearer to her, and expressed my sincere wish that she
4280 might find my company as agreeable as she anticipated.
4281
4282 "But I'll not keep you sitting up late to-night," said she; "it is on the
4283 stroke of twelve now, and you have been travelling all day: you must feel
4284 tired. If you have got your feet well warmed, I'll show you your
4285 bedroom. I've had the room next to mine prepared for you; it is only a
4286 small apartment, but I thought you would like it better than one of the
4287 large front chambers: to be sure they have finer furniture, but they are
4288 so dreary and solitary, I never sleep in them myself."
4289
4290 I thanked her for her considerate choice, and as I really felt fatigued
4291 with my long journey, expressed my readiness to retire. She took her
4292 candle, and I followed her from the room. First she went to see if the
4293 hall-door was fastened; having taken the key from the lock, she led the
4294 way upstairs. The steps and banisters were of oak; the staircase window
4295 was high and latticed; both it and the long gallery into which the
4296 bedroom doors opened looked as if they belonged to a church rather than a
4297 house. A very chill and vault-like air pervaded the stairs and gallery,
4298 suggesting cheerless ideas of space and solitude; and I was glad, when
4299 finally ushered into my chamber, to find it of small dimensions, and
4300 furnished in ordinary, modern style.
4301
4302 When Mrs. Fairfax had bidden me a kind good-night, and I had fastened my
4303 door, gazed leisurely round, and in some measure effaced the eerie
4304 impression made by that wide hall, that dark and spacious staircase, and
4305 that long, cold gallery, by the livelier aspect of my little room, I
4306 remembered that, after a day of bodily fatigue and mental anxiety, I was
4307 now at last in safe haven. The impulse of gratitude swelled my heart,
4308 and I knelt down at the bedside, and offered up thanks where thanks were
4309 due; not forgetting, ere I rose, to implore aid on my further path, and
4310 the power of meriting the kindness which seemed so frankly offered me
4311 before it was earned. My couch had no thorns in it that night; my
4312 solitary room no fears. At once weary and content, I slept soon and
4313 soundly: when I awoke it was broad day.
4314
4315 The chamber looked such a bright little place to me as the sun shone in
4316 between the gay blue chintz window curtains, showing papered walls and a
4317 carpeted floor, so unlike the bare planks and stained plaster of Lowood,
4318 that my spirits rose at the view. Externals have a great effect on the
4319 young: I thought that a fairer era of life was beginning for me, one that
4320 was to have its flowers and pleasures, as well as its thorns and toils.
4321 My faculties, roused by the change of scene, the new field offered to
4322 hope, seemed all astir. I cannot precisely define what they expected,
4323 but it was something pleasant: not perhaps that day or that month, but at
4324 an indefinite future period.
4325
4326 I rose; I dressed myself with care: obliged to be plain--for I had no
4327 article of attire that was not made with extreme simplicity--I was still
4328 by nature solicitous to be neat. It was not my habit to be disregardful
4329 of appearance or careless of the impression I made: on the contrary, I
4330 ever wished to look as well as I could, and to please as much as my want
4331 of beauty would permit. I sometimes regretted that I was not handsomer;
4332 I sometimes wished to have rosy cheeks, a straight nose, and small cherry
4333 mouth; I desired to be tall, stately, and finely developed in figure; I
4334 felt it a misfortune that I was so little, so pale, and had features so
4335 irregular and so marked. And why had I these aspirations and these
4336 regrets? It would be difficult to say: I could not then distinctly say
4337 it to myself; yet I had a reason, and a logical, natural reason too.
4338 However, when I had brushed my hair very smooth, and put on my black
4339 frock--which, Quakerlike as it was, at least had the merit of fitting to
4340 a nicety--and adjusted my clean white tucker, I thought I should do
4341 respectably enough to appear before Mrs. Fairfax, and that my new pupil
4342 would not at least recoil from me with antipathy. Having opened my
4343 chamber window, and seen that I left all things straight and neat on the
4344 toilet table, I ventured forth.
4345
4346 Traversing the long and matted gallery, I descended the slippery steps of
4347 oak; then I gained the hall: I halted there a minute; I looked at some
4348 pictures on the walls (one, I remember, represented a grim man in a
4349 cuirass, and one a lady with powdered hair and a pearl necklace), at a
4350 bronze lamp pendent from the ceiling, at a great clock whose case was of
4351 oak curiously carved, and ebon black with time and rubbing. Everything
4352 appeared very stately and imposing to me; but then I was so little
4353 accustomed to grandeur. The hall-door, which was half of glass, stood
4354 open; I stepped over the threshold. It was a fine autumn morning; the
4355 early sun shone serenely on embrowned groves and still green fields;
4356 advancing on to the lawn, I looked up and surveyed the front of the
4357 mansion. It was three storeys high, of proportions not vast, though
4358 considerable: a gentleman's manor-house, not a nobleman's seat:
4359 battlements round the top gave it a picturesque look. Its grey front
4360 stood out well from the background of a rookery, whose cawing tenants
4361 were now on the wing: they flew over the lawn and grounds to alight in a
4362 great meadow, from which these were separated by a sunk fence, and where
4363 an array of mighty old thorn trees, strong, knotty, and broad as oaks, at
4364 once explained the etymology of the mansion's designation. Farther off
4365 were hills: not so lofty as those round Lowood, nor so craggy, nor so
4366 like barriers of separation from the living world; but yet quiet and
4367 lonely hills enough, and seeming to embrace Thornfield with a seclusion I
4368 had not expected to find existent so near the stirring locality of
4369 Millcote. A little hamlet, whose roofs were blent with trees, straggled
4370 up the side of one of these hills; the church of the district stood
4371 nearer Thornfield: its old tower-top looked over a knoll between the
4372 house and gates.
4373
4374 I was yet enjoying the calm prospect and pleasant fresh air, yet
4375 listening with delight to the cawing of the rooks, yet surveying the
4376 wide, hoary front of the hall, and thinking what a great place it was for
4377 one lonely little dame like Mrs. Fairfax to inhabit, when that lady
4378 appeared at the door.
4379
4380 "What! out already?" said she. "I see you are an early riser." I went
4381 up to her, and was received with an affable kiss and shake of the hand.
4382
4383 "How do you like Thornfield?" she asked. I told her I liked it very
4384 much.
4385
4386 "Yes," she said, "it is a pretty place; but I fear it will be getting out
4387 of order, unless Mr. Rochester should take it into his head to come and
4388 reside here permanently; or, at least, visit it rather oftener: great
4389 houses and fine grounds require the presence of the proprietor."
4390
4391 "Mr. Rochester!" I exclaimed. "Who is he?"
4392
4393 "The owner of Thornfield," she responded quietly. "Did you not know he
4394 was called Rochester?"
4395
4396 Of course I did not--I had never heard of him before; but the old lady
4397 seemed to regard his existence as a universally understood fact, with
4398 which everybody must be acquainted by instinct.
4399
4400 "I thought," I continued, "Thornfield belonged to you."
4401
4402 "To me? Bless you, child; what an idea! To me! I am only the
4403 housekeeper--the manager. To be sure I am distantly related to the
4404 Rochesters by the mother's side, or at least my husband was; he was a
4405 clergyman, incumbent of Hay--that little village yonder on the hill--and
4406 that church near the gates was his. The present Mr. Rochester's mother
4407 was a Fairfax, and second cousin to my husband: but I never presume on
4408 the connection--in fact, it is nothing to me; I consider myself quite in
4409 the light of an ordinary housekeeper: my employer is always civil, and I
4410 expect nothing more."
4411
4412 "And the little girl--my pupil!"
4413
4414 "She is Mr. Rochester's ward; he commissioned me to find a governess for
4415 her. He intended to have her brought up in ---shire, I believe. Here
4416 she comes, with her 'bonne,' as she calls her nurse." The enigma then
4417 was explained: this affable and kind little widow was no great dame; but
4418 a dependant like myself. I did not like her the worse for that; on the
4419 contrary, I felt better pleased than ever. The equality between her and
4420 me was real; not the mere result of condescension on her part: so much
4421 the better--my position was all the freer.
4422
4423 As I was meditating on this discovery, a little girl, followed by her
4424 attendant, came running up the lawn. I looked at my pupil, who did not
4425 at first appear to notice me: she was quite a child, perhaps seven or
4426 eight years old, slightly built, with a pale, small-featured face, and a
4427 redundancy of hair falling in curls to her waist.
4428
4429 "Good morning, Miss Adela," said Mrs. Fairfax. "Come and speak to the
4430 lady who is to teach you, and to make you a clever woman some day." She
4431 approached.
4432
4433 "C'est la ma gouverante!" said she, pointing to me, and addressing her
4434 nurse; who answered--
4435
4436 "Mais oui, certainement."
4437
4438 "Are they foreigners?" I inquired, amazed at hearing the French language.
4439
4440 "The nurse is a foreigner, and Adela was born on the Continent; and, I
4441 believe, never left it till within six months ago. When she first came
4442 here she could speak no English; now she can make shift to talk it a
4443 little: I don't understand her, she mixes it so with French; but you will
4444 make out her meaning very well, I dare say."
4445
4446 Fortunately I had had the advantage of being taught French by a French
4447 lady; and as I had always made a point of conversing with Madame Pierrot
4448 as often as I could, and had besides, during the last seven years, learnt
4449 a portion of French by heart daily--applying myself to take pains with my
4450 accent, and imitating as closely as possible the pronunciation of my
4451 teacher, I had acquired a certain degree of readiness and correctness in
4452 the language, and was not likely to be much at a loss with Mademoiselle
4453 Adela. She came and shook hand with me when she heard that I was her
4454 governess; and as I led her in to breakfast, I addressed some phrases to
4455 her in her own tongue: she replied briefly at first, but after we were
4456 seated at the table, and she had examined me some ten minutes with her
4457 large hazel eyes, she suddenly commenced chattering fluently.
4458
4459 "Ah!" cried she, in French, "you speak my language as well as Mr.
4460 Rochester does: I can talk to you as I can to him, and so can Sophie. She
4461 will be glad: nobody here understands her: Madame Fairfax is all English.
4462 Sophie is my nurse; she came with me over the sea in a great ship with a
4463 chimney that smoked--how it did smoke!--and I was sick, and so was
4464 Sophie, and so was Mr. Rochester. Mr. Rochester lay down on a sofa in a
4465 pretty room called the salon, and Sophie and I had little beds in another
4466 place. I nearly fell out of mine; it was like a shelf. And
4467 Mademoiselle--what is your name?"
4468
4469 "Eyre--Jane Eyre."
4470
4471 "Aire? Bah! I cannot say it. Well, our ship stopped in the morning,
4472 before it was quite daylight, at a great city--a huge city, with very
4473 dark houses and all smoky; not at all like the pretty clean town I came
4474 from; and Mr. Rochester carried me in his arms over a plank to the land,
4475 and Sophie came after, and we all got into a coach, which took us to a
4476 beautiful large house, larger than this and finer, called an hotel. We
4477 stayed there nearly a week: I and Sophie used to walk every day in a
4478 great green place full of trees, called the Park; and there were many
4479 children there besides me, and a pond with beautiful birds in it, that I
4480 fed with crumbs."
4481
4482 "Can you understand her when she runs on so fast?" asked Mrs. Fairfax.
4483
4484 I understood her very well, for I had been accustomed to the fluent
4485 tongue of Madame Pierrot.
4486
4487 "I wish," continued the good lady, "you would ask her a question or two
4488 about her parents: I wonder if she remembers them?"
4489
4490 "Adele," I inquired, "with whom did you live when you were in that pretty
4491 clean town you spoke of?"
4492
4493 "I lived long ago with mama; but she is gone to the Holy Virgin. Mama
4494 used to teach me to dance and sing, and to say verses. A great many
4495 gentlemen and ladies came to see mama, and I used to dance before them,
4496 or to sit on their knees and sing to them: I liked it. Shall I let you
4497 hear me sing now?"
4498
4499 She had finished her breakfast, so I permitted her to give a specimen of
4500 her accomplishments. Descending from her chair, she came and placed
4501 herself on my knee; then, folding her little hands demurely before her,
4502 shaking back her curls and lifting her eyes to the ceiling, she commenced
4503 singing a song from some opera. It was the strain of a forsaken lady,
4504 who, after bewailing the perfidy of her lover, calls pride to her aid;
4505 desires her attendant to deck her in her brightest jewels and richest
4506 robes, and resolves to meet the false one that night at a ball, and prove
4507 to him, by the gaiety of her demeanour, how little his desertion has
4508 affected her.
4509
4510 The subject seemed strangely chosen for an infant singer; but I suppose
4511 the point of the exhibition lay in hearing the notes of love and jealousy
4512 warbled with the lisp of childhood; and in very bad taste that point was:
4513 at least I thought so.
4514
4515 Adele sang the canzonette tunefully enough, and with the _naivete_ of her
4516 age. This achieved, she jumped from my knee and said, "Now,
4517 Mademoiselle, I will repeat you some poetry."
4518
4519 Assuming an attitude, she began, "La Ligue des Rats: fable de La
4520 Fontaine." She then declaimed the little piece with an attention to
4521 punctuation and emphasis, a flexibility of voice and an appropriateness
4522 of gesture, very unusual indeed at her age, and which proved she had been
4523 carefully trained.
4524
4525 "Was it your mama who taught you that piece?" I asked.
4526
4527 "Yes, and she just used to say it in this way: 'Qu' avez vous donc? lui
4528 dit un de ces rats; parlez!' She made me lift my hand--so--to remind me
4529 to raise my voice at the question. Now shall I dance for you?"
4530
4531 "No, that will do: but after your mama went to the Holy Virgin, as you
4532 say, with whom did you live then?"
4533
4534 "With Madame Frederic and her husband: she took care of me, but she is
4535 nothing related to me. I think she is poor, for she had not so fine a
4536 house as mama. I was not long there. Mr. Rochester asked me if I would
4537 like to go and live with him in England, and I said yes; for I knew Mr.
4538 Rochester before I knew Madame Frederic, and he was always kind to me and
4539 gave me pretty dresses and toys: but you see he has not kept his word,
4540 for he has brought me to England, and now he is gone back again himself,
4541 and I never see him."
4542
4543 After breakfast, Adele and I withdrew to the library, which room, it
4544 appears, Mr. Rochester had directed should be used as the schoolroom.
4545 Most of the books were locked up behind glass doors; but there was one
4546 bookcase left open containing everything that could be needed in the way
4547 of elementary works, and several volumes of light literature, poetry,
4548 biography, travels, a few romances, &c. I suppose he had considered that
4549 these were all the governess would require for her private perusal; and,
4550 indeed, they contented me amply for the present; compared with the scanty
4551 pickings I had now and then been able to glean at Lowood, they seemed to
4552 offer an abundant harvest of entertainment and information. In this
4553 room, too, there was a cabinet piano, quite new and of superior tone;
4554 also an easel for painting and a pair of globes.
4555
4556 I found my pupil sufficiently docile, though disinclined to apply: she
4557 had not been used to regular occupation of any kind. I felt it would be
4558 injudicious to confine her too much at first; so, when I had talked to
4559 her a great deal, and got her to learn a little, and when the morning had
4560 advanced to noon, I allowed her to return to her nurse. I then proposed
4561 to occupy myself till dinner-time in drawing some little sketches for her
4562 use.
4563
4564 As I was going upstairs to fetch my portfolio and pencils, Mrs. Fairfax
4565 called to me: "Your morning school-hours are over now, I suppose," said
4566 she. She was in a room the folding-doors of which stood open: I went in
4567 when she addressed me. It was a large, stately apartment, with purple
4568 chairs and curtains, a Turkey carpet, walnut-panelled walls, one vast
4569 window rich in slanted glass, and a lofty ceiling, nobly moulded. Mrs.
4570 Fairfax was dusting some vases of fine purple spar, which stood on a
4571 sideboard.
4572
4573 "What a beautiful room!" I exclaimed, as I looked round; for I had never
4574 before seen any half so imposing.
4575
4576 "Yes; this is the dining-room. I have just opened the window, to let in
4577 a little air and sunshine; for everything gets so damp in apartments that
4578 are seldom inhabited; the drawing-room yonder feels like a vault."
4579
4580 She pointed to a wide arch corresponding to the window, and hung like it
4581 with a Tyrian-dyed curtain, now looped up. Mounting to it by two broad
4582 steps, and looking through, I thought I caught a glimpse of a fairy
4583 place, so bright to my novice-eyes appeared the view beyond. Yet it was
4584 merely a very pretty drawing-room, and within it a boudoir, both spread
4585 with white carpets, on which seemed laid brilliant garlands of flowers;
4586 both ceiled with snowy mouldings of white grapes and vine-leaves, beneath
4587 which glowed in rich contrast crimson couches and ottomans; while the
4588 ornaments on the pale Parian mantelpiece were of sparkling Bohemian
4589 glass, ruby red; and between the windows large mirrors repeated the
4590 general blending of snow and fire.
4591
4592 "In what order you keep these rooms, Mrs. Fairfax!" said I. "No dust, no
4593 canvas coverings: except that the air feels chilly, one would think they
4594 were inhabited daily."
4595
4596 "Why, Miss Eyre, though Mr. Rochester's visits here are rare, they are
4597 always sudden and unexpected; and as I observed that it put him out to
4598 find everything swathed up, and to have a bustle of arrangement on his
4599 arrival, I thought it best to keep the rooms in readiness."
4600
4601 "Is Mr. Rochester an exacting, fastidious sort of man?"
4602
4603 "Not particularly so; but he has a gentleman's tastes and habits, and he
4604 expects to have things managed in conformity to them."
4605
4606 "Do you like him? Is he generally liked?"
4607
4608 "Oh, yes; the family have always been respected here. Almost all the
4609 land in this neighbourhood, as far as you can see, has belonged to the
4610 Rochesters time out of mind."
4611
4612 "Well, but, leaving his land out of the question, do you like him? Is he
4613 liked for himself?"
4614
4615 "I have no cause to do otherwise than like him; and I believe he is
4616 considered a just and liberal landlord by his tenants: but he has never
4617 lived much amongst them."
4618
4619 "But has he no peculiarities? What, in short, is his character?"
4620
4621 "Oh! his character is unimpeachable, I suppose. He is rather peculiar,
4622 perhaps: he has travelled a great deal, and seen a great deal of the
4623 world, I should think. I dare say he is clever, but I never had much
4624 conversation with him."
4625
4626 "In what way is he peculiar?"
4627
4628 "I don't know--it is not easy to describe--nothing striking, but you feel
4629 it when he speaks to you; you cannot be always sure whether he is in jest
4630 or earnest, whether he is pleased or the contrary; you don't thoroughly
4631 understand him, in short--at least, I don't: but it is of no consequence,
4632 he is a very good master."
4633
4634 This was all the account I got from Mrs. Fairfax of her employer and
4635 mine. There are people who seem to have no notion of sketching a
4636 character, or observing and describing salient points, either in persons
4637 or things: the good lady evidently belonged to this class; my queries
4638 puzzled, but did not draw her out. Mr. Rochester was Mr. Rochester in
4639 her eyes; a gentleman, a landed proprietor--nothing more: she inquired
4640 and searched no further, and evidently wondered at my wish to gain a more
4641 definite notion of his identity.
4642
4643 When we left the dining-room, she proposed to show me over the rest of
4644 the house; and I followed her upstairs and downstairs, admiring as I
4645 went; for all was well arranged and handsome. The large front chambers I
4646 thought especially grand: and some of the third-storey rooms, though dark
4647 and low, were interesting from their air of antiquity. The furniture
4648 once appropriated to the lower apartments had from time to time been
4649 removed here, as fashions changed: and the imperfect light entering by
4650 their narrow casement showed bedsteads of a hundred years old; chests in
4651 oak or walnut, looking, with their strange carvings of palm branches and
4652 cherubs' heads, like types of the Hebrew ark; rows of venerable chairs,
4653 high-backed and narrow; stools still more antiquated, on whose cushioned
4654 tops were yet apparent traces of half-effaced embroideries, wrought by
4655 fingers that for two generations had been coffin-dust. All these relics
4656 gave to the third storey of Thornfield Hall the aspect of a home of the
4657 past: a shrine of memory. I liked the hush, the gloom, the quaintness of
4658 these retreats in the day; but I by no means coveted a night's repose on
4659 one of those wide and heavy beds: shut in, some of them, with doors of
4660 oak; shaded, others, with wrought old English hangings crusted with thick
4661 work, portraying effigies of strange flowers, and stranger birds, and
4662 strangest human beings,--all which would have looked strange, indeed, by
4663 the pallid gleam of moonlight.
4664
4665 "Do the servants sleep in these rooms?" I asked.
4666
4667 "No; they occupy a range of smaller apartments to the back; no one ever
4668 sleeps here: one would almost say that, if there were a ghost at
4669 Thornfield Hall, this would be its haunt."
4670
4671 "So I think: you have no ghost, then?"
4672
4673 "None that I ever heard of," returned Mrs. Fairfax, smiling.
4674
4675 "Nor any traditions of one? no legends or ghost stories?"
4676
4677 "I believe not. And yet it is said the Rochesters have been rather a
4678 violent than a quiet race in their time: perhaps, though, that is the
4679 reason they rest tranquilly in their graves now."
4680
4681 "Yes--'after life's fitful fever they sleep well,'" I muttered. "Where
4682 are you going now, Mrs. Fairfax?" for she was moving away.
4683
4684 "On to the leads; will you come and see the view from thence?" I
4685 followed still, up a very narrow staircase to the attics, and thence by a
4686 ladder and through a trap-door to the roof of the hall. I was now on a
4687 level with the crow colony, and could see into their nests. Leaning over
4688 the battlements and looking far down, I surveyed the grounds laid out
4689 like a map: the bright and velvet lawn closely girdling the grey base of
4690 the mansion; the field, wide as a park, dotted with its ancient timber;
4691 the wood, dun and sere, divided by a path visibly overgrown, greener with
4692 moss than the trees were with foliage; the church at the gates, the road,
4693 the tranquil hills, all reposing in the autumn day's sun; the horizon
4694 bounded by a propitious sky, azure, marbled with pearly white. No
4695 feature in the scene was extraordinary, but all was pleasing. When I
4696 turned from it and repassed the trap-door, I could scarcely see my way
4697 down the ladder; the attic seemed black as a vault compared with that
4698 arch of blue air to which I had been looking up, and to that sunlit scene
4699 of grove, pasture, and green hill, of which the hall was the centre, and
4700 over which I had been gazing with delight.
4701
4702 Mrs. Fairfax stayed behind a moment to fasten the trap-door; I, by drift
4703 of groping, found the outlet from the attic, and proceeded to descend the
4704 narrow garret staircase. I lingered in the long passage to which this
4705 led, separating the front and back rooms of the third storey: narrow,
4706 low, and dim, with only one little window at the far end, and looking,
4707 with its two rows of small black doors all shut, like a corridor in some
4708 Bluebeard's castle.
4709
4710 While I paced softly on, the last sound I expected to hear in so still a
4711 region, a laugh, struck my ear. It was a curious laugh; distinct,
4712 formal, mirthless. I stopped: the sound ceased, only for an instant; it
4713 began again, louder: for at first, though distinct, it was very low. It
4714 passed off in a clamorous peal that seemed to wake an echo in every
4715 lonely chamber; though it originated but in one, and I could have pointed
4716 out the door whence the accents issued.
4717
4718 "Mrs. Fairfax!" I called out: for I now heard her descending the great
4719 stairs. "Did you hear that loud laugh? Who is it?"
4720
4721 "Some of the servants, very likely," she answered: "perhaps Grace Poole."
4722
4723 "Did you hear it?" I again inquired.
4724
4725 "Yes, plainly: I often hear her: she sews in one of these rooms.
4726 Sometimes Leah is with her; they are frequently noisy together."
4727
4728 The laugh was repeated in its low, syllabic tone, and terminated in an
4729 odd murmur.
4730
4731 "Grace!" exclaimed Mrs. Fairfax.
4732
4733 I really did not expect any Grace to answer; for the laugh was as tragic,
4734 as preternatural a laugh as any I ever heard; and, but that it was high
4735 noon, and that no circumstance of ghostliness accompanied the curious
4736 cachinnation; but that neither scene nor season favoured fear, I should
4737 have been superstitiously afraid. However, the event showed me I was a
4738 fool for entertaining a sense even of surprise.
4739
4740 The door nearest me opened, and a servant came out,--a woman of between
4741 thirty and forty; a set, square-made figure, red-haired, and with a hard,
4742 plain face: any apparition less romantic or less ghostly could scarcely
4743 be conceived.
4744
4745 "Too much noise, Grace," said Mrs. Fairfax. "Remember directions!" Grace
4746 curtseyed silently and went in.
4747
4748 "She is a person we have to sew and assist Leah in her housemaid's work,"
4749 continued the widow; "not altogether unobjectionable in some points, but
4750 she does well enough. By-the-bye, how have you got on with your new
4751 pupil this morning?"
4752
4753 The conversation, thus turned on Adele, continued till we reached the
4754 light and cheerful region below. Adele came running to meet us in the
4755 hall, exclaiming--
4756
4757 "Mesdames, vous etes servies!" adding, "J'ai bien faim, moi!"
4758
4759 We found dinner ready, and waiting for us in Mrs. Fairfax's room.
4760
4761
4762
4763
4764 CHAPTER XII
4765
4766
4767 The promise of a smooth career, which my first calm introduction to
4768 Thornfield Hall seemed to pledge, was not belied on a longer acquaintance
4769 with the place and its inmates. Mrs. Fairfax turned out to be what she
4770 appeared, a placid-tempered, kind-natured woman, of competent education
4771 and average intelligence. My pupil was a lively child, who had been
4772 spoilt and indulged, and therefore was sometimes wayward; but as she was
4773 committed entirely to my care, and no injudicious interference from any
4774 quarter ever thwarted my plans for her improvement, she soon forgot her
4775 little freaks, and became obedient and teachable. She had no great
4776 talents, no marked traits of character, no peculiar development of
4777 feeling or taste which raised her one inch above the ordinary level of
4778 childhood; but neither had she any deficiency or vice which sunk her
4779 below it. She made reasonable progress, entertained for me a vivacious,
4780 though perhaps not very profound, affection; and by her simplicity, gay
4781 prattle, and efforts to please, inspired me, in return, with a degree of
4782 attachment sufficient to make us both content in each other's society.
4783
4784 This, _par parenthese_, will be thought cool language by persons who
4785 entertain solemn doctrines about the angelic nature of children, and the
4786 duty of those charged with their education to conceive for them an
4787 idolatrous devotion: but I am not writing to flatter parental egotism, to
4788 echo cant, or prop up humbug; I am merely telling the truth. I felt a
4789 conscientious solicitude for Adele's welfare and progress, and a quiet
4790 liking for her little self: just as I cherished towards Mrs. Fairfax a
4791 thankfulness for her kindness, and a pleasure in her society
4792 proportionate to the tranquil regard she had for me, and the moderation
4793 of her mind and character.
4794
4795 Anybody may blame me who likes, when I add further, that, now and then,
4796 when I took a walk by myself in the grounds; when I went down to the
4797 gates and looked through them along the road; or when, while Adele played
4798 with her nurse, and Mrs. Fairfax made jellies in the storeroom, I climbed
4799 the three staircases, raised the trap-door of the attic, and having
4800 reached the leads, looked out afar over sequestered field and hill, and
4801 along dim sky-line--that then I longed for a power of vision which might
4802 overpass that limit; which might reach the busy world, towns, regions
4803 full of life I had heard of but never seen--that then I desired more of
4804 practical experience than I possessed; more of intercourse with my kind,
4805 of acquaintance with variety of character, than was here within my reach.
4806 I valued what was good in Mrs. Fairfax, and what was good in Adele; but I
4807 believed in the existence of other and more vivid kinds of goodness, and
4808 what I believed in I wished to behold.
4809
4810 Who blames me? Many, no doubt; and I shall be called discontented. I
4811 could not help it: the restlessness was in my nature; it agitated me to
4812 pain sometimes. Then my sole relief was to walk along the corridor of
4813 the third storey, backwards and forwards, safe in the silence and
4814 solitude of the spot, and allow my mind's eye to dwell on whatever bright
4815 visions rose before it--and, certainly, they were many and glowing; to
4816 let my heart be heaved by the exultant movement, which, while it swelled
4817 it in trouble, expanded it with life; and, best of all, to open my inward
4818 ear to a tale that was never ended--a tale my imagination created, and
4819 narrated continuously; quickened with all of incident, life, fire,
4820 feeling, that I desired and had not in my actual existence.
4821
4822 It is in vain to say human beings ought to be satisfied with
4823 tranquillity: they must have action; and they will make it if they cannot
4824 find it. Millions are condemned to a stiller doom than mine, and
4825 millions are in silent revolt against their lot. Nobody knows how many
4826 rebellions besides political rebellions ferment in the masses of life
4827 which people earth. Women are supposed to be very calm generally: but
4828 women feel just as men feel; they need exercise for their faculties, and
4829 a field for their efforts, as much as their brothers do; they suffer from
4830 too rigid a restraint, too absolute a stagnation, precisely as men would
4831 suffer; and it is narrow-minded in their more privileged fellow-creatures
4832 to say that they ought to confine themselves to making puddings and
4833 knitting stockings, to playing on the piano and embroidering bags. It is
4834 thoughtless to condemn them, or laugh at them, if they seek to do more or
4835 learn more than custom has pronounced necessary for their sex.
4836
4837 When thus alone, I not unfrequently heard Grace Poole's laugh: the same
4838 peal, the same low, slow ha! ha! which, when first heard, had thrilled
4839 me: I heard, too, her eccentric murmurs; stranger than her laugh. There
4840 were days when she was quite silent; but there were others when I could
4841 not account for the sounds she made. Sometimes I saw her: she would come
4842 out of her room with a basin, or a plate, or a tray in her hand, go down
4843 to the kitchen and shortly return, generally (oh, romantic reader,
4844 forgive me for telling the plain truth!) bearing a pot of porter. Her
4845 appearance always acted as a damper to the curiosity raised by her oral
4846 oddities: hard-featured and staid, she had no point to which interest
4847 could attach. I made some attempts to draw her into conversation, but
4848 she seemed a person of few words: a monosyllabic reply usually cut short
4849 every effort of that sort.
4850
4851 The other members of the household, viz., John and his wife, Leah the
4852 housemaid, and Sophie the French nurse, were decent people; but in no
4853 respect remarkable; with Sophie I used to talk French, and sometimes I
4854 asked her questions about her native country; but she was not of a
4855 descriptive or narrative turn, and generally gave such vapid and confused
4856 answers as were calculated rather to check than encourage inquiry.
4857
4858 October, November, December passed away. One afternoon in January, Mrs.
4859 Fairfax had begged a holiday for Adele, because she had a cold; and, as
4860 Adele seconded the request with an ardour that reminded me how precious
4861 occasional holidays had been to me in my own childhood, I accorded it,
4862 deeming that I did well in showing pliability on the point. It was a
4863 fine, calm day, though very cold; I was tired of sitting still in the
4864 library through a whole long morning: Mrs. Fairfax had just written a
4865 letter which was waiting to be posted, so I put on my bonnet and cloak
4866 and volunteered to carry it to Hay; the distance, two miles, would be a
4867 pleasant winter afternoon walk. Having seen Adele comfortably seated in
4868 her little chair by Mrs. Fairfax's parlour fireside, and given her her
4869 best wax doll (which I usually kept enveloped in silver paper in a
4870 drawer) to play with, and a story-book for change of amusement; and
4871 having replied to her "Revenez bientot, ma bonne amie, ma chere Mdlle.
4872 Jeannette," with a kiss I set out.
4873
4874 The ground was hard, the air was still, my road was lonely; I walked fast
4875 till I got warm, and then I walked slowly to enjoy and analyse the
4876 species of pleasure brooding for me in the hour and situation. It was
4877 three o'clock; the church bell tolled as I passed under the belfry: the
4878 charm of the hour lay in its approaching dimness, in the low-gliding and
4879 pale-beaming sun. I was a mile from Thornfield, in a lane noted for wild
4880 roses in summer, for nuts and blackberries in autumn, and even now
4881 possessing a few coral treasures in hips and haws, but whose best winter
4882 delight lay in its utter solitude and leafless repose. If a breath of
4883 air stirred, it made no sound here; for there was not a holly, not an
4884 evergreen to rustle, and the stripped hawthorn and hazel bushes were as
4885 still as the white, worn stones which causewayed the middle of the path.
4886 Far and wide, on each side, there were only fields, where no cattle now
4887 browsed; and the little brown birds, which stirred occasionally in the
4888 hedge, looked like single russet leaves that had forgotten to drop.
4889
4890 This lane inclined up-hill all the way to Hay; having reached the middle,
4891 I sat down on a stile which led thence into a field. Gathering my mantle
4892 about me, and sheltering my hands in my muff, I did not feel the cold,
4893 though it froze keenly; as was attested by a sheet of ice covering the
4894 causeway, where a little brooklet, now congealed, had overflowed after a
4895 rapid thaw some days since. From my seat I could look down on
4896 Thornfield: the grey and battlemented hall was the principal object in
4897 the vale below me; its woods and dark rookery rose against the west. I
4898 lingered till the sun went down amongst the trees, and sank crimson and
4899 clear behind them. I then turned eastward.
4900
4901 On the hill-top above me sat the rising moon; pale yet as a cloud, but
4902 brightening momentarily, she looked over Hay, which, half lost in trees,
4903 sent up a blue smoke from its few chimneys: it was yet a mile distant,
4904 but in the absolute hush I could hear plainly its thin murmurs of life.
4905 My ear, too, felt the flow of currents; in what dales and depths I could
4906 not tell: but there were many hills beyond Hay, and doubtless many becks
4907 threading their passes. That evening calm betrayed alike the tinkle of
4908 the nearest streams, the sough of the most remote.
4909
4910 A rude noise broke on these fine ripplings and whisperings, at once so
4911 far away and so clear: a positive tramp, tramp, a metallic clatter, which
4912 effaced the soft wave-wanderings; as, in a picture, the solid mass of a
4913 crag, or the rough boles of a great oak, drawn in dark and strong on the
4914 foreground, efface the aerial distance of azure hill, sunny horizon, and
4915 blended clouds where tint melts into tint.
4916
4917 The din was on the causeway: a horse was coming; the windings of the lane
4918 yet hid it, but it approached. I was just leaving the stile; yet, as the
4919 path was narrow, I sat still to let it go by. In those days I was young,
4920 and all sorts of fancies bright and dark tenanted my mind: the memories
4921 of nursery stories were there amongst other rubbish; and when they
4922 recurred, maturing youth added to them a vigour and vividness beyond what
4923 childhood could give. As this horse approached, and as I watched for it
4924 to appear through the dusk, I remembered certain of Bessie's tales,
4925 wherein figured a North-of-England spirit called a "Gytrash," which, in
4926 the form of horse, mule, or large dog, haunted solitary ways, and
4927 sometimes came upon belated travellers, as this horse was now coming upon
4928 me.
4929
4930 It was very near, but not yet in sight; when, in addition to the tramp,
4931 tramp, I heard a rush under the hedge, and close down by the hazel stems
4932 glided a great dog, whose black and white colour made him a distinct
4933 object against the trees. It was exactly one form of Bessie's Gytrash--a
4934 lion-like creature with long hair and a huge head: it passed me, however,
4935 quietly enough; not staying to look up, with strange pretercanine eyes,
4936 in my face, as I half expected it would. The horse followed,--a tall
4937 steed, and on its back a rider. The man, the human being, broke the
4938 spell at once. Nothing ever rode the Gytrash: it was always alone; and
4939 goblins, to my notions, though they might tenant the dumb carcasses of
4940 beasts, could scarce covet shelter in the commonplace human form. No
4941 Gytrash was this,--only a traveller taking the short cut to Millcote. He
4942 passed, and I went on; a few steps, and I turned: a sliding sound and an
4943 exclamation of "What the deuce is to do now?" and a clattering tumble,
4944 arrested my attention. Man and horse were down; they had slipped on the
4945 sheet of ice which glazed the causeway. The dog came bounding back, and
4946 seeing his master in a predicament, and hearing the horse groan, barked
4947 till the evening hills echoed the sound, which was deep in proportion to
4948 his magnitude. He snuffed round the prostrate group, and then he ran up
4949 to me; it was all he could do,--there was no other help at hand to
4950 summon. I obeyed him, and walked down to the traveller, by this time
4951 struggling himself free of his steed. His efforts were so vigorous, I
4952 thought he could not be much hurt; but I asked him the question--
4953
4954 "Are you injured, sir?"
4955
4956 I think he was swearing, but am not certain; however, he was pronouncing
4957 some formula which prevented him from replying to me directly.
4958
4959 "Can I do anything?" I asked again.
4960
4961 "You must just stand on one side," he answered as he rose, first to his
4962 knees, and then to his feet. I did; whereupon began a heaving, stamping,
4963 clattering process, accompanied by a barking and baying which removed me
4964 effectually some yards' distance; but I would not be driven quite away
4965 till I saw the event. This was finally fortunate; the horse was
4966 re-established, and the dog was silenced with a "Down, Pilot!" The
4967 traveller now, stooping, felt his foot and leg, as if trying whether they
4968 were sound; apparently something ailed them, for he halted to the stile
4969 whence I had just risen, and sat down.
4970
4971 I was in the mood for being useful, or at least officious, I think, for I
4972 now drew near him again.
4973
4974 "If you are hurt, and want help, sir, I can fetch some one either from
4975 Thornfield Hall or from Hay."
4976
4977 "Thank you: I shall do: I have no broken bones,--only a sprain;" and
4978 again he stood up and tried his foot, but the result extorted an
4979 involuntary "Ugh!"
4980
4981 Something of daylight still lingered, and the moon was waxing bright: I
4982 could see him plainly. His figure was enveloped in a riding cloak, fur
4983 collared and steel clasped; its details were not apparent, but I traced
4984 the general points of middle height and considerable breadth of chest. He
4985 had a dark face, with stern features and a heavy brow; his eyes and
4986 gathered eyebrows looked ireful and thwarted just now; he was past youth,
4987 but had not reached middle-age; perhaps he might be thirty-five. I felt
4988 no fear of him, and but little shyness. Had he been a handsome, heroic-
4989 looking young gentleman, I should not have dared to stand thus
4990 questioning him against his will, and offering my services unasked. I
4991 had hardly ever seen a handsome youth; never in my life spoken to one. I
4992 had a theoretical reverence and homage for beauty, elegance, gallantry,
4993 fascination; but had I met those qualities incarnate in masculine shape,
4994 I should have known instinctively that they neither had nor could have
4995 sympathy with anything in me, and should have shunned them as one would
4996 fire, lightning, or anything else that is bright but antipathetic.
4997
4998 If even this stranger had smiled and been good-humoured to me when I
4999 addressed him; if he had put off my offer of assistance gaily and with
5000 thanks, I should have gone on my way and not felt any vocation to renew
5001 inquiries: but the frown, the roughness of the traveller, set me at my
5002 ease: I retained my station when he waved to me to go, and announced--
5003
5004 "I cannot think of leaving you, sir, at so late an hour, in this solitary
5005 lane, till I see you are fit to mount your horse."
5006
5007 He looked at me when I said this; he had hardly turned his eyes in my
5008 direction before.
5009
5010 "I should think you ought to be at home yourself," said he, "if you have
5011 a home in this neighbourhood: where do you come from?"
5012
5013 "From just below; and I am not at all afraid of being out late when it is
5014 moonlight: I will run over to Hay for you with pleasure, if you wish it:
5015 indeed, I am going there to post a letter."
5016
5017 "You live just below--do you mean at that house with the battlements?"
5018 pointing to Thornfield Hall, on which the moon cast a hoary gleam,
5019 bringing it out distinct and pale from the woods that, by contrast with
5020 the western sky, now seemed one mass of shadow.
5021
5022 "Yes, sir."
5023
5024 "Whose house is it?"
5025
5026 "Mr. Rochester's."
5027
5028 "Do you know Mr. Rochester?"
5029
5030 "No, I have never seen him."
5031
5032 "He is not resident, then?"
5033
5034 "No."
5035
5036 "Can you tell me where he is?"
5037
5038 "I cannot."
5039
5040 "You are not a servant at the hall, of course. You are--" He stopped,
5041 ran his eye over my dress, which, as usual, was quite simple: a black
5042 merino cloak, a black beaver bonnet; neither of them half fine enough for
5043 a lady's-maid. He seemed puzzled to decide what I was; I helped him.
5044
5045 "I am the governess."
5046
5047 "Ah, the governess!" he repeated; "deuce take me, if I had not forgotten!
5048 The governess!" and again my raiment underwent scrutiny. In two minutes
5049 he rose from the stile: his face expressed pain when he tried to move.
5050
5051 "I cannot commission you to fetch help," he said; "but you may help me a
5052 little yourself, if you will be so kind."
5053
5054 "Yes, sir."
5055
5056 "You have not an umbrella that I can use as a stick?"
5057
5058 "No."
5059
5060 "Try to get hold of my horse's bridle and lead him to me: you are not
5061 afraid?"
5062
5063 I should have been afraid to touch a horse when alone, but when told to
5064 do it, I was disposed to obey. I put down my muff on the stile, and went
5065 up to the tall steed; I endeavoured to catch the bridle, but it was a
5066 spirited thing, and would not let me come near its head; I made effort on
5067 effort, though in vain: meantime, I was mortally afraid of its trampling
5068 fore-feet. The traveller waited and watched for some time, and at last
5069 he laughed.
5070
5071 {I was mortally afraid of its trampling forefeet: p107.jpg}
5072
5073 "I see," he said, "the mountain will never be brought to Mahomet, so all
5074 you can do is to aid Mahomet to go to the mountain; I must beg of you to
5075 come here."
5076
5077 I came. "Excuse me," he continued: "necessity compels me to make you
5078 useful." He laid a heavy hand on my shoulder, and leaning on me with
5079 some stress, limped to his horse. Having once caught the bridle, he
5080 mastered it directly and sprang to his saddle; grimacing grimly as he
5081 made the effort, for it wrenched his sprain.
5082
5083 "Now," said he, releasing his under lip from a hard bite, "just hand me
5084 my whip; it lies there under the hedge."
5085
5086 I sought it and found it.
5087
5088 "Thank you; now make haste with the letter to Hay, and return as fast as
5089 you can."
5090
5091 A touch of a spurred heel made his horse first start and rear, and then
5092 bound away; the dog rushed in his traces; all three vanished,
5093
5094 "Like heath that, in the wilderness,
5095 The wild wind whirls away."
5096
5097 I took up my muff and walked on. The incident had occurred and was gone
5098 for me: it _was_ an incident of no moment, no romance, no interest in a
5099 sense; yet it marked with change one single hour of a monotonous life. My
5100 help had been needed and claimed; I had given it: I was pleased to have
5101 done something; trivial, transitory though the deed was, it was yet an
5102 active thing, and I was weary of an existence all passive. The new face,
5103 too, was like a new picture introduced to the gallery of memory; and it
5104 was dissimilar to all the others hanging there: firstly, because it was
5105 masculine; and, secondly, because it was dark, strong, and stern. I had
5106 it still before me when I entered Hay, and slipped the letter into the
5107 post-office; I saw it as I walked fast down-hill all the way home. When
5108 I came to the stile, I stopped a minute, looked round and listened, with
5109 an idea that a horse's hoofs might ring on the causeway again, and that a
5110 rider in a cloak, and a Gytrash-like Newfoundland dog, might be again
5111 apparent: I saw only the hedge and a pollard willow before me, rising up
5112 still and straight to meet the moonbeams; I heard only the faintest waft
5113 of wind roaming fitful among the trees round Thornfield, a mile distant;
5114 and when I glanced down in the direction of the murmur, my eye,
5115 traversing the hall-front, caught a light kindling in a window: it
5116 reminded me that I was late, and I hurried on.
5117
5118 I did not like re-entering Thornfield. To pass its threshold was to
5119 return to stagnation; to cross the silent hall, to ascend the darksome
5120 staircase, to seek my own lonely little room, and then to meet tranquil
5121 Mrs. Fairfax, and spend the long winter evening with her, and her only,
5122 was to quell wholly the faint excitement wakened by my walk,--to slip
5123 again over my faculties the viewless fetters of an uniform and too still
5124 existence; of an existence whose very privileges of security and ease I
5125 was becoming incapable of appreciating. What good it would have done me
5126 at that time to have been tossed in the storms of an uncertain struggling
5127 life, and to have been taught by rough and bitter experience to long for
5128 the calm amidst which I now repined! Yes, just as much good as it would
5129 do a man tired of sitting still in a "too easy chair" to take a long
5130 walk: and just as natural was the wish to stir, under my circumstances,
5131 as it would be under his.
5132
5133 I lingered at the gates; I lingered on the lawn; I paced backwards and
5134 forwards on the pavement; the shutters of the glass door were closed; I
5135 could not see into the interior; and both my eyes and spirit seemed drawn
5136 from the gloomy house--from the grey-hollow filled with rayless cells, as
5137 it appeared to me--to that sky expanded before me,--a blue sea absolved
5138 from taint of cloud; the moon ascending it in solemn march; her orb
5139 seeming to look up as she left the hill-tops, from behind which she had
5140 come, far and farther below her, and aspired to the zenith, midnight dark
5141 in its fathomless depth and measureless distance; and for those trembling
5142 stars that followed her course; they made my heart tremble, my veins glow
5143 when I viewed them. Little things recall us to earth; the clock struck
5144 in the hall; that sufficed; I turned from moon and stars, opened a side-
5145 door, and went in.
5146
5147 The hall was not dark, nor yet was it lit, only by the high-hung bronze
5148 lamp; a warm glow suffused both it and the lower steps of the oak
5149 staircase. This ruddy shine issued from the great dining-room, whose two-
5150 leaved door stood open, and showed a genial fire in the grate, glancing
5151 on marble hearth and brass fire-irons, and revealing purple draperies and
5152 polished furniture, in the most pleasant radiance. It revealed, too, a
5153 group near the mantelpiece: I had scarcely caught it, and scarcely become
5154 aware of a cheerful mingling of voices, amongst which I seemed to
5155 distinguish the tones of Adele, when the door closed.
5156
5157 I hastened to Mrs. Fairfax's room; there was a fire there too, but no
5158 candle, and no Mrs. Fairfax. Instead, all alone, sitting upright on the
5159 rug, and gazing with gravity at the blaze, I beheld a great black and
5160 white long-haired dog, just like the Gytrash of the lane. It was so like
5161 it that I went forward and said--"Pilot" and the thing got up and came to
5162 me and snuffed me. I caressed him, and he wagged his great tail; but he
5163 looked an eerie creature to be alone with, and I could not tell whence he
5164 had come. I rang the bell, for I wanted a candle; and I wanted, too, to
5165 get an account of this visitant. Leah entered.
5166
5167 "What dog is this?"
5168
5169 "He came with master."
5170
5171 "With whom?"
5172
5173 "With master--Mr. Rochester--he is just arrived."
5174
5175 "Indeed! and is Mrs. Fairfax with him?"
5176
5177 "Yes, and Miss Adele; they are in the dining-room, and John is gone for a
5178 surgeon; for master has had an accident; his horse fell and his ankle is
5179 sprained."
5180
5181 "Did the horse fall in Hay Lane?"
5182
5183 "Yes, coming down-hill; it slipped on some ice."
5184
5185 "Ah! Bring me a candle will you Leah?"
5186
5187 Leah brought it; she entered, followed by Mrs. Fairfax, who repeated the
5188 news; adding that Mr. Carter the surgeon was come, and was now with Mr.
5189 Rochester: then she hurried out to give orders about tea, and I went
5190 upstairs to take off my things.
5191
5192
5193
5194
5195 CHAPTER XIII
5196
5197
5198 Mr. Rochester, it seems, by the surgeon's orders, went to bed early that
5199 night; nor did he rise soon next morning. When he did come down, it was
5200 to attend to business: his agent and some of his tenants were arrived,
5201 and waiting to speak with him.
5202
5203 Adele and I had now to vacate the library: it would be in daily
5204 requisition as a reception-room for callers. A fire was lit in an
5205 apartment upstairs, and there I carried our books, and arranged it for
5206 the future schoolroom. I discerned in the course of the morning that
5207 Thornfield Hall was a changed place: no longer silent as a church, it
5208 echoed every hour or two to a knock at the door, or a clang of the bell;
5209 steps, too, often traversed the hall, and new voices spoke in different
5210 keys below; a rill from the outer world was flowing through it; it had a
5211 master: for my part, I liked it better.
5212
5213 Adele was not easy to teach that day; she could not apply: she kept
5214 running to the door and looking over the banisters to see if she could
5215 get a glimpse of Mr. Rochester; then she coined pretexts to go
5216 downstairs, in order, as I shrewdly suspected, to visit the library,
5217 where I knew she was not wanted; then, when I got a little angry, and
5218 made her sit still, she continued to talk incessantly of her "ami,
5219 Monsieur Edouard Fairfax _de_ Rochester," as she dubbed him (I had not
5220 before heard his prenomens), and to conjecture what presents he had
5221 brought her: for it appears he had intimated the night before, that when
5222 his luggage came from Millcote, there would be found amongst it a little
5223 box in whose contents she had an interest.
5224
5225 "Et cela doit signifier," said she, "qu'il y aura la dedans un cadeau
5226 pour moi, et peut-etre pour vous aussi, mademoiselle. Monsieur a parle
5227 de vous: il m'a demande le nom de ma gouvernante, et si elle n'etait pas
5228 une petite personne, assez mince et un peu pale. J'ai dit qu'oui: car
5229 c'est vrai, n'est-ce pas, mademoiselle?"
5230
5231 I and my pupil dined as usual in Mrs. Fairfax's parlour; the afternoon
5232 was wild and snowy, and we passed it in the schoolroom. At dark I
5233 allowed Adele to put away books and work, and to run downstairs; for,
5234 from the comparative silence below, and from the cessation of appeals to
5235 the door-bell, I conjectured that Mr. Rochester was now at liberty. Left
5236 alone, I walked to the window; but nothing was to be seen thence:
5237 twilight and snowflakes together thickened the air, and hid the very
5238 shrubs on the lawn. I let down the curtain and went back to the
5239 fireside.
5240
5241 In the clear embers I was tracing a view, not unlike a picture I
5242 remembered to have seen of the castle of Heidelberg, on the Rhine, when
5243 Mrs. Fairfax came in, breaking up by her entrance the fiery mosaic I had
5244 been piercing together, and scattering too some heavy unwelcome thoughts
5245 that were beginning to throng on my solitude.
5246
5247 "Mr. Rochester would be glad if you and your pupil would take tea with
5248 him in the drawing-room this evening," said she: "he has been so much
5249 engaged all day that he could not ask to see you before."
5250
5251 "When is his tea-time?" I inquired.
5252
5253 "Oh, at six o'clock: he keeps early hours in the country. You had better
5254 change your frock now; I will go with you and fasten it. Here is a
5255 candle."
5256
5257 "Is it necessary to change my frock?"
5258
5259 "Yes, you had better: I always dress for the evening when Mr. Rochester
5260 is here."
5261
5262 This additional ceremony seemed somewhat stately; however, I repaired to
5263 my room, and, with Mrs. Fairfax's aid, replaced my black stuff dress by
5264 one of black silk; the best and the only additional one I had, except one
5265 of light grey, which, in my Lowood notions of the toilette, I thought too
5266 fine to be worn, except on first-rate occasions.
5267
5268 "You want a brooch," said Mrs. Fairfax. I had a single little pearl
5269 ornament which Miss Temple gave me as a parting keepsake: I put it on,
5270 and then we went downstairs. Unused as I was to strangers, it was rather
5271 a trial to appear thus formally summoned in Mr. Rochester's presence. I
5272 let Mrs. Fairfax precede me into the dining-room, and kept in her shade
5273 as we crossed that apartment; and, passing the arch, whose curtain was
5274 now dropped, entered the elegant recess beyond.
5275
5276 Two wax candles stood lighted on the table, and two on the mantelpiece;
5277 basking in the light and heat of a superb fire, lay Pilot--Adele knelt
5278 near him. Half reclined on a couch appeared Mr. Rochester, his foot
5279 supported by the cushion; he was looking at Adele and the dog: the fire
5280 shone full on his face. I knew my traveller with his broad and jetty
5281 eyebrows; his square forehead, made squarer by the horizontal sweep of
5282 his black hair. I recognised his decisive nose, more remarkable for
5283 character than beauty; his full nostrils, denoting, I thought, choler;
5284 his grim mouth, chin, and jaw--yes, all three were very grim, and no
5285 mistake. His shape, now divested of cloak, I perceived harmonised in
5286 squareness with his physiognomy: I suppose it was a good figure in the
5287 athletic sense of the term--broad chested and thin flanked, though
5288 neither tall nor graceful.
5289
5290 Mr. Rochester must have been aware of the entrance of Mrs. Fairfax and
5291 myself; but it appeared he was not in the mood to notice us, for he never
5292 lifted his head as we approached.
5293
5294 "Here is Miss Eyre, sir," said Mrs. Fairfax, in her quiet way. He bowed,
5295 still not taking his eyes from the group of the dog and child.
5296
5297 "Let Miss Eyre be seated," said he: and there was something in the forced
5298 stiff bow, in the impatient yet formal tone, which seemed further to
5299 express, "What the deuce is it to me whether Miss Eyre be there or not?
5300 At this moment I am not disposed to accost her."
5301
5302 I sat down quite disembarrassed. A reception of finished politeness
5303 would probably have confused me: I could not have returned or repaid it
5304 by answering grace and elegance on my part; but harsh caprice laid me
5305 under no obligation; on the contrary, a decent quiescence, under the
5306 freak of manner, gave me the advantage. Besides, the eccentricity of the
5307 proceeding was piquant: I felt interested to see how he would go on.
5308
5309 He went on as a statue would, that is, he neither spoke nor moved. Mrs.
5310 Fairfax seemed to think it necessary that some one should be amiable, and
5311 she began to talk. Kindly, as usual--and, as usual, rather trite--she
5312 condoled with him on the pressure of business he had had all day; on the
5313 annoyance it must have been to him with that painful sprain: then she
5314 commended his patience and perseverance in going through with it.
5315
5316 "Madam, I should like some tea," was the sole rejoinder she got. She
5317 hastened to ring the bell; and when the tray came, she proceeded to
5318 arrange the cups, spoons, &c., with assiduous celerity. I and Adele went
5319 to the table; but the master did not leave his couch.
5320
5321 "Will you hand Mr. Rochester's cup?" said Mrs. Fairfax to me; "Adele
5322 might perhaps spill it."
5323
5324 I did as requested. As he took the cup from my hand, Adele, thinking the
5325 moment propitious for making a request in my favour, cried out--
5326
5327 "N'est-ce pas, monsieur, qu'il y a un cadeau pour Mademoiselle Eyre dans
5328 votre petit coffre?"
5329
5330 "Who talks of cadeaux?" said he gruffly. "Did you expect a present, Miss
5331 Eyre? Are you fond of presents?" and he searched my face with eyes that
5332 I saw were dark, irate, and piercing.
5333
5334 "I hardly know, sir; I have little experience of them: they are generally
5335 thought pleasant things."
5336
5337 "Generally thought? But what do _you_ think?"
5338
5339 "I should be obliged to take time, sir, before I could give you an answer
5340 worthy of your acceptance: a present has many faces to it, has it not?
5341 and one should consider all, before pronouncing an opinion as to its
5342 nature."
5343
5344 "Miss Eyre, you are not so unsophisticated as Adele: she demands a
5345 'cadeau,' clamorously, the moment she sees me: you beat about the bush."
5346
5347 "Because I have less confidence in my deserts than Adele has: she can
5348 prefer the claim of old acquaintance, and the right too of custom; for
5349 she says you have always been in the habit of giving her playthings; but
5350 if I had to make out a case I should be puzzled, since I am a stranger,
5351 and have done nothing to entitle me to an acknowledgment."
5352
5353 "Oh, don't fall back on over-modesty! I have examined Adele, and find
5354 you have taken great pains with her: she is not bright, she has no
5355 talents; yet in a short time she has made much improvement."
5356
5357 "Sir, you have now given me my 'cadeau;' I am obliged to you: it is the
5358 meed teachers most covet--praise of their pupils' progress."
5359
5360 "Humph!" said Mr. Rochester, and he took his tea in silence.
5361
5362 "Come to the fire," said the master, when the tray was taken away, and
5363 Mrs. Fairfax had settled into a corner with her knitting; while Adele was
5364 leading me by the hand round the room, showing me the beautiful books and
5365 ornaments on the consoles and chiffonnieres. We obeyed, as in duty
5366 bound; Adele wanted to take a seat on my knee, but she was ordered to
5367 amuse herself with Pilot.
5368
5369 "You have been resident in my house three months?"
5370
5371 "Yes, sir."
5372
5373 "And you came from--?"
5374
5375 "From Lowood school, in ---shire."
5376
5377 "Ah! a charitable concern. How long were you there?"
5378
5379 "Eight years."
5380
5381 "Eight years! you must be tenacious of life. I thought half the time in
5382 such a place would have done up any constitution! No wonder you have
5383 rather the look of another world. I marvelled where you had got that
5384 sort of face. When you came on me in Hay Lane last night, I thought
5385 unaccountably of fairy tales, and had half a mind to demand whether you
5386 had bewitched my horse: I am not sure yet. Who are your parents?"
5387
5388 "I have none."
5389
5390 "Nor ever had, I suppose: do you remember them?"
5391
5392 "No."
5393
5394 "I thought not. And so you were waiting for your people when you sat on
5395 that stile?"
5396
5397 "For whom, sir?"
5398
5399 "For the men in green: it was a proper moonlight evening for them. Did I
5400 break through one of your rings, that you spread that damned ice on the
5401 causeway?"
5402
5403 I shook my head. "The men in green all forsook England a hundred years
5404 ago," said I, speaking as seriously as he had done. "And not even in Hay
5405 Lane, or the fields about it, could you find a trace of them. I don't
5406 think either summer or harvest, or winter moon, will ever shine on their
5407 revels more."
5408
5409 Mrs. Fairfax had dropped her knitting, and, with raised eyebrows, seemed
5410 wondering what sort of talk this was.
5411
5412 "Well," resumed Mr. Rochester, "if you disown parents, you must have some
5413 sort of kinsfolk: uncles and aunts?"
5414
5415 "No; none that I ever saw."
5416
5417 "And your home?"
5418
5419 "I have none."
5420
5421 "Where do your brothers and sisters live?"
5422
5423 "I have no brothers or sisters."
5424
5425 "Who recommended you to come here?"
5426
5427 "I advertised, and Mrs. Fairfax answered my advertisement."
5428
5429 "Yes," said the good lady, who now knew what ground we were upon, "and I
5430 am daily thankful for the choice Providence led me to make. Miss Eyre
5431 has been an invaluable companion to me, and a kind and careful teacher to
5432 Adele."
5433
5434 "Don't trouble yourself to give her a character," returned Mr. Rochester:
5435 "eulogiums will not bias me; I shall judge for myself. She began by
5436 felling my horse."
5437
5438 "Sir?" said Mrs. Fairfax.
5439
5440 "I have to thank her for this sprain."
5441
5442 The widow looked bewildered.
5443
5444 "Miss Eyre, have you ever lived in a town?"
5445
5446 "No, sir."
5447
5448 "Have you seen much society?"
5449
5450 "None but the pupils and teachers of Lowood, and now the inmates of
5451 Thornfield."
5452
5453 "Have you read much?"
5454
5455 "Only such books as came in my way; and they have not been numerous or
5456 very learned."
5457
5458 "You have lived the life of a nun: no doubt you are well drilled in
5459 religious forms;--Brocklehurst, who I understand directs Lowood, is a
5460 parson, is he not?"
5461
5462 "Yes, sir."
5463
5464 "And you girls probably worshipped him, as a convent full of religieuses
5465 would worship their director."
5466
5467 "Oh, no."
5468
5469 "You are very cool! No! What! a novice not worship her priest! That
5470 sounds blasphemous."
5471
5472 "I disliked Mr. Brocklehurst; and I was not alone in the feeling. He is
5473 a harsh man; at once pompous and meddling; he cut off our hair; and for
5474 economy's sake bought us bad needles and thread, with which we could
5475 hardly sew."
5476
5477 "That was very false economy," remarked Mrs. Fairfax, who now again
5478 caught the drift of the dialogue.
5479
5480 "And was that the head and front of his offending?" demanded Mr.
5481 Rochester.
5482
5483 "He starved us when he had the sole superintendence of the provision
5484 department, before the committee was appointed; and he bored us with long
5485 lectures once a week, and with evening readings from books of his own
5486 inditing, about sudden deaths and judgments, which made us afraid to go
5487 to bed."
5488
5489 "What age were you when you went to Lowood?"
5490
5491 "About ten."
5492
5493 "And you stayed there eight years: you are now, then, eighteen?"
5494
5495 I assented.
5496
5497 "Arithmetic, you see, is useful; without its aid, I should hardly have
5498 been able to guess your age. It is a point difficult to fix where the
5499 features and countenance are so much at variance as in your case. And
5500 now what did you learn at Lowood? Can you play?"
5501
5502 "A little."
5503
5504 "Of course: that is the established answer. Go into the library--I mean,
5505 if you please.--(Excuse my tone of command; I am used to say, 'Do this,'
5506 and it is done: I cannot alter my customary habits for one new
5507 inmate.)--Go, then, into the library; take a candle with you; leave the
5508 door open; sit down to the piano, and play a tune."
5509
5510 I departed, obeying his directions.
5511
5512 "Enough!" he called out in a few minutes. "You play _a little_, I see;
5513 like any other English school-girl; perhaps rather better than some, but
5514 not well."
5515
5516 I closed the piano and returned. Mr. Rochester continued--"Adele showed
5517 me some sketches this morning, which she said were yours. I don't know
5518 whether they were entirely of your doing; probably a master aided you?"
5519
5520 "No, indeed!" I interjected.
5521
5522 "Ah! that pricks pride. Well, fetch me your portfolio, if you can vouch
5523 for its contents being original; but don't pass your word unless you are
5524 certain: I can recognise patchwork."
5525
5526 "Then I will say nothing, and you shall judge for yourself, sir."
5527
5528 I brought the portfolio from the library.
5529
5530 "Approach the table," said he; and I wheeled it to his couch. Adele and
5531 Mrs. Fairfax drew near to see the pictures.
5532
5533 "No crowding," said Mr. Rochester: "take the drawings from my hand as I
5534 finish with them; but don't push your faces up to mine."
5535
5536 He deliberately scrutinised each sketch and painting. Three he laid
5537 aside; the others, when he had examined them, he swept from him.
5538
5539 "Take them off to the other table, Mrs. Fairfax," said he, "and look at
5540 them with Adele;--you" (glancing at me) "resume your seat, and answer my
5541 questions. I perceive those pictures were done by one hand: was that
5542 hand yours?"
5543
5544 "Yes."
5545
5546 "And when did you find time to do them? They have taken much time, and
5547 some thought."
5548
5549 "I did them in the last two vacations I spent at Lowood, when I had no
5550 other occupation."
5551
5552 "Where did you get your copies?"
5553
5554 "Out of my head."
5555
5556 "That head I see now on your shoulders?"
5557
5558 "Yes, sir."
5559
5560 "Has it other furniture of the same kind within?"
5561
5562 "I should think it may have: I should hope--better."
5563
5564 He spread the pictures before him, and again surveyed them alternately.
5565
5566 While he is so occupied, I will tell you, reader, what they are: and
5567 first, I must premise that they are nothing wonderful. The subjects had,
5568 indeed, risen vividly on my mind. As I saw them with the spiritual eye,
5569 before I attempted to embody them, they were striking; but my hand would
5570 not second my fancy, and in each case it had wrought out but a pale
5571 portrait of the thing I had conceived.
5572
5573 These pictures were in water-colours. The first represented clouds low
5574 and livid, rolling over a swollen sea: all the distance was in eclipse;
5575 so, too, was the foreground; or rather, the nearest billows, for there
5576 was no land. One gleam of light lifted into relief a half-submerged
5577 mast, on which sat a cormorant, dark and large, with wings flecked with
5578 foam; its beak held a gold bracelet set with gems, that I had touched
5579 with as brilliant tints as my palette could yield, and as glittering
5580 distinctness as my pencil could impart. Sinking below the bird and mast,
5581 a drowned corpse glanced through the green water; a fair arm was the only
5582 limb clearly visible, whence the bracelet had been washed or torn.
5583
5584 The second picture contained for foreground only the dim peak of a hill,
5585 with grass and some leaves slanting as if by a breeze. Beyond and above
5586 spread an expanse of sky, dark blue as at twilight: rising into the sky
5587 was a woman's shape to the bust, portrayed in tints as dusk and soft as I
5588 could combine. The dim forehead was crowned with a star; the lineaments
5589 below were seen as through the suffusion of vapour; the eyes shone dark
5590 and wild; the hair streamed shadowy, like a beamless cloud torn by storm
5591 or by electric travail. On the neck lay a pale reflection like
5592 moonlight; the same faint lustre touched the train of thin clouds from
5593 which rose and bowed this vision of the Evening Star.
5594
5595 The third showed the pinnacle of an iceberg piercing a polar winter sky:
5596 a muster of northern lights reared their dim lances, close serried, along
5597 the horizon. Throwing these into distance, rose, in the foreground, a
5598 head,--a colossal head, inclined towards the iceberg, and resting against
5599 it. Two thin hands, joined under the forehead, and supporting it, drew
5600 up before the lower features a sable veil, a brow quite bloodless, white
5601 as bone, and an eye hollow and fixed, blank of meaning but for the
5602 glassiness of despair, alone were visible. Above the temples, amidst
5603 wreathed turban folds of black drapery, vague in its character and
5604 consistency as cloud, gleamed a ring of white flame, gemmed with sparkles
5605 of a more lurid tinge. This pale crescent was "the likeness of a kingly
5606 crown;" what it diademed was "the shape which shape had none."
5607
5608 "Were you happy when you painted these pictures?" asked Mr. Rochester
5609 presently.
5610
5611 "I was absorbed, sir: yes, and I was happy. To paint them, in short, was
5612 to enjoy one of the keenest pleasures I have ever known."
5613
5614 "That is not saying much. Your pleasures, by your own account, have been
5615 few; but I daresay you did exist in a kind of artist's dreamland while
5616 you blent and arranged these strange tints. Did you sit at them long
5617 each day?"
5618
5619 "I had nothing else to do, because it was the vacation, and I sat at them
5620 from morning till noon, and from noon till night: the length of the
5621 midsummer days favoured my inclination to apply."
5622
5623 "And you felt self-satisfied with the result of your ardent labours?"
5624
5625 "Far from it. I was tormented by the contrast between my idea and my
5626 handiwork: in each case I had imagined something which I was quite
5627 powerless to realise."
5628
5629 "Not quite: you have secured the shadow of your thought; but no more,
5630 probably. You had not enough of the artist's skill and science to give
5631 it full being: yet the drawings are, for a school-girl, peculiar. As to
5632 the thoughts, they are elfish. These eyes in the Evening Star you must
5633 have seen in a dream. How could you make them look so clear, and yet not
5634 at all brilliant? for the planet above quells their rays. And what
5635 meaning is that in their solemn depth? And who taught you to paint wind?
5636 There is a high gale in that sky, and on this hill-top. Where did you
5637 see Latmos? For that is Latmos. There! put the drawings away!"
5638
5639 I had scarce tied the strings of the portfolio, when, looking at his
5640 watch, he said abruptly--
5641
5642 "It is nine o'clock: what are you about, Miss Eyre, to let Adele sit up
5643 so long? Take her to bed."
5644
5645 Adele went to kiss him before quitting the room: he endured the caress,
5646 but scarcely seemed to relish it more than Pilot would have done, nor so
5647 much.
5648
5649 "I wish you all good-night, now," said he, making a movement of the hand
5650 towards the door, in token that he was tired of our company, and wished
5651 to dismiss us. Mrs. Fairfax folded up her knitting: I took my portfolio:
5652 we curtseyed to him, received a frigid bow in return, and so withdrew.
5653
5654 "You said Mr. Rochester was not strikingly peculiar, Mrs. Fairfax," I
5655 observed, when I rejoined her in her room, after putting Adele to bed.
5656
5657 "Well, is he?"
5658
5659 "I think so: he is very changeful and abrupt."
5660
5661 "True: no doubt he may appear so to a stranger, but I am so accustomed to
5662 his manner, I never think of it; and then, if he has peculiarities of
5663 temper, allowance should be made."
5664
5665 "Why?"
5666
5667 "Partly because it is his nature--and we can none of us help our nature;
5668 and partly because he has painful thoughts, no doubt, to harass him, and
5669 make his spirits unequal."
5670
5671 "What about?"
5672
5673 "Family troubles, for one thing."
5674
5675 "But he has no family."
5676
5677 "Not now, but he has had--or, at least, relatives. He lost his elder
5678 brother a few years since."
5679
5680 "His _elder_ brother?"
5681
5682 "Yes. The present Mr. Rochester has not been very long in possession of
5683 the property; only about nine years."
5684
5685 "Nine years is a tolerable time. Was he so very fond of his brother as
5686 to be still inconsolable for his loss?"
5687
5688 "Why, no--perhaps not. I believe there were some misunderstandings
5689 between them. Mr. Rowland Rochester was not quite just to Mr. Edward;
5690 and perhaps he prejudiced his father against him. The old gentleman was
5691 fond of money, and anxious to keep the family estate together. He did
5692 not like to diminish the property by division, and yet he was anxious
5693 that Mr. Edward should have wealth, too, to keep up the consequence of
5694 the name; and, soon after he was of age, some steps were taken that were
5695 not quite fair, and made a great deal of mischief. Old Mr. Rochester and
5696 Mr. Rowland combined to bring Mr. Edward into what he considered a
5697 painful position, for the sake of making his fortune: what the precise
5698 nature of that position was I never clearly knew, but his spirit could
5699 not brook what he had to suffer in it. He is not very forgiving: he
5700 broke with his family, and now for many years he has led an unsettled
5701 kind of life. I don't think he has ever been resident at Thornfield for
5702 a fortnight together, since the death of his brother without a will left
5703 him master of the estate; and, indeed, no wonder he shuns the old place."
5704
5705 "Why should he shun it?"
5706
5707 "Perhaps he thinks it gloomy."
5708
5709 The answer was evasive. I should have liked something clearer; but Mrs.
5710 Fairfax either could not, or would not, give me more explicit information
5711 of the origin and nature of Mr. Rochester's trials. She averred they
5712 were a mystery to herself, and that what she knew was chiefly from
5713 conjecture. It was evident, indeed, that she wished me to drop the
5714 subject, which I did accordingly.
5715
5716
5717
5718
5719 CHAPTER XIV
5720
5721
5722 For several subsequent days I saw little of Mr. Rochester. In the
5723 mornings he seemed much engaged with business, and, in the afternoon,
5724 gentlemen from Millcote or the neighbourhood called, and sometimes stayed
5725 to dine with him. When his sprain was well enough to admit of horse
5726 exercise, he rode out a good deal; probably to return these visits, as he
5727 generally did not come back till late at night.
5728
5729 During this interval, even Adele was seldom sent for to his presence, and
5730 all my acquaintance with him was confined to an occasional rencontre in
5731 the hall, on the stairs, or in the gallery, when he would sometimes pass
5732 me haughtily and coldly, just acknowledging my presence by a distant nod
5733 or a cool glance, and sometimes bow and smile with gentlemanlike
5734 affability. His changes of mood did not offend me, because I saw that I
5735 had nothing to do with their alternation; the ebb and flow depended on
5736 causes quite disconnected with me.
5737
5738 One day he had had company to dinner, and had sent for my portfolio; in
5739 order, doubtless, to exhibit its contents: the gentlemen went away early,
5740 to attend a public meeting at Millcote, as Mrs. Fairfax informed me; but
5741 the night being wet and inclement, Mr. Rochester did not accompany them.
5742 Soon after they were gone he rang the bell: a message came that I and
5743 Adele were to go downstairs. I brushed Adele's hair and made her neat,
5744 and having ascertained that I was myself in my usual Quaker trim, where
5745 there was nothing to retouch--all being too close and plain, braided
5746 locks included, to admit of disarrangement--we descended, Adele wondering
5747 whether the _petit coffre_ was at length come; for, owing to some
5748 mistake, its arrival had hitherto been delayed. She was gratified: there
5749 it stood, a little carton, on the table when we entered the dining-room.
5750 She appeared to know it by instinct.
5751
5752 "Ma boite! ma boite!" exclaimed she, running towards it.
5753
5754 "Yes, there is your 'boite' at last: take it into a corner, you genuine
5755 daughter of Paris, and amuse yourself with disembowelling it," said the
5756 deep and rather sarcastic voice of Mr. Rochester, proceeding from the
5757 depths of an immense easy-chair at the fireside. "And mind," he
5758 continued, "don't bother me with any details of the anatomical process,
5759 or any notice of the condition of the entrails: let your operation be
5760 conducted in silence: tiens-toi tranquille, enfant; comprends-tu?"
5761
5762 Adele seemed scarcely to need the warning--she had already retired to a
5763 sofa with her treasure, and was busy untying the cord which secured the
5764 lid. Having removed this impediment, and lifted certain silvery
5765 envelopes of tissue paper, she merely exclaimed--
5766
5767 "Oh ciel! Que c'est beau!" and then remained absorbed in ecstatic
5768 contemplation.
5769
5770 "Is Miss Eyre there?" now demanded the master, half rising from his seat
5771 to look round to the door, near which I still stood.
5772
5773 "Ah! well, come forward; be seated here." He drew a chair near his own.
5774 "I am not fond of the prattle of children," he continued; "for, old
5775 bachelor as I am, I have no pleasant associations connected with their
5776 lisp. It would be intolerable to me to pass a whole evening
5777 _tete-a-tete_ with a brat. Don't draw that chair farther off, Miss Eyre;
5778 sit down exactly where I placed it--if you please, that is. Confound
5779 these civilities! I continually forget them. Nor do I particularly
5780 affect simple-minded old ladies. By-the-bye, I must have mine in mind;
5781 it won't do to neglect her; she is a Fairfax, or wed to one; and blood is
5782 said to be thicker than water."
5783
5784 He rang, and despatched an invitation to Mrs. Fairfax, who soon arrived,
5785 knitting-basket in hand.
5786
5787 "Good evening, madam; I sent to you for a charitable purpose. I have
5788 forbidden Adele to talk to me about her presents, and she is bursting
5789 with repletion: have the goodness to serve her as auditress and
5790 interlocutrice; it will be one of the most benevolent acts you ever
5791 performed."
5792
5793 Adele, indeed, no sooner saw Mrs. Fairfax, than she summoned her to her
5794 sofa, and there quickly filled her lap with the porcelain, the ivory, the
5795 waxen contents of her "boite;" pouring out, meantime, explanations and
5796 raptures in such broken English as she was mistress of.
5797
5798 "Now I have performed the part of a good host," pursued Mr. Rochester,
5799 "put my guests into the way of amusing each other, I ought to be at
5800 liberty to attend to my own pleasure. Miss Eyre, draw your chair still a
5801 little farther forward: you are yet too far back; I cannot see you
5802 without disturbing my position in this comfortable chair, which I have no
5803 mind to do."
5804
5805 I did as I was bid, though I would much rather have remained somewhat in
5806 the shade; but Mr. Rochester had such a direct way of giving orders, it
5807 seemed a matter of course to obey him promptly.
5808
5809 We were, as I have said, in the dining-room: the lustre, which had been
5810 lit for dinner, filled the room with a festal breadth of light; the large
5811 fire was all red and clear; the purple curtains hung rich and ample
5812 before the lofty window and loftier arch; everything was still, save the
5813 subdued chat of Adele (she dared not speak loud), and, filling up each
5814 pause, the beating of winter rain against the panes.
5815
5816 Mr. Rochester, as he sat in his damask-covered chair, looked different to
5817 what I had seen him look before; not quite so stern--much less gloomy.
5818 There was a smile on his lips, and his eyes sparkled, whether with wine
5819 or not, I am not sure; but I think it very probable. He was, in short,
5820 in his after-dinner mood; more expanded and genial, and also more self-
5821 indulgent than the frigid and rigid temper of the morning; still he
5822 looked preciously grim, cushioning his massive head against the swelling
5823 back of his chair, and receiving the light of the fire on his granite-
5824 hewn features, and in his great, dark eyes; for he had great, dark eyes,
5825 and very fine eyes, too--not without a certain change in their depths
5826 sometimes, which, if it was not softness, reminded you, at least, of that
5827 feeling.
5828
5829 He had been looking two minutes at the fire, and I had been looking the
5830 same length of time at him, when, turning suddenly, he caught my gaze
5831 fastened on his physiognomy.
5832
5833 "You examine me, Miss Eyre," said he: "do you think me handsome?"
5834
5835 I should, if I had deliberated, have replied to this question by
5836 something conventionally vague and polite; but the answer somehow slipped
5837 from my tongue before I was aware--"No, sir."
5838
5839 "Ah! By my word! there is something singular about you," said he: "you
5840 have the air of a little _nonnette_; quaint, quiet, grave, and simple, as
5841 you sit with your hands before you, and your eyes generally bent on the
5842 carpet (except, by-the-bye, when they are directed piercingly to my face;
5843 as just now, for instance); and when one asks you a question, or makes a
5844 remark to which you are obliged to reply, you rap out a round rejoinder,
5845 which, if not blunt, is at least brusque. What do you mean by it?"
5846
5847 "Sir, I was too plain; I beg your pardon. I ought to have replied that
5848 it was not easy to give an impromptu answer to a question about
5849 appearances; that tastes mostly differ; and that beauty is of little
5850 consequence, or something of that sort."
5851
5852 "You ought to have replied no such thing. Beauty of little consequence,
5853 indeed! And so, under pretence of softening the previous outrage, of
5854 stroking and soothing me into placidity, you stick a sly penknife under
5855 my ear! Go on: what fault do you find with me, pray? I suppose I have
5856 all my limbs and all my features like any other man?"
5857
5858 "Mr. Rochester, allow me to disown my first answer: I intended no pointed
5859 repartee: it was only a blunder."
5860
5861 "Just so: I think so: and you shall be answerable for it. Criticise me:
5862 does my forehead not please you?"
5863
5864 He lifted up the sable waves of hair which lay horizontally over his
5865 brow, and showed a solid enough mass of intellectual organs, but an
5866 abrupt deficiency where the suave sign of benevolence should have risen.
5867
5868 "Now, ma'am, am I a fool?"
5869
5870 "Far from it, sir. You would, perhaps, think me rude if I inquired in
5871 return whether you are a philanthropist?"
5872
5873 "There again! Another stick of the penknife, when she pretended to pat
5874 my head: and that is because I said I did not like the society of
5875 children and old women (low be it spoken!). No, young lady, I am not a
5876 general philanthropist; but I bear a conscience;" and he pointed to the
5877 prominences which are said to indicate that faculty, and which,
5878 fortunately for him, were sufficiently conspicuous; giving, indeed, a
5879 marked breadth to the upper part of his head: "and, besides, I once had a
5880 kind of rude tenderness of heart. When I was as old as you, I was a
5881 feeling fellow enough, partial to the unfledged, unfostered, and unlucky;
5882 but Fortune has knocked me about since: she has even kneaded me with her
5883 knuckles, and now I flatter myself I am hard and tough as an India-rubber
5884 ball; pervious, though, through a chink or two still, and with one
5885 sentient point in the middle of the lump. Yes: does that leave hope for
5886 me?"
5887
5888 "Hope of what, sir?"
5889
5890 "Of my final re-transformation from India-rubber back to flesh?"
5891
5892 "Decidedly he has had too much wine," I thought; and I did not know what
5893 answer to make to his queer question: how could I tell whether he was
5894 capable of being re-transformed?
5895
5896 "You looked very much puzzled, Miss Eyre; and though you are not pretty
5897 any more than I am handsome, yet a puzzled air becomes you; besides, it
5898 is convenient, for it keeps those searching eyes of yours away from my
5899 physiognomy, and busies them with the worsted flowers of the rug; so
5900 puzzle on. Young lady, I am disposed to be gregarious and communicative
5901 to-night."
5902
5903 With this announcement he rose from his chair, and stood, leaning his arm
5904 on the marble mantelpiece: in that attitude his shape was seen plainly as
5905 well as his face; his unusual breadth of chest, disproportionate almost
5906 to his length of limb. I am sure most people would have thought him an
5907 ugly man; yet there was so much unconscious pride in his port; so much
5908 ease in his demeanour; such a look of complete indifference to his own
5909 external appearance; so haughty a reliance on the power of other
5910 qualities, intrinsic or adventitious, to atone for the lack of mere
5911 personal attractiveness, that, in looking at him, one inevitably shared
5912 the indifference, and, even in a blind, imperfect sense, put faith in the
5913 confidence.
5914
5915 "I am disposed to be gregarious and communicative to-night," he repeated,
5916 "and that is why I sent for you: the fire and the chandelier were not
5917 sufficient company for me; nor would Pilot have been, for none of these
5918 can talk. Adele is a degree better, but still far below the mark; Mrs.
5919 Fairfax ditto; you, I am persuaded, can suit me if you will: you puzzled
5920 me the first evening I invited you down here. I have almost forgotten
5921 you since: other ideas have driven yours from my head; but to-night I am
5922 resolved to be at ease; to dismiss what importunes, and recall what
5923 pleases. It would please me now to draw you out--to learn more of
5924 you--therefore speak."
5925
5926 Instead of speaking, I smiled; and not a very complacent or submissive
5927 smile either.
5928
5929 "Speak," he urged.
5930
5931 "What about, sir?"
5932
5933 "Whatever you like. I leave both the choice of subject and the manner of
5934 treating it entirely to yourself."
5935
5936 Accordingly I sat and said nothing: "If he expects me to talk for the
5937 mere sake of talking and showing off, he will find he has addressed
5938 himself to the wrong person," I thought.
5939
5940 "You are dumb, Miss Eyre."
5941
5942 I was dumb still. He bent his head a little towards me, and with a
5943 single hasty glance seemed to dive into my eyes.
5944
5945 "Stubborn?" he said, "and annoyed. Ah! it is consistent. I put my
5946 request in an absurd, almost insolent form. Miss Eyre, I beg your
5947 pardon. The fact is, once for all, I don't wish to treat you like an
5948 inferior: that is" (correcting himself), "I claim only such superiority
5949 as must result from twenty years' difference in age and a century's
5950 advance in experience. This is legitimate, _et j'y tiens_, as Adele
5951 would say; and it is by virtue of this superiority, and this alone, that
5952 I desire you to have the goodness to talk to me a little now, and divert
5953 my thoughts, which are galled with dwelling on one point--cankering as a
5954 rusty nail."
5955
5956 He had deigned an explanation, almost an apology, and I did not feel
5957 insensible to his condescension, and would not seem so.
5958
5959 "I am willing to amuse you, if I can, sir--quite willing; but I cannot
5960 introduce a topic, because how do I know what will interest you? Ask me
5961 questions, and I will do my best to answer them."
5962
5963 "Then, in the first place, do you agree with me that I have a right to be
5964 a little masterful, abrupt, perhaps exacting, sometimes, on the grounds I
5965 stated, namely, that I am old enough to be your father, and that I have
5966 battled through a varied experience with many men of many nations, and
5967 roamed over half the globe, while you have lived quietly with one set of
5968 people in one house?"
5969
5970 "Do as you please, sir."
5971
5972 "That is no answer; or rather it is a very irritating, because a very
5973 evasive one. Reply clearly."
5974
5975 "I don't think, sir, you have a right to command me, merely because you
5976 are older than I, or because you have seen more of the world than I have;
5977 your claim to superiority depends on the use you have made of your time
5978 and experience."
5979
5980 "Humph! Promptly spoken. But I won't allow that, seeing that it would
5981 never suit my case, as I have made an indifferent, not to say a bad, use
5982 of both advantages. Leaving superiority out of the question, then, you
5983 must still agree to receive my orders now and then, without being piqued
5984 or hurt by the tone of command. Will you?"
5985
5986 I smiled: I thought to myself Mr. Rochester _is_ peculiar--he seems to
5987 forget that he pays me 30 pounds per annum for receiving his orders.
5988
5989 "The smile is very well," said he, catching instantly the passing
5990 expression; "but speak too."
5991
5992 "I was thinking, sir, that very few masters would trouble themselves to
5993 inquire whether or not their paid subordinates were piqued and hurt by
5994 their orders."
5995
5996 "Paid subordinates! What! you are my paid subordinate, are you? Oh yes,
5997 I had forgotten the salary! Well then, on that mercenary ground, will
5998 you agree to let me hector a little?"
5999
6000 "No, sir, not on that ground; but, on the ground that you did forget it,
6001 and that you care whether or not a dependent is comfortable in his
6002 dependency, I agree heartily."
6003
6004 "And will you consent to dispense with a great many conventional forms
6005 and phrases, without thinking that the omission arises from insolence?"
6006
6007 "I am sure, sir, I should never mistake informality for insolence: one I
6008 rather like, the other nothing free-born would submit to, even for a
6009 salary."
6010
6011 "Humbug! Most things free-born will submit to anything for a salary;
6012 therefore, keep to yourself, and don't venture on generalities of which
6013 you are intensely ignorant. However, I mentally shake hands with you for
6014 your answer, despite its inaccuracy; and as much for the manner in which
6015 it was said, as for the substance of the speech; the manner was frank and
6016 sincere; one does not often see such a manner: no, on the contrary,
6017 affectation, or coldness, or stupid, coarse-minded misapprehension of
6018 one's meaning are the usual rewards of candour. Not three in three
6019 thousand raw school-girl-governesses would have answered me as you have
6020 just done. But I don't mean to flatter you: if you are cast in a
6021 different mould to the majority, it is no merit of yours: Nature did it.
6022 And then, after all, I go too fast in my conclusions: for what I yet
6023 know, you may be no better than the rest; you may have intolerable
6024 defects to counterbalance your few good points."
6025
6026 "And so may you," I thought. My eye met his as the idea crossed my mind:
6027 he seemed to read the glance, answering as if its import had been spoken
6028 as well as imagined--
6029
6030 "Yes, yes, you are right," said he; "I have plenty of faults of my own: I
6031 know it, and I don't wish to palliate them, I assure you. God wot I need
6032 not be too severe about others; I have a past existence, a series of
6033 deeds, a colour of life to contemplate within my own breast, which might
6034 well call my sneers and censures from my neighbours to myself. I
6035 started, or rather (for like other defaulters, I like to lay half the
6036 blame on ill fortune and adverse circumstances) was thrust on to a wrong
6037 tack at the age of one-and-twenty, and have never recovered the right
6038 course since: but I might have been very different; I might have been as
6039 good as you--wiser--almost as stainless. I envy you your peace of mind,
6040 your clean conscience, your unpolluted memory. Little girl, a memory
6041 without blot or contamination must be an exquisite treasure--an
6042 inexhaustible source of pure refreshment: is it not?"
6043
6044 "How was your memory when you were eighteen, sir?"
6045
6046 "All right then; limpid, salubrious: no gush of bilge water had turned it
6047 to fetid puddle. I was your equal at eighteen--quite your equal. Nature
6048 meant me to be, on the whole, a good man, Miss Eyre; one of the better
6049 kind, and you see I am not so. You would say you don't see it; at least
6050 I flatter myself I read as much in your eye (beware, by-the-bye, what you
6051 express with that organ; I am quick at interpreting its language). Then
6052 take my word for it,--I am not a villain: you are not to suppose that--not
6053 to attribute to me any such bad eminence; but, owing, I verily believe,
6054 rather to circumstances than to my natural bent, I am a trite commonplace
6055 sinner, hackneyed in all the poor petty dissipations with which the rich
6056 and worthless try to put on life. Do you wonder that I avow this to you?
6057 Know, that in the course of your future life you will often find yourself
6058 elected the involuntary confidant of your acquaintances' secrets: people
6059 will instinctively find out, as I have done, that it is not your forte to
6060 tell of yourself, but to listen while others talk of themselves; they
6061 will feel, too, that you listen with no malevolent scorn of their
6062 indiscretion, but with a kind of innate sympathy; not the less comforting
6063 and encouraging because it is very unobtrusive in its manifestations."
6064
6065 "How do you know?--how can you guess all this, sir?"
6066
6067 "I know it well; therefore I proceed almost as freely as if I were
6068 writing my thoughts in a diary. You would say, I should have been
6069 superior to circumstances; so I should--so I should; but you see I was
6070 not. When fate wronged me, I had not the wisdom to remain cool: I turned
6071 desperate; then I degenerated. Now, when any vicious simpleton excites
6072 my disgust by his paltry ribaldry, I cannot flatter myself that I am
6073 better than he: I am forced to confess that he and I are on a level. I
6074 wish I had stood firm--God knows I do! Dread remorse when you are
6075 tempted to err, Miss Eyre; remorse is the poison of life."
6076
6077 "Repentance is said to be its cure, sir."
6078
6079 "It is not its cure. Reformation may be its cure; and I could reform--I
6080 have strength yet for that--if--but where is the use of thinking of it,
6081 hampered, burdened, cursed as I am? Besides, since happiness is
6082 irrevocably denied me, I have a right to get pleasure out of life: and I
6083 _will_ get it, cost what it may."
6084
6085 "Then you will degenerate still more, sir."
6086
6087 "Possibly: yet why should I, if I can get sweet, fresh pleasure? And I
6088 may get it as sweet and fresh as the wild honey the bee gathers on the
6089 moor."
6090
6091 "It will sting--it will taste bitter, sir."
6092
6093 "How do you know?--you never tried it. How very serious--how very solemn
6094 you look: and you are as ignorant of the matter as this cameo head"
6095 (taking one from the mantelpiece). "You have no right to preach to me,
6096 you neophyte, that have not passed the porch of life, and are absolutely
6097 unacquainted with its mysteries."
6098
6099 "I only remind you of your own words, sir: you said error brought
6100 remorse, and you pronounced remorse the poison of existence."
6101
6102 "And who talks of error now? I scarcely think the notion that flittered
6103 across my brain was an error. I believe it was an inspiration rather
6104 than a temptation: it was very genial, very soothing--I know that. Here
6105 it comes again! It is no devil, I assure you; or if it be, it has put on
6106 the robes of an angel of light. I think I must admit so fair a guest
6107 when it asks entrance to my heart."
6108
6109 "Distrust it, sir; it is not a true angel."
6110
6111 "Once more, how do you know? By what instinct do you pretend to
6112 distinguish between a fallen seraph of the abyss and a messenger from the
6113 eternal throne--between a guide and a seducer?"
6114
6115 "I judged by your countenance, sir, which was troubled when you said the
6116 suggestion had returned upon you. I feel sure it will work you more
6117 misery if you listen to it."
6118
6119 "Not at all--it bears the most gracious message in the world: for the
6120 rest, you are not my conscience-keeper, so don't make yourself uneasy.
6121 Here, come in, bonny wanderer!"
6122
6123 He said this as if he spoke to a vision, viewless to any eye but his own;
6124 then, folding his arms, which he had half extended, on his chest, he
6125 seemed to enclose in their embrace the invisible being.
6126
6127 "Now," he continued, again addressing me, "I have received the pilgrim--a
6128 disguised deity, as I verily believe. Already it has done me good: my
6129 heart was a sort of charnel; it will now be a shrine."
6130
6131 "To speak truth, sir, I don't understand you at all: I cannot keep up the
6132 conversation, because it has got out of my depth. Only one thing, I
6133 know: you said you were not as good as you should like to be, and that
6134 you regretted your own imperfection;--one thing I can comprehend: you
6135 intimated that to have a sullied memory was a perpetual bane. It seems
6136 to me, that if you tried hard, you would in time find it possible to
6137 become what you yourself would approve; and that if from this day you
6138 began with resolution to correct your thoughts and actions, you would in
6139 a few years have laid up a new and stainless store of recollections, to
6140 which you might revert with pleasure."
6141
6142 "Justly thought; rightly said, Miss Eyre; and, at this moment, I am
6143 paving hell with energy."
6144
6145 "Sir?"
6146
6147 "I am laying down good intentions, which I believe durable as flint.
6148 Certainly, my associates and pursuits shall be other than they have
6149 been."
6150
6151 "And better?"
6152
6153 "And better--so much better as pure ore is than foul dross. You seem to
6154 doubt me; I don't doubt myself: I know what my aim is, what my motives
6155 are; and at this moment I pass a law, unalterable as that of the Medes
6156 and Persians, that both are right."
6157
6158 "They cannot be, sir, if they require a new statute to legalise them."
6159
6160 "They are, Miss Eyre, though they absolutely require a new statute:
6161 unheard-of combinations of circumstances demand unheard-of rules."
6162
6163 "That sounds a dangerous maxim, sir; because one can see at once that it
6164 is liable to abuse."
6165
6166 "Sententious sage! so it is: but I swear by my household gods not to
6167 abuse it."
6168
6169 "You are human and fallible."
6170
6171 "I am: so are you--what then?"
6172
6173 "The human and fallible should not arrogate a power with which the divine
6174 and perfect alone can be safely intrusted."
6175
6176 "What power?"
6177
6178 "That of saying of any strange, unsanctioned line of action,--'Let it be
6179 right.'"
6180
6181 "'Let it be right'--the very words: you have pronounced them."
6182
6183 "_May_ it be right then," I said, as I rose, deeming it useless to
6184 continue a discourse which was all darkness to me; and, besides, sensible
6185 that the character of my interlocutor was beyond my penetration; at
6186 least, beyond its present reach; and feeling the uncertainty, the vague
6187 sense of insecurity, which accompanies a conviction of ignorance.
6188
6189 "Where are you going?"
6190
6191 "To put Adele to bed: it is past her bedtime."
6192
6193 "You are afraid of me, because I talk like a Sphynx."
6194
6195 "Your language is enigmatical, sir: but though I am bewildered, I am
6196 certainly not afraid."
6197
6198 "You _are_ afraid--your self-love dreads a blunder."
6199
6200 "In that sense I do feel apprehensive--I have no wish to talk nonsense."
6201
6202 "If you did, it would be in such a grave, quiet manner, I should mistake
6203 it for sense. Do you never laugh, Miss Eyre? Don't trouble yourself to
6204 answer--I see you laugh rarely; but you can laugh very merrily: believe
6205 me, you are not naturally austere, any more than I am naturally vicious.
6206 The Lowood constraint still clings to you somewhat; controlling your
6207 features, muffling your voice, and restricting your limbs; and you fear
6208 in the presence of a man and a brother--or father, or master, or what you
6209 will--to smile too gaily, speak too freely, or move too quickly: but, in
6210 time, I think you will learn to be natural with me, as I find it
6211 impossible to be conventional with you; and then your looks and movements
6212 will have more vivacity and variety than they dare offer now. I see at
6213 intervals the glance of a curious sort of bird through the close-set bars
6214 of a cage: a vivid, restless, resolute captive is there; were it but
6215 free, it would soar cloud-high. You are still bent on going?"
6216
6217 "It has struck nine, sir."
6218
6219 "Never mind,--wait a minute: Adele is not ready to go to bed yet. My
6220 position, Miss Eyre, with my back to the fire, and my face to the room,
6221 favours observation. While talking to you, I have also occasionally
6222 watched Adele (I have my own reasons for thinking her a curious
6223 study,--reasons that I may, nay, that I shall, impart to you some day).
6224 She pulled out of her box, about ten minutes ago, a little pink silk
6225 frock; rapture lit her face as she unfolded it; coquetry runs in her
6226 blood, blends with her brains, and seasons the marrow of her bones. 'Il
6227 faut que je l'essaie!' cried she, 'et a l'instant meme!' and she rushed
6228 out of the room. She is now with Sophie, undergoing a robing process: in
6229 a few minutes she will re-enter; and I know what I shall see,--a
6230 miniature of Celine Varens, as she used to appear on the boards at the
6231 rising of--But never mind that. However, my tenderest feelings are about
6232 to receive a shock: such is my presentiment; stay now, to see whether it
6233 will be realised."
6234
6235 Ere long, Adele's little foot was heard tripping across the hall. She
6236 entered, transformed as her guardian had predicted. A dress of
6237 rose-coloured satin, very short, and as full in the skirt as it could be
6238 gathered, replaced the brown frock she had previously worn; a wreath of
6239 rosebuds circled her forehead; her feet were dressed in silk stockings
6240 and small white satin sandals.
6241
6242 "Est-ce que ma robe va bien?" cried she, bounding forwards; "et mes
6243 souliers? et mes bas? Tenez, je crois que je vais danser!"
6244
6245 And spreading out her dress, she chasseed across the room till, having
6246 reached Mr. Rochester, she wheeled lightly round before him on tip-toe,
6247 then dropped on one knee at his feet, exclaiming--
6248
6249 "Monsieur, je vous remercie mille fois de votre bonte;" then rising, she
6250 added, "C'est comme cela que maman faisait, n'est-ce pas, monsieur?"
6251
6252 "Pre-cise-ly!" was the answer; "and, 'comme cela,' she charmed my English
6253 gold out of my British breeches' pocket. I have been green, too, Miss
6254 Eyre,--ay, grass green: not a more vernal tint freshens you now than once
6255 freshened me. My Spring is gone, however, but it has left me that French
6256 floweret on my hands, which, in some moods, I would fain be rid of. Not
6257 valuing now the root whence it sprang; having found that it was of a sort
6258 which nothing but gold dust could manure, I have but half a liking to the
6259 blossom, especially when it looks so artificial as just now. I keep it
6260 and rear it rather on the Roman Catholic principle of expiating numerous
6261 sins, great or small, by one good work. I'll explain all this some day.
6262 Good-night."
6263
6264
6265
6266
6267 CHAPTER XV
6268
6269
6270 Mr. Rochester did, on a future occasion, explain it. It was one
6271 afternoon, when he chanced to meet me and Adele in the grounds: and while
6272 she played with Pilot and her shuttlecock, he asked me to walk up and
6273 down a long beech avenue within sight of her.
6274
6275 He then said that she was the daughter of a French opera-dancer, Celine
6276 Varens, towards whom he had once cherished what he called a "_grande
6277 passion_." This passion Celine had professed to return with even
6278 superior ardour. He thought himself her idol, ugly as he was: he
6279 believed, as he said, that she preferred his "_taille d'athlete_" to the
6280 elegance of the Apollo Belvidere.
6281
6282 "And, Miss Eyre, so much was I flattered by this preference of the Gallic
6283 sylph for her British gnome, that I installed her in an hotel; gave her a
6284 complete establishment of servants, a carriage, cashmeres, diamonds,
6285 dentelles, &c. In short, I began the process of ruining myself in the
6286 received style, like any other spoony. I had not, it seems, the
6287 originality to chalk out a new road to shame and destruction, but trode
6288 the old track with stupid exactness not to deviate an inch from the
6289 beaten centre. I had--as I deserved to have--the fate of all other
6290 spoonies. Happening to call one evening when Celine did not expect me, I
6291 found her out; but it was a warm night, and I was tired with strolling
6292 through Paris, so I sat down in her boudoir; happy to breathe the air
6293 consecrated so lately by her presence. No,--I exaggerate; I never
6294 thought there was any consecrating virtue about her: it was rather a sort
6295 of pastille perfume she had left; a scent of musk and amber, than an
6296 odour of sanctity. I was just beginning to stifle with the fumes of
6297 conservatory flowers and sprinkled essences, when I bethought myself to
6298 open the window and step out on to the balcony. It was moonlight and
6299 gaslight besides, and very still and serene. The balcony was furnished
6300 with a chair or two; I sat down, and took out a cigar,--I will take one
6301 now, if you will excuse me."
6302
6303 Here ensued a pause, filled up by the producing and lighting of a cigar;
6304 having placed it to his lips and breathed a trail of Havannah incense on
6305 the freezing and sunless air, he went on--
6306
6307 "I liked bonbons too in those days, Miss Eyre, and I was
6308 _croquant_--(overlook the barbarism)--_croquant_ chocolate comfits, and
6309 smoking alternately, watching meantime the equipages that rolled along
6310 the fashionable streets towards the neighbouring opera-house, when in an
6311 elegant close carriage drawn by a beautiful pair of English horses, and
6312 distinctly seen in the brilliant city-night, I recognised the 'voiture' I
6313 had given Celine. She was returning: of course my heart thumped with
6314 impatience against the iron rails I leant upon. The carriage stopped, as
6315 I had expected, at the hotel door; my flame (that is the very word for an
6316 opera inamorata) alighted: though muffed in a cloak--an unnecessary
6317 encumbrance, by-the-bye, on so warm a June evening--I knew her instantly
6318 by her little foot, seen peeping from the skirt of her dress, as she
6319 skipped from the carriage-step. Bending over the balcony, I was about to
6320 murmur 'Mon ange'--in a tone, of course, which should be audible to the
6321 ear of love alone--when a figure jumped from the carriage after her;
6322 cloaked also; but that was a spurred heel which had rung on the pavement,
6323 and that was a hatted head which now passed under the arched _porte
6324 cochere_ of the hotel.
6325
6326 "You never felt jealousy, did you, Miss Eyre? Of course not: I need not
6327 ask you; because you never felt love. You have both sentiments yet to
6328 experience: your soul sleeps; the shock is yet to be given which shall
6329 waken it. You think all existence lapses in as quiet a flow as that in
6330 which your youth has hitherto slid away. Floating on with closed eyes
6331 and muffled ears, you neither see the rocks bristling not far off in the
6332 bed of the flood, nor hear the breakers boil at their base. But I tell
6333 you--and you may mark my words--you will come some day to a craggy pass
6334 in the channel, where the whole of life's stream will be broken up into
6335 whirl and tumult, foam and noise: either you will be dashed to atoms on
6336 crag points, or lifted up and borne on by some master-wave into a calmer
6337 current--as I am now.
6338
6339 "I like this day; I like that sky of steel; I like the sternness and
6340 stillness of the world under this frost. I like Thornfield, its
6341 antiquity, its retirement, its old crow-trees and thorn-trees, its grey
6342 facade, and lines of dark windows reflecting that metal welkin: and yet
6343 how long have I abhorred the very thought of it, shunned it like a great
6344 plague-house? How I do still abhor--"
6345
6346 He ground his teeth and was silent: he arrested his step and struck his
6347 boot against the hard ground. Some hated thought seemed to have him in
6348 its grip, and to hold him so tightly that he could not advance.
6349
6350 We were ascending the avenue when he thus paused; the hall was before us.
6351 Lifting his eye to its battlements, he cast over them a glare such as I
6352 never saw before or since. Pain, shame, ire, impatience, disgust,
6353 detestation, seemed momentarily to hold a quivering conflict in the large
6354 pupil dilating under his ebon eyebrow. Wild was the wrestle which should
6355 be paramount; but another feeling rose and triumphed: something hard and
6356 cynical: self-willed and resolute: it settled his passion and petrified
6357 his countenance: he went on--
6358
6359 "During the moment I was silent, Miss Eyre, I was arranging a point with
6360 my destiny. She stood there, by that beech-trunk--a hag like one of
6361 those who appeared to Macbeth on the heath of Forres. 'You like
6362 Thornfield?' she said, lifting her finger; and then she wrote in the air
6363 a memento, which ran in lurid hieroglyphics all along the house-front,
6364 between the upper and lower row of windows, 'Like it if you can! Like it
6365 if you dare!'
6366
6367 "'I will like it,' said I; 'I dare like it;' and" (he subjoined moodily)
6368 "I will keep my word; I will break obstacles to happiness, to
6369 goodness--yes, goodness. I wish to be a better man than I have been,
6370 than I am; as Job's leviathan broke the spear, the dart, and the
6371 habergeon, hindrances which others count as iron and brass, I will esteem
6372 but straw and rotten wood."
6373
6374 Adele here ran before him with her shuttlecock. "Away!" he cried
6375 harshly; "keep at a distance, child; or go in to Sophie!" Continuing
6376 then to pursue his walk in silence, I ventured to recall him to the point
6377 whence he had abruptly diverged--
6378
6379 "Did you leave the balcony, sir," I asked, "when Mdlle. Varens entered?"
6380
6381 I almost expected a rebuff for this hardly well-timed question, but, on
6382 the contrary, waking out of his scowling abstraction, he turned his eyes
6383 towards me, and the shade seemed to clear off his brow. "Oh, I had
6384 forgotten Celine! Well, to resume. When I saw my charmer thus come in
6385 accompanied by a cavalier, I seemed to hear a hiss, and the green snake
6386 of jealousy, rising on undulating coils from the moonlit balcony, glided
6387 within my waistcoat, and ate its way in two minutes to my heart's core.
6388 Strange!" he exclaimed, suddenly starting again from the point. "Strange
6389 that I should choose you for the confidant of all this, young lady;
6390 passing strange that you should listen to me quietly, as if it were the
6391 most usual thing in the world for a man like me to tell stories of his
6392 opera-mistresses to a quaint, inexperienced girl like you! But the last
6393 singularity explains the first, as I intimated once before: you, with
6394 your gravity, considerateness, and caution were made to be the recipient
6395 of secrets. Besides, I know what sort of a mind I have placed in
6396 communication with my own: I know it is one not liable to take infection:
6397 it is a peculiar mind: it is a unique one. Happily I do not mean to harm
6398 it: but, if I did, it would not take harm from me. The more you and I
6399 converse, the better; for while I cannot blight you, you may refresh me."
6400 After this digression he proceeded--
6401
6402 "I remained in the balcony. 'They will come to her boudoir, no doubt,'
6403 thought I: 'let me prepare an ambush.' So putting my hand in through the
6404 open window, I drew the curtain over it, leaving only an opening through
6405 which I could take observations; then I closed the casement, all but a
6406 chink just wide enough to furnish an outlet to lovers' whispered vows:
6407 then I stole back to my chair; and as I resumed it the pair came in. My
6408 eye was quickly at the aperture. Celine's chamber-maid entered, lit a
6409 lamp, left it on the table, and withdrew. The couple were thus revealed
6410 to me clearly: both removed their cloaks, and there was 'the Varens,'
6411 shining in satin and jewels,--my gifts of course,--and there was her
6412 companion in an officer's uniform; and I knew him for a young roue of a
6413 vicomte--a brainless and vicious youth whom I had sometimes met in
6414 society, and had never thought of hating because I despised him so
6415 absolutely. On recognising him, the fang of the snake Jealousy was
6416 instantly broken; because at the same moment my love for Celine sank
6417 under an extinguisher. A woman who could betray me for such a rival was
6418 not worth contending for; she deserved only scorn; less, however, than I,
6419 who had been her dupe.
6420
6421 "They began to talk; their conversation eased me completely: frivolous,
6422 mercenary, heartless, and senseless, it was rather calculated to weary
6423 than enrage a listener. A card of mine lay on the table; this being
6424 perceived, brought my name under discussion. Neither of them possessed
6425 energy or wit to belabour me soundly, but they insulted me as coarsely as
6426 they could in their little way: especially Celine, who even waxed rather
6427 brilliant on my personal defects--deformities she termed them. Now it
6428 had been her custom to launch out into fervent admiration of what she
6429 called my '_beaute male_:' wherein she differed diametrically from you,
6430 who told me point-blank, at the second interview, that you did not think
6431 me handsome. The contrast struck me at the time and--"
6432
6433 Adele here came running up again.
6434
6435 "Monsieur, John has just been to say that your agent has called and
6436 wishes to see you."
6437
6438 "Ah! in that case I must abridge. Opening the window, I walked in upon
6439 them; liberated Celine from my protection; gave her notice to vacate her
6440 hotel; offered her a purse for immediate exigencies; disregarded screams,
6441 hysterics, prayers, protestations, convulsions; made an appointment with
6442 the vicomte for a meeting at the Bois de Boulogne. Next morning I had
6443 the pleasure of encountering him; left a bullet in one of his poor
6444 etiolated arms, feeble as the wing of a chicken in the pip, and then
6445 thought I had done with the whole crew. But unluckily the Varens, six
6446 months before, had given me this filette Adele, who, she affirmed, was my
6447 daughter; and perhaps she may be, though I see no proofs of such grim
6448 paternity written in her countenance: Pilot is more like me than she.
6449 Some years after I had broken with the mother, she abandoned her child,
6450 and ran away to Italy with a musician or singer. I acknowledged no
6451 natural claim on Adele's part to be supported by me, nor do I now
6452 acknowledge any, for I am not her father; but hearing that she was quite
6453 destitute, I e'en took the poor thing out of the slime and mud of Paris,
6454 and transplanted it here, to grow up clean in the wholesome soil of an
6455 English country garden. Mrs. Fairfax found you to train it; but now you
6456 know that it is the illegitimate offspring of a French opera-girl, you
6457 will perhaps think differently of your post and protegee: you will be
6458 coming to me some day with notice that you have found another place--that
6459 you beg me to look out for a new governess, &c.--Eh?"
6460
6461 "No: Adele is not answerable for either her mother's faults or yours: I
6462 have a regard for her; and now that I know she is, in a sense,
6463 parentless--forsaken by her mother and disowned by you, sir--I shall
6464 cling closer to her than before. How could I possibly prefer the spoilt
6465 pet of a wealthy family, who would hate her governess as a nuisance, to a
6466 lonely little orphan, who leans towards her as a friend?"
6467
6468 "Oh, that is the light in which you view it! Well, I must go in now; and
6469 you too: it darkens."
6470
6471 But I stayed out a few minutes longer with Adele and Pilot--ran a race
6472 with her, and played a game of battledore and shuttlecock. When we went
6473 in, and I had removed her bonnet and coat, I took her on my knee; kept
6474 her there an hour, allowing her to prattle as she liked: not rebuking
6475 even some little freedoms and trivialities into which she was apt to
6476 stray when much noticed, and which betrayed in her a superficiality of
6477 character, inherited probably from her mother, hardly congenial to an
6478 English mind. Still she had her merits; and I was disposed to appreciate
6479 all that was good in her to the utmost. I sought in her countenance and
6480 features a likeness to Mr. Rochester, but found none: no trait, no turn
6481 of expression announced relationship. It was a pity: if she could but
6482 have been proved to resemble him, he would have thought more of her.
6483
6484 It was not till after I had withdrawn to my own chamber for the night,
6485 that I steadily reviewed the tale Mr. Rochester had told me. As he had
6486 said, there was probably nothing at all extraordinary in the substance of
6487 the narrative itself: a wealthy Englishman's passion for a French dancer,
6488 and her treachery to him, were every-day matters enough, no doubt, in
6489 society; but there was something decidedly strange in the paroxysm of
6490 emotion which had suddenly seized him when he was in the act of
6491 expressing the present contentment of his mood, and his newly revived
6492 pleasure in the old hall and its environs. I meditated wonderingly on
6493 this incident; but gradually quitting it, as I found it for the present
6494 inexplicable, I turned to the consideration of my master's manner to
6495 myself. The confidence he had thought fit to repose in me seemed a
6496 tribute to my discretion: I regarded and accepted it as such. His
6497 deportment had now for some weeks been more uniform towards me than at
6498 the first. I never seemed in his way; he did not take fits of chilling
6499 hauteur: when he met me unexpectedly, the encounter seemed welcome; he
6500 had always a word and sometimes a smile for me: when summoned by formal
6501 invitation to his presence, I was honoured by a cordiality of reception
6502 that made me feel I really possessed the power to amuse him, and that
6503 these evening conferences were sought as much for his pleasure as for my
6504 benefit.
6505
6506 I, indeed, talked comparatively little, but I heard him talk with relish.
6507 It was his nature to be communicative; he liked to open to a mind
6508 unacquainted with the world glimpses of its scenes and ways (I do not
6509 mean its corrupt scenes and wicked ways, but such as derived their
6510 interest from the great scale on which they were acted, the strange
6511 novelty by which they were characterised); and I had a keen delight in
6512 receiving the new ideas he offered, in imagining the new pictures he
6513 portrayed, and following him in thought through the new regions he
6514 disclosed, never startled or troubled by one noxious allusion.
6515
6516 The ease of his manner freed me from painful restraint: the friendly
6517 frankness, as correct as cordial, with which he treated me, drew me to
6518 him. I felt at times as if he were my relation rather than my master:
6519 yet he was imperious sometimes still; but I did not mind that; I saw it
6520 was his way. So happy, so gratified did I become with this new interest
6521 added to life, that I ceased to pine after kindred: my thin
6522 crescent-destiny seemed to enlarge; the blanks of existence were filled
6523 up; my bodily health improved; I gathered flesh and strength.
6524
6525 And was Mr. Rochester now ugly in my eyes? No, reader: gratitude, and
6526 many associations, all pleasurable and genial, made his face the object I
6527 best liked to see; his presence in a room was more cheering than the
6528 brightest fire. Yet I had not forgotten his faults; indeed, I could not,
6529 for he brought them frequently before me. He was proud, sardonic, harsh
6530 to inferiority of every description: in my secret soul I knew that his
6531 great kindness to me was balanced by unjust severity to many others. He
6532 was moody, too; unaccountably so; I more than once, when sent for to read
6533 to him, found him sitting in his library alone, with his head bent on his
6534 folded arms; and, when he looked up, a morose, almost a malignant, scowl
6535 blackened his features. But I believed that his moodiness, his
6536 harshness, and his former faults of morality (I say _former_, for now he
6537 seemed corrected of them) had their source in some cruel cross of fate. I
6538 believed he was naturally a man of better tendencies, higher principles,
6539 and purer tastes than such as circumstances had developed, education
6540 instilled, or destiny encouraged. I thought there were excellent
6541 materials in him; though for the present they hung together somewhat
6542 spoiled and tangled. I cannot deny that I grieved for his grief,
6543 whatever that was, and would have given much to assuage it.
6544
6545 Though I had now extinguished my candle and was laid down in bed, I could
6546 not sleep for thinking of his look when he paused in the avenue, and told
6547 how his destiny had risen up before him, and dared him to be happy at
6548 Thornfield.
6549
6550 "Why not?" I asked myself. "What alienates him from the house? Will he
6551 leave it again soon? Mrs. Fairfax said he seldom stayed here longer than
6552 a fortnight at a time; and he has now been resident eight weeks. If he
6553 does go, the change will be doleful. Suppose he should be absent spring,
6554 summer, and autumn: how joyless sunshine and fine days will seem!"
6555
6556 I hardly know whether I had slept or not after this musing; at any rate,
6557 I started wide awake on hearing a vague murmur, peculiar and lugubrious,
6558 which sounded, I thought, just above me. I wished I had kept my candle
6559 burning: the night was drearily dark; my spirits were depressed. I rose
6560 and sat up in bed, listening. The sound was hushed.
6561
6562 I tried again to sleep; but my heart beat anxiously: my inward
6563 tranquillity was broken. The clock, far down in the hall, struck two.
6564 Just then it seemed my chamber-door was touched; as if fingers had swept
6565 the panels in groping a way along the dark gallery outside. I said, "Who
6566 is there?" Nothing answered. I was chilled with fear.
6567
6568 All at once I remembered that it might be Pilot, who, when the kitchen-
6569 door chanced to be left open, not unfrequently found his way up to the
6570 threshold of Mr. Rochester's chamber: I had seen him lying there myself
6571 in the mornings. The idea calmed me somewhat: I lay down. Silence
6572 composes the nerves; and as an unbroken hush now reigned again through
6573 the whole house, I began to feel the return of slumber. But it was not
6574 fated that I should sleep that night. A dream had scarcely approached my
6575 ear, when it fled affrighted, scared by a marrow-freezing incident
6576 enough.
6577
6578 This was a demoniac laugh--low, suppressed, and deep--uttered, as it
6579 seemed, at the very keyhole of my chamber door. The head of my bed was
6580 near the door, and I thought at first the goblin-laugher stood at my
6581 bedside--or rather, crouched by my pillow: but I rose, looked round, and
6582 could see nothing; while, as I still gazed, the unnatural sound was
6583 reiterated: and I knew it came from behind the panels. My first impulse
6584 was to rise and fasten the bolt; my next, again to cry out, "Who is
6585 there?"
6586
6587 Something gurgled and moaned. Ere long, steps retreated up the gallery
6588 towards the third-storey staircase: a door had lately been made to shut
6589 in that staircase; I heard it open and close, and all was still.
6590
6591 "Was that Grace Poole? and is she possessed with a devil?" thought I.
6592 Impossible now to remain longer by myself: I must go to Mrs. Fairfax. I
6593 hurried on my frock and a shawl; I withdrew the bolt and opened the door
6594 with a trembling hand. There was a candle burning just outside, and on
6595 the matting in the gallery. I was surprised at this circumstance: but
6596 still more was I amazed to perceive the air quite dim, as if filled with
6597 smoke; and, while looking to the right hand and left, to find whence
6598 these blue wreaths issued, I became further aware of a strong smell of
6599 burning.
6600
6601 Something creaked: it was a door ajar; and that door was Mr. Rochester's,
6602 and the smoke rushed in a cloud from thence. I thought no more of Mrs.
6603 Fairfax; I thought no more of Grace Poole, or the laugh: in an instant, I
6604 was within the chamber. Tongues of flame darted round the bed: the
6605 curtains were on fire. In the midst of blaze and vapour, Mr. Rochester
6606 lay stretched motionless, in deep sleep.
6607
6608 "Wake! wake!" I cried. I shook him, but he only murmured and turned: the
6609 smoke had stupefied him. Not a moment could be lost: the very sheets
6610 were kindling, I rushed to his basin and ewer; fortunately, one was wide
6611 and the other deep, and both were filled with water. I heaved them up,
6612 deluged the bed and its occupant, flew back to my own room, brought my
6613 own water-jug, baptized the couch afresh, and, by God's aid, succeeded in
6614 extinguishing the flames which were devouring it.
6615
6616 The hiss of the quenched element, the breakage of a pitcher which I flung
6617 from my hand when I had emptied it, and, above all, the splash of the
6618 shower-bath I had liberally bestowed, roused Mr. Rochester at last.
6619 Though it was now dark, I knew he was awake; because I heard him
6620 fulminating strange anathemas at finding himself lying in a pool of
6621 water.
6622
6623 "Is there a flood?" he cried.
6624
6625 "No, sir," I answered; "but there has been a fire: get up, do; you are
6626 quenched now; I will fetch you a candle."
6627
6628 "In the name of all the elves in Christendom, is that Jane Eyre?" he
6629 demanded. "What have you done with me, witch, sorceress? Who is in the
6630 room besides you? Have you plotted to drown me?"
6631
6632 "I will fetch you a candle, sir; and, in Heaven's name, get up. Somebody
6633 has plotted something: you cannot too soon find out who and what it is."
6634
6635 "There! I am up now; but at your peril you fetch a candle yet: wait two
6636 minutes till I get into some dry garments, if any dry there be--yes, here
6637 is my dressing-gown. Now run!"
6638
6639 I did run; I brought the candle which still remained in the gallery. He
6640 took it from my hand, held it up, and surveyed the bed, all blackened and
6641 scorched, the sheets drenched, the carpet round swimming in water.
6642
6643 "What is it? and who did it?" he asked. I briefly related to him what
6644 had transpired: the strange laugh I had heard in the gallery: the step
6645 ascending to the third storey; the smoke,--the smell of fire which had
6646 conducted me to his room; in what state I had found matters there, and
6647 how I had deluged him with all the water I could lay hands on.
6648
6649 {"What is it and who did it?" he asked: p140.jpg}
6650
6651 He listened very gravely; his face, as I went on, expressed more concern
6652 than astonishment; he did not immediately speak when I had concluded.
6653
6654 "Shall I call Mrs. Fairfax?" I asked.
6655
6656 "Mrs. Fairfax? No; what the deuce would you call her for? What can she
6657 do? Let her sleep unmolested."
6658
6659 "Then I will fetch Leah, and wake John and his wife."
6660
6661 "Not at all: just be still. You have a shawl on. If you are not warm
6662 enough, you may take my cloak yonder; wrap it about you, and sit down in
6663 the arm-chair: there,--I will put it on. Now place your feet on the
6664 stool, to keep them out of the wet. I am going to leave you a few
6665 minutes. I shall take the candle. Remain where you are till I return;
6666 be as still as a mouse. I must pay a visit to the second storey. Don't
6667 move, remember, or call any one."
6668
6669 He went: I watched the light withdraw. He passed up the gallery very
6670 softly, unclosed the staircase door with as little noise as possible,
6671 shut it after him, and the last ray vanished. I was left in total
6672 darkness. I listened for some noise, but heard nothing. A very long
6673 time elapsed. I grew weary: it was cold, in spite of the cloak; and then
6674 I did not see the use of staying, as I was not to rouse the house. I was
6675 on the point of risking Mr. Rochester's displeasure by disobeying his
6676 orders, when the light once more gleamed dimly on the gallery wall, and I
6677 heard his unshod feet tread the matting. "I hope it is he," thought I,
6678 "and not something worse."
6679
6680 He re-entered, pale and very gloomy. "I have found it all out," said he,
6681 setting his candle down on the washstand; "it is as I thought."
6682
6683 "How, sir?"
6684
6685 He made no reply, but stood with his arms folded, looking on the ground.
6686 At the end of a few minutes he inquired in rather a peculiar tone--
6687
6688 "I forget whether you said you saw anything when you opened your chamber
6689 door."
6690
6691 "No, sir, only the candlestick on the ground."
6692
6693 "But you heard an odd laugh? You have heard that laugh before, I should
6694 think, or something like it?"
6695
6696 "Yes, sir: there is a woman who sews here, called Grace Poole,--she
6697 laughs in that way. She is a singular person."
6698
6699 "Just so. Grace Poole--you have guessed it. She is, as you say,
6700 singular--very. Well, I shall reflect on the subject. Meantime, I am
6701 glad that you are the only person, besides myself, acquainted with the
6702 precise details of to-night's incident. You are no talking fool: say
6703 nothing about it. I will account for this state of affairs" (pointing to
6704 the bed): "and now return to your own room. I shall do very well on the
6705 sofa in the library for the rest of the night. It is near four:--in two
6706 hours the servants will be up."
6707
6708 "Good-night, then, sir," said I, departing.
6709
6710 He seemed surprised--very inconsistently so, as he had just told me to
6711 go.
6712
6713 "What!" he exclaimed, "are you quitting me already, and in that way?"
6714
6715 "You said I might go, sir."
6716
6717 "But not without taking leave; not without a word or two of
6718 acknowledgment and good-will: not, in short, in that brief, dry fashion.
6719 Why, you have saved my life!--snatched me from a horrible and
6720 excruciating death! and you walk past me as if we were mutual strangers!
6721 At least shake hands."
6722
6723 He held out his hand; I gave him mine: he took it first in one, them in
6724 both his own.
6725
6726 "You have saved my life: I have a pleasure in owing you so immense a
6727 debt. I cannot say more. Nothing else that has being would have been
6728 tolerable to me in the character of creditor for such an obligation: but
6729 you: it is different;--I feel your benefits no burden, Jane."
6730
6731 He paused; gazed at me: words almost visible trembled on his lips,--but
6732 his voice was checked.
6733
6734 "Good-night again, sir. There is no debt, benefit, burden, obligation,
6735 in the case."
6736
6737 "I knew," he continued, "you would do me good in some way, at some
6738 time;--I saw it in your eyes when I first beheld you: their expression
6739 and smile did not"--(again he stopped)--"did not" (he proceeded hastily)
6740 "strike delight to my very inmost heart so for nothing. People talk of
6741 natural sympathies; I have heard of good genii: there are grains of truth
6742 in the wildest fable. My cherished preserver, goodnight!"
6743
6744 Strange energy was in his voice, strange fire in his look.
6745
6746 "I am glad I happened to be awake," I said: and then I was going.
6747
6748 "What! you _will_ go?"
6749
6750 "I am cold, sir."
6751
6752 "Cold? Yes,--and standing in a pool! Go, then, Jane; go!" But he still
6753 retained my hand, and I could not free it. I bethought myself of an
6754 expedient.
6755
6756 "I think I hear Mrs. Fairfax move, sir," said I.
6757
6758 "Well, leave me:" he relaxed his fingers, and I was gone.
6759
6760 I regained my couch, but never thought of sleep. Till morning dawned I
6761 was tossed on a buoyant but unquiet sea, where billows of trouble rolled
6762 under surges of joy. I thought sometimes I saw beyond its wild waters a
6763 shore, sweet as the hills of Beulah; and now and then a freshening gale,
6764 wakened by hope, bore my spirit triumphantly towards the bourne: but I
6765 could not reach it, even in fancy--a counteracting breeze blew off land,
6766 and continually drove me back. Sense would resist delirium: judgment
6767 would warn passion. Too feverish to rest, I rose as soon as day dawned.
6768
6769
6770
6771
6772 CHAPTER XVI
6773
6774
6775 I both wished and feared to see Mr. Rochester on the day which followed
6776 this sleepless night: I wanted to hear his voice again, yet feared to
6777 meet his eye. During the early part of the morning, I momentarily
6778 expected his coming; he was not in the frequent habit of entering the
6779 schoolroom, but he did step in for a few minutes sometimes, and I had the
6780 impression that he was sure to visit it that day.
6781
6782 But the morning passed just as usual: nothing happened to interrupt the
6783 quiet course of Adele's studies; only soon after breakfast, I heard some
6784 bustle in the neighbourhood of Mr. Rochester's chamber, Mrs. Fairfax's
6785 voice, and Leah's, and the cook's--that is, John's wife--and even John's
6786 own gruff tones. There were exclamations of "What a mercy master was not
6787 burnt in his bed!" "It is always dangerous to keep a candle lit at
6788 night." "How providential that he had presence of mind to think of the
6789 water-jug!" "I wonder he waked nobody!" "It is to be hoped he will not
6790 take cold with sleeping on the library sofa," &c.
6791
6792 To much confabulation succeeded a sound of scrubbing and setting to
6793 rights; and when I passed the room, in going downstairs to dinner, I saw
6794 through the open door that all was again restored to complete order; only
6795 the bed was stripped of its hangings. Leah stood up in the window-seat,
6796 rubbing the panes of glass dimmed with smoke. I was about to address
6797 her, for I wished to know what account had been given of the affair: but,
6798 on advancing, I saw a second person in the chamber--a woman sitting on a
6799 chair by the bedside, and sewing rings to new curtains. That woman was
6800 no other than Grace Poole.
6801
6802 There she sat, staid and taciturn-looking, as usual, in her brown stuff
6803 gown, her check apron, white handkerchief, and cap. She was intent on
6804 her work, in which her whole thoughts seemed absorbed: on her hard
6805 forehead, and in her commonplace features, was nothing either of the
6806 paleness or desperation one would have expected to see marking the
6807 countenance of a woman who had attempted murder, and whose intended
6808 victim had followed her last night to her lair, and (as I believed),
6809 charged her with the crime she wished to perpetrate. I was
6810 amazed--confounded. She looked up, while I still gazed at her: no start,
6811 no increase or failure of colour betrayed emotion, consciousness of
6812 guilt, or fear of detection. She said "Good morning, Miss," in her usual
6813 phlegmatic and brief manner; and taking up another ring and more tape,
6814 went on with her sewing.
6815
6816 "I will put her to some test," thought I: "such absolute impenetrability
6817 is past comprehension."
6818
6819 "Good morning, Grace," I said. "Has anything happened here? I thought I
6820 heard the servants all talking together a while ago."
6821
6822 "Only master had been reading in his bed last night; he fell asleep with
6823 his candle lit, and the curtains got on fire; but, fortunately, he awoke
6824 before the bed-clothes or the wood-work caught, and contrived to quench
6825 the flames with the water in the ewer."
6826
6827 "A strange affair!" I said, in a low voice: then, looking at her
6828 fixedly--"Did Mr. Rochester wake nobody? Did no one hear him move?"
6829
6830 She again raised her eyes to me, and this time there was something of
6831 consciousness in their expression. She seemed to examine me warily; then
6832 she answered--
6833
6834 "The servants sleep so far off, you know, Miss, they would not be likely
6835 to hear. Mrs. Fairfax's room and yours are the nearest to master's; but
6836 Mrs. Fairfax said she heard nothing: when people get elderly, they often
6837 sleep heavy." She paused, and then added, with a sort of assumed
6838 indifference, but still in a marked and significant tone--"But you are
6839 young, Miss; and I should say a light sleeper: perhaps you may have heard
6840 a noise?"
6841
6842 "I did," said I, dropping my voice, so that Leah, who was still polishing
6843 the panes, could not hear me, "and at first I thought it was Pilot: but
6844 Pilot cannot laugh; and I am certain I heard a laugh, and a strange one."
6845
6846 She took a new needleful of thread, waxed it carefully, threaded her
6847 needle with a steady hand, and then observed, with perfect composure--
6848
6849 "It is hardly likely master would laugh, I should think, Miss, when he
6850 was in such danger: You must have been dreaming."
6851
6852 "I was not dreaming," I said, with some warmth, for her brazen coolness
6853 provoked me. Again she looked at me; and with the same scrutinising and
6854 conscious eye.
6855
6856 "Have you told master that you heard a laugh?" she inquired.
6857
6858 "I have not had the opportunity of speaking to him this morning."
6859
6860 "You did not think of opening your door and looking out into the
6861 gallery?" she further asked.
6862
6863 She appeared to be cross-questioning me, attempting to draw from me
6864 information unawares. The idea struck me that if she discovered I knew
6865 or suspected her guilt, she would be playing of some of her malignant
6866 pranks on me; I thought it advisable to be on my guard.
6867
6868 "On the contrary," said I, "I bolted my door."
6869
6870 "Then you are not in the habit of bolting your door every night before
6871 you get into bed?"
6872
6873 "Fiend! she wants to know my habits, that she may lay her plans
6874 accordingly!" Indignation again prevailed over prudence: I replied
6875 sharply, "Hitherto I have often omitted to fasten the bolt: I did not
6876 think it necessary. I was not aware any danger or annoyance was to be
6877 dreaded at Thornfield Hall: but in future" (and I laid marked stress on
6878 the words) "I shall take good care to make all secure before I venture to
6879 lie down."
6880
6881 "It will be wise so to do," was her answer: "this neighbourhood is as
6882 quiet as any I know, and I never heard of the hall being attempted by
6883 robbers since it was a house; though there are hundreds of pounds' worth
6884 of plate in the plate-closet, as is well known. And you see, for such a
6885 large house, there are very few servants, because master has never lived
6886 here much; and when he does come, being a bachelor, he needs little
6887 waiting on: but I always think it best to err on the safe side; a door is
6888 soon fastened, and it is as well to have a drawn bolt between one and any
6889 mischief that may be about. A deal of people, Miss, are for trusting all
6890 to Providence; but I say Providence will not dispense with the means,
6891 though He often blesses them when they are used discreetly." And here
6892 she closed her harangue: a long one for her, and uttered with the
6893 demureness of a Quakeress.
6894
6895 I still stood absolutely dumfoundered at what appeared to me her
6896 miraculous self-possession and most inscrutable hypocrisy, when the cook
6897 entered.
6898
6899 "Mrs. Poole," said she, addressing Grace, "the servants' dinner will soon
6900 be ready: will you come down?"
6901
6902 "No; just put my pint of porter and bit of pudding on a tray, and I'll
6903 carry it upstairs."
6904
6905 "You'll have some meat?"
6906
6907 "Just a morsel, and a taste of cheese, that's all."
6908
6909 "And the sago?"
6910
6911 "Never mind it at present: I shall be coming down before teatime: I'll
6912 make it myself."
6913
6914 The cook here turned to me, saying that Mrs. Fairfax was waiting for me:
6915 so I departed.
6916
6917 I hardly heard Mrs. Fairfax's account of the curtain conflagration during
6918 dinner, so much was I occupied in puzzling my brains over the enigmatical
6919 character of Grace Poole, and still more in pondering the problem of her
6920 position at Thornfield and questioning why she had not been given into
6921 custody that morning, or, at the very least, dismissed from her master's
6922 service. He had almost as much as declared his conviction of her
6923 criminality last night: what mysterious cause withheld him from accusing
6924 her? Why had he enjoined me, too, to secrecy? It was strange: a bold,
6925 vindictive, and haughty gentleman seemed somehow in the power of one of
6926 the meanest of his dependants; so much in her power, that even when she
6927 lifted her hand against his life, he dared not openly charge her with the
6928 attempt, much less punish her for it.
6929
6930 Had Grace been young and handsome, I should have been tempted to think
6931 that tenderer feelings than prudence or fear influenced Mr. Rochester in
6932 her behalf; but, hard-favoured and matronly as she was, the idea could
6933 not be admitted. "Yet," I reflected, "she has been young once; her youth
6934 would be contemporary with her master's: Mrs. Fairfax told me once, she
6935 had lived here many years. I don't think she can ever have been pretty;
6936 but, for aught I know, she may possess originality and strength of
6937 character to compensate for the want of personal advantages. Mr.
6938 Rochester is an amateur of the decided and eccentric: Grace is eccentric
6939 at least. What if a former caprice (a freak very possible to a nature so
6940 sudden and headstrong as his) has delivered him into her power, and she
6941 now exercises over his actions a secret influence, the result of his own
6942 indiscretion, which he cannot shake off, and dare not disregard?" But,
6943 having reached this point of conjecture, Mrs. Poole's square, flat
6944 figure, and uncomely, dry, even coarse face, recurred so distinctly to my
6945 mind's eye, that I thought, "No; impossible! my supposition cannot be
6946 correct. Yet," suggested the secret voice which talks to us in our own
6947 hearts, "you are not beautiful either, and perhaps Mr. Rochester approves
6948 you: at any rate, you have often felt as if he did; and last
6949 night--remember his words; remember his look; remember his voice!"
6950
6951 I well remembered all; language, glance, and tone seemed at the moment
6952 vividly renewed. I was now in the schoolroom; Adele was drawing; I bent
6953 over her and directed her pencil. She looked up with a sort of start.
6954
6955 "Qu' avez-vous, mademoiselle?" said she. "Vos doigts tremblent comme la
6956 feuille, et vos joues sont rouges: mais, rouges comme des cerises!"
6957
6958 "I am hot, Adele, with stooping!" She went on sketching; I went on
6959 thinking.
6960
6961 I hastened to drive from my mind the hateful notion I had been conceiving
6962 respecting Grace Poole; it disgusted me. I compared myself with her, and
6963 found we were different. Bessie Leaven had said I was quite a lady; and
6964 she spoke truth--I was a lady. And now I looked much better than I did
6965 when Bessie saw me; I had more colour and more flesh, more life, more
6966 vivacity, because I had brighter hopes and keener enjoyments.
6967
6968 "Evening approaches," said I, as I looked towards the window. "I have
6969 never heard Mr. Rochester's voice or step in the house to-day; but surely
6970 I shall see him before night: I feared the meeting in the morning; now I
6971 desire it, because expectation has been so long baffled that it is grown
6972 impatient."
6973
6974 When dusk actually closed, and when Adele left me to go and play in the
6975 nursery with Sophie, I did most keenly desire it. I listened for the
6976 bell to ring below; I listened for Leah coming up with a message; I
6977 fancied sometimes I heard Mr. Rochester's own tread, and I turned to the
6978 door, expecting it to open and admit him. The door remained shut;
6979 darkness only came in through the window. Still it was not late; he
6980 often sent for me at seven and eight o'clock, and it was yet but six.
6981 Surely I should not be wholly disappointed to-night, when I had so many
6982 things to say to him! I wanted again to introduce the subject of Grace
6983 Poole, and to hear what he would answer; I wanted to ask him plainly if
6984 he really believed it was she who had made last night's hideous attempt;
6985 and if so, why he kept her wickedness a secret. It little mattered
6986 whether my curiosity irritated him; I knew the pleasure of vexing and
6987 soothing him by turns; it was one I chiefly delighted in, and a sure
6988 instinct always prevented me from going too far; beyond the verge of
6989 provocation I never ventured; on the extreme brink I liked well to try my
6990 skill. Retaining every minute form of respect, every propriety of my
6991 station, I could still meet him in argument without fear or uneasy
6992 restraint; this suited both him and me.
6993
6994 A tread creaked on the stairs at last. Leah made her appearance; but it
6995 was only to intimate that tea was ready in Mrs. Fairfax's room. Thither
6996 I repaired, glad at least to go downstairs; for that brought me, I
6997 imagined, nearer to Mr. Rochester's presence.
6998
6999 "You must want your tea," said the good lady, as I joined her; "you ate
7000 so little at dinner. I am afraid," she continued, "you are not well to-
7001 day: you look flushed and feverish."
7002
7003 "Oh, quite well! I never felt better."
7004
7005 "Then you must prove it by evincing a good appetite; will you fill the
7006 teapot while I knit off this needle?" Having completed her task, she
7007 rose to draw down the blind, which she had hitherto kept up, by way, I
7008 suppose, of making the most of daylight, though dusk was now fast
7009 deepening into total obscurity.
7010
7011 "It is fair to-night," said she, as she looked through the panes, "though
7012 not starlight; Mr. Rochester has, on the whole, had a favourable day for
7013 his journey."
7014
7015 "Journey!--Is Mr. Rochester gone anywhere? I did not know he was out."
7016
7017 "Oh, he set off the moment he had breakfasted! He is gone to the Leas,
7018 Mr. Eshton's place, ten miles on the other side Millcote. I believe
7019 there is quite a party assembled there; Lord Ingram, Sir George Lynn,
7020 Colonel Dent, and others."
7021
7022 "Do you expect him back to-night?"
7023
7024 "No--nor to-morrow either; I should think he is very likely to stay a
7025 week or more: when these fine, fashionable people get together, they are
7026 so surrounded by elegance and gaiety, so well provided with all that can
7027 please and entertain, they are in no hurry to separate. Gentlemen
7028 especially are often in request on such occasions; and Mr. Rochester is
7029 so talented and so lively in society, that I believe he is a general
7030 favourite: the ladies are very fond of him; though you would not think
7031 his appearance calculated to recommend him particularly in their eyes:
7032 but I suppose his acquirements and abilities, perhaps his wealth and good
7033 blood, make amends for any little fault of look."
7034
7035 "Are there ladies at the Leas?"
7036
7037 "There are Mrs. Eshton and her three daughters--very elegant young ladies
7038 indeed; and there are the Honourable Blanche and Mary Ingram, most
7039 beautiful women, I suppose: indeed I have seen Blanche, six or seven
7040 years since, when she was a girl of eighteen. She came here to a
7041 Christmas ball and party Mr. Rochester gave. You should have seen the
7042 dining-room that day--how richly it was decorated, how brilliantly lit
7043 up! I should think there were fifty ladies and gentlemen present--all of
7044 the first county families; and Miss Ingram was considered the belle of
7045 the evening."
7046
7047 "You saw her, you say, Mrs. Fairfax: what was she like?"
7048
7049 "Yes, I saw her. The dining-room doors were thrown open; and, as it was
7050 Christmas-time, the servants were allowed to assemble in the hall, to
7051 hear some of the ladies sing and play. Mr. Rochester would have me to
7052 come in, and I sat down in a quiet corner and watched them. I never saw
7053 a more splendid scene: the ladies were magnificently dressed; most of
7054 them--at least most of the younger ones--looked handsome; but Miss Ingram
7055 was certainly the queen."
7056
7057 "And what was she like?"
7058
7059 "Tall, fine bust, sloping shoulders; long, graceful neck: olive
7060 complexion, dark and clear; noble features; eyes rather like Mr.
7061 Rochester's: large and black, and as brilliant as her jewels. And then
7062 she had such a fine head of hair; raven-black and so becomingly arranged:
7063 a crown of thick plaits behind, and in front the longest, the glossiest
7064 curls I ever saw. She was dressed in pure white; an amber-coloured scarf
7065 was passed over her shoulder and across her breast, tied at the side, and
7066 descending in long, fringed ends below her knee. She wore an
7067 amber-coloured flower, too, in her hair: it contrasted well with the
7068 jetty mass of her curls."
7069
7070 "She was greatly admired, of course?"
7071
7072 "Yes, indeed: and not only for her beauty, but for her accomplishments.
7073 She was one of the ladies who sang: a gentleman accompanied her on the
7074 piano. She and Mr. Rochester sang a duet."
7075
7076 "Mr. Rochester? I was not aware he could sing."
7077
7078 "Oh! he has a fine bass voice, and an excellent taste for music."
7079
7080 "And Miss Ingram: what sort of a voice had she?"
7081
7082 "A very rich and powerful one: she sang delightfully; it was a treat to
7083 listen to her;--and she played afterwards. I am no judge of music, but
7084 Mr. Rochester is; and I heard him say her execution was remarkably good."
7085
7086 "And this beautiful and accomplished lady, she is not yet married?"
7087
7088 "It appears not: I fancy neither she nor her sister have very large
7089 fortunes. Old Lord Ingram's estates were chiefly entailed, and the
7090 eldest son came in for everything almost."
7091
7092 "But I wonder no wealthy nobleman or gentleman has taken a fancy to her:
7093 Mr. Rochester, for instance. He is rich, is he not?"
7094
7095 "Oh! yes. But you see there is a considerable difference in age: Mr.
7096 Rochester is nearly forty; she is but twenty-five."
7097
7098 "What of that? More unequal matches are made every day."
7099
7100 "True: yet I should scarcely fancy Mr. Rochester would entertain an idea
7101 of the sort. But you eat nothing: you have scarcely tasted since you
7102 began tea."
7103
7104 "No: I am too thirsty to eat. Will you let me have another cup?"
7105
7106 I was about again to revert to the probability of a union between Mr.
7107 Rochester and the beautiful Blanche; but Adele came in, and the
7108 conversation was turned into another channel.
7109
7110 When once more alone, I reviewed the information I had got; looked into
7111 my heart, examined its thoughts and feelings, and endeavoured to bring
7112 back with a strict hand such as had been straying through imagination's
7113 boundless and trackless waste, into the safe fold of common sense.
7114
7115 Arraigned at my own bar, Memory having given her evidence of the hopes,
7116 wishes, sentiments I had been cherishing since last night--of the general
7117 state of mind in which I had indulged for nearly a fortnight past; Reason
7118 having come forward and told, in her own quiet way a plain, unvarnished
7119 tale, showing how I had rejected the real, and rabidly devoured the
7120 ideal;--I pronounced judgment to this effect:--
7121
7122 That a greater fool than Jane Eyre had never breathed the breath of life;
7123 that a more fantastic idiot had never surfeited herself on sweet lies,
7124 and swallowed poison as if it were nectar.
7125
7126 "_You_," I said, "a favourite with Mr. Rochester? _You_ gifted with the
7127 power of pleasing him? _You_ of importance to him in any way? Go! your
7128 folly sickens me. And you have derived pleasure from occasional tokens
7129 of preference--equivocal tokens shown by a gentleman of family and a man
7130 of the world to a dependent and a novice. How dared you? Poor stupid
7131 dupe!--Could not even self-interest make you wiser? You repeated to
7132 yourself this morning the brief scene of last night?--Cover your face and
7133 be ashamed! He said something in praise of your eyes, did he? Blind
7134 puppy! Open their bleared lids and look on your own accursed
7135 senselessness! It does good to no woman to be flattered by her superior,
7136 who cannot possibly intend to marry her; and it is madness in all women
7137 to let a secret love kindle within them, which, if unreturned and
7138 unknown, must devour the life that feeds it; and, if discovered and
7139 responded to, must lead, _ignis-fatuus_-like, into miry wilds whence there
7140 is no extrication.
7141
7142 "Listen, then, Jane Eyre, to your sentence: to-morrow, place the glass
7143 before you, and draw in chalk your own picture, faithfully, without
7144 softening one defect; omit no harsh line, smooth away no displeasing
7145 irregularity; write under it, 'Portrait of a Governess, disconnected,
7146 poor, and plain.'
7147
7148 "Afterwards, take a piece of smooth ivory--you have one prepared in your
7149 drawing-box: take your palette, mix your freshest, finest, clearest
7150 tints; choose your most delicate camel-hair pencils; delineate carefully
7151 the loveliest face you can imagine; paint it in your softest shades and
7152 sweetest lines, according to the description given by Mrs. Fairfax of
7153 Blanche Ingram; remember the raven ringlets, the oriental eye;--What! you
7154 revert to Mr. Rochester as a model! Order! No snivel!--no sentiment!--no
7155 regret! I will endure only sense and resolution. Recall the august yet
7156 harmonious lineaments, the Grecian neck and bust; let the round and
7157 dazzling arm be visible, and the delicate hand; omit neither diamond ring
7158 nor gold bracelet; portray faithfully the attire, aerial lace and
7159 glistening satin, graceful scarf and golden rose; call it 'Blanche, an
7160 accomplished lady of rank.'
7161
7162 "Whenever, in future, you should chance to fancy Mr. Rochester thinks
7163 well of you, take out these two pictures and compare them: say, 'Mr.
7164 Rochester might probably win that noble lady's love, if he chose to
7165 strive for it; is it likely he would waste a serious thought on this
7166 indigent and insignificant plebeian?'"
7167
7168 "I'll do it," I resolved: and having framed this determination, I grew
7169 calm, and fell asleep.
7170
7171 I kept my word. An hour or two sufficed to sketch my own portrait in
7172 crayons; and in less than a fortnight I had completed an ivory miniature
7173 of an imaginary Blanche Ingram. It looked a lovely face enough, and when
7174 compared with the real head in chalk, the contrast was as great as self-
7175 control could desire. I derived benefit from the task: it had kept my
7176 head and hands employed, and had given force and fixedness to the new
7177 impressions I wished to stamp indelibly on my heart.
7178
7179 Ere long, I had reason to congratulate myself on the course of wholesome
7180 discipline to which I had thus forced my feelings to submit. Thanks to
7181 it, I was able to meet subsequent occurrences with a decent calm, which,
7182 had they found me unprepared, I should probably have been unequal to
7183 maintain, even externally.
7184
7185
7186
7187
7188 CHAPTER XVII
7189
7190
7191 A week passed, and no news arrived of Mr. Rochester: ten days, and still
7192 he did not come. Mrs. Fairfax said she should not be surprised if he
7193 were to go straight from the Leas to London, and thence to the Continent,
7194 and not show his face again at Thornfield for a year to come; he had not
7195 unfrequently quitted it in a manner quite as abrupt and unexpected. When
7196 I heard this, I was beginning to feel a strange chill and failing at the
7197 heart. I was actually permitting myself to experience a sickening sense
7198 of disappointment; but rallying my wits, and recollecting my principles,
7199 I at once called my sensations to order; and it was wonderful how I got
7200 over the temporary blunder--how I cleared up the mistake of supposing Mr.
7201 Rochester's movements a matter in which I had any cause to take a vital
7202 interest. Not that I humbled myself by a slavish notion of inferiority:
7203 on the contrary, I just said--
7204
7205 "You have nothing to do with the master of Thornfield, further than to
7206 receive the salary he gives you for teaching his protegee, and to be
7207 grateful for such respectful and kind treatment as, if you do your duty,
7208 you have a right to expect at his hands. Be sure that is the only tie he
7209 seriously acknowledges between you and him; so don't make him the object
7210 of your fine feelings, your raptures, agonies, and so forth. He is not
7211 of your order: keep to your caste, and be too self-respecting to lavish
7212 the love of the whole heart, soul, and strength, where such a gift is not
7213 wanted and would be despised."
7214
7215 I went on with my day's business tranquilly; but ever and anon vague
7216 suggestions kept wandering across my brain of reasons why I should quit
7217 Thornfield; and I kept involuntarily framing advertisements and pondering
7218 conjectures about new situations: these thoughts I did not think to
7219 check; they might germinate and bear fruit if they could.
7220
7221 Mr. Rochester had been absent upwards of a fortnight, when the post
7222 brought Mrs. Fairfax a letter.
7223
7224 "It is from the master," said she, as she looked at the direction. "Now
7225 I suppose we shall know whether we are to expect his return or not."
7226
7227 And while she broke the seal and perused the document, I went on taking
7228 my coffee (we were at breakfast): it was hot, and I attributed to that
7229 circumstance a fiery glow which suddenly rose to my face. Why my hand
7230 shook, and why I involuntarily spilt half the contents of my cup into my
7231 saucer, I did not choose to consider.
7232
7233 "Well, I sometimes think we are too quiet; but we run a chance of being
7234 busy enough now: for a little while at least," said Mrs. Fairfax, still
7235 holding the note before her spectacles.
7236
7237 Ere I permitted myself to request an explanation, I tied the string of
7238 Adele's pinafore, which happened to be loose: having helped her also to
7239 another bun and refilled her mug with milk, I said, nonchalantly--
7240
7241 "Mr. Rochester is not likely to return soon, I suppose?"
7242
7243 "Indeed he is--in three days, he says: that will be next Thursday; and
7244 not alone either. I don't know how many of the fine people at the Leas
7245 are coming with him: he sends directions for all the best bedrooms to be
7246 prepared; and the library and drawing-rooms are to be cleaned out; I am
7247 to get more kitchen hands from the George Inn, at Millcote, and from
7248 wherever else I can; and the ladies will bring their maids and the
7249 gentlemen their valets: so we shall have a full house of it." And Mrs.
7250 Fairfax swallowed her breakfast and hastened away to commence operations.
7251
7252 The three days were, as she had foretold, busy enough. I had thought all
7253 the rooms at Thornfield beautifully clean and well arranged; but it
7254 appears I was mistaken. Three women were got to help; and such
7255 scrubbing, such brushing, such washing of paint and beating of carpets,
7256 such taking down and putting up of pictures, such polishing of mirrors
7257 and lustres, such lighting of fires in bedrooms, such airing of sheets
7258 and feather-beds on hearths, I never beheld, either before or since.
7259 Adele ran quite wild in the midst of it: the preparations for company and
7260 the prospect of their arrival, seemed to throw her into ecstasies. She
7261 would have Sophie to look over all her "toilettes," as she called frocks;
7262 to furbish up any that were "_passees_," and to air and arrange the new.
7263 For herself, she did nothing but caper about in the front chambers, jump
7264 on and off the bedsteads, and lie on the mattresses and piled-up bolsters
7265 and pillows before the enormous fires roaring in the chimneys. From
7266 school duties she was exonerated: Mrs. Fairfax had pressed me into her
7267 service, and I was all day in the storeroom, helping (or hindering) her
7268 and the cook; learning to make custards and cheese-cakes and French
7269 pastry, to truss game and garnish desert-dishes.
7270
7271 The party were expected to arrive on Thursday afternoon, in time for
7272 dinner at six. During the intervening period I had no time to nurse
7273 chimeras; and I believe I was as active and gay as anybody--Adele
7274 excepted. Still, now and then, I received a damping check to my
7275 cheerfulness; and was, in spite of myself, thrown back on the region of
7276 doubts and portents, and dark conjectures. This was when I chanced to
7277 see the third-storey staircase door (which of late had always been kept
7278 locked) open slowly, and give passage to the form of Grace Poole, in prim
7279 cap, white apron, and handkerchief; when I watched her glide along the
7280 gallery, her quiet tread muffled in a list slipper; when I saw her look
7281 into the bustling, topsy-turvy bedrooms,--just say a word, perhaps, to
7282 the charwoman about the proper way to polish a grate, or clean a marble
7283 mantelpiece, or take stains from papered walls, and then pass on. She
7284 would thus descend to the kitchen once a day, eat her dinner, smoke a
7285 moderate pipe on the hearth, and go back, carrying her pot of porter with
7286 her, for her private solace, in her own gloomy, upper haunt. Only one
7287 hour in the twenty-four did she pass with her fellow-servants below; all
7288 the rest of her time was spent in some low-ceiled, oaken chamber of the
7289 second storey: there she sat and sewed--and probably laughed drearily to
7290 herself,--as companionless as a prisoner in his dungeon.
7291
7292 The strangest thing of all was, that not a soul in the house, except me,
7293 noticed her habits, or seemed to marvel at them: no one discussed her
7294 position or employment; no one pitied her solitude or isolation. I once,
7295 indeed, overheard part of a dialogue between Leah and one of the
7296 charwomen, of which Grace formed the subject. Leah had been saying
7297 something I had not caught, and the charwoman remarked--
7298
7299 "She gets good wages, I guess?"
7300
7301 "Yes," said Leah; "I wish I had as good; not that mine are to complain
7302 of,--there's no stinginess at Thornfield; but they're not one fifth of
7303 the sum Mrs. Poole receives. And she is laying by: she goes every
7304 quarter to the bank at Millcote. I should not wonder but she has saved
7305 enough to keep her independent if she liked to leave; but I suppose she's
7306 got used to the place; and then she's not forty yet, and strong and able
7307 for anything. It is too soon for her to give up business."
7308
7309 "She is a good hand, I daresay," said the charwoman.
7310
7311 "Ah!--she understands what she has to do,--nobody better," rejoined Leah
7312 significantly; "and it is not every one could fill her shoes--not for all
7313 the money she gets."
7314
7315 "That it is not!" was the reply. "I wonder whether the master--"
7316
7317 The charwoman was going on; but here Leah turned and perceived me, and
7318 she instantly gave her companion a nudge.
7319
7320 "Doesn't she know?" I heard the woman whisper.
7321
7322 Leah shook her head, and the conversation was of course dropped. All I
7323 had gathered from it amounted to this,--that there was a mystery at
7324 Thornfield; and that from participation in that mystery I was purposely
7325 excluded.
7326
7327 Thursday came: all work had been completed the previous evening; carpets
7328 were laid down, bed-hangings festooned, radiant white counterpanes
7329 spread, toilet tables arranged, furniture rubbed, flowers piled in vases:
7330 both chambers and saloons looked as fresh and bright as hands could make
7331 them. The hall, too, was scoured; and the great carved clock, as well as
7332 the steps and banisters of the staircase, were polished to the brightness
7333 of glass; in the dining-room, the sideboard flashed resplendent with
7334 plate; in the drawing-room and boudoir, vases of exotics bloomed on all
7335 sides.
7336
7337 Afternoon arrived: Mrs. Fairfax assumed her best black satin gown, her
7338 gloves, and her gold watch; for it was her part to receive the
7339 company,--to conduct the ladies to their rooms, &c. Adele, too, would be
7340 dressed: though I thought she had little chance of being introduced to
7341 the party that day at least. However, to please her, I allowed Sophie to
7342 apparel her in one of her short, full muslin frocks. For myself, I had
7343 no need to make any change; I should not be called upon to quit my
7344 sanctum of the schoolroom; for a sanctum it was now become to me,--"a
7345 very pleasant refuge in time of trouble."
7346
7347 It had been a mild, serene spring day--one of those days which, towards
7348 the end of March or the beginning of April, rise shining over the earth
7349 as heralds of summer. It was drawing to an end now; but the evening was
7350 even warm, and I sat at work in the schoolroom with the window open.
7351
7352 "It gets late," said Mrs. Fairfax, entering in rustling state. "I am
7353 glad I ordered dinner an hour after the time Mr. Rochester mentioned; for
7354 it is past six now. I have sent John down to the gates to see if there
7355 is anything on the road: one can see a long way from thence in the
7356 direction of Millcote." She went to the window. "Here he is!" said she.
7357 "Well, John" (leaning out), "any news?"
7358
7359 "They're coming, ma'am," was the answer. "They'll be here in ten
7360 minutes."
7361
7362 Adele flew to the window. I followed, taking care to stand on one side,
7363 so that, screened by the curtain, I could see without being seen.
7364
7365 The ten minutes John had given seemed very long, but at last wheels were
7366 heard; four equestrians galloped up the drive, and after them came two
7367 open carriages. Fluttering veils and waving plumes filled the vehicles;
7368 two of the cavaliers were young, dashing-looking gentlemen; the third was
7369 Mr. Rochester, on his black horse, Mesrour, Pilot bounding before him; at
7370 his side rode a lady, and he and she were the first of the party. Her
7371 purple riding-habit almost swept the ground, her veil streamed long on
7372 the breeze; mingling with its transparent folds, and gleaming through
7373 them, shone rich raven ringlets.
7374
7375 "Miss Ingram!" exclaimed Mrs. Fairfax, and away she hurried to her post
7376 below.
7377
7378 The cavalcade, following the sweep of the drive, quickly turned the angle
7379 of the house, and I lost sight of it. Adele now petitioned to go down;
7380 but I took her on my knee, and gave her to understand that she must not
7381 on any account think of venturing in sight of the ladies, either now or
7382 at any other time, unless expressly sent for: that Mr. Rochester would be
7383 very angry, &c. "Some natural tears she shed" on being told this; but as
7384 I began to look very grave, she consented at last to wipe them.
7385
7386 A joyous stir was now audible in the hall: gentlemen's deep tones and
7387 ladies' silvery accents blent harmoniously together, and distinguishable
7388 above all, though not loud, was the sonorous voice of the master of
7389 Thornfield Hall, welcoming his fair and gallant guests under its roof.
7390 Then light steps ascended the stairs; and there was a tripping through
7391 the gallery, and soft cheerful laughs, and opening and closing doors,
7392 and, for a time, a hush.
7393
7394 "Elles changent de toilettes," said Adele; who, listening attentively,
7395 had followed every movement; and she sighed.
7396
7397 "Chez maman," said she, "quand il y avait du monde, je le suivais
7398 partout, au salon et a leurs chambres; souvent je regardais les femmes de
7399 chambre coiffer et habiller les dames, et c'etait si amusant: comme cela
7400 on apprend."
7401
7402 "Don't you feel hungry, Adele?"
7403
7404 "Mais oui, mademoiselle: voila cinq ou six heures que nous n'avons pas
7405 mange."
7406
7407 "Well now, while the ladies are in their rooms, I will venture down and
7408 get you something to eat."
7409
7410 And issuing from my asylum with precaution, I sought a back-stairs which
7411 conducted directly to the kitchen. All in that region was fire and
7412 commotion; the soup and fish were in the last stage of projection, and
7413 the cook hung over her crucibles in a frame of mind and body threatening
7414 spontaneous combustion. In the servants' hall two coachmen and three
7415 gentlemen's gentlemen stood or sat round the fire; the abigails, I
7416 suppose, were upstairs with their mistresses; the new servants, that had
7417 been hired from Millcote, were bustling about everywhere. Threading this
7418 chaos, I at last reached the larder; there I took possession of a cold
7419 chicken, a roll of bread, some tarts, a plate or two and a knife and
7420 fork: with this booty I made a hasty retreat. I had regained the
7421 gallery, and was just shutting the back-door behind me, when an
7422 accelerated hum warned me that the ladies were about to issue from their
7423 chambers. I could not proceed to the schoolroom without passing some of
7424 their doors, and running the risk of being surprised with my cargo of
7425 victualage; so I stood still at this end, which, being windowless, was
7426 dark: quite dark now, for the sun was set and twilight gathering.
7427
7428 Presently the chambers gave up their fair tenants one after another: each
7429 came out gaily and airily, with dress that gleamed lustrous through the
7430 dusk. For a moment they stood grouped together at the other extremity of
7431 the gallery, conversing in a key of sweet subdued vivacity: they then
7432 descended the staircase almost as noiselessly as a bright mist rolls down
7433 a hill. Their collective appearance had left on me an impression of high-
7434 born elegance, such as I had never before received.
7435
7436 I found Adele peeping through the schoolroom door, which she held ajar.
7437 "What beautiful ladies!" cried she in English. "Oh, I wish I might go to
7438 them! Do you think Mr. Rochester will send for us by-and-bye, after
7439 dinner?"
7440
7441 "No, indeed, I don't; Mr. Rochester has something else to think about.
7442 Never mind the ladies to-night; perhaps you will see them to-morrow: here
7443 is your dinner."
7444
7445 She was really hungry, so the chicken and tarts served to divert her
7446 attention for a time. It was well I secured this forage, or both she, I,
7447 and Sophie, to whom I conveyed a share of our repast, would have run a
7448 chance of getting no dinner at all: every one downstairs was too much
7449 engaged to think of us. The dessert was not carried out till after nine
7450 and at ten footmen were still running to and fro with trays and coffee-
7451 cups. I allowed Adele to sit up much later than usual; for she declared
7452 she could not possibly go to sleep while the doors kept opening and
7453 shutting below, and people bustling about. Besides, she added, a message
7454 might possibly come from Mr. Rochester when she was undressed; "et alors
7455 quel dommage!"
7456
7457 I told her stories as long as she would listen to them; and then for a
7458 change I took her out into the gallery. The hall lamp was now lit, and
7459 it amused her to look over the balustrade and watch the servants passing
7460 backwards and forwards. When the evening was far advanced, a sound of
7461 music issued from the drawing-room, whither the piano had been removed;
7462 Adele and I sat down on the top step of the stairs to listen. Presently
7463 a voice blent with the rich tones of the instrument; it was a lady who
7464 sang, and very sweet her notes were. The solo over, a duet followed, and
7465 then a glee: a joyous conversational murmur filled up the intervals. I
7466 listened long: suddenly I discovered that my ear was wholly intent on
7467 analysing the mingled sounds, and trying to discriminate amidst the
7468 confusion of accents those of Mr. Rochester; and when it caught them,
7469 which it soon did, it found a further task in framing the tones, rendered
7470 by distance inarticulate, into words.
7471
7472 The clock struck eleven. I looked at Adele, whose head leant against my
7473 shoulder; her eyes were waxing heavy, so I took her up in my arms and
7474 carried her off to bed. It was near one before the gentlemen and ladies
7475 sought their chambers.
7476
7477 The next day was as fine as its predecessor: it was devoted by the party
7478 to an excursion to some site in the neighbourhood. They set out early in
7479 the forenoon, some on horseback, the rest in carriages; I witnessed both
7480 the departure and the return. Miss Ingram, as before, was the only lady
7481 equestrian; and, as before, Mr. Rochester galloped at her side; the two
7482 rode a little apart from the rest. I pointed out this circumstance to
7483 Mrs. Fairfax, who was standing at the window with me--
7484
7485 "You said it was not likely they should think of being married," said I,
7486 "but you see Mr. Rochester evidently prefers her to any of the other
7487 ladies."
7488
7489 "Yes, I daresay: no doubt he admires her."
7490
7491 "And she him," I added; "look how she leans her head towards him as if
7492 she were conversing confidentially; I wish I could see her face; I have
7493 never had a glimpse of it yet."
7494
7495 "You will see her this evening," answered Mrs. Fairfax. "I happened to
7496 remark to Mr. Rochester how much Adele wished to be introduced to the
7497 ladies, and he said: 'Oh! let her come into the drawing-room after
7498 dinner; and request Miss Eyre to accompany her.'"
7499
7500 "Yes; he said that from mere politeness: I need not go, I am sure," I
7501 answered.
7502
7503 "Well, I observed to him that as you were unused to company, I did not
7504 think you would like appearing before so gay a party--all strangers; and
7505 he replied, in his quick way--'Nonsense! If she objects, tell her it is
7506 my particular wish; and if she resists, say I shall come and fetch her in
7507 case of contumacy.'"
7508
7509 "I will not give him that trouble," I answered. "I will go, if no better
7510 may be; but I don't like it. Shall you be there, Mrs. Fairfax?"
7511
7512 "No; I pleaded off, and he admitted my plea. I'll tell you how to manage
7513 so as to avoid the embarrassment of making a formal entrance, which is
7514 the most disagreeable part of the business. You must go into the drawing-
7515 room while it is empty, before the ladies leave the dinner-table; choose
7516 your seat in any quiet nook you like; you need not stay long after the
7517 gentlemen come in, unless you please: just let Mr. Rochester see you are
7518 there and then slip away--nobody will notice you."
7519
7520 "Will these people remain long, do you think?"
7521
7522 "Perhaps two or three weeks, certainly not more. After the Easter
7523 recess, Sir George Lynn, who was lately elected member for Millcote, will
7524 have to go up to town and take his seat; I daresay Mr. Rochester will
7525 accompany him: it surprises me that he has already made so protracted a
7526 stay at Thornfield."
7527
7528 It was with some trepidation that I perceived the hour approach when I
7529 was to repair with my charge to the drawing-room. Adele had been in a
7530 state of ecstasy all day, after hearing she was to be presented to the
7531 ladies in the evening; and it was not till Sophie commenced the operation
7532 of dressing her that she sobered down. Then the importance of the
7533 process quickly steadied her, and by the time she had her curls arranged
7534 in well-smoothed, drooping clusters, her pink satin frock put on, her
7535 long sash tied, and her lace mittens adjusted, she looked as grave as any
7536 judge. No need to warn her not to disarrange her attire: when she was
7537 dressed, she sat demurely down in her little chair, taking care
7538 previously to lift up the satin skirt for fear she should crease it, and
7539 assured me she would not stir thence till I was ready. This I quickly
7540 was: my best dress (the silver-grey one, purchased for Miss Temple's
7541 wedding, and never worn since) was soon put on; my hair was soon
7542 smoothed; my sole ornament, the pearl brooch, soon assumed. We
7543 descended.
7544
7545 Fortunately there was another entrance to the drawing-room than that
7546 through the saloon where they were all seated at dinner. We found the
7547 apartment vacant; a large fire burning silently on the marble hearth, and
7548 wax candles shining in bright solitude, amid the exquisite flowers with
7549 which the tables were adorned. The crimson curtain hung before the arch:
7550 slight as was the separation this drapery formed from the party in the
7551 adjoining saloon, they spoke in so low a key that nothing of their
7552 conversation could be distinguished beyond a soothing murmur.
7553
7554 Adele, who appeared to be still under the influence of a most solemnising
7555 impression, sat down, without a word, on the footstool I pointed out to
7556 her. I retired to a window-seat, and taking a book from a table near,
7557 endeavoured to read. Adele brought her stool to my feet; ere long she
7558 touched my knee.
7559
7560 "What is it, Adele?"
7561
7562 "Est-ce que je ne puis pas prendrie une seule de ces fleurs magnifiques,
7563 mademoiselle? Seulement pour completer ma toilette."
7564
7565 "You think too much of your 'toilette,' Adele: but you may have a
7566 flower." And I took a rose from a vase and fastened it in her sash. She
7567 sighed a sigh of ineffable satisfaction, as if her cup of happiness were
7568 now full. I turned my face away to conceal a smile I could not suppress:
7569 there was something ludicrous as well as painful in the little
7570 Parisienne's earnest and innate devotion to matters of dress.
7571
7572 A soft sound of rising now became audible; the curtain was swept back
7573 from the arch; through it appeared the dining-room, with its lit lustre
7574 pouring down light on the silver and glass of a magnificent
7575 dessert-service covering a long table; a band of ladies stood in the
7576 opening; they entered, and the curtain fell behind them.
7577
7578 There were but eight; yet, somehow, as they flocked in, they gave the
7579 impression of a much larger number. Some of them were very tall; many
7580 were dressed in white; and all had a sweeping amplitude of array that
7581 seemed to magnify their persons as a mist magnifies the moon. I rose and
7582 curtseyed to them: one or two bent their heads in return, the others only
7583 stared at me.
7584
7585 They dispersed about the room, reminding me, by the lightness and
7586 buoyancy of their movements, of a flock of white plumy birds. Some of
7587 them threw themselves in half-reclining positions on the sofas and
7588 ottomans: some bent over the tables and examined the flowers and books:
7589 the rest gathered in a group round the fire: all talked in a low but
7590 clear tone which seemed habitual to them. I knew their names afterwards,
7591 and may as well mention them now.
7592
7593 First, there was Mrs. Eshton and two of her daughters. She had evidently
7594 been a handsome woman, and was well preserved still. Of her daughters,
7595 the eldest, Amy, was rather little: naive, and child-like in face and
7596 manner, and piquant in form; her white muslin dress and blue sash became
7597 her well. The second, Louisa, was taller and more elegant in figure;
7598 with a very pretty face, of that order the French term _minois chiffone_:
7599 both sisters were fair as lilies.
7600
7601 Lady Lynn was a large and stout personage of about forty, very erect,
7602 very haughty-looking, richly dressed in a satin robe of changeful sheen:
7603 her dark hair shone glossily under the shade of an azure plume, and
7604 within the circlet of a band of gems.
7605
7606 Mrs. Colonel Dent was less showy; but, I thought, more lady-like. She
7607 had a slight figure, a pale, gentle face, and fair hair. Her black satin
7608 dress, her scarf of rich foreign lace, and her pearl ornaments, pleased
7609 me better than the rainbow radiance of the titled dame.
7610
7611 But the three most distinguished--partly, perhaps, because the tallest
7612 figures of the band--were the Dowager Lady Ingram and her daughters,
7613 Blanche and Mary. They were all three of the loftiest stature of women.
7614 The Dowager might be between forty and fifty: her shape was still fine;
7615 her hair (by candle-light at least) still black; her teeth, too, were
7616 still apparently perfect. Most people would have termed her a splendid
7617 woman of her age: and so she was, no doubt, physically speaking; but then
7618 there was an expression of almost insupportable haughtiness in her
7619 bearing and countenance. She had Roman features and a double chin,
7620 disappearing into a throat like a pillar: these features appeared to me
7621 not only inflated and darkened, but even furrowed with pride; and the
7622 chin was sustained by the same principle, in a position of almost
7623 preternatural erectness. She had, likewise, a fierce and a hard eye: it
7624 reminded me of Mrs. Reed's; she mouthed her words in speaking; her voice
7625 was deep, its inflections very pompous, very dogmatical,--very
7626 intolerable, in short. A crimson velvet robe, and a shawl turban of some
7627 gold-wrought Indian fabric, invested her (I suppose she thought) with a
7628 truly imperial dignity.
7629
7630 Blanche and Mary were of equal stature,--straight and tall as poplars.
7631 Mary was too slim for her height, but Blanche was moulded like a Dian. I
7632 regarded her, of course, with special interest. First, I wished to see
7633 whether her appearance accorded with Mrs. Fairfax's description;
7634 secondly, whether it at all resembled the fancy miniature I had painted
7635 of her; and thirdly--it will out!--whether it were such as I should fancy
7636 likely to suit Mr. Rochester's taste.
7637
7638 As far as person went, she answered point for point, both to my picture
7639 and Mrs. Fairfax's description. The noble bust, the sloping shoulders,
7640 the graceful neck, the dark eyes and black ringlets were all there;--but
7641 her face? Her face was like her mother's; a youthful unfurrowed
7642 likeness: the same low brow, the same high features, the same pride. It
7643 was not, however, so saturnine a pride! she laughed continually; her
7644 laugh was satirical, and so was the habitual expression of her arched and
7645 haughty lip.
7646
7647 Genius is said to be self-conscious. I cannot tell whether Miss Ingram
7648 was a genius, but she was self-conscious--remarkably self-conscious
7649 indeed. She entered into a discourse on botany with the gentle Mrs.
7650 Dent. It seemed Mrs. Dent had not studied that science: though, as she
7651 said, she liked flowers, "especially wild ones;" Miss Ingram had, and she
7652 ran over its vocabulary with an air. I presently perceived she was (what
7653 is vernacularly termed) _trailing_ Mrs. Dent; that is, playing on her
7654 ignorance--her _trail_ might be clever, but it was decidedly not good-
7655 natured. She played: her execution was brilliant; she sang: her voice
7656 was fine; she talked French apart to her mamma; and she talked it well,
7657 with fluency and with a good accent.
7658
7659 Mary had a milder and more open countenance than Blanche; softer features
7660 too, and a skin some shades fairer (Miss Ingram was dark as a
7661 Spaniard)--but Mary was deficient in life: her face lacked expression,
7662 her eye lustre; she had nothing to say, and having once taken her seat,
7663 remained fixed like a statue in its niche. The sisters were both attired
7664 in spotless white.
7665
7666 And did I now think Miss Ingram such a choice as Mr. Rochester would be
7667 likely to make? I could not tell--I did not know his taste in female
7668 beauty. If he liked the majestic, she was the very type of majesty: then
7669 she was accomplished, sprightly. Most gentlemen would admire her, I
7670 thought; and that he _did_ admire her, I already seemed to have obtained
7671 proof: to remove the last shade of doubt, it remained but to see them
7672 together.
7673
7674 You are not to suppose, reader, that Adele has all this time been sitting
7675 motionless on the stool at my feet: no; when the ladies entered, she
7676 rose, advanced to meet them, made a stately reverence, and said with
7677 gravity--
7678
7679 "Bon jour, mesdames."
7680
7681 And Miss Ingram had looked down at her with a mocking air, and exclaimed,
7682 "Oh, what a little puppet!"
7683
7684 Lady Lynn had remarked, "It is Mr. Rochester's ward, I suppose--the
7685 little French girl he was speaking of."
7686
7687 Mrs. Dent had kindly taken her hand, and given her a kiss.
7688
7689 Amy and Louisa Eshton had cried out simultaneously--"What a love of a
7690 child!"
7691
7692 And then they had called her to a sofa, where she now sat, ensconced
7693 between them, chattering alternately in French and broken English;
7694 absorbing not only the young ladies' attention, but that of Mrs. Eshton
7695 and Lady Lynn, and getting spoilt to her heart's content.
7696
7697 At last coffee is brought in, and the gentlemen are summoned. I sit in
7698 the shade--if any shade there be in this brilliantly-lit apartment; the
7699 window-curtain half hides me. Again the arch yawns; they come. The
7700 collective appearance of the gentlemen, like that of the ladies, is very
7701 imposing: they are all costumed in black; most of them are tall, some
7702 young. Henry and Frederick Lynn are very dashing sparks indeed; and
7703 Colonel Dent is a fine soldierly man. Mr. Eshton, the magistrate of the
7704 district, is gentleman-like: his hair is quite white, his eyebrows and
7705 whiskers still dark, which gives him something of the appearance of a
7706 "pere noble de theatre." Lord Ingram, like his sisters, is very tall;
7707 like them, also, he is handsome; but he shares Mary's apathetic and
7708 listless look: he seems to have more length of limb than vivacity of
7709 blood or vigour of brain.
7710
7711 And where is Mr. Rochester?
7712
7713 He comes in last: I am not looking at the arch, yet I see him enter. I
7714 try to concentrate my attention on those netting-needles, on the meshes
7715 of the purse I am forming--I wish to think only of the work I have in my
7716 hands, to see only the silver beads and silk threads that lie in my lap;
7717 whereas, I distinctly behold his figure, and I inevitably recall the
7718 moment when I last saw it; just after I had rendered him, what he deemed,
7719 an essential service, and he, holding my hand, and looking down on my
7720 face, surveyed me with eyes that revealed a heart full and eager to
7721 overflow; in whose emotions I had a part. How near had I approached him
7722 at that moment! What had occurred since, calculated to change his and my
7723 relative positions? Yet now, how distant, how far estranged we were! So
7724 far estranged, that I did not expect him to come and speak to me. I did
7725 not wonder, when, without looking at me, he took a seat at the other side
7726 of the room, and began conversing with some of the ladies.
7727
7728 No sooner did I see that his attention was riveted on them, and that I
7729 might gaze without being observed, than my eyes were drawn involuntarily
7730 to his face; I could not keep their lids under control: they would rise,
7731 and the irids would fix on him. I looked, and had an acute pleasure in
7732 looking,--a precious yet poignant pleasure; pure gold, with a steely
7733 point of agony: a pleasure like what the thirst-perishing man might feel
7734 who knows the well to which he has crept is poisoned, yet stoops and
7735 drinks divine draughts nevertheless.
7736
7737 Most true is it that "beauty is in the eye of the gazer." My master's
7738 colourless, olive face, square, massive brow, broad and jetty eyebrows,
7739 deep eyes, strong features, firm, grim mouth,--all energy, decision,
7740 will,--were not beautiful, according to rule; but they were more than
7741 beautiful to me; they were full of an interest, an influence that quite
7742 mastered me,--that took my feelings from my own power and fettered them
7743 in his. I had not intended to love him; the reader knows I had wrought
7744 hard to extirpate from my soul the germs of love there detected; and now,
7745 at the first renewed view of him, they spontaneously arrived, green and
7746 strong! He made me love him without looking at me.
7747
7748 I compared him with his guests. What was the gallant grace of the Lynns,
7749 the languid elegance of Lord Ingram,--even the military distinction of
7750 Colonel Dent, contrasted with his look of native pith and genuine power?
7751 I had no sympathy in their appearance, their expression: yet I could
7752 imagine that most observers would call them attractive, handsome,
7753 imposing; while they would pronounce Mr. Rochester at once harsh-featured
7754 and melancholy-looking. I saw them smile, laugh--it was nothing; the
7755 light of the candles had as much soul in it as their smile; the tinkle of
7756 the bell as much significance as their laugh. I saw Mr. Rochester
7757 smile:--his stern features softened; his eye grew both brilliant and
7758 gentle, its ray both searching and sweet. He was talking, at the moment,
7759 to Louisa and Amy Eshton. I wondered to see them receive with calm that
7760 look which seemed to me so penetrating: I expected their eyes to fall,
7761 their colour to rise under it; yet I was glad when I found they were in
7762 no sense moved. "He is not to them what he is to me," I thought: "he is
7763 not of their kind. I believe he is of mine;--I am sure he is--I feel
7764 akin to him--I understand the language of his countenance and movements:
7765 though rank and wealth sever us widely, I have something in my brain and
7766 heart, in my blood and nerves, that assimilates me mentally to him. Did
7767 I say, a few days since, that I had nothing to do with him but to receive
7768 my salary at his hands? Did I forbid myself to think of him in any other
7769 light than as a paymaster? Blasphemy against nature! Every good, true,
7770 vigorous feeling I have gathers impulsively round him. I know I must
7771 conceal my sentiments: I must smother hope; I must remember that he
7772 cannot care much for me. For when I say that I am of his kind, I do not
7773 mean that I have his force to influence, and his spell to attract; I mean
7774 only that I have certain tastes and feelings in common with him. I must,
7775 then, repeat continually that we are for ever sundered:--and yet, while I
7776 breathe and think, I must love him."
7777
7778 Coffee is handed. The ladies, since the gentlemen entered, have become
7779 lively as larks; conversation waxes brisk and merry. Colonel Dent and
7780 Mr. Eshton argue on politics; their wives listen. The two proud
7781 dowagers, Lady Lynn and Lady Ingram, confabulate together. Sir
7782 George--whom, by-the-bye, I have forgotten to describe,--a very big, and
7783 very fresh-looking country gentleman, stands before their sofa, coffee-
7784 cup in hand, and occasionally puts in a word. Mr. Frederick Lynn has
7785 taken a seat beside Mary Ingram, and is showing her the engravings of a
7786 splendid volume: she looks, smiles now and then, but apparently says
7787 little. The tall and phlegmatic Lord Ingram leans with folded arms on
7788 the chair-back of the little and lively Amy Eshton; she glances up at
7789 him, and chatters like a wren: she likes him better than she does Mr.
7790 Rochester. Henry Lynn has taken possession of an ottoman at the feet of
7791 Louisa: Adele shares it with him: he is trying to talk French with her,
7792 and Louisa laughs at his blunders. With whom will Blanche Ingram pair?
7793 She is standing alone at the table, bending gracefully over an album. She
7794 seems waiting to be sought; but she will not wait too long: she herself
7795 selects a mate.
7796
7797 Mr. Rochester, having quitted the Eshtons, stands on the hearth as
7798 solitary as she stands by the table: she confronts him, taking her
7799 station on the opposite side of the mantelpiece.
7800
7801 "Mr. Rochester, I thought you were not fond of children?"
7802
7803 "Nor am I."
7804
7805 "Then, what induced you to take charge of such a little doll as that?"
7806 (pointing to Adele). "Where did you pick her up?"
7807
7808 "I did not pick her up; she was left on my hands."
7809
7810 "You should have sent her to school."
7811
7812 "I could not afford it: schools are so dear."
7813
7814 "Why, I suppose you have a governess for her: I saw a person with her
7815 just now--is she gone? Oh, no! there she is still, behind the window-
7816 curtain. You pay her, of course; I should think it quite as
7817 expensive,--more so; for you have them both to keep in addition."
7818
7819 I feared--or should I say, hoped?--the allusion to me would make Mr.
7820 Rochester glance my way; and I involuntarily shrank farther into the
7821 shade: but he never turned his eyes.
7822
7823 "I have not considered the subject," said he indifferently, looking
7824 straight before him.
7825
7826 "No, you men never do consider economy and common sense. You should hear
7827 mama on the chapter of governesses: Mary and I have had, I should think,
7828 a dozen at least in our day; half of them detestable and the rest
7829 ridiculous, and all incubi--were they not, mama?"
7830
7831 "Did you speak, my own?"
7832
7833 The young lady thus claimed as the dowager's special property, reiterated
7834 her question with an explanation.
7835
7836 "My dearest, don't mention governesses; the word makes me nervous. I
7837 have suffered a martyrdom from their incompetency and caprice. I thank
7838 Heaven I have now done with them!"
7839
7840 Mrs. Dent here bent over to the pious lady and whispered something in her
7841 ear; I suppose, from the answer elicited, it was a reminder that one of
7842 the anathematised race was present.
7843
7844 "Tant pis!" said her Ladyship, "I hope it may do her good!" Then, in a
7845 lower tone, but still loud enough for me to hear, "I noticed her; I am a
7846 judge of physiognomy, and in hers I see all the faults of her class."
7847
7848 "What are they, madam?" inquired Mr. Rochester aloud.
7849
7850 "I will tell you in your private ear," replied she, wagging her turban
7851 three times with portentous significancy.
7852
7853 "But my curiosity will be past its appetite; it craves food now."
7854
7855 "Ask Blanche; she is nearer you than I."
7856
7857 "Oh, don't refer him to me, mama! I have just one word to say of the
7858 whole tribe; they are a nuisance. Not that I ever suffered much from
7859 them; I took care to turn the tables. What tricks Theodore and I used to
7860 play on our Miss Wilsons, and Mrs. Greys, and Madame Jouberts! Mary was
7861 always too sleepy to join in a plot with spirit. The best fun was with
7862 Madame Joubert: Miss Wilson was a poor sickly thing, lachrymose and low-
7863 spirited, not worth the trouble of vanquishing, in short; and Mrs. Grey
7864 was coarse and insensible; no blow took effect on her. But poor Madame
7865 Joubert! I see her yet in her raging passions, when we had driven her to
7866 extremities--spilt our tea, crumbled our bread and butter, tossed our
7867 books up to the ceiling, and played a charivari with the ruler and desk,
7868 the fender and fire-irons. Theodore, do you remember those merry days?"
7869
7870 "Yaas, to be sure I do," drawled Lord Ingram; "and the poor old stick
7871 used to cry out 'Oh you villains childs!'--and then we sermonised her on
7872 the presumption of attempting to teach such clever blades as we were,
7873 when she was herself so ignorant."
7874
7875 "We did; and, Tedo, you know, I helped you in prosecuting (or
7876 persecuting) your tutor, whey-faced Mr. Vining--the parson in the pip, as
7877 we used to call him. He and Miss Wilson took the liberty of falling in
7878 love with each other--at least Tedo and I thought so; we surprised sundry
7879 tender glances and sighs which we interpreted as tokens of 'la belle
7880 passion,' and I promise you the public soon had the benefit of our
7881 discovery; we employed it as a sort of lever to hoist our dead-weights
7882 from the house. Dear mama, there, as soon as she got an inkling of the
7883 business, found out that it was of an immoral tendency. Did you not, my
7884 lady-mother?"
7885
7886 "Certainly, my best. And I was quite right: depend on that: there are a
7887 thousand reasons why liaisons between governesses and tutors should never
7888 be tolerated a moment in any well-regulated house; firstly--"
7889
7890 "Oh, gracious, mama! Spare us the enumeration! _Au reste_, we all know
7891 them: danger of bad example to innocence of childhood; distractions and
7892 consequent neglect of duty on the part of the attached--mutual alliance
7893 and reliance; confidence thence resulting--insolence accompanying--mutiny
7894 and general blow-up. Am I right, Baroness Ingram, of Ingram Park?"
7895
7896 "My lily-flower, you are right now, as always."
7897
7898 "Then no more need be said: change the subject."
7899
7900 Amy Eshton, not hearing or not heeding this dictum, joined in with her
7901 soft, infantine tone: "Louisa and I used to quiz our governess too; but
7902 she was such a good creature, she would bear anything: nothing put her
7903 out. She was never cross with us; was she, Louisa?"
7904
7905 "No, never: we might do what we pleased; ransack her desk and her
7906 workbox, and turn her drawers inside out; and she was so good-natured,
7907 she would give us anything we asked for."
7908
7909 "I suppose, now," said Miss Ingram, curling her lip sarcastically, "we
7910 shall have an abstract of the memoirs of all the governesses extant: in
7911 order to avert such a visitation, I again move the introduction of a new
7912 topic. Mr. Rochester, do you second my motion?"
7913
7914 "Madam, I support you on this point, as on every other."
7915
7916 "Then on me be the onus of bringing it forward. Signior Eduardo, are you
7917 in voice to-night?"
7918
7919 "Donna Bianca, if you command it, I will be."
7920
7921 "Then, signior, I lay on you my sovereign behest to furbish up your lungs
7922 and other vocal organs, as they will be wanted on my royal service."
7923
7924 "Who would not be the Rizzio of so divine a Mary?"
7925
7926 "A fig for Rizzio!" cried she, tossing her head with all its curls, as
7927 she moved to the piano. "It is my opinion the fiddler David must have
7928 been an insipid sort of fellow; I like black Bothwell better: to my mind
7929 a man is nothing without a spice of the devil in him; and history may say
7930 what it will of James Hepburn, but I have a notion, he was just the sort
7931 of wild, fierce, bandit hero whom I could have consented to gift with my
7932 hand."
7933
7934 "Gentlemen, you hear! Now which of you most resembles Bothwell?" cried
7935 Mr. Rochester.
7936
7937 "I should say the preference lies with you," responded Colonel Dent.
7938
7939 "On my honour, I am much obliged to you," was the reply.
7940
7941 Miss Ingram, who had now seated herself with proud grace at the piano,
7942 spreading out her snowy robes in queenly amplitude, commenced a brilliant
7943 prelude; talking meantime. She appeared to be on her high horse
7944 to-night; both her words and her air seemed intended to excite not only
7945 the admiration, but the amazement of her auditors: she was evidently bent
7946 on striking them as something very dashing and daring indeed.
7947
7948 "Oh, I am so sick of the young men of the present day!" exclaimed she,
7949 rattling away at the instrument. "Poor, puny things, not fit to stir a
7950 step beyond papa's park gates: nor to go even so far without mama's
7951 permission and guardianship! Creatures so absorbed in care about their
7952 pretty faces, and their white hands, and their small feet; as if a man
7953 had anything to do with beauty! As if loveliness were not the special
7954 prerogative of woman--her legitimate appanage and heritage! I grant an
7955 ugly _woman_ is a blot on the fair face of creation; but as to the
7956 _gentlemen_, let them be solicitous to possess only strength and valour:
7957 let their motto be:--Hunt, shoot, and fight: the rest is not worth a
7958 fillip. Such should be my device, were I a man."
7959
7960 "Whenever I marry," she continued after a pause which none interrupted,
7961 "I am resolved my husband shall not be a rival, but a foil to me. I will
7962 suffer no competitor near the throne; I shall exact an undivided homage:
7963 his devotions shall not be shared between me and the shape he sees in his
7964 mirror. Mr. Rochester, now sing, and I will play for you."
7965
7966 "I am all obedience," was the response.
7967
7968 "Here then is a Corsair-song. Know that I doat on Corsairs; and for that
7969 reason, sing it _con spirito_."
7970
7971 "Commands from Miss Ingram's lips would put spirit into a mug of milk and
7972 water."
7973
7974 "Take care, then: if you don't please me, I will shame you by showing how
7975 such things _should_ be done."
7976
7977 "That is offering a premium on incapacity: I shall now endeavour to
7978 fail."
7979
7980 "Gardez-vous en bien! If you err wilfully, I shall devise a
7981 proportionate punishment."
7982
7983 "Miss Ingram ought to be clement, for she has it in her power to inflict
7984 a chastisement beyond mortal endurance."
7985
7986 "Ha! explain!" commanded the lady.
7987
7988 "Pardon me, madam: no need of explanation; your own fine sense must
7989 inform you that one of your frowns would be a sufficient substitute for
7990 capital punishment."
7991
7992 "Sing!" said she, and again touching the piano, she commenced an
7993 accompaniment in spirited style.
7994
7995 "Now is my time to slip away," thought I: but the tones that then severed
7996 the air arrested me. Mrs. Fairfax had said Mr. Rochester possessed a
7997 fine voice: he did--a mellow, powerful bass, into which he threw his own
7998 feeling, his own force; finding a way through the ear to the heart, and
7999 there waking sensation strangely. I waited till the last deep and full
8000 vibration had expired--till the tide of talk, checked an instant, had
8001 resumed its flow; I then quitted my sheltered corner and made my exit by
8002 the side-door, which was fortunately near. Thence a narrow passage led
8003 into the hall: in crossing it, I perceived my sandal was loose; I stopped
8004 to tie it, kneeling down for that purpose on the mat at the foot of the
8005 staircase. I heard the dining-room door unclose; a gentleman came out;
8006 rising hastily, I stood face to face with him: it was Mr. Rochester.
8007
8008 "How do you do?" he asked.
8009
8010 "I am very well, sir."
8011
8012 "Why did you not come and speak to me in the room?"
8013
8014 I thought I might have retorted the question on him who put it: but I
8015 would not take that freedom. I answered--
8016
8017 "I did not wish to disturb you, as you seemed engaged, sir."
8018
8019 "What have you been doing during my absence?"
8020
8021 "Nothing particular; teaching Adele as usual."
8022
8023 "And getting a good deal paler than you were--as I saw at first sight.
8024 What is the matter?"
8025
8026 "Nothing at all, sir."
8027
8028 "Did you take any cold that night you half drowned me?"
8029
8030 "Not the least."
8031
8032 "Return to the drawing-room: you are deserting too early."
8033
8034 "I am tired, sir."
8035
8036 He looked at me for a minute.
8037
8038 "And a little depressed," he said. "What about? Tell me."
8039
8040 "Nothing--nothing, sir. I am not depressed."
8041
8042 "But I affirm that you are: so much depressed that a few more words would
8043 bring tears to your eyes--indeed, they are there now, shining and
8044 swimming; and a bead has slipped from the lash and fallen on to the flag.
8045 If I had time, and was not in mortal dread of some prating prig of a
8046 servant passing, I would know what all this means. Well, to-night I
8047 excuse you; but understand that so long as my visitors stay, I expect you
8048 to appear in the drawing-room every evening; it is my wish; don't neglect
8049 it. Now go, and send Sophie for Adele. Good-night, my--" He stopped,
8050 bit his lip, and abruptly left me.
8051
8052
8053
8054
8055 CHAPTER XVIII
8056
8057
8058 Merry days were these at Thornfield Hall; and busy days too: how
8059 different from the first three months of stillness, monotony, and
8060 solitude I had passed beneath its roof! All sad feelings seemed now
8061 driven from the house, all gloomy associations forgotten: there was life
8062 everywhere, movement all day long. You could not now traverse the
8063 gallery, once so hushed, nor enter the front chambers, once so
8064 tenantless, without encountering a smart lady's-maid or a dandy valet.
8065
8066 The kitchen, the butler's pantry, the servants' hall, the entrance hall,
8067 were equally alive; and the saloons were only left void and still when
8068 the blue sky and halcyon sunshine of the genial spring weather called
8069 their occupants out into the grounds. Even when that weather was broken,
8070 and continuous rain set in for some days, no damp seemed cast over
8071 enjoyment: indoor amusements only became more lively and varied, in
8072 consequence of the stop put to outdoor gaiety.
8073
8074 I wondered what they were going to do the first evening a change of
8075 entertainment was proposed: they spoke of "playing charades," but in my
8076 ignorance I did not understand the term. The servants were called in,
8077 the dining-room tables wheeled away, the lights otherwise disposed, the
8078 chairs placed in a semicircle opposite the arch. While Mr. Rochester and
8079 the other gentlemen directed these alterations, the ladies were running
8080 up and down stairs ringing for their maids. Mrs. Fairfax was summoned to
8081 give information respecting the resources of the house in shawls,
8082 dresses, draperies of any kind; and certain wardrobes of the third storey
8083 were ransacked, and their contents, in the shape of brocaded and hooped
8084 petticoats, satin sacques, black modes, lace lappets, &c., were brought
8085 down in armfuls by the abigails; then a selection was made, and such
8086 things as were chosen were carried to the boudoir within the
8087 drawing-room.
8088
8089 Meantime, Mr. Rochester had again summoned the ladies round him, and was
8090 selecting certain of their number to be of his party. "Miss Ingram is
8091 mine, of course," said he: afterwards he named the two Misses Eshton, and
8092 Mrs. Dent. He looked at me: I happened to be near him, as I had been
8093 fastening the clasp of Mrs. Dent's bracelet, which had got loose.
8094
8095 "Will you play?" he asked. I shook my head. He did not insist, which I
8096 rather feared he would have done; he allowed me to return quietly to my
8097 usual seat.
8098
8099 He and his aids now withdrew behind the curtain: the other party, which
8100 was headed by Colonel Dent, sat down on the crescent of chairs. One of
8101 the gentlemen, Mr. Eshton, observing me, seemed to propose that I should
8102 be asked to join them; but Lady Ingram instantly negatived the notion.
8103
8104 "No," I heard her say: "she looks too stupid for any game of the sort."
8105
8106 Ere long a bell tinkled, and the curtain drew up. Within the arch, the
8107 bulky figure of Sir George Lynn, whom Mr. Rochester had likewise chosen,
8108 was seen enveloped in a white sheet: before him, on a table, lay open a
8109 large book; and at his side stood Amy Eshton, draped in Mr. Rochester's
8110 cloak, and holding a book in her hand. Somebody, unseen, rang the bell
8111 merrily; then Adele (who had insisted on being one of her guardian's
8112 party), bounded forward, scattering round her the contents of a basket of
8113 flowers she carried on her arm. Then appeared the magnificent figure of
8114 Miss Ingram, clad in white, a long veil on her head, and a wreath of
8115 roses round her brow; by her side walked Mr. Rochester, and together they
8116 drew near the table. They knelt; while Mrs. Dent and Louisa Eshton,
8117 dressed also in white, took up their stations behind them. A ceremony
8118 followed, in dumb show, in which it was easy to recognise the pantomime
8119 of a marriage. At its termination, Colonel Dent and his party consulted
8120 in whispers for two minutes, then the Colonel called out--
8121
8122 "Bride!" Mr. Rochester bowed, and the curtain fell.
8123
8124 A considerable interval elapsed before it again rose. Its second rising
8125 displayed a more elaborately prepared scene than the last. The drawing-
8126 room, as I have before observed, was raised two steps above the dining-
8127 room, and on the top of the upper step, placed a yard or two back within
8128 the room, appeared a large marble basin--which I recognised as an
8129 ornament of the conservatory--where it usually stood, surrounded by
8130 exotics, and tenanted by gold fish--and whence it must have been
8131 transported with some trouble, on account of its size and weight.
8132
8133 Seated on the carpet, by the side of this basin, was seen Mr. Rochester,
8134 costumed in shawls, with a turban on his head. His dark eyes and swarthy
8135 skin and Paynim features suited the costume exactly: he looked the very
8136 model of an Eastern emir, an agent or a victim of the bowstring.
8137 Presently advanced into view Miss Ingram. She, too, was attired in
8138 oriental fashion: a crimson scarf tied sash-like round the waist: an
8139 embroidered handkerchief knotted about her temples; her
8140 beautifully-moulded arms bare, one of them upraised in the act of
8141 supporting a pitcher, poised gracefully on her head. Both her cast of
8142 form and feature, her complexion and her general air, suggested the idea
8143 of some Israelitish princess of the patriarchal days; and such was
8144 doubtless the character she intended to represent.
8145
8146 She approached the basin, and bent over it as if to fill her pitcher; she
8147 again lifted it to her head. The personage on the well-brink now seemed
8148 to accost her; to make some request:--"She hasted, let down her pitcher
8149 on her hand, and gave him to drink." From the bosom of his robe he then
8150 produced a casket, opened it and showed magnificent bracelets and
8151 earrings; she acted astonishment and admiration; kneeling, he laid the
8152 treasure at her feet; incredulity and delight were expressed by her looks
8153 and gestures; the stranger fastened the bracelets on her arms and the
8154 rings in her ears. It was Eliezer and Rebecca: the camels only were
8155 wanting.
8156
8157 The divining party again laid their heads together: apparently they could
8158 not agree about the word or syllable the scene illustrated. Colonel
8159 Dent, their spokesman, demanded "the tableau of the whole;" whereupon the
8160 curtain again descended.
8161
8162 On its third rising only a portion of the drawing-room was disclosed; the
8163 rest being concealed by a screen, hung with some sort of dark and coarse
8164 drapery. The marble basin was removed; in its place, stood a deal table
8165 and a kitchen chair: these objects were visible by a very dim light
8166 proceeding from a horn lantern, the wax candles being all extinguished.
8167
8168 Amidst this sordid scene, sat a man with his clenched hands resting on
8169 his knees, and his eyes bent on the ground. I knew Mr. Rochester; though
8170 the begrimed face, the disordered dress (his coat hanging loose from one
8171 arm, as if it had been almost torn from his back in a scuffle), the
8172 desperate and scowling countenance, the rough, bristling hair might well
8173 have disguised him. As he moved, a chain clanked; to his wrists were
8174 attached fetters.
8175
8176 "Bridewell!" exclaimed Colonel Dent, and the charade was solved.
8177
8178 A sufficient interval having elapsed for the performers to resume their
8179 ordinary costume, they re-entered the dining-room. Mr. Rochester led in
8180 Miss Ingram; she was complimenting him on his acting.
8181
8182 "Do you know," said she, "that, of the three characters, I liked you in
8183 the last best? Oh, had you but lived a few years earlier, what a gallant
8184 gentleman-highwayman you would have made!"
8185
8186 "Is all the soot washed from my face?" he asked, turning it towards her.
8187
8188 "Alas! yes: the more's the pity! Nothing could be more becoming to your
8189 complexion than that ruffian's rouge."
8190
8191 "You would like a hero of the road then?"
8192
8193 "An English hero of the road would be the next best thing to an Italian
8194 bandit; and that could only be surpassed by a Levantine pirate."
8195
8196 "Well, whatever I am, remember you are my wife; we were married an hour
8197 since, in the presence of all these witnesses." She giggled, and her
8198 colour rose.
8199
8200 "Now, Dent," continued Mr. Rochester, "it is your turn." And as the
8201 other party withdrew, he and his band took the vacated seats. Miss
8202 Ingram placed herself at her leader's right hand; the other diviners
8203 filled the chairs on each side of him and her. I did not now watch the
8204 actors; I no longer waited with interest for the curtain to rise; my
8205 attention was absorbed by the spectators; my eyes, erewhile fixed on the
8206 arch, were now irresistibly attracted to the semicircle of chairs. What
8207 charade Colonel Dent and his party played, what word they chose, how they
8208 acquitted themselves, I no longer remember; but I still see the
8209 consultation which followed each scene: I see Mr. Rochester turn to Miss
8210 Ingram, and Miss Ingram to him; I see her incline her head towards him,
8211 till the jetty curls almost touch his shoulder and wave against his
8212 cheek; I hear their mutual whisperings; I recall their interchanged
8213 glances; and something even of the feeling roused by the spectacle
8214 returns in memory at this moment.
8215
8216 I have told you, reader, that I had learnt to love Mr. Rochester: I could
8217 not unlove him now, merely because I found that he had ceased to notice
8218 me--because I might pass hours in his presence, and he would never once
8219 turn his eyes in my direction--because I saw all his attentions
8220 appropriated by a great lady, who scorned to touch me with the hem of her
8221 robes as she passed; who, if ever her dark and imperious eye fell on me
8222 by chance, would withdraw it instantly as from an object too mean to
8223 merit observation. I could not unlove him, because I felt sure he would
8224 soon marry this very lady--because I read daily in her a proud security
8225 in his intentions respecting her--because I witnessed hourly in him a
8226 style of courtship which, if careless and choosing rather to be sought
8227 than to seek, was yet, in its very carelessness, captivating, and in its
8228 very pride, irresistible.
8229
8230 There was nothing to cool or banish love in these circumstances, though
8231 much to create despair. Much too, you will think, reader, to engender
8232 jealousy: if a woman, in my position, could presume to be jealous of a
8233 woman in Miss Ingram's. But I was not jealous: or very rarely;--the
8234 nature of the pain I suffered could not be explained by that word. Miss
8235 Ingram was a mark beneath jealousy: she was too inferior to excite the
8236 feeling. Pardon the seeming paradox; I mean what I say. She was very
8237 showy, but she was not genuine: she had a fine person, many brilliant
8238 attainments; but her mind was poor, her heart barren by nature: nothing
8239 bloomed spontaneously on that soil; no unforced natural fruit delighted
8240 by its freshness. She was not good; she was not original: she used to
8241 repeat sounding phrases from books: she never offered, nor had, an
8242 opinion of her own. She advocated a high tone of sentiment; but she did
8243 not know the sensations of sympathy and pity; tenderness and truth were
8244 not in her. Too often she betrayed this, by the undue vent she gave to a
8245 spiteful antipathy she had conceived against little Adele: pushing her
8246 away with some contumelious epithet if she happened to approach her;
8247 sometimes ordering her from the room, and always treating her with
8248 coldness and acrimony. Other eyes besides mine watched these
8249 manifestations of character--watched them closely, keenly, shrewdly. Yes;
8250 the future bridegroom, Mr. Rochester himself, exercised over his intended
8251 a ceaseless surveillance; and it was from this sagacity--this guardedness
8252 of his--this perfect, clear consciousness of his fair one's defects--this
8253 obvious absence of passion in his sentiments towards her, that my ever-
8254 torturing pain arose.
8255
8256 I saw he was going to marry her, for family, perhaps political reasons,
8257 because her rank and connections suited him; I felt he had not given her
8258 his love, and that her qualifications were ill adapted to win from him
8259 that treasure. This was the point--this was where the nerve was touched
8260 and teased--this was where the fever was sustained and fed: _she could
8261 not charm him_.
8262
8263 If she had managed the victory at once, and he had yielded and sincerely
8264 laid his heart at her feet, I should have covered my face, turned to the
8265 wall, and (figuratively) have died to them. If Miss Ingram had been a
8266 good and noble woman, endowed with force, fervour, kindness, sense, I
8267 should have had one vital struggle with two tigers--jealousy and despair:
8268 then, my heart torn out and devoured, I should have admired
8269 her--acknowledged her excellence, and been quiet for the rest of my days:
8270 and the more absolute her superiority, the deeper would have been my
8271 admiration--the more truly tranquil my quiescence. But as matters really
8272 stood, to watch Miss Ingram's efforts at fascinating Mr. Rochester, to
8273 witness their repeated failure--herself unconscious that they did fail;
8274 vainly fancying that each shaft launched hit the mark, and infatuatedly
8275 pluming herself on success, when her pride and self-complacency repelled
8276 further and further what she wished to allure--to witness _this_, was to
8277 be at once under ceaseless excitation and ruthless restraint.
8278
8279 Because, when she failed, I saw how she might have succeeded. Arrows
8280 that continually glanced off from Mr. Rochester's breast and fell
8281 harmless at his feet, might, I knew, if shot by a surer hand, have
8282 quivered keen in his proud heart--have called love into his stern eye,
8283 and softness into his sardonic face; or, better still, without weapons a
8284 silent conquest might have been won.
8285
8286 "Why can she not influence him more, when she is privileged to draw so
8287 near to him?" I asked myself. "Surely she cannot truly like him, or not
8288 like him with true affection! If she did, she need not coin her smiles
8289 so lavishly, flash her glances so unremittingly, manufacture airs so
8290 elaborate, graces so multitudinous. It seems to me that she might, by
8291 merely sitting quietly at his side, saying little and looking less, get
8292 nigher his heart. I have seen in his face a far different expression
8293 from that which hardens it now while she is so vivaciously accosting him;
8294 but then it came of itself: it was not elicited by meretricious arts and
8295 calculated manoeuvres; and one had but to accept it--to answer what he
8296 asked without pretension, to address him when needful without grimace--and
8297 it increased and grew kinder and more genial, and warmed one like a
8298 fostering sunbeam. How will she manage to please him when they are
8299 married? I do not think she will manage it; and yet it might be managed;
8300 and his wife might, I verily believe, be the very happiest woman the sun
8301 shines on."
8302
8303 I have not yet said anything condemnatory of Mr. Rochester's project of
8304 marrying for interest and connections. It surprised me when I first
8305 discovered that such was his intention: I had thought him a man unlikely
8306 to be influenced by motives so commonplace in his choice of a wife; but
8307 the longer I considered the position, education, &c., of the parties, the
8308 less I felt justified in judging and blaming either him or Miss Ingram
8309 for acting in conformity to ideas and principles instilled into them,
8310 doubtless, from their childhood. All their class held these principles:
8311 I supposed, then, they had reasons for holding them such as I could not
8312 fathom. It seemed to me that, were I a gentleman like him, I would take
8313 to my bosom only such a wife as I could love; but the very obviousness of
8314 the advantages to the husband's own happiness offered by this plan
8315 convinced me that there must be arguments against its general adoption of
8316 which I was quite ignorant: otherwise I felt sure all the world would act
8317 as I wished to act.
8318
8319 But in other points, as well as this, I was growing very lenient to my
8320 master: I was forgetting all his faults, for which I had once kept a
8321 sharp look-out. It had formerly been my endeavour to study all sides of
8322 his character: to take the bad with the good; and from the just weighing
8323 of both, to form an equitable judgment. Now I saw no bad. The sarcasm
8324 that had repelled, the harshness that had startled me once, were only
8325 like keen condiments in a choice dish: their presence was pungent, but
8326 their absence would be felt as comparatively insipid. And as for the
8327 vague something--was it a sinister or a sorrowful, a designing or a
8328 desponding expression?--that opened upon a careful observer, now and
8329 then, in his eye, and closed again before one could fathom the strange
8330 depth partially disclosed; that something which used to make me fear and
8331 shrink, as if I had been wandering amongst volcanic-looking hills, and
8332 had suddenly felt the ground quiver and seen it gape: that something, I,
8333 at intervals, beheld still; and with throbbing heart, but not with
8334 palsied nerves. Instead of wishing to shun, I longed only to dare--to
8335 divine it; and I thought Miss Ingram happy, because one day she might
8336 look into the abyss at her leisure, explore its secrets and analyse their
8337 nature.
8338
8339 Meantime, while I thought only of my master and his future bride--saw
8340 only them, heard only their discourse, and considered only their
8341 movements of importance--the rest of the party were occupied with their
8342 own separate interests and pleasures. The Ladies Lynn and Ingram
8343 continued to consort in solemn conferences, where they nodded their two
8344 turbans at each other, and held up their four hands in confronting
8345 gestures of surprise, or mystery, or horror, according to the theme on
8346 which their gossip ran, like a pair of magnified puppets. Mild Mrs. Dent
8347 talked with good-natured Mrs. Eshton; and the two sometimes bestowed a
8348 courteous word or smile on me. Sir George Lynn, Colonel Dent, and Mr.
8349 Eshton discussed politics, or county affairs, or justice business. Lord
8350 Ingram flirted with Amy Eshton; Louisa played and sang to and with one of
8351 the Messrs. Lynn; and Mary Ingram listened languidly to the gallant
8352 speeches of the other. Sometimes all, as with one consent, suspended
8353 their by-play to observe and listen to the principal actors: for, after
8354 all, Mr. Rochester and--because closely connected with him--Miss Ingram
8355 were the life and soul of the party. If he was absent from the room an
8356 hour, a perceptible dulness seemed to steal over the spirits of his
8357 guests; and his re-entrance was sure to give a fresh impulse to the
8358 vivacity of conversation.
8359
8360 The want of his animating influence appeared to be peculiarly felt one
8361 day that he had been summoned to Millcote on business, and was not likely
8362 to return till late. The afternoon was wet: a walk the party had
8363 proposed to take to see a gipsy camp, lately pitched on a common beyond
8364 Hay, was consequently deferred. Some of the gentlemen were gone to the
8365 stables: the younger ones, together with the younger ladies, were playing
8366 billiards in the billiard-room. The dowagers Ingram and Lynn sought
8367 solace in a quiet game at cards. Blanche Ingram, after having repelled,
8368 by supercilious taciturnity, some efforts of Mrs. Dent and Mrs. Eshton to
8369 draw her into conversation, had first murmured over some sentimental
8370 tunes and airs on the piano, and then, having fetched a novel from the
8371 library, had flung herself in haughty listlessness on a sofa, and
8372 prepared to beguile, by the spell of fiction, the tedious hours of
8373 absence. The room and the house were silent: only now and then the
8374 merriment of the billiard-players was heard from above.
8375
8376 It was verging on dusk, and the clock had already given warning of the
8377 hour to dress for dinner, when little Adele, who knelt by me in the
8378 drawing-room window-seat, suddenly exclaimed--
8379
8380 "Voila, Monsieur Rochester, qui revient!"
8381
8382 I turned, and Miss Ingram darted forwards from her sofa: the others, too,
8383 looked up from their several occupations; for at the same time a
8384 crunching of wheels and a splashing tramp of horse-hoofs became audible
8385 on the wet gravel. A post-chaise was approaching.
8386
8387 "What can possess him to come home in that style?" said Miss Ingram. "He
8388 rode Mesrour (the black horse), did he not, when he went out? and Pilot
8389 was with him:--what has he done with the animals?"
8390
8391 As she said this, she approached her tall person and ample garments so
8392 near the window, that I was obliged to bend back almost to the breaking
8393 of my spine: in her eagerness she did not observe me at first, but when
8394 she did, she curled her lip and moved to another casement. The
8395 post-chaise stopped; the driver rang the door-bell, and a gentleman
8396 alighted attired in travelling garb; but it was not Mr. Rochester; it was
8397 a tall, fashionable-looking man, a stranger.
8398
8399 "How provoking!" exclaimed Miss Ingram: "you tiresome monkey!"
8400 (apostrophising Adele), "who perched you up in the window to give false
8401 intelligence?" and she cast on me an angry glance, as if I were in fault.
8402
8403 Some parleying was audible in the hall, and soon the new-comer entered.
8404 He bowed to Lady Ingram, as deeming her the eldest lady present.
8405
8406 "It appears I come at an inopportune time, madam," said he, "when my
8407 friend, Mr. Rochester, is from home; but I arrive from a very long
8408 journey, and I think I may presume so far on old and intimate
8409 acquaintance as to instal myself here till he returns."
8410
8411 His manner was polite; his accent, in speaking, struck me as being
8412 somewhat unusual,--not precisely foreign, but still not altogether
8413 English: his age might be about Mr. Rochester's,--between thirty and
8414 forty; his complexion was singularly sallow: otherwise he was a
8415 fine-looking man, at first sight especially. On closer examination, you
8416 detected something in his face that displeased, or rather that failed to
8417 please. His features were regular, but too relaxed: his eye was large
8418 and well cut, but the life looking out of it was a tame, vacant life--at
8419 least so I thought.
8420
8421 The sound of the dressing-bell dispersed the party. It was not till
8422 after dinner that I saw him again: he then seemed quite at his ease. But
8423 I liked his physiognomy even less than before: it struck me as being at
8424 the same time unsettled and inanimate. His eye wandered, and had no
8425 meaning in its wandering: this gave him an odd look, such as I never
8426 remembered to have seen. For a handsome and not an unamiable-looking
8427 man, he repelled me exceedingly: there was no power in that
8428 smooth-skinned face of a full oval shape: no firmness in that aquiline
8429 nose and small cherry mouth; there was no thought on the low, even
8430 forehead; no command in that blank, brown eye.
8431
8432 As I sat in my usual nook, and looked at him with the light of the
8433 girandoles on the mantelpiece beaming full over him--for he occupied an
8434 arm-chair drawn close to the fire, and kept shrinking still nearer, as if
8435 he were cold, I compared him with Mr. Rochester. I think (with deference
8436 be it spoken) the contrast could not be much greater between a sleek
8437 gander and a fierce falcon: between a meek sheep and the rough-coated
8438 keen-eyed dog, its guardian.
8439
8440 He had spoken of Mr. Rochester as an old friend. A curious friendship
8441 theirs must have been: a pointed illustration, indeed, of the old adage
8442 that "extremes meet."
8443
8444 Two or three of the gentlemen sat near him, and I caught at times scraps
8445 of their conversation across the room. At first I could not make much
8446 sense of what I heard; for the discourse of Louisa Eshton and Mary
8447 Ingram, who sat nearer to me, confused the fragmentary sentences that
8448 reached me at intervals. These last were discussing the stranger; they
8449 both called him "a beautiful man." Louisa said he was "a love of a
8450 creature," and she "adored him;" and Mary instanced his "pretty little
8451 mouth, and nice nose," as her ideal of the charming.
8452
8453 "And what a sweet-tempered forehead he has!" cried Louisa,--"so
8454 smooth--none of those frowning irregularities I dislike so much; and such
8455 a placid eye and smile!"
8456
8457 And then, to my great relief, Mr. Henry Lynn summoned them to the other
8458 side of the room, to settle some point about the deferred excursion to
8459 Hay Common.
8460
8461 I was now able to concentrate my attention on the group by the fire, and
8462 I presently gathered that the new-comer was called Mr. Mason; then I
8463 learned that he was but just arrived in England, and that he came from
8464 some hot country: which was the reason, doubtless, his face was so
8465 sallow, and that he sat so near the hearth, and wore a surtout in the
8466 house. Presently the words Jamaica, Kingston, Spanish Town, indicated
8467 the West Indies as his residence; and it was with no little surprise I
8468 gathered, ere long, that he had there first seen and become acquainted
8469 with Mr. Rochester. He spoke of his friend's dislike of the burning
8470 heats, the hurricanes, and rainy seasons of that region. I knew Mr.
8471 Rochester had been a traveller: Mrs. Fairfax had said so; but I thought
8472 the continent of Europe had bounded his wanderings; till now I had never
8473 heard a hint given of visits to more distant shores.
8474
8475 I was pondering these things, when an incident, and a somewhat unexpected
8476 one, broke the thread of my musings. Mr. Mason, shivering as some one
8477 chanced to open the door, asked for more coal to be put on the fire,
8478 which had burnt out its flame, though its mass of cinder still shone hot
8479 and red. The footman who brought the coal, in going out, stopped near
8480 Mr. Eshton's chair, and said something to him in a low voice, of which I
8481 heard only the words, "old woman,"--"quite troublesome."
8482
8483 "Tell her she shall be put in the stocks if she does not take herself
8484 off," replied the magistrate.
8485
8486 "No--stop!" interrupted Colonel Dent. "Don't send her away, Eshton; we
8487 might turn the thing to account; better consult the ladies." And
8488 speaking aloud, he continued--"Ladies, you talked of going to Hay Common
8489 to visit the gipsy camp; Sam here says that one of the old Mother Bunches
8490 is in the servants' hall at this moment, and insists upon being brought
8491 in before 'the quality,' to tell them their fortunes. Would you like to
8492 see her?"
8493
8494 "Surely, colonel," cried Lady Ingram, "you would not encourage such a low
8495 impostor? Dismiss her, by all means, at once!"
8496
8497 "But I cannot persuade her to go away, my lady," said the footman; "nor
8498 can any of the servants: Mrs. Fairfax is with her just now, entreating
8499 her to be gone; but she has taken a chair in the chimney-corner, and says
8500 nothing shall stir her from it till she gets leave to come in here."
8501
8502 "What does she want?" asked Mrs. Eshton.
8503
8504 "'To tell the gentry their fortunes,' she says, ma'am; and she swears she
8505 must and will do it."
8506
8507 "What is she like?" inquired the Misses Eshton, in a breath.
8508
8509 "A shockingly ugly old creature, miss; almost as black as a crock."
8510
8511 "Why, she's a real sorceress!" cried Frederick Lynn. "Let us have her
8512 in, of course."
8513
8514 "To be sure," rejoined his brother; "it would be a thousand pities to
8515 throw away such a chance of fun."
8516
8517 "My dear boys, what are you thinking about?" exclaimed Mrs. Lynn.
8518
8519 "I cannot possibly countenance any such inconsistent proceeding," chimed
8520 in the Dowager Ingram.
8521
8522 "Indeed, mama, but you can--and will," pronounced the haughty voice of
8523 Blanche, as she turned round on the piano-stool; where till now she had
8524 sat silent, apparently examining sundry sheets of music. "I have a
8525 curiosity to hear my fortune told: therefore, Sam, order the beldame
8526 forward."
8527
8528 "My darling Blanche! recollect--"
8529
8530 "I do--I recollect all you can suggest; and I must have my will--quick,
8531 Sam!"
8532
8533 "Yes--yes--yes!" cried all the juveniles, both ladies and gentlemen. "Let
8534 her come--it will be excellent sport!"
8535
8536 The footman still lingered. "She looks such a rough one," said he.
8537
8538 "Go!" ejaculated Miss Ingram, and the man went.
8539
8540 Excitement instantly seized the whole party: a running fire of raillery
8541 and jests was proceeding when Sam returned.
8542
8543 "She won't come now," said he. "She says it's not her mission to appear
8544 before the 'vulgar herd' (them's her words). I must show her into a room
8545 by herself, and then those who wish to consult her must go to her one by
8546 one."
8547
8548 "You see now, my queenly Blanche," began Lady Ingram, "she encroaches. Be
8549 advised, my angel girl--and--"
8550
8551 "Show her into the library, of course," cut in the "angel girl." "It is
8552 not my mission to listen to her before the vulgar herd either: I mean to
8553 have her all to myself. Is there a fire in the library?"
8554
8555 "Yes, ma'am--but she looks such a tinkler."
8556
8557 "Cease that chatter, blockhead! and do my bidding."
8558
8559 Again Sam vanished; and mystery, animation, expectation rose to full flow
8560 once more.
8561
8562 "She's ready now," said the footman, as he reappeared. "She wishes to
8563 know who will be her first visitor."
8564
8565 "I think I had better just look in upon her before any of the ladies go,"
8566 said Colonel Dent.
8567
8568 "Tell her, Sam, a gentleman is coming."
8569
8570 Sam went and returned.
8571
8572 "She says, sir, that she'll have no gentlemen; they need not trouble
8573 themselves to come near her; nor," he added, with difficulty suppressing
8574 a titter, "any ladies either, except the young, and single."
8575
8576 "By Jove, she has taste!" exclaimed Henry Lynn.
8577
8578 Miss Ingram rose solemnly: "I go first," she said, in a tone which might
8579 have befitted the leader of a forlorn hope, mounting a breach in the van
8580 of his men.
8581
8582 "Oh, my best! oh, my dearest! pause--reflect!" was her mama's cry; but
8583 she swept past her in stately silence, passed through the door which
8584 Colonel Dent held open, and we heard her enter the library.
8585
8586 A comparative silence ensued. Lady Ingram thought it "le cas" to wring
8587 her hands: which she did accordingly. Miss Mary declared she felt, for
8588 her part, she never dared venture. Amy and Louisa Eshton tittered under
8589 their breath, and looked a little frightened.
8590
8591 The minutes passed very slowly: fifteen were counted before the library-
8592 door again opened. Miss Ingram returned to us through the arch.
8593
8594 Would she laugh? Would she take it as a joke? All eyes met her with a
8595 glance of eager curiosity, and she met all eyes with one of rebuff and
8596 coldness; she looked neither flurried nor merry: she walked stiffly to
8597 her seat, and took it in silence.
8598
8599 "Well, Blanche?" said Lord Ingram.
8600
8601 "What did she say, sister?" asked Mary.
8602
8603 "What did you think? How do you feel?--Is she a real fortune-teller?"
8604 demanded the Misses Eshton.
8605
8606 "Now, now, good people," returned Miss Ingram, "don't press upon me.
8607 Really your organs of wonder and credulity are easily excited: you seem,
8608 by the importance of you all--my good mama included--ascribe to this
8609 matter, absolutely to believe we have a genuine witch in the house, who
8610 is in close alliance with the old gentleman. I have seen a gipsy
8611 vagabond; she has practised in hackneyed fashion the science of palmistry
8612 and told me what such people usually tell. My whim is gratified; and now
8613 I think Mr. Eshton will do well to put the hag in the stocks to-morrow
8614 morning, as he threatened."
8615
8616 Miss Ingram took a book, leant back in her chair, and so declined further
8617 conversation. I watched her for nearly half-an-hour: during all that
8618 time she never turned a page, and her face grew momently darker, more
8619 dissatisfied, and more sourly expressive of disappointment. She had
8620 obviously not heard anything to her advantage: and it seemed to me, from
8621 her prolonged fit of gloom and taciturnity, that she herself,
8622 notwithstanding her professed indifference, attached undue importance to
8623 whatever revelations had been made her.
8624
8625 {During all that time she never turned a page: p184.jpg}
8626
8627 Meantime, Mary Ingram, Amy and Louisa Eshton, declared they dared not go
8628 alone; and yet they all wished to go. A negotiation was opened through
8629 the medium of the ambassador, Sam; and after much pacing to and fro,
8630 till, I think, the said Sam's calves must have ached with the exercise,
8631 permission was at last, with great difficulty, extorted from the rigorous
8632 Sibyl, for the three to wait upon her in a body.
8633
8634 Their visit was not so still as Miss Ingram's had been: we heard
8635 hysterical giggling and little shrieks proceeding from the library; and
8636 at the end of about twenty minutes they burst the door open, and came
8637 running across the hall, as if they were half-scared out of their wits.
8638
8639 "I am sure she is something not right!" they cried, one and all. "She
8640 told us such things! She knows all about us!" and they sank breathless
8641 into the various seats the gentlemen hastened to bring them.
8642
8643 Pressed for further explanation, they declared she had told them of
8644 things they had said and done when they were mere children; described
8645 books and ornaments they had in their boudoirs at home: keepsakes that
8646 different relations had presented to them. They affirmed that she had
8647 even divined their thoughts, and had whispered in the ear of each the
8648 name of the person she liked best in the world, and informed them of what
8649 they most wished for.
8650
8651 Here the gentlemen interposed with earnest petitions to be further
8652 enlightened on these two last-named points; but they got only blushes,
8653 ejaculations, tremors, and titters, in return for their importunity. The
8654 matrons, meantime, offered vinaigrettes and wielded fans; and again and
8655 again reiterated the expression of their concern that their warning had
8656 not been taken in time; and the elder gentlemen laughed, and the younger
8657 urged their services on the agitated fair ones.
8658
8659 In the midst of the tumult, and while my eyes and ears were fully engaged
8660 in the scene before me, I heard a hem close at my elbow: I turned, and
8661 saw Sam.
8662
8663 "If you please, miss, the gipsy declares that there is another young
8664 single lady in the room who has not been to her yet, and she swears she
8665 will not go till she has seen all. I thought it must be you: there is no
8666 one else for it. What shall I tell her?"
8667
8668 "Oh, I will go by all means," I answered: and I was glad of the
8669 unexpected opportunity to gratify my much-excited curiosity. I slipped
8670 out of the room, unobserved by any eye--for the company were gathered in
8671 one mass about the trembling trio just returned--and I closed the door
8672 quietly behind me.
8673
8674 "If you like, miss," said Sam, "I'll wait in the hall for you; and if she
8675 frightens you, just call and I'll come in."
8676
8677 "No, Sam, return to the kitchen: I am not in the least afraid." Nor was
8678 I; but I was a good deal interested and excited.
8679
8680
8681
8682
8683 CHAPTER XIX
8684
8685
8686 The library looked tranquil enough as I entered it, and the Sibyl--if
8687 Sibyl she were--was seated snugly enough in an easy-chair at the chimney-
8688 corner. She had on a red cloak and a black bonnet: or rather, a broad-
8689 brimmed gipsy hat, tied down with a striped handkerchief under her chin.
8690 An extinguished candle stood on the table; she was bending over the fire,
8691 and seemed reading in a little black book, like a prayer-book, by the
8692 light of the blaze: she muttered the words to herself, as most old women
8693 do, while she read; she did not desist immediately on my entrance: it
8694 appeared she wished to finish a paragraph.
8695
8696 I stood on the rug and warmed my hands, which were rather cold with
8697 sitting at a distance from the drawing-room fire. I felt now as composed
8698 as ever I did in my life: there was nothing indeed in the gipsy's
8699 appearance to trouble one's calm. She shut her book and slowly looked
8700 up; her hat-brim partially shaded her face, yet I could see, as she
8701 raised it, that it was a strange one. It looked all brown and black: elf-
8702 locks bristled out from beneath a white band which passed under her chin,
8703 and came half over her cheeks, or rather jaws: her eye confronted me at
8704 once, with a bold and direct gaze.
8705
8706 "Well, and you want your fortune told?" she said, in a voice as decided
8707 as her glance, as harsh as her features.
8708
8709 "I don't care about it, mother; you may please yourself: but I ought to
8710 warn you, I have no faith."
8711
8712 "It's like your impudence to say so: I expected it of you; I heard it in
8713 your step as you crossed the threshold."
8714
8715 "Did you? You've a quick ear."
8716
8717 "I have; and a quick eye and a quick brain."
8718
8719 "You need them all in your trade."
8720
8721 "I do; especially when I've customers like you to deal with. Why don't
8722 you tremble?"
8723
8724 "I'm not cold."
8725
8726 "Why don't you turn pale?"
8727
8728 "I am not sick."
8729
8730 "Why don't you consult my art?"
8731
8732 "I'm not silly."
8733
8734 The old crone "nichered" a laugh under her bonnet and bandage; she then
8735 drew out a short black pipe, and lighting it began to smoke. Having
8736 indulged a while in this sedative, she raised her bent body, took the
8737 pipe from her lips, and while gazing steadily at the fire, said very
8738 deliberately--"You are cold; you are sick; and you are silly."
8739
8740 "Prove it," I rejoined.
8741
8742 "I will, in few words. You are cold, because you are alone: no contact
8743 strikes the fire from you that is in you. You are sick; because the best
8744 of feelings, the highest and the sweetest given to man, keeps far away
8745 from you. You are silly, because, suffer as you may, you will not beckon
8746 it to approach, nor will you stir one step to meet it where it waits
8747 you."
8748
8749 She again put her short black pipe to her lips, and renewed her smoking
8750 with vigour.
8751
8752 "You might say all that to almost any one who you knew lived as a
8753 solitary dependent in a great house."
8754
8755 "I might say it to almost any one: but would it be true of almost any
8756 one?"
8757
8758 "In my circumstances."
8759
8760 "Yes; just so, in _your_ circumstances: but find me another precisely
8761 placed as you are."
8762
8763 "It would be easy to find you thousands."
8764
8765 "You could scarcely find me one. If you knew it, you are peculiarly
8766 situated: very near happiness; yes, within reach of it. The materials
8767 are all prepared; there only wants a movement to combine them. Chance
8768 laid them somewhat apart; let them be once approached and bliss results."
8769
8770 "I don't understand enigmas. I never could guess a riddle in my life."
8771
8772 "If you wish me to speak more plainly, show me your palm."
8773
8774 "And I must cross it with silver, I suppose?"
8775
8776 "To be sure."
8777
8778 I gave her a shilling: she put it into an old stocking-foot which she
8779 took out of her pocket, and having tied it round and returned it, she
8780 told me to hold out my hand. I did. She approached her face to the
8781 palm, and pored over it without touching it.
8782
8783 "It is too fine," said she. "I can make nothing of such a hand as that;
8784 almost without lines: besides, what is in a palm? Destiny is not written
8785 there."
8786
8787 "I believe you," said I.
8788
8789 "No," she continued, "it is in the face: on the forehead, about the eyes,
8790 in the lines of the mouth. Kneel, and lift up your head."
8791
8792 "Ah! now you are coming to reality," I said, as I obeyed her. "I shall
8793 begin to put some faith in you presently."
8794
8795 I knelt within half a yard of her. She stirred the fire, so that a
8796 ripple of light broke from the disturbed coal: the glare, however, as she
8797 sat, only threw her face into deeper shadow: mine, it illumined.
8798
8799 "I wonder with what feelings you came to me to-night," she said, when she
8800 had examined me a while. "I wonder what thoughts are busy in your heart
8801 during all the hours you sit in yonder room with the fine people flitting
8802 before you like shapes in a magic-lantern: just as little sympathetic
8803 communion passing between you and them as if they were really mere
8804 shadows of human forms, and not the actual substance."
8805
8806 "I feel tired often, sleepy sometimes, but seldom sad."
8807
8808 "Then you have some secret hope to buoy you up and please you with
8809 whispers of the future?"
8810
8811 "Not I. The utmost I hope is, to save money enough out of my earnings to
8812 set up a school some day in a little house rented by myself."
8813
8814 "A mean nutriment for the spirit to exist on: and sitting in that window-
8815 seat (you see I know your habits )--"
8816
8817 "You have learned them from the servants."
8818
8819 "Ah! you think yourself sharp. Well, perhaps I have: to speak truth, I
8820 have an acquaintance with one of them, Mrs. Poole--"
8821
8822 I started to my feet when I heard the name.
8823
8824 "You have--have you?" thought I; "there is diablerie in the business
8825 after all, then!"
8826
8827 "Don't be alarmed," continued the strange being; "she's a safe hand is
8828 Mrs. Poole: close and quiet; any one may repose confidence in her. But,
8829 as I was saying: sitting in that window-seat, do you think of nothing but
8830 your future school? Have you no present interest in any of the company
8831 who occupy the sofas and chairs before you? Is there not one face you
8832 study? one figure whose movements you follow with at least curiosity?"
8833
8834 "I like to observe all the faces and all the figures."
8835
8836 "But do you never single one from the rest--or it may be, two?"
8837
8838 "I do frequently; when the gestures or looks of a pair seem telling a
8839 tale: it amuses me to watch them."
8840
8841 "What tale do you like best to hear?"
8842
8843 "Oh, I have not much choice! They generally run on the same
8844 theme--courtship; and promise to end in the same catastrophe--marriage."
8845
8846 "And do you like that monotonous theme?"
8847
8848 "Positively, I don't care about it: it is nothing to me."
8849
8850 "Nothing to you? When a lady, young and full of life and health,
8851 charming with beauty and endowed with the gifts of rank and fortune, sits
8852 and smiles in the eyes of a gentleman you--"
8853
8854 "I what?"
8855
8856 "You know--and perhaps think well of."
8857
8858 "I don't know the gentlemen here. I have scarcely interchanged a
8859 syllable with one of them; and as to thinking well of them, I consider
8860 some respectable, and stately, and middle-aged, and others young,
8861 dashing, handsome, and lively: but certainly they are all at liberty to
8862 be the recipients of whose smiles they please, without my feeling
8863 disposed to consider the transaction of any moment to me."
8864
8865 "You don't know the gentlemen here? You have not exchanged a syllable
8866 with one of them? Will you say that of the master of the house!"
8867
8868 "He is not at home."
8869
8870 "A profound remark! A most ingenious quibble! He went to Millcote this
8871 morning, and will be back here to-night or to-morrow: does that
8872 circumstance exclude him from the list of your acquaintance--blot him, as
8873 it were, out of existence?"
8874
8875 "No; but I can scarcely see what Mr. Rochester has to do with the theme
8876 you had introduced."
8877
8878 "I was talking of ladies smiling in the eyes of gentlemen; and of late so
8879 many smiles have been shed into Mr. Rochester's eyes that they overflow
8880 like two cups filled above the brim: have you never remarked that?"
8881
8882 "Mr. Rochester has a right to enjoy the society of his guests."
8883
8884 "No question about his right: but have you never observed that, of all
8885 the tales told here about matrimony, Mr. Rochester has been favoured with
8886 the most lively and the most continuous?"
8887
8888 "The eagerness of a listener quickens the tongue of a narrator." I said
8889 this rather to myself than to the gipsy, whose strange talk, voice,
8890 manner, had by this time wrapped me in a kind of dream. One unexpected
8891 sentence came from her lips after another, till I got involved in a web
8892 of mystification; and wondered what unseen spirit had been sitting for
8893 weeks by my heart watching its workings and taking record of every pulse.
8894
8895 "Eagerness of a listener!" repeated she: "yes; Mr. Rochester has sat by
8896 the hour, his ear inclined to the fascinating lips that took such delight
8897 in their task of communicating; and Mr. Rochester was so willing to
8898 receive and looked so grateful for the pastime given him; you have
8899 noticed this?"
8900
8901 "Grateful! I cannot remember detecting gratitude in his face."
8902
8903 "Detecting! You have analysed, then. And what did you detect, if not
8904 gratitude?"
8905
8906 I said nothing.
8907
8908 "You have seen love: have you not?--and, looking forward, you have seen
8909 him married, and beheld his bride happy?"
8910
8911 "Humph! Not exactly. Your witch's skill is rather at fault sometimes."
8912
8913 "What the devil have you seen, then?"
8914
8915 "Never mind: I came here to inquire, not to confess. Is it known that
8916 Mr. Rochester is to be married?"
8917
8918 "Yes; and to the beautiful Miss Ingram."
8919
8920 "Shortly?"
8921
8922 "Appearances would warrant that conclusion: and, no doubt (though, with
8923 an audacity that wants chastising out of you, you seem to question it),
8924 they will be a superlatively happy pair. He must love such a handsome,
8925 noble, witty, accomplished lady; and probably she loves him, or, if not
8926 his person, at least his purse. I know she considers the Rochester
8927 estate eligible to the last degree; though (God pardon me!) I told her
8928 something on that point about an hour ago which made her look wondrous
8929 grave: the corners of her mouth fell half an inch. I would advise her
8930 blackaviced suitor to look out: if another comes, with a longer or
8931 clearer rent-roll,--he's dished--"
8932
8933 "But, mother, I did not come to hear Mr. Rochester's fortune: I came to
8934 hear my own; and you have told me nothing of it."
8935
8936 "Your fortune is yet doubtful: when I examined your face, one trait
8937 contradicted another. Chance has meted you a measure of happiness: that
8938 I know. I knew it before I came here this evening. She has laid it
8939 carefully on one side for you. I saw her do it. It depends on yourself
8940 to stretch out your hand, and take it up: but whether you will do so, is
8941 the problem I study. Kneel again on the rug."
8942
8943 "Don't keep me long; the fire scorches me."
8944
8945 {She did not stoop towards me, but only gazed, leaning back in her chair:
8946 p190.jpg}
8947
8948 I knelt. She did not stoop towards me, but only gazed, leaning back in
8949 her chair. She began muttering,--
8950
8951 "The flame flickers in the eye; the eye shines like dew; it looks soft
8952 and full of feeling; it smiles at my jargon: it is susceptible;
8953 impression follows impression through its clear sphere; where it ceases
8954 to smile, it is sad; an unconscious lassitude weighs on the lid: that
8955 signifies melancholy resulting from loneliness. It turns from me; it
8956 will not suffer further scrutiny; it seems to deny, by a mocking glance,
8957 the truth of the discoveries I have already made,--to disown the charge
8958 both of sensibility and chagrin: its pride and reserve only confirm me in
8959 my opinion. The eye is favourable.
8960
8961 "As to the mouth, it delights at times in laughter; it is disposed to
8962 impart all that the brain conceives; though I daresay it would be silent
8963 on much the heart experiences. Mobile and flexible, it was never
8964 intended to be compressed in the eternal silence of solitude: it is a
8965 mouth which should speak much and smile often, and have human affection
8966 for its interlocutor. That feature too is propitious.
8967
8968 "I see no enemy to a fortunate issue but in the brow; and that brow
8969 professes to say,--'I can live alone, if self-respect, and circumstances
8970 require me so to do. I need not sell my soul to buy bliss. I have an
8971 inward treasure born with me, which can keep me alive if all extraneous
8972 delights should be withheld, or offered only at a price I cannot afford
8973 to give.' The forehead declares, 'Reason sits firm and holds the reins,
8974 and she will not let the feelings burst away and hurry her to wild
8975 chasms. The passions may rage furiously, like true heathens, as they
8976 are; and the desires may imagine all sorts of vain things: but judgment
8977 shall still have the last word in every argument, and the casting vote in
8978 every decision. Strong wind, earthquake-shock, and fire may pass by: but
8979 I shall follow the guiding of that still small voice which interprets the
8980 dictates of conscience.'
8981
8982 "Well said, forehead; your declaration shall be respected. I have formed
8983 my plans--right plans I deem them--and in them I have attended to the
8984 claims of conscience, the counsels of reason. I know how soon youth
8985 would fade and bloom perish, if, in the cup of bliss offered, but one
8986 dreg of shame, or one flavour of remorse were detected; and I do not want
8987 sacrifice, sorrow, dissolution--such is not my taste. I wish to foster,
8988 not to blight--to earn gratitude, not to wring tears of blood--no, nor of
8989 brine: my harvest must be in smiles, in endearments, in sweet--That will
8990 do. I think I rave in a kind of exquisite delirium. I should wish now
8991 to protract this moment _ad infinitum_; but I dare not. So far I have
8992 governed myself thoroughly. I have acted as I inwardly swore I would
8993 act; but further might try me beyond my strength. Rise, Miss Eyre: leave
8994 me; the play is played out'."
8995
8996 Where was I? Did I wake or sleep? Had I been dreaming? Did I dream
8997 still? The old woman's voice had changed: her accent, her gesture, and
8998 all were familiar to me as my own face in a glass--as the speech of my
8999 own tongue. I got up, but did not go. I looked; I stirred the fire, and
9000 I looked again: but she drew her bonnet and her bandage closer about her
9001 face, and again beckoned me to depart. The flame illuminated her hand
9002 stretched out: roused now, and on the alert for discoveries, I at once
9003 noticed that hand. It was no more the withered limb of eld than my own;
9004 it was a rounded supple member, with smooth fingers, symmetrically
9005 turned; a broad ring flashed on the little finger, and stooping forward,
9006 I looked at it, and saw a gem I had seen a hundred times before. Again I
9007 looked at the face; which was no longer turned from me--on the contrary,
9008 the bonnet was doffed, the bandage displaced, the head advanced.
9009
9010 "Well, Jane, do you know me?" asked the familiar voice.
9011
9012 "Only take off the red cloak, sir, and then--"
9013
9014 "But the string is in a knot--help me."
9015
9016 "Break it, sir."
9017
9018 "There, then--'Off, ye lendings!'" And Mr. Rochester stepped out of his
9019 disguise.
9020
9021 "Now, sir, what a strange idea!"
9022
9023 "But well carried out, eh? Don't you think so?"
9024
9025 "With the ladies you must have managed well."
9026
9027 "But not with you?"
9028
9029 "You did not act the character of a gipsy with me."
9030
9031 "What character did I act? My own?"
9032
9033 "No; some unaccountable one. In short, I believe you have been trying to
9034 draw me out--or in; you have been talking nonsense to make me talk
9035 nonsense. It is scarcely fair, sir."
9036
9037 "Do you forgive me, Jane?"
9038
9039 "I cannot tell till I have thought it all over. If, on reflection, I
9040 find I have fallen into no great absurdity, I shall try to forgive you;
9041 but it was not right."
9042
9043 "Oh, you have been very correct--very careful, very sensible."
9044
9045 I reflected, and thought, on the whole, I had. It was a comfort; but,
9046 indeed, I had been on my guard almost from the beginning of the
9047 interview. Something of masquerade I suspected. I knew gipsies and
9048 fortune-tellers did not express themselves as this seeming old woman had
9049 expressed herself; besides I had noted her feigned voice, her anxiety to
9050 conceal her features. But my mind had been running on Grace Poole--that
9051 living enigma, that mystery of mysteries, as I considered her. I had
9052 never thought of Mr. Rochester.
9053
9054 "Well," said he, "what are you musing about? What does that grave smile
9055 signify?"
9056
9057 "Wonder and self-congratulation, sir. I have your permission to retire
9058 now, I suppose?"
9059
9060 "No; stay a moment; and tell me what the people in the drawing-room
9061 yonder are doing."
9062
9063 "Discussing the gipsy, I daresay."
9064
9065 "Sit down!--Let me hear what they said about me."
9066
9067 "I had better not stay long, sir; it must be near eleven o'clock. Oh,
9068 are you aware, Mr. Rochester, that a stranger has arrived here since you
9069 left this morning?"
9070
9071 "A stranger!--no; who can it be? I expected no one; is he gone?"
9072
9073 "No; he said he had known you long, and that he could take the liberty of
9074 installing himself here till you returned."
9075
9076 "The devil he did! Did he give his name?"
9077
9078 "His name is Mason, sir; and he comes from the West Indies; from Spanish
9079 Town, in Jamaica, I think."
9080
9081 Mr. Rochester was standing near me; he had taken my hand, as if to lead
9082 me to a chair. As I spoke he gave my wrist a convulsive grip; the smile
9083 on his lips froze: apparently a spasm caught his breath.
9084
9085 "Mason!--the West Indies!" he said, in the tone one might fancy a
9086 speaking automaton to enounce its single words; "Mason!--the West
9087 Indies!" he reiterated; and he went over the syllables three times,
9088 growing, in the intervals of speaking, whiter than ashes: he hardly
9089 seemed to know what he was doing.
9090
9091 "Do you feel ill, sir?" I inquired.
9092
9093 "Jane, I've got a blow; I've got a blow, Jane!" He staggered.
9094
9095 "Oh, lean on me, sir."
9096
9097 "Jane, you offered me your shoulder once before; let me have it now."
9098
9099 "Yes, sir, yes; and my arm."
9100
9101 He sat down, and made me sit beside him. Holding my hand in both his
9102 own, he chafed it; gazing on me, at the same time, with the most troubled
9103 and dreary look.
9104
9105 "My little friend!" said he, "I wish I were in a quiet island with only
9106 you; and trouble, and danger, and hideous recollections removed from me."
9107
9108 "Can I help you, sir?--I'd give my life to serve you."
9109
9110 "Jane, if aid is wanted, I'll seek it at your hands; I promise you that."
9111
9112 "Thank you, sir. Tell me what to do,--I'll try, at least, to do it."
9113
9114 "Fetch me now, Jane, a glass of wine from the dining-room: they will be
9115 at supper there; and tell me if Mason is with them, and what he is
9116 doing."
9117
9118 I went. I found all the party in the dining-room at supper, as Mr.
9119 Rochester had said; they were not seated at table,--the supper was
9120 arranged on the sideboard; each had taken what he chose, and they stood
9121 about here and there in groups, their plates and glasses in their hands.
9122 Every one seemed in high glee; laughter and conversation were general and
9123 animated. Mr. Mason stood near the fire, talking to Colonel and Mrs.
9124 Dent, and appeared as merry as any of them. I filled a wine-glass (I saw
9125 Miss Ingram watch me frowningly as I did so: she thought I was taking a
9126 liberty, I daresay), and I returned to the library.
9127
9128 Mr. Rochester's extreme pallor had disappeared, and he looked once more
9129 firm and stern. He took the glass from my hand.
9130
9131 "Here is to your health, ministrant spirit!" he said. He swallowed the
9132 contents and returned it to me. "What are they doing, Jane?"
9133
9134 "Laughing and talking, sir."
9135
9136 "They don't look grave and mysterious, as if they had heard something
9137 strange?"
9138
9139 "Not at all: they are full of jests and gaiety."
9140
9141 "And Mason?"
9142
9143 "He was laughing too."
9144
9145 "If all these people came in a body and spat at me, what would you do,
9146 Jane?"
9147
9148 "Turn them out of the room, sir, if I could."
9149
9150 He half smiled. "But if I were to go to them, and they only looked at me
9151 coldly, and whispered sneeringly amongst each other, and then dropped off
9152 and left me one by one, what then? Would you go with them?"
9153
9154 "I rather think not, sir: I should have more pleasure in staying with
9155 you."
9156
9157 "To comfort me?"
9158
9159 "Yes, sir, to comfort you, as well as I could."
9160
9161 "And if they laid you under a ban for adhering to me?"
9162
9163 "I, probably, should know nothing about their ban; and if I did, I should
9164 care nothing about it."
9165
9166 "Then, you could dare censure for my sake?"
9167
9168 "I could dare it for the sake of any friend who deserved my adherence; as
9169 you, I am sure, do."
9170
9171 "Go back now into the room; step quietly up to Mason, and whisper in his
9172 ear that Mr. Rochester is come and wishes to see him: show him in here
9173 and then leave me."
9174
9175 "Yes, sir."
9176
9177 I did his behest. The company all stared at me as I passed straight
9178 among them. I sought Mr. Mason, delivered the message, and preceded him
9179 from the room: I ushered him into the library, and then I went upstairs.
9180
9181 At a late hour, after I had been in bed some time, I heard the visitors
9182 repair to their chambers: I distinguished Mr. Rochester's voice, and
9183 heard him say, "This way, Mason; this is your room."
9184
9185 He spoke cheerfully: the gay tones set my heart at ease. I was soon
9186 asleep.
9187
9188
9189
9190
9191 CHAPTER XX
9192
9193
9194 I had forgotten to draw my curtain, which I usually did, and also to let
9195 down my window-blind. The consequence was, that when the moon, which was
9196 full and bright (for the night was fine), came in her course to that
9197 space in the sky opposite my casement, and looked in at me through the
9198 unveiled panes, her glorious gaze roused me. Awaking in the dead of
9199 night, I opened my eyes on her disk--silver-white and crystal clear. It
9200 was beautiful, but too solemn; I half rose, and stretched my arm to draw
9201 the curtain.
9202
9203 Good God! What a cry!
9204
9205 The night--its silence--its rest, was rent in twain by a savage, a sharp,
9206 a shrilly sound that ran from end to end of Thornfield Hall.
9207
9208 My pulse stopped: my heart stood still; my stretched arm was paralysed.
9209 The cry died, and was not renewed. Indeed, whatever being uttered that
9210 fearful shriek could not soon repeat it: not the widest-winged condor on
9211 the Andes could, twice in succession, send out such a yell from the cloud
9212 shrouding his eyrie. The thing delivering such utterance must rest ere
9213 it could repeat the effort.
9214
9215 It came out of the third storey; for it passed overhead. And
9216 overhead--yes, in the room just above my chamber-ceiling--I now heard a
9217 struggle: a deadly one it seemed from the noise; and a half-smothered
9218 voice shouted--
9219
9220 "Help! help! help!" three times rapidly.
9221
9222 "Will no one come?" it cried; and then, while the staggering and stamping
9223 went on wildly, I distinguished through plank and plaster:--
9224
9225 "Rochester! Rochester! for God's sake, come!"
9226
9227 A chamber-door opened: some one ran, or rushed, along the gallery.
9228 Another step stamped on the flooring above and something fell; and there
9229 was silence.
9230
9231 I had put on some clothes, though horror shook all my limbs; I issued
9232 from my apartment. The sleepers were all aroused: ejaculations,
9233 terrified murmurs sounded in every room; door after door unclosed; one
9234 looked out and another looked out; the gallery filled. Gentlemen and
9235 ladies alike had quitted their beds; and "Oh! what is it?"--"Who is
9236 hurt?"--"What has happened?"--"Fetch a light!"--"Is it fire?"--"Are there
9237 robbers?"--"Where shall we run?" was demanded confusedly on all hands.
9238 But for the moonlight they would have been in complete darkness. They
9239 ran to and fro; they crowded together: some sobbed, some stumbled: the
9240 confusion was inextricable.
9241
9242 "Where the devil is Rochester?" cried Colonel Dent. "I cannot find him
9243 in his bed."
9244
9245 "Here! here!" was shouted in return. "Be composed, all of you: I'm
9246 coming."
9247
9248 And the door at the end of the gallery opened, and Mr. Rochester advanced
9249 with a candle: he had just descended from the upper storey. One of the
9250 ladies ran to him directly; she seized his arm: it was Miss Ingram.
9251
9252 "What awful event has taken place?" said she. "Speak! let us know the
9253 worst at once!"
9254
9255 "But don't pull me down or strangle me," he replied: for the Misses
9256 Eshton were clinging about him now; and the two dowagers, in vast white
9257 wrappers, were bearing down on him like ships in full sail.
9258
9259 "All's right!--all's right!" he cried. "It's a mere rehearsal of Much
9260 Ado about Nothing. Ladies, keep off, or I shall wax dangerous."
9261
9262 And dangerous he looked: his black eyes darted sparks. Calming himself
9263 by an effort, he added--
9264
9265 "A servant has had the nightmare; that is all. She's an excitable,
9266 nervous person: she construed her dream into an apparition, or something
9267 of that sort, no doubt; and has taken a fit with fright. Now, then, I
9268 must see you all back into your rooms; for, till the house is settled,
9269 she cannot be looked after. Gentlemen, have the goodness to set the
9270 ladies the example. Miss Ingram, I am sure you will not fail in evincing
9271 superiority to idle terrors. Amy and Louisa, return to your nests like a
9272 pair of doves, as you are. Mesdames" (to the dowagers), "you will take
9273 cold to a dead certainty, if you stay in this chill gallery any longer."
9274
9275 And so, by dint of alternate coaxing and commanding, he contrived to get
9276 them all once more enclosed in their separate dormitories. I did not
9277 wait to be ordered back to mine, but retreated unnoticed, as unnoticed I
9278 had left it.
9279
9280 Not, however, to go to bed: on the contrary, I began and dressed myself
9281 carefully. The sounds I had heard after the scream, and the words that
9282 had been uttered, had probably been heard only by me; for they had
9283 proceeded from the room above mine: but they assured me that it was not a
9284 servant's dream which had thus struck horror through the house; and that
9285 the explanation Mr. Rochester had given was merely an invention framed to
9286 pacify his guests. I dressed, then, to be ready for emergencies. When
9287 dressed, I sat a long time by the window looking out over the silent
9288 grounds and silvered fields and waiting for I knew not what. It seemed
9289 to me that some event must follow the strange cry, struggle, and call.
9290
9291 No: stillness returned: each murmur and movement ceased gradually, and in
9292 about an hour Thornfield Hall was again as hushed as a desert. It seemed
9293 that sleep and night had resumed their empire. Meantime the moon
9294 declined: she was about to set. Not liking to sit in the cold and
9295 darkness, I thought I would lie down on my bed, dressed as I was. I left
9296 the window, and moved with little noise across the carpet; as I stooped
9297 to take off my shoes, a cautious hand tapped low at the door.
9298
9299 "Am I wanted?" I asked.
9300
9301 "Are you up?" asked the voice I expected to hear, viz., my master's.
9302
9303 "Yes, sir."
9304
9305 "And dressed?"
9306
9307 "Yes."
9308
9309 "Come out, then, quietly."
9310
9311 I obeyed. Mr. Rochester stood in the gallery holding a light.
9312
9313 "I want you," he said: "come this way: take your time, and make no
9314 noise."
9315
9316 My slippers were thin: I could walk the matted floor as softly as a cat.
9317 He glided up the gallery and up the stairs, and stopped in the dark, low
9318 corridor of the fateful third storey: I had followed and stood at his
9319 side.
9320
9321 "Have you a sponge in your room?" he asked in a whisper.
9322
9323 "Yes, sir."
9324
9325 "Have you any salts--volatile salts?"
9326
9327 "Yes."
9328
9329 "Go back and fetch both."
9330
9331 I returned, sought the sponge on the washstand, the salts in my drawer,
9332 and once more retraced my steps. He still waited; he held a key in his
9333 hand: approaching one of the small, black doors, he put it in the lock;
9334 he paused, and addressed me again.
9335
9336 "You don't turn sick at the sight of blood?"
9337
9338 "I think I shall not: I have never been tried yet."
9339
9340 I felt a thrill while I answered him; but no coldness, and no faintness.
9341
9342 "Just give me your hand," he said: "it will not do to risk a fainting
9343 fit."
9344
9345 I put my fingers into his. "Warm and steady," was his remark: he turned
9346 the key and opened the door.
9347
9348 I saw a room I remembered to have seen before, the day Mrs. Fairfax
9349 showed me over the house: it was hung with tapestry; but the tapestry was
9350 now looped up in one part, and there was a door apparent, which had then
9351 been concealed. This door was open; a light shone out of the room
9352 within: I heard thence a snarling, snatching sound, almost like a dog
9353 quarrelling. Mr. Rochester, putting down his candle, said to me, "Wait a
9354 minute," and he went forward to the inner apartment. A shout of laughter
9355 greeted his entrance; noisy at first, and terminating in Grace Poole's
9356 own goblin ha! ha! _She_ then was there. He made some sort of
9357 arrangement without speaking, though I heard a low voice address him: he
9358 came out and closed the door behind him.
9359
9360 "Here, Jane!" he said; and I walked round to the other side of a large
9361 bed, which with its drawn curtains concealed a considerable portion of
9362 the chamber. An easy-chair was near the bed-head: a man sat in it,
9363 dressed with the exception of his coat; he was still; his head leant
9364 back; his eyes were closed. Mr. Rochester held the candle over him; I
9365 recognised in his pale and seemingly lifeless face--the stranger, Mason:
9366 I saw too that his linen on one side, and one arm, was almost soaked in
9367 blood.
9368
9369 "Hold the candle," said Mr. Rochester, and I took it: he fetched a basin
9370 of water from the washstand: "Hold that," said he. I obeyed. He took
9371 the sponge, dipped it in, and moistened the corpse-like face; he asked
9372 for my smelling-bottle, and applied it to the nostrils. Mr. Mason
9373 shortly unclosed his eyes; he groaned. Mr. Rochester opened the shirt of
9374 the wounded man, whose arm and shoulder were bandaged: he sponged away
9375 blood, trickling fast down.
9376
9377 "Is there immediate danger?" murmured Mr. Mason.
9378
9379 "Pooh! No--a mere scratch. Don't be so overcome, man: bear up! I'll
9380 fetch a surgeon for you now, myself: you'll be able to be removed by
9381 morning, I hope. Jane," he continued.
9382
9383 "Sir?"
9384
9385 "I shall have to leave you in this room with this gentleman, for an hour,
9386 or perhaps two hours: you will sponge the blood as I do when it returns:
9387 if he feels faint, you will put the glass of water on that stand to his
9388 lips, and your salts to his nose. You will not speak to him on any
9389 pretext--and--Richard, it will be at the peril of your life if you speak
9390 to her: open your lips--agitate yourself--and I'll not answer for the
9391 consequences."
9392
9393 Again the poor man groaned; he looked as if he dared not move; fear,
9394 either of death or of something else, appeared almost to paralyse him.
9395 Mr. Rochester put the now bloody sponge into my hand, and I proceeded to
9396 use it as he had done. He watched me a second, then saying,
9397 "Remember!--No conversation," he left the room. I experienced a strange
9398 feeling as the key grated in the lock, and the sound of his retreating
9399 step ceased to be heard.
9400
9401 Here then I was in the third storey, fastened into one of its mystic
9402 cells; night around me; a pale and bloody spectacle under my eyes and
9403 hands; a murderess hardly separated from me by a single door: yes--that
9404 was appalling--the rest I could bear; but I shuddered at the thought of
9405 Grace Poole bursting out upon me.
9406
9407 I must keep to my post, however. I must watch this ghastly
9408 countenance--these blue, still lips forbidden to unclose--these eyes now
9409 shut, now opening, now wandering through the room, now fixing on me, and
9410 ever glazed with the dulness of horror. I must dip my hand again and
9411 again in the basin of blood and water, and wipe away the trickling gore.
9412 I must see the light of the unsnuffed candle wane on my employment; the
9413 shadows darken on the wrought, antique tapestry round me, and grow black
9414 under the hangings of the vast old bed, and quiver strangely over the
9415 doors of a great cabinet opposite--whose front, divided into twelve
9416 panels, bore, in grim design, the heads of the twelve apostles, each
9417 enclosed in its separate panel as in a frame; while above them at the top
9418 rose an ebon crucifix and a dying Christ.
9419
9420 According as the shifting obscurity and flickering gleam hovered here or
9421 glanced there, it was now the bearded physician, Luke, that bent his
9422 brow; now St. John's long hair that waved; and anon the devilish face of
9423 Judas, that grew out of the panel, and seemed gathering life and
9424 threatening a revelation of the arch-traitor--of Satan himself--in his
9425 subordinate's form.
9426
9427 Amidst all this, I had to listen as well as watch: to listen for the
9428 movements of the wild beast or the fiend in yonder side den. But since
9429 Mr. Rochester's visit it seemed spellbound: all the night I heard but
9430 three sounds at three long intervals,--a step creak, a momentary renewal
9431 of the snarling, canine noise, and a deep human groan.
9432
9433 Then my own thoughts worried me. What crime was this that lived
9434 incarnate in this sequestered mansion, and could neither be expelled nor
9435 subdued by the owner?--what mystery, that broke out now in fire and now
9436 in blood, at the deadest hours of night? What creature was it, that,
9437 masked in an ordinary woman's face and shape, uttered the voice, now of a
9438 mocking demon, and anon of a carrion-seeking bird of prey?
9439
9440 And this man I bent over--this commonplace, quiet stranger--how had he
9441 become involved in the web of horror? and why had the Fury flown at him?
9442 What made him seek this quarter of the house at an untimely season, when
9443 he should have been asleep in bed? I had heard Mr. Rochester assign him
9444 an apartment below--what brought him here! And why, now, was he so tame
9445 under the violence or treachery done him? Why did he so quietly submit
9446 to the concealment Mr. Rochester enforced? Why _did_ Mr. Rochester
9447 enforce this concealment? His guest had been outraged, his own life on a
9448 former occasion had been hideously plotted against; and both attempts he
9449 smothered in secrecy and sank in oblivion! Lastly, I saw Mr. Mason was
9450 submissive to Mr. Rochester; that the impetuous will of the latter held
9451 complete sway over the inertness of the former: the few words which had
9452 passed between them assured me of this. It was evident that in their
9453 former intercourse, the passive disposition of the one had been
9454 habitually influenced by the active energy of the other: whence then had
9455 arisen Mr. Rochester's dismay when he heard of Mr. Mason's arrival? Why
9456 had the mere name of this unresisting individual--whom his word now
9457 sufficed to control like a child--fallen on him, a few hours since, as a
9458 thunderbolt might fall on an oak?
9459
9460 Oh! I could not forget his look and his paleness when he whispered:
9461 "Jane, I have got a blow--I have got a blow, Jane." I could not forget
9462 how the arm had trembled which he rested on my shoulder: and it was no
9463 light matter which could thus bow the resolute spirit and thrill the
9464 vigorous frame of Fairfax Rochester.
9465
9466 "When will he come? When will he come?" I cried inwardly, as the night
9467 lingered and lingered--as my bleeding patient drooped, moaned, sickened:
9468 and neither day nor aid arrived. I had, again and again, held the water
9469 to Mason's white lips; again and again offered him the stimulating salts:
9470 my efforts seemed ineffectual: either bodily or mental suffering, or loss
9471 of blood, or all three combined, were fast prostrating his strength. He
9472 moaned so, and looked so weak, wild, and lost, I feared he was dying; and
9473 I might not even speak to him.
9474
9475 The candle, wasted at last, went out; as it expired, I perceived streaks
9476 of grey light edging the window curtains: dawn was then approaching.
9477 Presently I heard Pilot bark far below, out of his distant kennel in the
9478 courtyard: hope revived. Nor was it unwarranted: in five minutes more
9479 the grating key, the yielding lock, warned me my watch was relieved. It
9480 could not have lasted more than two hours: many a week has seemed
9481 shorter.
9482
9483 Mr. Rochester entered, and with him the surgeon he had been to fetch.
9484
9485 "Now, Carter, be on the alert," he said to this last: "I give you but
9486 half-an-hour for dressing the wound, fastening the bandages, getting the
9487 patient downstairs and all."
9488
9489 "But is he fit to move, sir?"
9490
9491 "No doubt of it; it is nothing serious; he is nervous, his spirits must
9492 be kept up. Come, set to work."
9493
9494 Mr. Rochester drew back the thick curtain, drew up the holland blind, let
9495 in all the daylight he could; and I was surprised and cheered to see how
9496 far dawn was advanced: what rosy streaks were beginning to brighten the
9497 east. Then he approached Mason, whom the surgeon was already handling.
9498
9499 "Now, my good fellow, how are you?" he asked.
9500
9501 "She's done for me, I fear," was the faint reply.
9502
9503 "Not a whit!--courage! This day fortnight you'll hardly be a pin the
9504 worse of it: you've lost a little blood; that's all. Carter, assure him
9505 there's no danger."
9506
9507 "I can do that conscientiously," said Carter, who had now undone the
9508 bandages; "only I wish I could have got here sooner: he would not have
9509 bled so much--but how is this? The flesh on the shoulder is torn as well
9510 as cut. This wound was not done with a knife: there have been teeth
9511 here!"
9512
9513 "She bit me," he murmured. "She worried me like a tigress, when
9514 Rochester got the knife from her."
9515
9516 "You should not have yielded: you should have grappled with her at once,"
9517 said Mr. Rochester.
9518
9519 "But under such circumstances, what could one do?" returned Mason. "Oh,
9520 it was frightful!" he added, shuddering. "And I did not expect it: she
9521 looked so quiet at first."
9522
9523 "I warned you," was his friend's answer; "I said--be on your guard when
9524 you go near her. Besides, you might have waited till to-morrow, and had
9525 me with you: it was mere folly to attempt the interview to-night, and
9526 alone."
9527
9528 "I thought I could have done some good."
9529
9530 "You thought! you thought! Yes, it makes me impatient to hear you: but,
9531 however, you have suffered, and are likely to suffer enough for not
9532 taking my advice; so I'll say no more. Carter--hurry!--hurry! The sun
9533 will soon rise, and I must have him off."
9534
9535 "Directly, sir; the shoulder is just bandaged. I must look to this other
9536 wound in the arm: she has had her teeth here too, I think."
9537
9538 "She sucked the blood: she said she'd drain my heart," said Mason.
9539
9540 I saw Mr. Rochester shudder: a singularly marked expression of disgust,
9541 horror, hatred, warped his countenance almost to distortion; but he only
9542 said--
9543
9544 "Come, be silent, Richard, and never mind her gibberish: don't repeat
9545 it."
9546
9547 "I wish I could forget it," was the answer.
9548
9549 "You will when you are out of the country: when you get back to Spanish
9550 Town, you may think of her as dead and buried--or rather, you need not
9551 think of her at all."
9552
9553 "Impossible to forget this night!"
9554
9555 "It is not impossible: have some energy, man. You thought you were as
9556 dead as a herring two hours since, and you are all alive and talking now.
9557 There!--Carter has done with you or nearly so; I'll make you decent in a
9558 trice. Jane" (he turned to me for the first time since his re-entrance),
9559 "take this key: go down into my bedroom, and walk straight forward into
9560 my dressing-room: open the top drawer of the wardrobe and take out a
9561 clean shirt and neck-handkerchief: bring them here; and be nimble."
9562
9563 I went; sought the repository he had mentioned, found the articles named,
9564 and returned with them.
9565
9566 "Now," said he, "go to the other side of the bed while I order his
9567 toilet; but don't leave the room: you may be wanted again."
9568
9569 I retired as directed.
9570
9571 "Was anybody stirring below when you went down, Jane?" inquired Mr.
9572 Rochester presently.
9573
9574 "No, sir; all was very still."
9575
9576 "We shall get you off cannily, Dick: and it will be better, both for your
9577 sake, and for that of the poor creature in yonder. I have striven long
9578 to avoid exposure, and I should not like it to come at last. Here,
9579 Carter, help him on with his waist-coat. Where did you leave your furred
9580 cloak? You can't travel a mile without that, I know, in this damned cold
9581 climate. In your room?--Jane, run down to Mr. Mason's room,--the one
9582 next mine,--and fetch a cloak you will see there."
9583
9584 Again I ran, and again returned, bearing an immense mantle lined and
9585 edged with fur.
9586
9587 "Now, I've another errand for you," said my untiring master; "you must
9588 away to my room again. What a mercy you are shod with velvet, Jane!--a
9589 clod-hopping messenger would never do at this juncture. You must open
9590 the middle drawer of my toilet-table and take out a little phial and a
9591 little glass you will find there,--quick!"
9592
9593 I flew thither and back, bringing the desired vessels.
9594
9595 "That's well! Now, doctor, I shall take the liberty of administering a
9596 dose myself, on my own responsibility. I got this cordial at Rome, of an
9597 Italian charlatan--a fellow you would have kicked, Carter. It is not a
9598 thing to be used indiscriminately, but it is good upon occasion: as now,
9599 for instance. Jane, a little water."
9600
9601 He held out the tiny glass, and I half filled it from the water-bottle on
9602 the washstand.
9603
9604 "That will do;--now wet the lip of the phial."
9605
9606 I did so; he measured twelve drops of a crimson liquid, and presented it
9607 to Mason.
9608
9609 "Drink, Richard: it will give you the heart you lack, for an hour or so."
9610
9611 "But will it hurt me?--is it inflammatory?"
9612
9613 "Drink! drink! drink!"
9614
9615 Mr. Mason obeyed, because it was evidently useless to resist. He was
9616 dressed now: he still looked pale, but he was no longer gory and sullied.
9617 Mr. Rochester let him sit three minutes after he had swallowed the
9618 liquid; he then took his arm--
9619
9620 "Now I am sure you can get on your feet," he said--"try."
9621
9622 The patient rose.
9623
9624 "Carter, take him under the other shoulder. Be of good cheer, Richard;
9625 step out--that's it!"
9626
9627 "I do feel better," remarked Mr. Mason.
9628
9629 "I am sure you do. Now, Jane, trip on before us away to the backstairs;
9630 unbolt the side-passage door, and tell the driver of the post-chaise you
9631 will see in the yard--or just outside, for I told him not to drive his
9632 rattling wheels over the pavement--to be ready; we are coming: and, Jane,
9633 if any one is about, come to the foot of the stairs and hem."
9634
9635 It was by this time half-past five, and the sun was on the point of
9636 rising; but I found the kitchen still dark and silent. The side-passage
9637 door was fastened; I opened it with as little noise as possible: all the
9638 yard was quiet; but the gates stood wide open, and there was a
9639 post-chaise, with horses ready harnessed, and driver seated on the box,
9640 stationed outside. I approached him, and said the gentlemen were coming;
9641 he nodded: then I looked carefully round and listened. The stillness of
9642 early morning slumbered everywhere; the curtains were yet drawn over the
9643 servants' chamber windows; little birds were just twittering in the
9644 blossom-blanched orchard trees, whose boughs drooped like white garlands
9645 over the wall enclosing one side of the yard; the carriage horses stamped
9646 from time to time in their closed stables: all else was still.
9647
9648 The gentlemen now appeared. Mason, supported by Mr. Rochester and the
9649 surgeon, seemed to walk with tolerable ease: they assisted him into the
9650 chaise; Carter followed.
9651
9652 "Take care of him," said Mr. Rochester to the latter, "and keep him at
9653 your house till he is quite well: I shall ride over in a day or two to
9654 see how he gets on. Richard, how is it with you?"
9655
9656 "The fresh air revives me, Fairfax."
9657
9658 "Leave the window open on his side, Carter; there is no wind--good-bye,
9659 Dick."
9660
9661 "Fairfax--"
9662
9663 "Well what is it?"
9664
9665 "Let her be taken care of; let her be treated as tenderly as may be: let
9666 her--" he stopped and burst into tears.
9667
9668 "I do my best; and have done it, and will do it," was the answer: he shut
9669 up the chaise door, and the vehicle drove away.
9670
9671 "Yet would to God there was an end of all this!" added Mr. Rochester, as
9672 he closed and barred the heavy yard-gates.
9673
9674 This done, he moved with slow step and abstracted air towards a door in
9675 the wall bordering the orchard. I, supposing he had done with me,
9676 prepared to return to the house; again, however, I heard him call "Jane!"
9677 He had opened the portal and stood at it, waiting for me.
9678
9679 "Come where there is some freshness, for a few moments," he said; "that
9680 house is a mere dungeon: don't you feel it so?"
9681
9682 "It seems to me a splendid mansion, sir."
9683
9684 "The glamour of inexperience is over your eyes," he answered; "and you
9685 see it through a charmed medium: you cannot discern that the gilding is
9686 slime and the silk draperies cobwebs; that the marble is sordid slate,
9687 and the polished woods mere refuse chips and scaly bark. Now _here_" (he
9688 pointed to the leafy enclosure we had entered) "all is real, sweet, and
9689 pure."
9690
9691 He strayed down a walk edged with box, with apple trees, pear trees, and
9692 cherry trees on one side, and a border on the other full of all sorts of
9693 old-fashioned flowers, stocks, sweet-williams, primroses, pansies,
9694 mingled with southernwood, sweet-briar, and various fragrant herbs. They
9695 were fresh now as a succession of April showers and gleams, followed by a
9696 lovely spring morning, could make them: the sun was just entering the
9697 dappled east, and his light illumined the wreathed and dewy orchard trees
9698 and shone down the quiet walks under them.
9699
9700 "Jane, will you have a flower?"
9701
9702 He gathered a half-blown rose, the first on the bush, and offered it to
9703 me.
9704
9705 "Thank you, sir."
9706
9707 "Do you like this sunrise, Jane? That sky with its high and light clouds
9708 which are sure to melt away as the day waxes warm--this placid and balmly
9709 atmosphere?"
9710
9711 "I do, very much."
9712
9713 "You have passed a strange night, Jane."
9714
9715 "Yes, sir."
9716
9717 "And it has made you look pale--were you afraid when I left you alone
9718 with Mason?"
9719
9720 "I was afraid of some one coming out of the inner room."
9721
9722 "But I had fastened the door--I had the key in my pocket: I should have
9723 been a careless shepherd if I had left a lamb--my pet lamb--so near a
9724 wolf's den, unguarded: you were safe."
9725
9726 "Will Grace Poole live here still, sir?"
9727
9728 "Oh yes! don't trouble your head about her--put the thing out of your
9729 thoughts."
9730
9731 "Yet it seems to me your life is hardly secure while she stays."
9732
9733 "Never fear--I will take care of myself."
9734
9735 "Is the danger you apprehended last night gone by now, sir?"
9736
9737 "I cannot vouch for that till Mason is out of England: nor even then. To
9738 live, for me, Jane, is to stand on a crater-crust which may crack and
9739 spue fire any day."
9740
9741 "But Mr. Mason seems a man easily led. Your influence, sir, is evidently
9742 potent with him: he will never set you at defiance or wilfully injure
9743 you."
9744
9745 "Oh, no! Mason will not defy me; nor, knowing it, will he hurt me--but,
9746 unintentionally, he might in a moment, by one careless word, deprive me,
9747 if not of life, yet for ever of happiness."
9748
9749 "Tell him to be cautious, sir: let him know what you fear, and show him
9750 how to avert the danger."
9751
9752 He laughed sardonically, hastily took my hand, and as hastily threw it
9753 from him.
9754
9755 "If I could do that, simpleton, where would the danger be? Annihilated
9756 in a moment. Ever since I have known Mason, I have only had to say to
9757 him 'Do that,' and the thing has been done. But I cannot give him orders
9758 in this case: I cannot say 'Beware of harming me, Richard;' for it is
9759 imperative that I should keep him ignorant that harm to me is possible.
9760 Now you look puzzled; and I will puzzle you further. You are my little
9761 friend, are you not?"
9762
9763 "I like to serve you, sir, and to obey you in all that is right."
9764
9765 "Precisely: I see you do. I see genuine contentment in your gait and
9766 mien, your eye and face, when you are helping me and pleasing me--working
9767 for me, and with me, in, as you characteristically say, '_all that is
9768 right_:' for if I bid you do what you thought wrong, there would be no
9769 light-footed running, no neat-handed alacrity, no lively glance and
9770 animated complexion. My friend would then turn to me, quiet and pale,
9771 and would say, 'No, sir; that is impossible: I cannot do it, because it
9772 is wrong;' and would become immutable as a fixed star. Well, you too
9773 have power over me, and may injure me: yet I dare not show you where I am
9774 vulnerable, lest, faithful and friendly as you are, you should transfix
9775 me at once."
9776
9777 "If you have no more to fear from Mr. Mason than you have from me, sir,
9778 you are very safe."
9779
9780 "God grant it may be so! Here, Jane, is an arbour; sit down."
9781
9782 The arbour was an arch in the wall, lined with ivy; it contained a rustic
9783 seat. Mr. Rochester took it, leaving room, however, for me: but I stood
9784 before him.
9785
9786 "Sit," he said; "the bench is long enough for two. You don't hesitate to
9787 take a place at my side, do you? Is that wrong, Jane?"
9788
9789 I answered him by assuming it: to refuse would, I felt, have been unwise.
9790
9791 "Now, my little friend, while the sun drinks the dew--while all the
9792 flowers in this old garden awake and expand, and the birds fetch their
9793 young ones' breakfast out of the Thornfield, and the early bees do their
9794 first spell of work--I'll put a case to you, which you must endeavour to
9795 suppose your own: but first, look at me, and tell me you are at ease, and
9796 not fearing that I err in detaining you, or that you err in staying."
9797
9798 "No, sir; I am content."
9799
9800 "Well then, Jane, call to aid your fancy:--suppose you were no longer a
9801 girl well reared and disciplined, but a wild boy indulged from childhood
9802 upwards; imagine yourself in a remote foreign land; conceive that you
9803 there commit a capital error, no matter of what nature or from what
9804 motives, but one whose consequences must follow you through life and
9805 taint all your existence. Mind, I don't say a _crime_; I am not speaking
9806 of shedding of blood or any other guilty act, which might make the
9807 perpetrator amenable to the law: my word is _error_. The results of what
9808 you have done become in time to you utterly insupportable; you take
9809 measures to obtain relief: unusual measures, but neither unlawful nor
9810 culpable. Still you are miserable; for hope has quitted you on the very
9811 confines of life: your sun at noon darkens in an eclipse, which you feel
9812 will not leave it till the time of setting. Bitter and base associations
9813 have become the sole food of your memory: you wander here and there,
9814 seeking rest in exile: happiness in pleasure--I mean in heartless,
9815 sensual pleasure--such as dulls intellect and blights feeling.
9816 Heart-weary and soul-withered, you come home after years of voluntary
9817 banishment: you make a new acquaintance--how or where no matter: you find
9818 in this stranger much of the good and bright qualities which you have
9819 sought for twenty years, and never before encountered; and they are all
9820 fresh, healthy, without soil and without taint. Such society revives,
9821 regenerates: you feel better days come back--higher wishes, purer
9822 feelings; you desire to recommence your life, and to spend what remains
9823 to you of days in a way more worthy of an immortal being. To attain this
9824 end, are you justified in overleaping an obstacle of custom--a mere
9825 conventional impediment which neither your conscience sanctifies nor your
9826 judgment approves?"
9827
9828 He paused for an answer: and what was I to say? Oh, for some good spirit
9829 to suggest a judicious and satisfactory response! Vain aspiration! The
9830 west wind whispered in the ivy round me; but no gentle Ariel borrowed its
9831 breath as a medium of speech: the birds sang in the tree-tops; but their
9832 song, however sweet, was inarticulate.
9833
9834 Again Mr. Rochester propounded his query:
9835
9836 "Is the wandering and sinful, but now rest-seeking and repentant, man
9837 justified in daring the world's opinion, in order to attach to him for
9838 ever this gentle, gracious, genial stranger, thereby securing his own
9839 peace of mind and regeneration of life?"
9840
9841 "Sir," I answered, "a wanderer's repose or a sinner's reformation should
9842 never depend on a fellow-creature. Men and women die; philosophers
9843 falter in wisdom, and Christians in goodness: if any one you know has
9844 suffered and erred, let him look higher than his equals for strength to
9845 amend and solace to heal."
9846
9847 "But the instrument--the instrument! God, who does the work, ordains the
9848 instrument. I have myself--I tell it you without parable--been a
9849 worldly, dissipated, restless man; and I believe I have found the
9850 instrument for my cure in--"
9851
9852 He paused: the birds went on carolling, the leaves lightly rustling. I
9853 almost wondered they did not check their songs and whispers to catch the
9854 suspended revelation; but they would have had to wait many minutes--so
9855 long was the silence protracted. At last I looked up at the tardy
9856 speaker: he was looking eagerly at me.
9857
9858 "Little friend," said he, in quite a changed tone--while his face changed
9859 too, losing all its softness and gravity, and becoming harsh and
9860 sarcastic--"you have noticed my tender penchant for Miss Ingram: don't
9861 you think if I married her she would regenerate me with a vengeance?"
9862
9863 He got up instantly, went quite to the other end of the walk, and when he
9864 came back he was humming a tune.
9865
9866 "Jane, Jane," said he, stopping before me, "you are quite pale with your
9867 vigils: don't you curse me for disturbing your rest?"
9868
9869 "Curse you? No, sir."
9870
9871 "Shake hands in confirmation of the word. What cold fingers! They were
9872 warmer last night when I touched them at the door of the mysterious
9873 chamber. Jane, when will you watch with me again?"
9874
9875 "Whenever I can be useful, sir."
9876
9877 "For instance, the night before I am married! I am sure I shall not be
9878 able to sleep. Will you promise to sit up with me to bear me company? To
9879 you I can talk of my lovely one: for now you have seen her and know her."
9880
9881 "Yes, sir."
9882
9883 "She's a rare one, is she not, Jane?"
9884
9885 "Yes, sir."
9886
9887 "A strapper--a real strapper, Jane: big, brown, and buxom; with hair just
9888 such as the ladies of Carthage must have had. Bless me! there's Dent and
9889 Lynn in the stables! Go in by the shrubbery, through that wicket."
9890
9891 As I went one way, he went another, and I heard him in the yard, saying
9892 cheerfully--
9893
9894 "Mason got the start of you all this morning; he was gone before sunrise:
9895 I rose at four to see him off."
9896
9897
9898
9899
9900 CHAPTER XXI
9901
9902
9903 Presentiments are strange things! and so are sympathies; and so are
9904 signs; and the three combined make one mystery to which humanity has not
9905 yet found the key. I never laughed at presentiments in my life, because
9906 I have had strange ones of my own. Sympathies, I believe, exist (for
9907 instance, between far-distant, long-absent, wholly estranged relatives
9908 asserting, notwithstanding their alienation, the unity of the source to
9909 which each traces his origin) whose workings baffle mortal comprehension.
9910 And signs, for aught we know, may be but the sympathies of Nature with
9911 man.
9912
9913 When I was a little girl, only six years old, I one night heard Bessie
9914 Leaven say to Martha Abbot that she had been dreaming about a little
9915 child; and that to dream of children was a sure sign of trouble, either
9916 to one's self or one's kin. The saying might have worn out of my memory,
9917 had not a circumstance immediately followed which served indelibly to fix
9918 it there. The next day Bessie was sent for home to the deathbed of her
9919 little sister.
9920
9921 Of late I had often recalled this saying and this incident; for during
9922 the past week scarcely a night had gone over my couch that had not
9923 brought with it a dream of an infant, which I sometimes hushed in my
9924 arms, sometimes dandled on my knee, sometimes watched playing with
9925 daisies on a lawn, or again, dabbling its hands in running water. It was
9926 a wailing child this night, and a laughing one the next: now it nestled
9927 close to me, and now it ran from me; but whatever mood the apparition
9928 evinced, whatever aspect it wore, it failed not for seven successive
9929 nights to meet me the moment I entered the land of slumber.
9930
9931 I did not like this iteration of one idea--this strange recurrence of one
9932 image, and I grew nervous as bedtime approached and the hour of the
9933 vision drew near. It was from companionship with this baby-phantom I had
9934 been roused on that moonlight night when I heard the cry; and it was on
9935 the afternoon of the day following I was summoned downstairs by a message
9936 that some one wanted me in Mrs. Fairfax's room. On repairing thither, I
9937 found a man waiting for me, having the appearance of a gentleman's
9938 servant: he was dressed in deep mourning, and the hat he held in his hand
9939 was surrounded with a crape band.
9940
9941 "I daresay you hardly remember me, Miss," he said, rising as I entered;
9942 "but my name is Leaven: I lived coachman with Mrs. Reed when you were at
9943 Gateshead, eight or nine years since, and I live there still."
9944
9945 "Oh, Robert! how do you do? I remember you very well: you used to give
9946 me a ride sometimes on Miss Georgiana's bay pony. And how is Bessie? You
9947 are married to Bessie?"
9948
9949 "Yes, Miss: my wife is very hearty, thank you; she brought me another
9950 little one about two months since--we have three now--and both mother and
9951 child are thriving."
9952
9953 "And are the family well at the house, Robert?"
9954
9955 "I am sorry I can't give you better news of them, Miss: they are very
9956 badly at present--in great trouble."
9957
9958 "I hope no one is dead," I said, glancing at his black dress. He too
9959 looked down at the crape round his hat and replied--
9960
9961 "Mr. John died yesterday was a week, at his chambers in London."
9962
9963 "Mr. John?"
9964
9965 "Yes."
9966
9967 "And how does his mother bear it?"
9968
9969 "Why, you see, Miss Eyre, it is not a common mishap: his life has been
9970 very wild: these last three years he gave himself up to strange ways, and
9971 his death was shocking."
9972
9973 "I heard from Bessie he was not doing well."
9974
9975 "Doing well! He could not do worse: he ruined his health and his estate
9976 amongst the worst men and the worst women. He got into debt and into
9977 jail: his mother helped him out twice, but as soon as he was free he
9978 returned to his old companions and habits. His head was not strong: the
9979 knaves he lived amongst fooled him beyond anything I ever heard. He came
9980 down to Gateshead about three weeks ago and wanted missis to give up all
9981 to him. Missis refused: her means have long been much reduced by his
9982 extravagance; so he went back again, and the next news was that he was
9983 dead. How he died, God knows!--they say he killed himself."
9984
9985 I was silent: the things were frightful. Robert Leaven resumed--
9986
9987 "Missis had been out of health herself for some time: she had got very
9988 stout, but was not strong with it; and the loss of money and fear of
9989 poverty were quite breaking her down. The information about Mr. John's
9990 death and the manner of it came too suddenly: it brought on a stroke. She
9991 was three days without speaking; but last Tuesday she seemed rather
9992 better: she appeared as if she wanted to say something, and kept making
9993 signs to my wife and mumbling. It was only yesterday morning, however,
9994 that Bessie understood she was pronouncing your name; and at last she
9995 made out the words, 'Bring Jane--fetch Jane Eyre: I want to speak to
9996 her.' Bessie is not sure whether she is in her right mind, or means
9997 anything by the words; but she told Miss Reed and Miss Georgiana, and
9998 advised them to send for you. The young ladies put it off at first; but
9999 their mother grew so restless, and said, 'Jane, Jane,' so many times,
10000 that at last they consented. I left Gateshead yesterday: and if you can
10001 get ready, Miss, I should like to take you back with me early to-morrow
10002 morning."
10003
10004 "Yes, Robert, I shall be ready: it seems to me that I ought to go."
10005
10006 "I think so too, Miss. Bessie said she was sure you would not refuse:
10007 but I suppose you will have to ask leave before you can get off?"
10008
10009 "Yes; and I will do it now;" and having directed him to the servants'
10010 hall, and recommended him to the care of John's wife, and the attentions
10011 of John himself, I went in search of Mr. Rochester.
10012
10013 He was not in any of the lower rooms; he was not in the yard, the
10014 stables, or the grounds. I asked Mrs. Fairfax if she had seen him;--yes:
10015 she believed he was playing billiards with Miss Ingram. To the billiard-
10016 room I hastened: the click of balls and the hum of voices resounded
10017 thence; Mr. Rochester, Miss Ingram, the two Misses Eshton, and their
10018 admirers, were all busied in the game. It required some courage to
10019 disturb so interesting a party; my errand, however, was one I could not
10020 defer, so I approached the master where he stood at Miss Ingram's side.
10021 She turned as I drew near, and looked at me haughtily: her eyes seemed to
10022 demand, "What can the creeping creature want now?" and when I said, in a
10023 low voice, "Mr. Rochester," she made a movement as if tempted to order me
10024 away. I remember her appearance at the moment--it was very graceful and
10025 very striking: she wore a morning robe of sky-blue crape; a gauzy azure
10026 scarf was twisted in her hair. She had been all animation with the game,
10027 and irritated pride did not lower the expression of her haughty
10028 lineaments.
10029
10030 "Does that person want you?" she inquired of Mr. Rochester; and Mr.
10031 Rochester turned to see who the "person" was. He made a curious
10032 grimace--one of his strange and equivocal demonstrations--threw down his
10033 cue and followed me from the room.
10034
10035 "Well, Jane?" he said, as he rested his back against the schoolroom door,
10036 which he had shut.
10037
10038 "If you please, sir, I want leave of absence for a week or two."
10039
10040 "What to do?--where to go?"
10041
10042 "To see a sick lady who has sent for me."
10043
10044 "What sick lady?--where does she live?"
10045
10046 "At Gateshead; in ---shire."
10047
10048 "-shire? That is a hundred miles off! Who may she be that sends for
10049 people to see her that distance?"
10050
10051 "Her name is Reed, sir--Mrs. Reed."
10052
10053 "Reed of Gateshead? There was a Reed of Gateshead, a magistrate."
10054
10055 "It is his widow, sir."
10056
10057 "And what have you to do with her? How do you know her?"
10058
10059 "Mr. Reed was my uncle--my mother's brother."
10060
10061 "The deuce he was! You never told me that before: you always said you
10062 had no relations."
10063
10064 "None that would own me, sir. Mr. Reed is dead, and his wife cast me
10065 off."
10066
10067 "Why?"
10068
10069 "Because I was poor, and burdensome, and she disliked me."
10070
10071 "But Reed left children?--you must have cousins? Sir George Lynn was
10072 talking of a Reed of Gateshead yesterday, who, he said, was one of the
10073 veriest rascals on town; and Ingram was mentioning a Georgiana Reed of
10074 the same place, who was much admired for her beauty a season or two ago
10075 in London."
10076
10077 "John Reed is dead, too, sir: he ruined himself and half-ruined his
10078 family, and is supposed to have committed suicide. The news so shocked
10079 his mother that it brought on an apoplectic attack."
10080
10081 "And what good can you do her? Nonsense, Jane! I would never think of
10082 running a hundred miles to see an old lady who will, perhaps, be dead
10083 before you reach her: besides, you say she cast you off."
10084
10085 "Yes, sir, but that is long ago; and when her circumstances were very
10086 different: I could not be easy to neglect her wishes now."
10087
10088 "How long will you stay?"
10089
10090 "As short a time as possible, sir."
10091
10092 "Promise me only to stay a week--"
10093
10094 "I had better not pass my word: I might be obliged to break it."
10095
10096 "At all events you _will_ come back: you will not be induced under any
10097 pretext to take up a permanent residence with her?"
10098
10099 "Oh, no! I shall certainly return if all be well."
10100
10101 "And who goes with you? You don't travel a hundred miles alone."
10102
10103 "No, sir, she has sent her coachman."
10104
10105 "A person to be trusted?"
10106
10107 "Yes, sir, he has lived ten years in the family."
10108
10109 Mr. Rochester meditated. "When do you wish to go?"
10110
10111 "Early to-morrow morning, sir."
10112
10113 "Well, you must have some money; you can't travel without money, and I
10114 daresay you have not much: I have given you no salary yet. How much have
10115 you in the world, Jane?" he asked, smiling.
10116
10117 I drew out my purse; a meagre thing it was. "Five shillings, sir." He
10118 took the purse, poured the hoard into his palm, and chuckled over it as
10119 if its scantiness amused him. Soon he produced his pocket-book: "Here,"
10120 said he, offering me a note; it was fifty pounds, and he owed me but
10121 fifteen. I told him I had no change.
10122
10123 "I don't want change; you know that. Take your wages."
10124
10125 I declined accepting more than was my due. He scowled at first; then, as
10126 if recollecting something, he said--
10127
10128 "Right, right! Better not give you all now: you would, perhaps, stay
10129 away three months if you had fifty pounds. There are ten; is it not
10130 plenty?"
10131
10132 "Yes, sir, but now you owe me five."
10133
10134 "Come back for it, then; I am your banker for forty pounds."
10135
10136 "Mr. Rochester, I may as well mention another matter of business to you
10137 while I have the opportunity."
10138
10139 "Matter of business? I am curious to hear it."
10140
10141 "You have as good as informed me, sir, that you are going shortly to be
10142 married?"
10143
10144 "Yes; what then?"
10145
10146 "In that case, sir, Adele ought to go to school: I am sure you will
10147 perceive the necessity of it."
10148
10149 "To get her out of my bride's way, who might otherwise walk over her
10150 rather too emphatically? There's sense in the suggestion; not a doubt of
10151 it. Adele, as you say, must go to school; and you, of course, must march
10152 straight to--the devil?"
10153
10154 "I hope not, sir; but I must seek another situation somewhere."
10155
10156 "In course!" he exclaimed, with a twang of voice and a distortion of
10157 features equally fantastic and ludicrous. He looked at me some minutes.
10158
10159 "And old Madam Reed, or the Misses, her daughters, will be solicited by
10160 you to seek a place, I suppose?"
10161
10162 "No, sir; I am not on such terms with my relatives as would justify me in
10163 asking favours of them--but I shall advertise."
10164
10165 "You shall walk up the pyramids of Egypt!" he growled. "At your peril
10166 you advertise! I wish I had only offered you a sovereign instead of ten
10167 pounds. Give me back nine pounds, Jane; I've a use for it."
10168
10169 "And so have I, sir," I returned, putting my hands and my purse behind
10170 me. "I could not spare the money on any account."
10171
10172 "Little niggard!" said he, "refusing me a pecuniary request! Give me
10173 five pounds, Jane."
10174
10175 "Not five shillings, sir; nor five pence."
10176
10177 "Just let me look at the cash."
10178
10179 "No, sir; you are not to be trusted."
10180
10181 "Jane!"
10182
10183 "Sir?"
10184
10185 "Promise me one thing."
10186
10187 "I'll promise you anything, sir, that I think I am likely to perform."
10188
10189 "Not to advertise: and to trust this quest of a situation to me. I'll
10190 find you one in time."
10191
10192 "I shall be glad so to do, sir, if you, in your turn, will promise that I
10193 and Adele shall be both safe out of the house before your bride enters
10194 it."
10195
10196 "Very well! very well! I'll pledge my word on it. You go to-morrow,
10197 then?"
10198
10199 "Yes, sir; early."
10200
10201 "Shall you come down to the drawing-room after dinner?"
10202
10203 "No, sir, I must prepare for the journey."
10204
10205 "Then you and I must bid good-bye for a little while?"
10206
10207 "I suppose so, sir."
10208
10209 "And how do people perform that ceremony of parting, Jane? Teach me; I'm
10210 not quite up to it."
10211
10212 "They say, Farewell, or any other form they prefer."
10213
10214 "Then say it."
10215
10216 "Farewell, Mr. Rochester, for the present."
10217
10218 "What must I say?"
10219
10220 "The same, if you like, sir."
10221
10222 "Farewell, Miss Eyre, for the present; is that all?"
10223
10224 "Yes?"
10225
10226 "It seems stingy, to my notions, and dry, and unfriendly. I should like
10227 something else: a little addition to the rite. If one shook hands, for
10228 instance; but no--that would not content me either. So you'll do no more
10229 than say Farewell, Jane?"
10230
10231 "It is enough, sir: as much good-will may be conveyed in one hearty word
10232 as in many."
10233
10234 "Very likely; but it is blank and cool--'Farewell.'"
10235
10236 "How long is he going to stand with his back against that door?" I asked
10237 myself; "I want to commence my packing." The dinner-bell rang, and
10238 suddenly away he bolted, without another syllable: I saw him no more
10239 during the day, and was off before he had risen in the morning.
10240
10241 I reached the lodge at Gateshead about five o'clock in the afternoon of
10242 the first of May: I stepped in there before going up to the hall. It was
10243 very clean and neat: the ornamental windows were hung with little white
10244 curtains; the floor was spotless; the grate and fire-irons were burnished
10245 bright, and the fire burnt clear. Bessie sat on the hearth, nursing her
10246 last-born, and Robert and his sister played quietly in a corner.
10247
10248 "Bless you!--I knew you would come!" exclaimed Mrs. Leaven, as I entered.
10249
10250 "Yes, Bessie," said I, after I had kissed her; "and I trust I am not too
10251 late. How is Mrs. Reed?--Alive still, I hope."
10252
10253 "Yes, she is alive; and more sensible and collected than she was. The
10254 doctor says she may linger a week or two yet; but he hardly thinks she
10255 will finally recover."
10256
10257 "Has she mentioned me lately?"
10258
10259 "She was talking of you only this morning, and wishing you would come,
10260 but she is sleeping now, or was ten minutes ago, when I was up at the
10261 house. She generally lies in a kind of lethargy all the afternoon, and
10262 wakes up about six or seven. Will you rest yourself here an hour, Miss,
10263 and then I will go up with you?"
10264
10265 Robert here entered, and Bessie laid her sleeping child in the cradle and
10266 went to welcome him: afterwards she insisted on my taking off my bonnet
10267 and having some tea; for she said I looked pale and tired. I was glad to
10268 accept her hospitality; and I submitted to be relieved of my travelling
10269 garb just as passively as I used to let her undress me when a child.
10270
10271 Old times crowded fast back on me as I watched her bustling about--setting
10272 out the tea-tray with her best china, cutting bread and butter, toasting
10273 a tea-cake, and, between whiles, giving little Robert or Jane an
10274 occasional tap or push, just as she used to give me in former days.
10275 Bessie had retained her quick temper as well as her light foot and good
10276 looks.
10277
10278 Tea ready, I was going to approach the table; but she desired me to sit
10279 still, quite in her old peremptory tones. I must be served at the
10280 fireside, she said; and she placed before me a little round stand with my
10281 cup and a plate of toast, absolutely as she used to accommodate me with
10282 some privately purloined dainty on a nursery chair: and I smiled and
10283 obeyed her as in bygone days.
10284
10285 She wanted to know if I was happy at Thornfield Hall, and what sort of a
10286 person the mistress was; and when I told her there was only a master,
10287 whether he was a nice gentleman, and if I liked him. I told her he was
10288 rather an ugly man, but quite a gentleman; and that he treated me kindly,
10289 and I was content. Then I went on to describe to her the gay company
10290 that had lately been staying at the house; and to these details Bessie
10291 listened with interest: they were precisely of the kind she relished.
10292
10293 In such conversation an hour was soon gone: Bessie restored to me my
10294 bonnet, &c., and, accompanied by her, I quitted the lodge for the hall.
10295 It was also accompanied by her that I had, nearly nine years ago, walked
10296 down the path I was now ascending. On a dark, misty, raw morning in
10297 January, I had left a hostile roof with a desperate and embittered
10298 heart--a sense of outlawry and almost of reprobation--to seek the chilly
10299 harbourage of Lowood: that bourne so far away and unexplored. The same
10300 hostile roof now again rose before me: my prospects were doubtful yet;
10301 and I had yet an aching heart. I still felt as a wanderer on the face of
10302 the earth; but I experienced firmer trust in myself and my own powers,
10303 and less withering dread of oppression. The gaping wound of my wrongs,
10304 too, was now quite healed; and the flame of resentment extinguished.
10305
10306 "You shall go into the breakfast-room first," said Bessie, as she
10307 preceded me through the hall; "the young ladies will be there."
10308
10309 In another moment I was within that apartment. There was every article
10310 of furniture looking just as it did on the morning I was first introduced
10311 to Mr. Brocklehurst: the very rug he had stood upon still covered the
10312 hearth. Glancing at the bookcases, I thought I could distinguish the two
10313 volumes of Bewick's British Birds occupying their old place on the third
10314 shelf, and Gulliver's Travels and the Arabian Nights ranged just above.
10315 The inanimate objects were not changed; but the living things had altered
10316 past recognition.
10317
10318 Two young ladies appeared before me; one very tall, almost as tall as
10319 Miss Ingram--very thin too, with a sallow face and severe mien. There
10320 was something ascetic in her look, which was augmented by the extreme
10321 plainness of a straight-skirted, black, stuff dress, a starched linen
10322 collar, hair combed away from the temples, and the nun-like ornament of a
10323 string of ebony beads and a crucifix. This I felt sure was Eliza, though
10324 I could trace little resemblance to her former self in that elongated and
10325 colourless visage.
10326
10327 The other was as certainly Georgiana: but not the Georgiana I
10328 remembered--the slim and fairy-like girl of eleven. This was a
10329 full-blown, very plump damsel, fair as waxwork, with handsome and regular
10330 features, languishing blue eyes, and ringleted yellow hair. The hue of
10331 her dress was black too; but its fashion was so different from her
10332 sister's--so much more flowing and becoming--it looked as stylish as the
10333 other's looked puritanical.
10334
10335 In each of the sisters there was one trait of the mother--and only one;
10336 the thin and pallid elder daughter had her parent's Cairngorm eye: the
10337 blooming and luxuriant younger girl had her contour of jaw and
10338 chin--perhaps a little softened, but still imparting an indescribable
10339 hardness to the countenance otherwise so voluptuous and buxom.
10340
10341 Both ladies, as I advanced, rose to welcome me, and both addressed me by
10342 the name of "Miss Eyre." Eliza's greeting was delivered in a short,
10343 abrupt voice, without a smile; and then she sat down again, fixed her
10344 eyes on the fire, and seemed to forget me. Georgiana added to her "How
10345 d'ye do?" several commonplaces about my journey, the weather, and so on,
10346 uttered in rather a drawling tone: and accompanied by sundry side-glances
10347 that measured me from head to foot--now traversing the folds of my drab
10348 merino pelisse, and now lingering on the plain trimming of my cottage
10349 bonnet. Young ladies have a remarkable way of letting you know that they
10350 think you a "quiz" without actually saying the words. A certain
10351 superciliousness of look, coolness of manner, nonchalance of tone,
10352 express fully their sentiments on the point, without committing them by
10353 any positive rudeness in word or deed.
10354
10355 A sneer, however, whether covert or open, had now no longer that power
10356 over me it once possessed: as I sat between my cousins, I was surprised
10357 to find how easy I felt under the total neglect of the one and the semi-
10358 sarcastic attentions of the other--Eliza did not mortify, nor Georgiana
10359 ruffle me. The fact was, I had other things to think about; within the
10360 last few months feelings had been stirred in me so much more potent than
10361 any they could raise--pains and pleasures so much more acute and
10362 exquisite had been excited than any it was in their power to inflict or
10363 bestow--that their airs gave me no concern either for good or bad.
10364
10365 "How is Mrs. Reed?" I asked soon, looking calmly at Georgiana, who
10366 thought fit to bridle at the direct address, as if it were an unexpected
10367 liberty.
10368
10369 "Mrs. Reed? Ah! mama, you mean; she is extremely poorly: I doubt if you
10370 can see her to-night."
10371
10372 "If," said I, "you would just step upstairs and tell her I am come, I
10373 should be much obliged to you."
10374
10375 Georgiana almost started, and she opened her blue eyes wild and wide. "I
10376 know she had a particular wish to see me," I added, "and I would not
10377 defer attending to her desire longer than is absolutely necessary."
10378
10379 "Mama dislikes being disturbed in an evening," remarked Eliza. I soon
10380 rose, quietly took off my bonnet and gloves, uninvited, and said I would
10381 just step out to Bessie--who was, I dared say, in the kitchen--and ask
10382 her to ascertain whether Mrs. Reed was disposed to receive me or not to-
10383 night. I went, and having found Bessie and despatched her on my errand,
10384 I proceeded to take further measures. It had heretofore been my habit
10385 always to shrink from arrogance: received as I had been to-day, I should,
10386 a year ago, have resolved to quit Gateshead the very next morning; now,
10387 it was disclosed to me all at once that that would be a foolish plan. I
10388 had taken a journey of a hundred miles to see my aunt, and I must stay
10389 with her till she was better--or dead: as to her daughters' pride or
10390 folly, I must put it on one side, make myself independent of it. So I
10391 addressed the housekeeper; asked her to show me a room, told her I should
10392 probably be a visitor here for a week or two, had my trunk conveyed to my
10393 chamber, and followed it thither myself: I met Bessie on the landing.
10394
10395 "Missis is awake," said she; "I have told her you are here: come and let
10396 us see if she will know you."
10397
10398 I did not need to be guided to the well-known room, to which I had so
10399 often been summoned for chastisement or reprimand in former days. I
10400 hastened before Bessie; I softly opened the door: a shaded light stood on
10401 the table, for it was now getting dark. There was the great four-post
10402 bed with amber hangings as of old; there the toilet-table, the armchair,
10403 and the footstool, at which I had a hundred times been sentenced to
10404 kneel, to ask pardon for offences by me uncommitted. I looked into a
10405 certain corner near, half-expecting to see the slim outline of a once
10406 dreaded switch which used to lurk there, waiting to leap out imp-like and
10407 lace my quivering palm or shrinking neck. I approached the bed; I opened
10408 the curtains and leant over the high-piled pillows.
10409
10410 Well did I remember Mrs. Reed's face, and I eagerly sought the familiar
10411 image. It is a happy thing that time quells the longings of vengeance
10412 and hushes the promptings of rage and aversion. I had left this woman in
10413 bitterness and hate, and I came back to her now with no other emotion
10414 than a sort of ruth for her great sufferings, and a strong yearning to
10415 forget and forgive all injuries--to be reconciled and clasp hands in
10416 amity.
10417
10418 The well-known face was there: stern, relentless as ever--there was that
10419 peculiar eye which nothing could melt, and the somewhat raised,
10420 imperious, despotic eyebrow. How often had it lowered on me menace and
10421 hate! and how the recollection of childhood's terrors and sorrows revived
10422 as I traced its harsh line now! And yet I stooped down and kissed her:
10423 she looked at me.
10424
10425 "Is this Jane Eyre?" she said.
10426
10427 "Yes, Aunt Reed. How are you, dear aunt?"
10428
10429 I had once vowed that I would never call her aunt again: I thought it no
10430 sin to forget and break that vow now. My fingers had fastened on her
10431 hand which lay outside the sheet: had she pressed mine kindly, I should
10432 at that moment have experienced true pleasure. But unimpressionable
10433 natures are not so soon softened, nor are natural antipathies so readily
10434 eradicated. Mrs. Reed took her hand away, and, turning her face rather
10435 from me, she remarked that the night was warm. Again she regarded me so
10436 icily, I felt at once that her opinion of me--her feeling towards me--was
10437 unchanged and unchangeable. I knew by her stony eye--opaque to
10438 tenderness, indissoluble to tears--that she was resolved to consider me
10439 bad to the last; because to believe me good would give her no generous
10440 pleasure: only a sense of mortification.
10441
10442 I felt pain, and then I felt ire; and then I felt a determination to
10443 subdue her--to be her mistress in spite both of her nature and her will.
10444 My tears had risen, just as in childhood: I ordered them back to their
10445 source. I brought a chair to the bed-head: I sat down and leaned over
10446 the pillow.
10447
10448 "You sent for me," I said, "and I am here; and it is my intention to stay
10449 till I see how you get on."
10450
10451 "Oh, of course! You have seen my daughters?"
10452
10453 "Yes."
10454
10455 "Well, you may tell them I wish you to stay till I can talk some things
10456 over with you I have on my mind: to-night it is too late, and I have a
10457 difficulty in recalling them. But there was something I wished to
10458 say--let me see--"
10459
10460 The wandering look and changed utterance told what wreck had taken place
10461 in her once vigorous frame. Turning restlessly, she drew the bedclothes
10462 round her; my elbow, resting on a corner of the quilt, fixed it down: she
10463 was at once irritated.
10464
10465 "Sit up!" said she; "don't annoy me with holding the clothes fast. Are
10466 you Jane Eyre?"
10467
10468 "I am Jane Eyre."
10469
10470 "I have had more trouble with that child than any one would believe. Such
10471 a burden to be left on my hands--and so much annoyance as she caused me,
10472 daily and hourly, with her incomprehensible disposition, and her sudden
10473 starts of temper, and her continual, unnatural watchings of one's
10474 movements! I declare she talked to me once like something mad, or like a
10475 fiend--no child ever spoke or looked as she did; I was glad to get her
10476 away from the house. What did they do with her at Lowood? The fever
10477 broke out there, and many of the pupils died. She, however, did not die:
10478 but I said she did--I wish she had died!"
10479
10480 "A strange wish, Mrs. Reed; why do you hate her so?"
10481
10482 "I had a dislike to her mother always; for she was my husband's only
10483 sister, and a great favourite with him: he opposed the family's disowning
10484 her when she made her low marriage; and when news came of her death, he
10485 wept like a simpleton. He would send for the baby; though I entreated
10486 him rather to put it out to nurse and pay for its maintenance. I hated
10487 it the first time I set my eyes on it--a sickly, whining, pining thing!
10488 It would wail in its cradle all night long--not screaming heartily like
10489 any other child, but whimpering and moaning. Reed pitied it; and he used
10490 to nurse it and notice it as if it had been his own: more, indeed, than
10491 he ever noticed his own at that age. He would try to make my children
10492 friendly to the little beggar: the darlings could not bear it, and he was
10493 angry with them when they showed their dislike. In his last illness, he
10494 had it brought continually to his bedside; and but an hour before he
10495 died, he bound me by vow to keep the creature. I would as soon have been
10496 charged with a pauper brat out of a workhouse: but he was weak, naturally
10497 weak. John does not at all resemble his father, and I am glad of it:
10498 John is like me and like my brothers--he is quite a Gibson. Oh, I wish
10499 he would cease tormenting me with letters for money? I have no more
10500 money to give him: we are getting poor. I must send away half the
10501 servants and shut up part of the house; or let it off. I can never
10502 submit to do that--yet how are we to get on? Two-thirds of my income
10503 goes in paying the interest of mortgages. John gambles dreadfully, and
10504 always loses--poor boy! He is beset by sharpers: John is sunk and
10505 degraded--his look is frightful--I feel ashamed for him when I see him."
10506
10507 She was getting much excited. "I think I had better leave her now," said
10508 I to Bessie, who stood on the other side of the bed.
10509
10510 "Perhaps you had, Miss: but she often talks in this way towards night--in
10511 the morning she is calmer."
10512
10513 I rose. "Stop!" exclaimed Mrs. Reed, "there is another thing I wished to
10514 say. He threatens me--he continually threatens me with his own death, or
10515 mine: and I dream sometimes that I see him laid out with a great wound in
10516 his throat, or with a swollen and blackened face. I am come to a strange
10517 pass: I have heavy troubles. What is to be done? How is the money to be
10518 had?"
10519
10520 Bessie now endeavoured to persuade her to take a sedative draught: she
10521 succeeded with difficulty. Soon after, Mrs. Reed grew more composed, and
10522 sank into a dozing state. I then left her.
10523
10524 More than ten days elapsed before I had again any conversation with her.
10525 She continued either delirious or lethargic; and the doctor forbade
10526 everything which could painfully excite her. Meantime, I got on as well
10527 as I could with Georgiana and Eliza. They were very cold, indeed, at
10528 first. Eliza would sit half the day sewing, reading, or writing, and
10529 scarcely utter a word either to me or her sister. Georgiana would
10530 chatter nonsense to her canary bird by the hour, and take no notice of
10531 me. But I was determined not to seem at a loss for occupation or
10532 amusement: I had brought my drawing materials with me, and they served me
10533 for both.
10534
10535 Provided with a case of pencils, and some sheets of paper, I used to take
10536 a seat apart from them, near the window, and busy myself in sketching
10537 fancy vignettes, representing any scene that happened momentarily to
10538 shape itself in the ever-shifting kaleidoscope of imagination: a glimpse
10539 of sea between two rocks; the rising moon, and a ship crossing its disk;
10540 a group of reeds and water-flags, and a naiad's head, crowned with lotus-
10541 flowers, rising out of them; an elf sitting in a hedge-sparrow's nest,
10542 under a wreath of hawthorn-bloom.
10543
10544 One morning I fell to sketching a face: what sort of a face it was to be,
10545 I did not care or know. I took a soft black pencil, gave it a broad
10546 point, and worked away. Soon I had traced on the paper a broad and
10547 prominent forehead and a square lower outline of visage: that contour
10548 gave me pleasure; my fingers proceeded actively to fill it with features.
10549 Strongly-marked horizontal eyebrows must be traced under that brow; then
10550 followed, naturally, a well-defined nose, with a straight ridge and full
10551 nostrils; then a flexible-looking mouth, by no means narrow; then a firm
10552 chin, with a decided cleft down the middle of it: of course, some black
10553 whiskers were wanted, and some jetty hair, tufted on the temples, and
10554 waved above the forehead. Now for the eyes: I had left them to the last,
10555 because they required the most careful working. I drew them large; I
10556 shaped them well: the eyelashes I traced long and sombre; the irids
10557 lustrous and large. "Good! but not quite the thing," I thought, as I
10558 surveyed the effect: "they want more force and spirit;" and I wrought the
10559 shades blacker, that the lights might flash more brilliantly--a happy
10560 touch or two secured success. There, I had a friend's face under my
10561 gaze; and what did it signify that those young ladies turned their backs
10562 on me? I looked at it; I smiled at the speaking likeness: I was absorbed
10563 and content.
10564
10565 "Is that a portrait of some one you know?" asked Eliza, who had
10566 approached me unnoticed. I responded that it was merely a fancy head,
10567 and hurried it beneath the other sheets. Of course, I lied: it was, in
10568 fact, a very faithful representation of Mr. Rochester. But what was that
10569 to her, or to any one but myself? Georgiana also advanced to look. The
10570 other drawings pleased her much, but she called that "an ugly man." They
10571 both seemed surprised at my skill. I offered to sketch their portraits;
10572 and each, in turn, sat for a pencil outline. Then Georgiana produced her
10573 album. I promised to contribute a water-colour drawing: this put her at
10574 once into good humour. She proposed a walk in the grounds. Before we
10575 had been out two hours, we were deep in a confidential conversation: she
10576 had favoured me with a description of the brilliant winter she had spent
10577 in London two seasons ago--of the admiration she had there excited--the
10578 attention she had received; and I even got hints of the titled conquest
10579 she had made. In the course of the afternoon and evening these hints
10580 were enlarged on: various soft conversations were reported, and
10581 sentimental scenes represented; and, in short, a volume of a novel of
10582 fashionable life was that day improvised by her for my benefit. The
10583 communications were renewed from day to day: they always ran on the same
10584 theme--herself, her loves, and woes. It was strange she never once
10585 adverted either to her mother's illness, or her brother's death, or the
10586 present gloomy state of the family prospects. Her mind seemed wholly
10587 taken up with reminiscences of past gaiety, and aspirations after
10588 dissipations to come. She passed about five minutes each day in her
10589 mother's sick-room, and no more.
10590
10591 Eliza still spoke little: she had evidently no time to talk. I never saw
10592 a busier person than she seemed to be; yet it was difficult to say what
10593 she did: or rather, to discover any result of her diligence. She had an
10594 alarm to call her up early. I know not how she occupied herself before
10595 breakfast, but after that meal she divided her time into regular
10596 portions, and each hour had its allotted task. Three times a day she
10597 studied a little book, which I found, on inspection, was a Common Prayer
10598 Book. I asked her once what was the great attraction of that volume, and
10599 she said, "the Rubric." Three hours she gave to stitching, with gold
10600 thread, the border of a square crimson cloth, almost large enough for a
10601 carpet. In answer to my inquiries after the use of this article, she
10602 informed me it was a covering for the altar of a new church lately
10603 erected near Gateshead. Two hours she devoted to her diary; two to
10604 working by herself in the kitchen-garden; and one to the regulation of
10605 her accounts. She seemed to want no company; no conversation. I believe
10606 she was happy in her way: this routine sufficed for her; and nothing
10607 annoyed her so much as the occurrence of any incident which forced her to
10608 vary its clockwork regularity.
10609
10610 She told me one evening, when more disposed to be communicative than
10611 usual, that John's conduct, and the threatened ruin of the family, had
10612 been a source of profound affliction to her: but she had now, she said,
10613 settled her mind, and formed her resolution. Her own fortune she had
10614 taken care to secure; and when her mother died--and it was wholly
10615 improbable, she tranquilly remarked, that she should either recover or
10616 linger long--she would execute a long-cherished project: seek a
10617 retirement where punctual habits would be permanently secured from
10618 disturbance, and place safe barriers between herself and a frivolous
10619 world. I asked if Georgiana would accompany her.
10620
10621 "Of course not. Georgiana and she had nothing in common: they never had
10622 had. She would not be burdened with her society for any consideration.
10623 Georgiana should take her own course; and she, Eliza, would take hers."
10624
10625 Georgiana, when not unburdening her heart to me, spent most of her time
10626 in lying on the sofa, fretting about the dulness of the house, and
10627 wishing over and over again that her aunt Gibson would send her an
10628 invitation up to town. "It would be so much better," she said, "if she
10629 could only get out of the way for a month or two, till all was over." I
10630 did not ask what she meant by "all being over," but I suppose she
10631 referred to the expected decease of her mother and the gloomy sequel of
10632 funeral rites. Eliza generally took no more notice of her sister's
10633 indolence and complaints than if no such murmuring, lounging object had
10634 been before her. One day, however, as she put away her account-book and
10635 unfolded her embroidery, she suddenly took her up thus--
10636
10637 "Georgiana, a more vain and absurd animal than you was certainly never
10638 allowed to cumber the earth. You had no right to be born, for you make
10639 no use of life. Instead of living for, in, and with yourself, as a
10640 reasonable being ought, you seek only to fasten your feebleness on some
10641 other person's strength: if no one can be found willing to burden her or
10642 himself with such a fat, weak, puffy, useless thing, you cry out that you
10643 are ill-treated, neglected, miserable. Then, too, existence for you must
10644 be a scene of continual change and excitement, or else the world is a
10645 dungeon: you must be admired, you must be courted, you must be
10646 flattered--you must have music, dancing, and society--or you languish,
10647 you die away. Have you no sense to devise a system which will make you
10648 independent of all efforts, and all wills, but your own? Take one day;
10649 share it into sections; to each section apportion its task: leave no
10650 stray unemployed quarters of an hour, ten minutes, five minutes--include
10651 all; do each piece of business in its turn with method, with rigid
10652 regularity. The day will close almost before you are aware it has begun;
10653 and you are indebted to no one for helping you to get rid of one vacant
10654 moment: you have had to seek no one's company, conversation, sympathy,
10655 forbearance; you have lived, in short, as an independent being ought to
10656 do. Take this advice: the first and last I shall offer you; then you
10657 will not want me or any one else, happen what may. Neglect it--go on as
10658 heretofore, craving, whining, and idling--and suffer the results of your
10659 idiocy, however bad and insuperable they may be. I tell you this
10660 plainly; and listen: for though I shall no more repeat what I am now
10661 about to say, I shall steadily act on it. After my mother's death, I
10662 wash my hands of you: from the day her coffin is carried to the vault in
10663 Gateshead Church, you and I will be as separate as if we had never known
10664 each other. You need not think that because we chanced to be born of the
10665 same parents, I shall suffer you to fasten me down by even the feeblest
10666 claim: I can tell you this--if the whole human race, ourselves excepted,
10667 were swept away, and we two stood alone on the earth, I would leave you
10668 in the old world, and betake myself to the new."
10669
10670 She closed her lips.
10671
10672 "You might have spared yourself the trouble of delivering that tirade,"
10673 answered Georgiana. "Everybody knows you are the most selfish, heartless
10674 creature in existence: and _I_ know your spiteful hatred towards me: I
10675 have had a specimen of it before in the trick you played me about Lord
10676 Edwin Vere: you could not bear me to be raised above you, to have a
10677 title, to be received into circles where you dare not show your face, and
10678 so you acted the spy and informer, and ruined my prospects for ever."
10679 Georgiana took out her handkerchief and blew her nose for an hour
10680 afterwards; Eliza sat cold, impassable, and assiduously industrious.
10681
10682 True, generous feeling is made small account of by some, but here were
10683 two natures rendered, the one intolerably acrid, the other despicably
10684 savourless for the want of it. Feeling without judgment is a washy
10685 draught indeed; but judgment untempered by feeling is too bitter and
10686 husky a morsel for human deglutition.
10687
10688 It was a wet and windy afternoon: Georgiana had fallen asleep on the sofa
10689 over the perusal of a novel; Eliza was gone to attend a saint's-day
10690 service at the new church--for in matters of religion she was a rigid
10691 formalist: no weather ever prevented the punctual discharge of what she
10692 considered her devotional duties; fair or foul, she went to church thrice
10693 every Sunday, and as often on week-days as there were prayers.
10694
10695 I bethought myself to go upstairs and see how the dying woman sped, who
10696 lay there almost unheeded: the very servants paid her but a remittent
10697 attention: the hired nurse, being little looked after, would slip out of
10698 the room whenever she could. Bessie was faithful; but she had her own
10699 family to mind, and could only come occasionally to the hall. I found
10700 the sick-room unwatched, as I had expected: no nurse was there; the
10701 patient lay still, and seemingly lethargic; her livid face sunk in the
10702 pillows: the fire was dying in the grate. I renewed the fuel,
10703 re-arranged the bedclothes, gazed awhile on her who could not now gaze on
10704 me, and then I moved away to the window.
10705
10706 The rain beat strongly against the panes, the wind blew tempestuously:
10707 "One lies there," I thought, "who will soon be beyond the war of earthly
10708 elements. Whither will that spirit--now struggling to quit its material
10709 tenement--flit when at length released?"
10710
10711 In pondering the great mystery, I thought of Helen Burns, recalled her
10712 dying words--her faith--her doctrine of the equality of disembodied
10713 souls. I was still listening in thought to her well-remembered
10714 tones--still picturing her pale and spiritual aspect, her wasted face and
10715 sublime gaze, as she lay on her placid deathbed, and whispered her
10716 longing to be restored to her divine Father's bosom--when a feeble voice
10717 murmured from the couch behind: "Who is that?"
10718
10719 I knew Mrs. Reed had not spoken for days: was she reviving? I went up to
10720 her.
10721
10722 "It is I, Aunt Reed."
10723
10724 "Who--I?" was her answer. "Who are you?" looking at me with surprise and
10725 a sort of alarm, but still not wildly. "You are quite a stranger to
10726 me--where is Bessie?"
10727
10728 "She is at the lodge, aunt."
10729
10730 "Aunt," she repeated. "Who calls me aunt? You are not one of the
10731 Gibsons; and yet I know you--that face, and the eyes and forehead, are
10732 quiet familiar to me: you are like--why, you are like Jane Eyre!"
10733
10734 I said nothing: I was afraid of occasioning some shock by declaring my
10735 identity.
10736
10737 "Yet," said she, "I am afraid it is a mistake: my thoughts deceive me. I
10738 wished to see Jane Eyre, and I fancy a likeness where none exists:
10739 besides, in eight years she must be so changed." I now gently assured
10740 her that I was the person she supposed and desired me to be: and seeing
10741 that I was understood, and that her senses were quite collected, I
10742 explained how Bessie had sent her husband to fetch me from Thornfield.
10743
10744 "I am very ill, I know," she said ere long. "I was trying to turn myself
10745 a few minutes since, and find I cannot move a limb. It is as well I
10746 should ease my mind before I die: what we think little of in health,
10747 burdens us at such an hour as the present is to me. Is the nurse here?
10748 or is there no one in the room but you?"
10749
10750 I assured her we were alone.
10751
10752 "Well, I have twice done you a wrong which I regret now. One was in
10753 breaking the promise which I gave my husband to bring you up as my own
10754 child; the other--" she stopped. "After all, it is of no great
10755 importance, perhaps," she murmured to herself: "and then I may get
10756 better; and to humble myself so to her is painful."
10757
10758 She made an effort to alter her position, but failed: her face changed;
10759 she seemed to experience some inward sensation--the precursor, perhaps,
10760 of the last pang.
10761
10762 "Well, I must get it over. Eternity is before me: I had better tell
10763 her.--Go to my dressing-case, open it, and take out a letter you will see
10764 there."
10765
10766 I obeyed her directions. "Read the letter," she said.
10767
10768 It was short, and thus conceived:--
10769
10770 "Madam,--Will you have the goodness to send me the address of my
10771 niece, Jane Eyre, and to tell me how she is? It is my intention to
10772 write shortly and desire her to come to me at Madeira. Providence has
10773 blessed my endeavours to secure a competency; and as I am unmarried
10774 and childless, I wish to adopt her during my life, and bequeath her at
10775 my death whatever I may have to leave.--I am, Madam, &c., &c.,
10776
10777 "JOHN EYRE, Madeira."
10778
10779 It was dated three years back.
10780
10781 "Why did I never hear of this?" I asked.
10782
10783 "Because I disliked you too fixedly and thoroughly ever to lend a hand in
10784 lifting you to prosperity. I could not forget your conduct to me,
10785 Jane--the fury with which you once turned on me; the tone in which you
10786 declared you abhorred me the worst of anybody in the world; the
10787 unchildlike look and voice with which you affirmed that the very thought
10788 of me made you sick, and asserted that I had treated you with miserable
10789 cruelty. I could not forget my own sensations when you thus started up
10790 and poured out the venom of your mind: I felt fear as if an animal that I
10791 had struck or pushed had looked up at me with human eyes and cursed me in
10792 a man's voice.--Bring me some water! Oh, make haste!"
10793
10794 "Dear Mrs. Reed," said I, as I offered her the draught she required,
10795 "think no more of all this, let it pass away from your mind. Forgive me
10796 for my passionate language: I was a child then; eight, nine years have
10797 passed since that day."
10798
10799 She heeded nothing of what I said; but when she had tasted the water and
10800 drawn breath, she went on thus--
10801
10802 "I tell you I could not forget it; and I took my revenge: for you to be
10803 adopted by your uncle, and placed in a state of ease and comfort, was
10804 what I could not endure. I wrote to him; I said I was sorry for his
10805 disappointment, but Jane Eyre was dead: she had died of typhus fever at
10806 Lowood. Now act as you please: write and contradict my assertion--expose
10807 my falsehood as soon as you like. You were born, I think, to be my
10808 torment: my last hour is racked by the recollection of a deed which, but
10809 for you, I should never have been tempted to commit."
10810
10811 "If you could but be persuaded to think no more of it, aunt, and to
10812 regard me with kindness and forgiveness"
10813
10814 "You have a very bad disposition," said she, "and one to this day I feel
10815 it impossible to understand: how for nine years you could be patient and
10816 quiescent under any treatment, and in the tenth break out all fire and
10817 violence, I can never comprehend."
10818
10819 "My disposition is not so bad as you think: I am passionate, but not
10820 vindictive. Many a time, as a little child, I should have been glad to
10821 love you if you would have let me; and I long earnestly to be reconciled
10822 to you now: kiss me, aunt."
10823
10824 I approached my cheek to her lips: she would not touch it. She said I
10825 oppressed her by leaning over the bed, and again demanded water. As I
10826 laid her down--for I raised her and supported her on my arm while she
10827 drank--I covered her ice-cold and clammy hand with mine: the feeble
10828 fingers shrank from my touch--the glazing eyes shunned my gaze.
10829
10830 "Love me, then, or hate me, as you will," I said at last, "you have my
10831 full and free forgiveness: ask now for God's, and be at peace."
10832
10833 Poor, suffering woman! it was too late for her to make now the effort to
10834 change her habitual frame of mind: living, she had ever hated me--dying,
10835 she must hate me still.
10836
10837 The nurse now entered, and Bessie followed. I yet lingered half-an-hour
10838 longer, hoping to see some sign of amity: but she gave none. She was
10839 fast relapsing into stupor; nor did her mind again rally: at twelve
10840 o'clock that night she died. I was not present to close her eyes, nor
10841 were either of her daughters. They came to tell us the next morning that
10842 all was over. She was by that time laid out. Eliza and I went to look
10843 at her: Georgiana, who had burst out into loud weeping, said she dared
10844 not go. There was stretched Sarah Reed's once robust and active frame,
10845 rigid and still: her eye of flint was covered with its cold lid; her brow
10846 and strong traits wore yet the impress of her inexorable soul. A strange
10847 and solemn object was that corpse to me. I gazed on it with gloom and
10848 pain: nothing soft, nothing sweet, nothing pitying, or hopeful, or
10849 subduing did it inspire; only a grating anguish for _her_ woes--not _my_
10850 loss--and a sombre tearless dismay at the fearfulness of death in such a
10851 form.
10852
10853 Eliza surveyed her parent calmly. After a silence of some minutes she
10854 observed--
10855
10856 "With her constitution she should have lived to a good old age: her life
10857 was shortened by trouble." And then a spasm constricted her mouth for an
10858 instant: as it passed away she turned and left the room, and so did I.
10859 Neither of us had dropt a tear.
10860
10861
10862
10863
10864 CHAPTER XXII
10865
10866
10867 Mr. Rochester had given me but one week's leave of absence: yet a month
10868 elapsed before I quitted Gateshead. I wished to leave immediately after
10869 the funeral, but Georgiana entreated me to stay till she could get off to
10870 London, whither she was now at last invited by her uncle, Mr. Gibson, who
10871 had come down to direct his sister's interment and settle the family
10872 affairs. Georgiana said she dreaded being left alone with Eliza; from
10873 her she got neither sympathy in her dejection, support in her fears, nor
10874 aid in her preparations; so I bore with her feeble-minded wailings and
10875 selfish lamentations as well as I could, and did my best in sewing for
10876 her and packing her dresses. It is true, that while I worked, she would
10877 idle; and I thought to myself, "If you and I were destined to live always
10878 together, cousin, we would commence matters on a different footing. I
10879 should not settle tamely down into being the forbearing party; I should
10880 assign you your share of labour, and compel you to accomplish it, or else
10881 it should be left undone: I should insist, also, on your keeping some of
10882 those drawling, half-insincere complaints hushed in your own breast. It
10883 is only because our connection happens to be very transitory, and comes
10884 at a peculiarly mournful season, that I consent thus to render it so
10885 patient and compliant on my part."
10886
10887 At last I saw Georgiana off; but now it was Eliza's turn to request me to
10888 stay another week. Her plans required all her time and attention, she
10889 said; she was about to depart for some unknown bourne; and all day long
10890 she stayed in her own room, her door bolted within, filling trunks,
10891 emptying drawers, burning papers, and holding no communication with any
10892 one. She wished me to look after the house, to see callers, and answer
10893 notes of condolence.
10894
10895 One morning she told me I was at liberty. "And," she added, "I am
10896 obliged to you for your valuable services and discreet conduct! There is
10897 some difference between living with such an one as you and with
10898 Georgiana: you perform your own part in life and burden no one.
10899 To-morrow," she continued, "I set out for the Continent. I shall take up
10900 my abode in a religious house near Lisle--a nunnery you would call it;
10901 there I shall be quiet and unmolested. I shall devote myself for a time
10902 to the examination of the Roman Catholic dogmas, and to a careful study
10903 of the workings of their system: if I find it to be, as I half suspect it
10904 is, the one best calculated to ensure the doing of all things decently
10905 and in order, I shall embrace the tenets of Rome and probably take the
10906 veil."
10907
10908 I neither expressed surprise at this resolution nor attempted to dissuade
10909 her from it. "The vocation will fit you to a hair," I thought: "much
10910 good may it do you!"
10911
10912 When we parted, she said: "Good-bye, cousin Jane Eyre; I wish you well:
10913 you have some sense."
10914
10915 I then returned: "You are not without sense, cousin Eliza; but what you
10916 have, I suppose, in another year will be walled up alive in a French
10917 convent. However, it is not my business, and so it suits you, I don't
10918 much care."
10919
10920 "You are in the right," said she; and with these words we each went our
10921 separate way. As I shall not have occasion to refer either to her or her
10922 sister again, I may as well mention here, that Georgiana made an
10923 advantageous match with a wealthy worn-out man of fashion, and that Eliza
10924 actually took the veil, and is at this day superior of the convent where
10925 she passed the period of her novitiate, and which she endowed with her
10926 fortune.
10927
10928 How people feel when they are returning home from an absence, long or
10929 short, I did not know: I had never experienced the sensation. I had
10930 known what it was to come back to Gateshead when a child after a long
10931 walk, to be scolded for looking cold or gloomy; and later, what it was to
10932 come back from church to Lowood, to long for a plenteous meal and a good
10933 fire, and to be unable to get either. Neither of these returnings was
10934 very pleasant or desirable: no magnet drew me to a given point,
10935 increasing in its strength of attraction the nearer I came. The return
10936 to Thornfield was yet to be tried.
10937
10938 My journey seemed tedious--very tedious: fifty miles one day, a night
10939 spent at an inn; fifty miles the next day. During the first twelve hours
10940 I thought of Mrs. Reed in her last moments; I saw her disfigured and
10941 discoloured face, and heard her strangely altered voice. I mused on the
10942 funeral day, the coffin, the hearse, the black train of tenants and
10943 servants--few was the number of relatives--the gaping vault, the silent
10944 church, the solemn service. Then I thought of Eliza and Georgiana; I
10945 beheld one the cynosure of a ball-room, the other the inmate of a convent
10946 cell; and I dwelt on and analysed their separate peculiarities of person
10947 and character. The evening arrival at the great town of--scattered these
10948 thoughts; night gave them quite another turn: laid down on my traveller's
10949 bed, I left reminiscence for anticipation.
10950
10951 I was going back to Thornfield: but how long was I to stay there? Not
10952 long; of that I was sure. I had heard from Mrs. Fairfax in the interim
10953 of my absence: the party at the hall was dispersed; Mr. Rochester had
10954 left for London three weeks ago, but he was then expected to return in a
10955 fortnight. Mrs. Fairfax surmised that he was gone to make arrangements
10956 for his wedding, as he had talked of purchasing a new carriage: she said
10957 the idea of his marrying Miss Ingram still seemed strange to her; but
10958 from what everybody said, and from what she had herself seen, she could
10959 no longer doubt that the event would shortly take place. "You would be
10960 strangely incredulous if you did doubt it," was my mental comment. "I
10961 don't doubt it."
10962
10963 The question followed, "Where was I to go?" I dreamt of Miss Ingram all
10964 the night: in a vivid morning dream I saw her closing the gates of
10965 Thornfield against me and pointing me out another road; and Mr. Rochester
10966 looked on with his arms folded--smiling sardonically, as it seemed, at
10967 both her and me.
10968
10969 I had not notified to Mrs. Fairfax the exact day of my return; for I did
10970 not wish either car or carriage to meet me at Millcote. I proposed to
10971 walk the distance quietly by myself; and very quietly, after leaving my
10972 box in the ostler's care, did I slip away from the George Inn, about six
10973 o'clock of a June evening, and take the old road to Thornfield: a road
10974 which lay chiefly through fields, and was now little frequented.
10975
10976 It was not a bright or splendid summer evening, though fair and soft: the
10977 haymakers were at work all along the road; and the sky, though far from
10978 cloudless, was such as promised well for the future: its blue--where blue
10979 was visible--was mild and settled, and its cloud strata high and thin.
10980 The west, too, was warm: no watery gleam chilled it--it seemed as if
10981 there was a fire lit, an altar burning behind its screen of marbled
10982 vapour, and out of apertures shone a golden redness.
10983
10984 I felt glad as the road shortened before me: so glad that I stopped once
10985 to ask myself what that joy meant: and to remind reason that it was not
10986 to my home I was going, or to a permanent resting-place, or to a place
10987 where fond friends looked out for me and waited my arrival. "Mrs.
10988 Fairfax will smile you a calm welcome, to be sure," said I; "and little
10989 Adele will clap her hands and jump to see you: but you know very well you
10990 are thinking of another than they, and that he is not thinking of you."
10991
10992 But what is so headstrong as youth? What so blind as inexperience? These
10993 affirmed that it was pleasure enough to have the privilege of again
10994 looking on Mr. Rochester, whether he looked on me or not; and they
10995 added--"Hasten! hasten! be with him while you may: but a few more days or
10996 weeks, at most, and you are parted from him for ever!" And then I
10997 strangled a new-born agony--a deformed thing which I could not persuade
10998 myself to own and rear--and ran on.
10999
11000 They are making hay, too, in Thornfield meadows: or rather, the labourers
11001 are just quitting their work, and returning home with their rakes on
11002 their shoulders, now, at the hour I arrive. I have but a field or two to
11003 traverse, and then I shall cross the road and reach the gates. How full
11004 the hedges are of roses! But I have no time to gather any; I want to be
11005 at the house. I passed a tall briar, shooting leafy and flowery branches
11006 across the path; I see the narrow stile with stone steps; and I see--Mr.
11007 Rochester sitting there, a book and a pencil in his hand; he is writing.
11008
11009 Well, he is not a ghost; yet every nerve I have is unstrung: for a moment
11010 I am beyond my own mastery. What does it mean? I did not think I should
11011 tremble in this way when I saw him, or lose my voice or the power of
11012 motion in his presence. I will go back as soon as I can stir: I need not
11013 make an absolute fool of myself. I know another way to the house. It
11014 does not signify if I knew twenty ways; for he has seen me.
11015
11016 "Hillo!" he cries; and he puts up his book and his pencil. "There you
11017 are! Come on, if you please."
11018
11019 I suppose I do come on; though in what fashion I know not; being scarcely
11020 cognisant of my movements, and solicitous only to appear calm; and, above
11021 all, to control the working muscles of my face--which I feel rebel
11022 insolently against my will, and struggle to express what I had resolved
11023 to conceal. But I have a veil--it is down: I may make shift yet to
11024 behave with decent composure.
11025
11026 "And this is Jane Eyre? Are you coming from Millcote, and on foot?
11027 Yes--just one of your tricks: not to send for a carriage, and come
11028 clattering over street and road like a common mortal, but to steal into
11029 the vicinage of your home along with twilight, just as if you were a
11030 dream or a shade. What the deuce have you done with yourself this last
11031 month?"
11032
11033 "I have been with my aunt, sir, who is dead."
11034
11035 "A true Janian reply! Good angels be my guard! She comes from the other
11036 world--from the abode of people who are dead; and tells me so when she
11037 meets me alone here in the gloaming! If I dared, I'd touch you, to see
11038 if you are substance or shadow, you elf!--but I'd as soon offer to take
11039 hold of a blue _ignis fatuus_ light in a marsh. Truant! truant!" he
11040 added, when he had paused an instant. "Absent from me a whole month, and
11041 forgetting me quite, I'll be sworn!"
11042
11043 I knew there would be pleasure in meeting my master again, even though
11044 broken by the fear that he was so soon to cease to be my master, and by
11045 the knowledge that I was nothing to him: but there was ever in Mr.
11046 Rochester (so at least I thought) such a wealth of the power of
11047 communicating happiness, that to taste but of the crumbs he scattered to
11048 stray and stranger birds like me, was to feast genially. His last words
11049 were balm: they seemed to imply that it imported something to him whether
11050 I forgot him or not. And he had spoken of Thornfield as my home--would
11051 that it were my home!
11052
11053 He did not leave the stile, and I hardly liked to ask to go by. I
11054 inquired soon if he had not been to London.
11055
11056 "Yes; I suppose you found that out by second-sight."
11057
11058 "Mrs. Fairfax told me in a letter."
11059
11060 "And did she inform you what I went to do?"
11061
11062 "Oh, yes, sir! Everybody knew your errand."
11063
11064 "You must see the carriage, Jane, and tell me if you don't think it will
11065 suit Mrs. Rochester exactly; and whether she won't look like Queen
11066 Boadicea, leaning back against those purple cushions. I wish, Jane, I
11067 were a trifle better adapted to match with her externally. Tell me now,
11068 fairy as you are--can't you give me a charm, or a philter, or something
11069 of that sort, to make me a handsome man?"
11070
11071 "It would be past the power of magic, sir;" and, in thought, I added, "A
11072 loving eye is all the charm needed: to such you are handsome enough; or
11073 rather your sternness has a power beyond beauty."
11074
11075 Mr. Rochester had sometimes read my unspoken thoughts with an acumen to
11076 me incomprehensible: in the present instance he took no notice of my
11077 abrupt vocal response; but he smiled at me with a certain smile he had of
11078 his own, and which he used but on rare occasions. He seemed to think it
11079 too good for common purposes: it was the real sunshine of feeling--he
11080 shed it over me now.
11081
11082 "Pass, Janet," said he, making room for me to cross the stile: "go up
11083 home, and stay your weary little wandering feet at a friend's threshold."
11084
11085 All I had now to do was to obey him in silence: no need for me to
11086 colloquise further. I got over the stile without a word, and meant to
11087 leave him calmly. An impulse held me fast--a force turned me round. I
11088 said--or something in me said for me, and in spite of me--
11089
11090 "Thank you, Mr. Rochester, for your great kindness. I am strangely glad
11091 to get back again to you: and wherever you are is my home--my only home."
11092
11093 I walked on so fast that even he could hardly have overtaken me had he
11094 tried. Little Adele was half wild with delight when she saw me. Mrs.
11095 Fairfax received me with her usual plain friendliness. Leah smiled, and
11096 even Sophie bid me "bon soir" with glee. This was very pleasant; there
11097 is no happiness like that of being loved by your fellow-creatures, and
11098 feeling that your presence is an addition to their comfort.
11099
11100 I that evening shut my eyes resolutely against the future: I stopped my
11101 ears against the voice that kept warning me of near separation and coming
11102 grief. When tea was over and Mrs. Fairfax had taken her knitting, and I
11103 had assumed a low seat near her, and Adele, kneeling on the carpet, had
11104 nestled close up to me, and a sense of mutual affection seemed to
11105 surround us with a ring of golden peace, I uttered a silent prayer that
11106 we might not be parted far or soon; but when, as we thus sat, Mr.
11107 Rochester entered, unannounced, and looking at us, seemed to take
11108 pleasure in the spectacle of a group so amicable--when he said he
11109 supposed the old lady was all right now that she had got her adopted
11110 daughter back again, and added that he saw Adele was "prete a croquer sa
11111 petite maman Anglaise"--I half ventured to hope that he would, even after
11112 his marriage, keep us together somewhere under the shelter of his
11113 protection, and not quite exiled from the sunshine of his presence.
11114
11115 A fortnight of dubious calm succeeded my return to Thornfield Hall.
11116 Nothing was said of the master's marriage, and I saw no preparation going
11117 on for such an event. Almost every day I asked Mrs. Fairfax if she had
11118 yet heard anything decided: her answer was always in the negative. Once
11119 she said she had actually put the question to Mr. Rochester as to when he
11120 was going to bring his bride home; but he had answered her only by a joke
11121 and one of his queer looks, and she could not tell what to make of him.
11122
11123 One thing specially surprised me, and that was, there were no journeyings
11124 backward and forward, no visits to Ingram Park: to be sure it was twenty
11125 miles off, on the borders of another county; but what was that distance
11126 to an ardent lover? To so practised and indefatigable a horseman as Mr.
11127 Rochester, it would be but a morning's ride. I began to cherish hopes I
11128 had no right to conceive: that the match was broken off; that rumour had
11129 been mistaken; that one or both parties had changed their minds. I used
11130 to look at my master's face to see if it were sad or fierce; but I could
11131 not remember the time when it had been so uniformly clear of clouds or
11132 evil feelings. If, in the moments I and my pupil spent with him, I
11133 lacked spirits and sank into inevitable dejection, he became even gay.
11134 Never had he called me more frequently to his presence; never been kinder
11135 to me when there--and, alas! never had I loved him so well.
11136
11137
11138
11139
11140 CHAPTER XXIII
11141
11142
11143 A splendid Midsummer shone over England: skies so pure, suns so radiant
11144 as were then seen in long succession, seldom favour even singly, our wave-
11145 girt land. It was as if a band of Italian days had come from the South,
11146 like a flock of glorious passenger birds, and lighted to rest them on the
11147 cliffs of Albion. The hay was all got in; the fields round Thornfield
11148 were green and shorn; the roads white and baked; the trees were in their
11149 dark prime; hedge and wood, full-leaved and deeply tinted, contrasted
11150 well with the sunny hue of the cleared meadows between.
11151
11152 On Midsummer-eve, Adele, weary with gathering wild strawberries in Hay
11153 Lane half the day, had gone to bed with the sun. I watched her drop
11154 asleep, and when I left her, I sought the garden.
11155
11156 It was now the sweetest hour of the twenty-four:--"Day its fervid fires
11157 had wasted," and dew fell cool on panting plain and scorched summit.
11158 Where the sun had gone down in simple state--pure of the pomp of
11159 clouds--spread a solemn purple, burning with the light of red jewel and
11160 furnace flame at one point, on one hill-peak, and extending high and
11161 wide, soft and still softer, over half heaven. The east had its own
11162 charm or fine deep blue, and its own modest gem, a casino and solitary
11163 star: soon it would boast the moon; but she was yet beneath the horizon.
11164
11165 I walked a while on the pavement; but a subtle, well-known scent--that of
11166 a cigar--stole from some window; I saw the library casement open a
11167 handbreadth; I knew I might be watched thence; so I went apart into the
11168 orchard. No nook in the grounds more sheltered and more Eden-like; it
11169 was full of trees, it bloomed with flowers: a very high wall shut it out
11170 from the court, on one side; on the other, a beech avenue screened it
11171 from the lawn. At the bottom was a sunk fence; its sole separation from
11172 lonely fields: a winding walk, bordered with laurels and terminating in a
11173 giant horse-chestnut, circled at the base by a seat, led down to the
11174 fence. Here one could wander unseen. While such honey-dew fell, such
11175 silence reigned, such gloaming gathered, I felt as if I could haunt such
11176 shade for ever; but in threading the flower and fruit parterres at the
11177 upper part of the enclosure, enticed there by the light the now rising
11178 moon cast on this more open quarter, my step is stayed--not by sound, not
11179 by sight, but once more by a warning fragrance.
11180
11181 Sweet-briar and southernwood, jasmine, pink, and rose have long been
11182 yielding their evening sacrifice of incense: this new scent is neither of
11183 shrub nor flower; it is--I know it well--it is Mr. Rochester's cigar. I
11184 look round and I listen. I see trees laden with ripening fruit. I hear
11185 a nightingale warbling in a wood half a mile off; no moving form is
11186 visible, no coming step audible; but that perfume increases: I must flee.
11187 I make for the wicket leading to the shrubbery, and I see Mr. Rochester
11188 entering. I step aside into the ivy recess; he will not stay long: he
11189 will soon return whence he came, and if I sit still he will never see me.
11190
11191 But no--eventide is as pleasant to him as to me, and this antique garden
11192 as attractive; and he strolls on, now lifting the gooseberry-tree
11193 branches to look at the fruit, large as plums, with which they are laden;
11194 now taking a ripe cherry from the wall; now stooping towards a knot of
11195 flowers, either to inhale their fragrance or to admire the dew-beads on
11196 their petals. A great moth goes humming by me; it alights on a plant at
11197 Mr. Rochester's foot: he sees it, and bends to examine it.
11198
11199 "Now, he has his back towards me," thought I, "and he is occupied too;
11200 perhaps, if I walk softly, I can slip away unnoticed."
11201
11202 I trode on an edging of turf that the crackle of the pebbly gravel might
11203 not betray me: he was standing among the beds at a yard or two distant
11204 from where I had to pass; the moth apparently engaged him. "I shall get
11205 by very well," I meditated. As I crossed his shadow, thrown long over
11206 the garden by the moon, not yet risen high, he said quietly, without
11207 turning--
11208
11209 "Jane, come and look at this fellow."
11210
11211 I had made no noise: he had not eyes behind--could his shadow feel? I
11212 started at first, and then I approached him.
11213
11214 "Look at his wings," said he, "he reminds me rather of a West Indian
11215 insect; one does not often see so large and gay a night-rover in England;
11216 there! he is flown."
11217
11218 The moth roamed away. I was sheepishly retreating also; but Mr.
11219 Rochester followed me, and when we reached the wicket, he said--
11220
11221 "Turn back: on so lovely a night it is a shame to sit in the house; and
11222 surely no one can wish to go to bed while sunset is thus at meeting with
11223 moonrise."
11224
11225 It is one of my faults, that though my tongue is sometimes prompt enough
11226 at an answer, there are times when it sadly fails me in framing an
11227 excuse; and always the lapse occurs at some crisis, when a facile word or
11228 plausible pretext is specially wanted to get me out of painful
11229 embarrassment. I did not like to walk at this hour alone with Mr.
11230 Rochester in the shadowy orchard; but I could not find a reason to allege
11231 for leaving him. I followed with lagging step, and thoughts busily bent
11232 on discovering a means of extrication; but he himself looked so composed
11233 and so grave also, I became ashamed of feeling any confusion: the evil--if
11234 evil existent or prospective there was--seemed to lie with me only; his
11235 mind was unconscious and quiet.
11236
11237 "Jane," he recommenced, as we entered the laurel walk, and slowly strayed
11238 down in the direction of the sunk fence and the horse-chestnut,
11239 "Thornfield is a pleasant place in summer, is it not?"
11240
11241 "Yes, sir."
11242
11243 "You must have become in some degree attached to the house,--you, who
11244 have an eye for natural beauties, and a good deal of the organ of
11245 Adhesiveness?"
11246
11247 "I am attached to it, indeed."
11248
11249 "And though I don't comprehend how it is, I perceive you have acquired a
11250 degree of regard for that foolish little child Adele, too; and even for
11251 simple dame Fairfax?"
11252
11253 "Yes, sir; in different ways, I have an affection for both."
11254
11255 "And would be sorry to part with them?"
11256
11257 "Yes."
11258
11259 "Pity!" he said, and sighed and paused. "It is always the way of events
11260 in this life," he continued presently: "no sooner have you got settled in
11261 a pleasant resting-place, than a voice calls out to you to rise and move
11262 on, for the hour of repose is expired."
11263
11264 "Must I move on, sir?" I asked. "Must I leave Thornfield?"
11265
11266 "I believe you must, Jane. I am sorry, Janet, but I believe indeed you
11267 must."
11268
11269 This was a blow: but I did not let it prostrate me.
11270
11271 "Well, sir, I shall be ready when the order to march comes."
11272
11273 "It is come now--I must give it to-night."
11274
11275 "Then you _are_ going to be married, sir?"
11276
11277 "Ex-act-ly--pre-cise-ly: with your usual acuteness, you have hit the nail
11278 straight on the head."
11279
11280 "Soon, sir?"
11281
11282 "Very soon, my--that is, Miss Eyre: and you'll remember, Jane, the first
11283 time I, or Rumour, plainly intimated to you that it was my intention to
11284 put my old bachelor's neck into the sacred noose, to enter into the holy
11285 estate of matrimony--to take Miss Ingram to my bosom, in short (she's an
11286 extensive armful: but that's not to the point--one can't have too much of
11287 such a very excellent thing as my beautiful Blanche): well, as I was
11288 saying--listen to me, Jane! You're not turning your head to look after
11289 more moths, are you? That was only a lady-clock, child, 'flying away
11290 home.' I wish to remind you that it was you who first said to me, with
11291 that discretion I respect in you--with that foresight, prudence, and
11292 humility which befit your responsible and dependent position--that in
11293 case I married Miss Ingram, both you and little Adele had better trot
11294 forthwith. I pass over the sort of slur conveyed in this suggestion on
11295 the character of my beloved; indeed, when you are far away, Janet, I'll
11296 try to forget it: I shall notice only its wisdom; which is such that I
11297 have made it my law of action. Adele must go to school; and you, Miss
11298 Eyre, must get a new situation."
11299
11300 "Yes, sir, I will advertise immediately: and meantime, I suppose--" I was
11301 going to say, "I suppose I may stay here, till I find another shelter to
11302 betake myself to:" but I stopped, feeling it would not do to risk a long
11303 sentence, for my voice was not quite under command.
11304
11305 "In about a month I hope to be a bridegroom," continued Mr. Rochester;
11306 "and in the interim, I shall myself look out for employment and an asylum
11307 for you."
11308
11309 "Thank you, sir; I am sorry to give--"
11310
11311 "Oh, no need to apologise! I consider that when a dependent does her
11312 duty as well as you have done yours, she has a sort of claim upon her
11313 employer for any little assistance he can conveniently render her; indeed
11314 I have already, through my future mother-in-law, heard of a place that I
11315 think will suit: it is to undertake the education of the five daughters
11316 of Mrs. Dionysius O'Gall of Bitternutt Lodge, Connaught, Ireland. You'll
11317 like Ireland, I think: they're such warm-hearted people there, they say."
11318
11319 "It is a long way off, sir."
11320
11321 "No matter--a girl of your sense will not object to the voyage or the
11322 distance."
11323
11324 "Not the voyage, but the distance: and then the sea is a barrier--"
11325
11326 "From what, Jane?"
11327
11328 "From England and from Thornfield: and--"
11329
11330 "Well?"
11331
11332 "From _you_, sir."
11333
11334 I said this almost involuntarily, and, with as little sanction of free
11335 will, my tears gushed out. I did not cry so as to be heard, however; I
11336 avoided sobbing. The thought of Mrs. O'Gall and Bitternutt Lodge struck
11337 cold to my heart; and colder the thought of all the brine and foam,
11338 destined, as it seemed, to rush between me and the master at whose side I
11339 now walked, and coldest the remembrance of the wider ocean--wealth,
11340 caste, custom intervened between me and what I naturally and inevitably
11341 loved.
11342
11343 "It is a long way," I again said.
11344
11345 "It is, to be sure; and when you get to Bitternutt Lodge, Connaught,
11346 Ireland, I shall never see you again, Jane: that's morally certain. I
11347 never go over to Ireland, not having myself much of a fancy for the
11348 country. We have been good friends, Jane; have we not?"
11349
11350 "Yes, sir."
11351
11352 "And when friends are on the eve of separation, they like to spend the
11353 little time that remains to them close to each other. Come! we'll talk
11354 over the voyage and the parting quietly half-an-hour or so, while the
11355 stars enter into their shining life up in heaven yonder: here is the
11356 chestnut tree: here is the bench at its old roots. Come, we will sit
11357 there in peace to-night, though we should never more be destined to sit
11358 there together." He seated me and himself.
11359
11360 "It is a long way to Ireland, Janet, and I am sorry to send my little
11361 friend on such weary travels: but if I can't do better, how is it to be
11362 helped? Are you anything akin to me, do you think, Jane?"
11363
11364 I could risk no sort of answer by this time: my heart was still.
11365
11366 "Because," he said, "I sometimes have a queer feeling with regard to
11367 you--especially when you are near me, as now: it is as if I had a string
11368 somewhere under my left ribs, tightly and inextricably knotted to a
11369 similar string situated in the corresponding quarter of your little
11370 frame. And if that boisterous Channel, and two hundred miles or so of
11371 land come broad between us, I am afraid that cord of communion will be
11372 snapt; and then I've a nervous notion I should take to bleeding inwardly.
11373 As for you,--you'd forget me."
11374
11375 "That I _never_ should, sir: you know--" Impossible to proceed.
11376
11377 "Jane, do you hear that nightingale singing in the wood? Listen!"
11378
11379 In listening, I sobbed convulsively; for I could repress what I endured
11380 no longer; I was obliged to yield, and I was shaken from head to foot
11381 with acute distress. When I did speak, it was only to express an
11382 impetuous wish that I had never been born, or never come to Thornfield.
11383
11384 "Because you are sorry to leave it?"
11385
11386 The vehemence of emotion, stirred by grief and love within me, was
11387 claiming mastery, and struggling for full sway, and asserting a right to
11388 predominate, to overcome, to live, rise, and reign at last: yes,--and to
11389 speak.
11390
11391 "I grieve to leave Thornfield: I love Thornfield:--I love it, because I
11392 have lived in it a full and delightful life,--momentarily at least. I
11393 have not been trampled on. I have not been petrified. I have not been
11394 buried with inferior minds, and excluded from every glimpse of communion
11395 with what is bright and energetic and high. I have talked, face to face,
11396 with what I reverence, with what I delight in,--with an original, a
11397 vigorous, an expanded mind. I have known you, Mr. Rochester; and it
11398 strikes me with terror and anguish to feel I absolutely must be torn from
11399 you for ever. I see the necessity of departure; and it is like looking
11400 on the necessity of death."
11401
11402 "Where do you see the necessity?" he asked suddenly.
11403
11404 "Where? You, sir, have placed it before me."
11405
11406 "In what shape?"
11407
11408 "In the shape of Miss Ingram; a noble and beautiful woman,--your bride."
11409
11410 "My bride! What bride? I have no bride!"
11411
11412 "But you will have."
11413
11414 "Yes;--I will!--I will!" He set his teeth.
11415
11416 "Then I must go:--you have said it yourself."
11417
11418 "No: you must stay! I swear it--and the oath shall be kept."
11419
11420 "I tell you I must go!" I retorted, roused to something like passion. "Do
11421 you think I can stay to become nothing to you? Do you think I am an
11422 automaton?--a machine without feelings? and can bear to have my morsel of
11423 bread snatched from my lips, and my drop of living water dashed from my
11424 cup? Do you think, because I am poor, obscure, plain, and little, I am
11425 soulless and heartless? You think wrong!--I have as much soul as
11426 you,--and full as much heart! And if God had gifted me with some beauty
11427 and much wealth, I should have made it as hard for you to leave me, as it
11428 is now for me to leave you. I am not talking to you now through the
11429 medium of custom, conventionalities, nor even of mortal flesh;--it is my
11430 spirit that addresses your spirit; just as if both had passed through the
11431 grave, and we stood at God's feet, equal,--as we are!"
11432
11433 "As we are!" repeated Mr. Rochester--"so," he added, enclosing me in his
11434 arms. Gathering me to his breast, pressing his lips on my lips: "so,
11435 Jane!"
11436
11437 "Yes, so, sir," I rejoined: "and yet not so; for you are a married man--or
11438 as good as a married man, and wed to one inferior to you--to one with
11439 whom you have no sympathy--whom I do not believe you truly love; for I
11440 have seen and heard you sneer at her. I would scorn such a union:
11441 therefore I am better than you--let me go!"
11442
11443 "Where, Jane? To Ireland?"
11444
11445 "Yes--to Ireland. I have spoken my mind, and can go anywhere now."
11446
11447 "Jane, be still; don't struggle so, like a wild frantic bird that is
11448 rending its own plumage in its desperation."
11449
11450 "I am no bird; and no net ensnares me; I am a free human being with an
11451 independent will, which I now exert to leave you."
11452
11453 Another effort set me at liberty, and I stood erect before him.
11454
11455 "And your will shall decide your destiny," he said: "I offer you my hand,
11456 my heart, and a share of all my possessions."
11457
11458 "You play a farce, which I merely laugh at."
11459
11460 "I ask you to pass through life at my side--to be my second self, and
11461 best earthly companion."
11462
11463 "For that fate you have already made your choice, and must abide by it."
11464
11465 "Jane, be still a few moments: you are over-excited: I will be still
11466 too."
11467
11468 A waft of wind came sweeping down the laurel-walk, and trembled through
11469 the boughs of the chestnut: it wandered away--away--to an indefinite
11470 distance--it died. The nightingale's song was then the only voice of the
11471 hour: in listening to it, I again wept. Mr. Rochester sat quiet, looking
11472 at me gently and seriously. Some time passed before he spoke; he at last
11473 said--
11474
11475 "Come to my side, Jane, and let us explain and understand one another."
11476
11477 "I will never again come to your side: I am torn away now, and cannot
11478 return."
11479
11480 "But, Jane, I summon you as my wife: it is you only I intend to marry."
11481
11482 I was silent: I thought he mocked me.
11483
11484 "Come, Jane--come hither."
11485
11486 "Your bride stands between us."
11487
11488 He rose, and with a stride reached me.
11489
11490 "My bride is here," he said, again drawing me to him, "because my equal
11491 is here, and my likeness. Jane, will you marry me?"
11492
11493 Still I did not answer, and still I writhed myself from his grasp: for I
11494 was still incredulous.
11495
11496 "Do you doubt me, Jane?"
11497
11498 "Entirely."
11499
11500 "You have no faith in me?"
11501
11502 "Not a whit."
11503
11504 "Am I a liar in your eyes?" he asked passionately. "Little sceptic, you
11505 _shall_ be convinced. What love have I for Miss Ingram? None: and that
11506 you know. What love has she for me? None: as I have taken pains to
11507 prove: I caused a rumour to reach her that my fortune was not a third of
11508 what was supposed, and after that I presented myself to see the result;
11509 it was coldness both from her and her mother. I would not--I could
11510 not--marry Miss Ingram. You--you strange, you almost unearthly thing!--I
11511 love as my own flesh. You--poor and obscure, and small and plain as you
11512 are--I entreat to accept me as a husband."
11513
11514 "What, me!" I ejaculated, beginning in his earnestness--and especially in
11515 his incivility--to credit his sincerity: "me who have not a friend in the
11516 world but you--if you are my friend: not a shilling but what you have
11517 given me?"
11518
11519 "You, Jane, I must have you for my own--entirely my own. Will you be
11520 mine? Say yes, quickly."
11521
11522 "Mr. Rochester, let me look at your face: turn to the moonlight."
11523
11524 "Why?"
11525
11526 "Because I want to read your countenance--turn!"
11527
11528 "There! you will find it scarcely more legible than a crumpled, scratched
11529 page. Read on: only make haste, for I suffer."
11530
11531 His face was very much agitated and very much flushed, and there were
11532 strong workings in the features, and strange gleams in the eyes.
11533
11534 "Oh, Jane, you torture me!" he exclaimed. "With that searching and yet
11535 faithful and generous look, you torture me!"
11536
11537 "How can I do that? If you are true, and your offer real, my only
11538 feelings to you must be gratitude and devotion--they cannot torture."
11539
11540 "Gratitude!" he ejaculated; and added wildly--"Jane accept me quickly.
11541 Say, Edward--give me my name--Edward--I will marry you."
11542
11543 "Are you in earnest? Do you truly love me? Do you sincerely wish me to
11544 be your wife?"
11545
11546 "I do; and if an oath is necessary to satisfy you, I swear it."
11547
11548 "Then, sir, I will marry you."
11549
11550 "Edward--my little wife!"
11551
11552 "Dear Edward!"
11553
11554 "Come to me--come to me entirely now," said he; and added, in his deepest
11555 tone, speaking in my ear as his cheek was laid on mine, "Make my
11556 happiness--I will make yours."
11557
11558 "God pardon me!" he subjoined ere long; "and man meddle not with me: I
11559 have her, and will hold her."
11560
11561 "There is no one to meddle, sir. I have no kindred to interfere."
11562
11563 "No--that is the best of it," he said. And if I had loved him less I
11564 should have thought his accent and look of exultation savage; but,
11565 sitting by him, roused from the nightmare of parting--called to the
11566 paradise of union--I thought only of the bliss given me to drink in so
11567 abundant a flow. Again and again he said, "Are you happy, Jane?" And
11568 again and again I answered, "Yes." After which he murmured, "It will
11569 atone--it will atone. Have I not found her friendless, and cold, and
11570 comfortless? Will I not guard, and cherish, and solace her? Is there
11571 not love in my heart, and constancy in my resolves? It will expiate at
11572 God's tribunal. I know my Maker sanctions what I do. For the world's
11573 judgment--I wash my hands thereof. For man's opinion--I defy it."
11574
11575 But what had befallen the night? The moon was not yet set, and we were
11576 all in shadow: I could scarcely see my master's face, near as I was. And
11577 what ailed the chestnut tree? it writhed and groaned; while wind roared
11578 in the laurel walk, and came sweeping over us.
11579
11580 "We must go in," said Mr. Rochester: "the weather changes. I could have
11581 sat with thee till morning, Jane."
11582
11583 "And so," thought I, "could I with you." I should have said so, perhaps,
11584 but a livid, vivid spark leapt out of a cloud at which I was looking, and
11585 there was a crack, a crash, and a close rattling peal; and I thought only
11586 of hiding my dazzled eyes against Mr. Rochester's shoulder.
11587
11588 The rain rushed down. He hurried me up the walk, through the grounds,
11589 and into the house; but we were quite wet before we could pass the
11590 threshold. He was taking off my shawl in the hall, and shaking the water
11591 out of my loosened hair, when Mrs. Fairfax emerged from her room. I did
11592 not observe her at first, nor did Mr. Rochester. The lamp was lit. The
11593 clock was on the stroke of twelve.
11594
11595 "Hasten to take off your wet things," said he; "and before you go, good-
11596 night--good-night, my darling!"
11597
11598 He kissed me repeatedly. When I looked up, on leaving his arms, there
11599 stood the widow, pale, grave, and amazed. I only smiled at her, and ran
11600 upstairs. "Explanation will do for another time," thought I. Still,
11601 when I reached my chamber, I felt a pang at the idea she should even
11602 temporarily misconstrue what she had seen. But joy soon effaced every
11603 other feeling; and loud as the wind blew, near and deep as the thunder
11604 crashed, fierce and frequent as the lightning gleamed, cataract-like as
11605 the rain fell during a storm of two hours' duration, I experienced no
11606 fear and little awe. Mr. Rochester came thrice to my door in the course
11607 of it, to ask if I was safe and tranquil: and that was comfort, that was
11608 strength for anything.
11609
11610 Before I left my bed in the morning, little Adele came running in to tell
11611 me that the great horse-chestnut at the bottom of the orchard had been
11612 struck by lightning in the night, and half of it split away.
11613
11614
11615
11616
11617 CHAPTER XXIV
11618
11619
11620 As I rose and dressed, I thought over what had happened, and wondered if
11621 it were a dream. I could not be certain of the reality till I had seen
11622 Mr. Rochester again, and heard him renew his words of love and promise.
11623
11624 While arranging my hair, I looked at my face in the glass, and felt it
11625 was no longer plain: there was hope in its aspect and life in its colour;
11626 and my eyes seemed as if they had beheld the fount of fruition, and
11627 borrowed beams from the lustrous ripple. I had often been unwilling to
11628 look at my master, because I feared he could not be pleased at my look;
11629 but I was sure I might lift my face to his now, and not cool his
11630 affection by its expression. I took a plain but clean and light summer
11631 dress from my drawer and put it on: it seemed no attire had ever so well
11632 become me, because none had I ever worn in so blissful a mood.
11633
11634 I was not surprised, when I ran down into the hall, to see that a
11635 brilliant June morning had succeeded to the tempest of the night; and to
11636 feel, through the open glass door, the breathing of a fresh and fragrant
11637 breeze. Nature must be gladsome when I was so happy. A beggar-woman and
11638 her little boy--pale, ragged objects both--were coming up the walk, and I
11639 ran down and gave them all the money I happened to have in my purse--some
11640 three or four shillings: good or bad, they must partake of my jubilee.
11641 The rooks cawed, and blither birds sang; but nothing was so merry or so
11642 musical as my own rejoicing heart.
11643
11644 Mrs. Fairfax surprised me by looking out of the window with a sad
11645 countenance, and saying gravely--"Miss Eyre, will you come to breakfast?"
11646 During the meal she was quiet and cool: but I could not undeceive her
11647 then. I must wait for my master to give explanations; and so must she. I
11648 ate what I could, and then I hastened upstairs. I met Adele leaving the
11649 schoolroom.
11650
11651 "Where are you going? It is time for lessons."
11652
11653 "Mr. Rochester has sent me away to the nursery."
11654
11655 "Where is he?"
11656
11657 "In there," pointing to the apartment she had left; and I went in, and
11658 there he stood.
11659
11660 "Come and bid me good-morning," said he. I gladly advanced; and it was
11661 not merely a cold word now, or even a shake of the hand that I received,
11662 but an embrace and a kiss. It seemed natural: it seemed genial to be so
11663 well loved, so caressed by him.
11664
11665 "Jane, you look blooming, and smiling, and pretty," said he: "truly
11666 pretty this morning. Is this my pale, little elf? Is this my mustard-
11667 seed? This little sunny-faced girl with the dimpled cheek and rosy lips;
11668 the satin-smooth hazel hair, and the radiant hazel eyes?" (I had green
11669 eyes, reader; but you must excuse the mistake: for him they were
11670 new-dyed, I suppose.)
11671
11672 "It is Jane Eyre, sir."
11673
11674 "Soon to be Jane Rochester," he added: "in four weeks, Janet; not a day
11675 more. Do you hear that?"
11676
11677 I did, and I could not quite comprehend it: it made me giddy. The
11678 feeling, the announcement sent through me, was something stronger than
11679 was consistent with joy--something that smote and stunned. It was, I
11680 think almost fear.
11681
11682 "You blushed, and now you are white, Jane: what is that for?"
11683
11684 "Because you gave me a new name--Jane Rochester; and it seems so
11685 strange."
11686
11687 "Yes, Mrs. Rochester," said he; "young Mrs. Rochester--Fairfax
11688 Rochester's girl-bride."
11689
11690 "It can never be, sir; it does not sound likely. Human beings never
11691 enjoy complete happiness in this world. I was not born for a different
11692 destiny to the rest of my species: to imagine such a lot befalling me is
11693 a fairy tale--a day-dream."
11694
11695 "Which I can and will realise. I shall begin to-day. This morning I
11696 wrote to my banker in London to send me certain jewels he has in his
11697 keeping,--heirlooms for the ladies of Thornfield. In a day or two I hope
11698 to pour them into your lap: for every privilege, every attention shall be
11699 yours that I would accord a peer's daughter, if about to marry her."
11700
11701 "Oh, sir!--never rain jewels! I don't like to hear them spoken of.
11702 Jewels for Jane Eyre sounds unnatural and strange: I would rather not
11703 have them."
11704
11705 "I will myself put the diamond chain round your neck, and the circlet on
11706 your forehead,--which it will become: for nature, at least, has stamped
11707 her patent of nobility on this brow, Jane; and I will clasp the bracelets
11708 on these fine wrists, and load these fairy-like fingers with rings."
11709
11710 "No, no, sir! think of other subjects, and speak of other things, and in
11711 another strain. Don't address me as if I were a beauty; I am your plain,
11712 Quakerish governess."
11713
11714 "You are a beauty in my eyes, and a beauty just after the desire of my
11715 heart,--delicate and aerial."
11716
11717 "Puny and insignificant, you mean. You are dreaming, sir,--or you are
11718 sneering. For God's sake don't be ironical!"
11719
11720 "I will make the world acknowledge you a beauty, too," he went on, while
11721 I really became uneasy at the strain he had adopted, because I felt he
11722 was either deluding himself or trying to delude me. "I will attire my
11723 Jane in satin and lace, and she shall have roses in her hair; and I will
11724 cover the head I love best with a priceless veil."
11725
11726 "And then you won't know me, sir; and I shall not be your Jane Eyre any
11727 longer, but an ape in a harlequin's jacket--a jay in borrowed plumes. I
11728 would as soon see you, Mr. Rochester, tricked out in stage-trappings, as
11729 myself clad in a court-lady's robe; and I don't call you handsome, sir,
11730 though I love you most dearly: far too dearly to flatter you. Don't
11731 flatter me."
11732
11733 He pursued his theme, however, without noticing my deprecation. "This
11734 very day I shall take you in the carriage to Millcote, and you must
11735 choose some dresses for yourself. I told you we shall be married in four
11736 weeks. The wedding is to take place quietly, in the church down below
11737 yonder; and then I shall waft you away at once to town. After a brief
11738 stay there, I shall bear my treasure to regions nearer the sun: to French
11739 vineyards and Italian plains; and she shall see whatever is famous in old
11740 story and in modern record: she shall taste, too, of the life of cities;
11741 and she shall learn to value herself by just comparison with others."
11742
11743 "Shall I travel?--and with you, sir?"
11744
11745 "You shall sojourn at Paris, Rome, and Naples: at Florence, Venice, and
11746 Vienna: all the ground I have wandered over shall be re-trodden by you:
11747 wherever I stamped my hoof, your sylph's foot shall step also. Ten years
11748 since, I flew through Europe half mad; with disgust, hate, and rage as my
11749 companions: now I shall revisit it healed and cleansed, with a very angel
11750 as my comforter."
11751
11752 I laughed at him as he said this. "I am not an angel," I asserted; "and
11753 I will not be one till I die: I will be myself. Mr. Rochester, you must
11754 neither expect nor exact anything celestial of me--for you will not get
11755 it, any more than I shall get it of you: which I do not at all
11756 anticipate."
11757
11758 "What do you anticipate of me?"
11759
11760 "For a little while you will perhaps be as you are now,--a very little
11761 while; and then you will turn cool; and then you will be capricious; and
11762 then you will be stern, and I shall have much ado to please you: but when
11763 you get well used to me, you will perhaps like me again,--_like_ me, I
11764 say, not _love_ me. I suppose your love will effervesce in six months,
11765 or less. I have observed in books written by men, that period assigned
11766 as the farthest to which a husband's ardour extends. Yet, after all, as
11767 a friend and companion, I hope never to become quite distasteful to my
11768 dear master."
11769
11770 "Distasteful! and like you again! I think I shall like you again, and
11771 yet again: and I will make you confess I do not only _like_, but _love_
11772 you--with truth, fervour, constancy."
11773
11774 "Yet are you not capricious, sir?"
11775
11776 "To women who please me only by their faces, I am the very devil when I
11777 find out they have neither souls nor hearts--when they open to me a
11778 perspective of flatness, triviality, and perhaps imbecility, coarseness,
11779 and ill-temper: but to the clear eye and eloquent tongue, to the soul
11780 made of fire, and the character that bends but does not break--at once
11781 supple and stable, tractable and consistent--I am ever tender and true."
11782
11783 "Had you ever experience of such a character, sir? Did you ever love
11784 such an one?"
11785
11786 "I love it now."
11787
11788 "But before me: if I, indeed, in any respect come up to your difficult
11789 standard?"
11790
11791 "I never met your likeness. Jane, you please me, and you master me--you
11792 seem to submit, and I like the sense of pliancy you impart; and while I
11793 am twining the soft, silken skein round my finger, it sends a thrill up
11794 my arm to my heart. I am influenced--conquered; and the influence is
11795 sweeter than I can express; and the conquest I undergo has a witchery
11796 beyond any triumph I can win. Why do you smile, Jane? What does that
11797 inexplicable, that uncanny turn of countenance mean?"
11798
11799 "I was thinking, sir (you will excuse the idea; it was involuntary), I
11800 was thinking of Hercules and Samson with their charmers--"
11801
11802 "You were, you little elfish--"
11803
11804 "Hush, sir! You don't talk very wisely just now; any more than those
11805 gentlemen acted very wisely. However, had they been married, they would
11806 no doubt by their severity as husbands have made up for their softness as
11807 suitors; and so will you, I fear. I wonder how you will answer me a year
11808 hence, should I ask a favour it does not suit your convenience or
11809 pleasure to grant."
11810
11811 "Ask me something now, Jane,--the least thing: I desire to be entreated--"
11812
11813 "Indeed I will, sir; I have my petition all ready."
11814
11815 "Speak! But if you look up and smile with that countenance, I shall
11816 swear concession before I know to what, and that will make a fool of me."
11817
11818 "Not at all, sir; I ask only this: don't send for the jewels, and don't
11819 crown me with roses: you might as well put a border of gold lace round
11820 that plain pocket handkerchief you have there."
11821
11822 "I might as well 'gild refined gold.' I know it: your request is granted
11823 then--for the time. I will remand the order I despatched to my banker.
11824 But you have not yet asked for anything; you have prayed a gift to be
11825 withdrawn: try again."
11826
11827 "Well then, sir, have the goodness to gratify my curiosity, which is much
11828 piqued on one point."
11829
11830 He looked disturbed. "What? what?" he said hastily. "Curiosity is a
11831 dangerous petition: it is well I have not taken a vow to accord every
11832 request--"
11833
11834 "But there can be no danger in complying with this, sir."
11835
11836 "Utter it, Jane: but I wish that instead of a mere inquiry into, perhaps,
11837 a secret, it was a wish for half my estate."
11838
11839 "Now, King Ahasuerus! What do I want with half your estate? Do you
11840 think I am a Jew-usurer, seeking good investment in land? I would much
11841 rather have all your confidence. You will not exclude me from your
11842 confidence if you admit me to your heart?"
11843
11844 "You are welcome to all my confidence that is worth having, Jane; but for
11845 God's sake, don't desire a useless burden! Don't long for poison--don't
11846 turn out a downright Eve on my hands!"
11847
11848 "Why not, sir? You have just been telling me how much you liked to be
11849 conquered, and how pleasant over-persuasion is to you. Don't you think I
11850 had better take advantage of the confession, and begin and coax and
11851 entreat--even cry and be sulky if necessary--for the sake of a mere essay
11852 of my power?"
11853
11854 "I dare you to any such experiment. Encroach, presume, and the game is
11855 up."
11856
11857 "Is it, sir? You soon give in. How stern you look now! Your eyebrows
11858 have become as thick as my finger, and your forehead resembles what, in
11859 some very astonishing poetry, I once saw styled, 'a blue-piled
11860 thunderloft.' That will be your married look, sir, I suppose?"
11861
11862 "If that will be _your_ married look, I, as a Christian, will soon give
11863 up the notion of consorting with a mere sprite or salamander. But what
11864 had you to ask, thing,--out with it?"
11865
11866 "There, you are less than civil now; and I like rudeness a great deal
11867 better than flattery. I had rather be a _thing_ than an angel. This is
11868 what I have to ask,--Why did you take such pains to make me believe you
11869 wished to marry Miss Ingram?"
11870
11871 "Is that all? Thank God it is no worse!" And now he unknit his black
11872 brows; looked down, smiling at me, and stroked my hair, as if well
11873 pleased at seeing a danger averted. "I think I may confess," he
11874 continued, "even although I should make you a little indignant, Jane--and
11875 I have seen what a fire-spirit you can be when you are indignant. You
11876 glowed in the cool moonlight last night, when you mutinied against fate,
11877 and claimed your rank as my equal. Janet, by-the-bye, it was you who
11878 made me the offer."
11879
11880 "Of course I did. But to the point if you please, sir--Miss Ingram?"
11881
11882 "Well, I feigned courtship of Miss Ingram, because I wished to render you
11883 as madly in love with me as I was with you; and I knew jealousy would be
11884 the best ally I could call in for the furtherance of that end."
11885
11886 "Excellent! Now you are small--not one whit bigger than the end of my
11887 little finger. It was a burning shame and a scandalous disgrace to act
11888 in that way. Did you think nothing of Miss Ingram's feelings, sir?"
11889
11890 "Her feelings are concentrated in one--pride; and that needs humbling.
11891 Were you jealous, Jane?"
11892
11893 "Never mind, Mr. Rochester: it is in no way interesting to you to know
11894 that. Answer me truly once more. Do you think Miss Ingram will not
11895 suffer from your dishonest coquetry? Won't she feel forsaken and
11896 deserted?"
11897
11898 "Impossible!--when I told you how she, on the contrary, deserted me: the
11899 idea of my insolvency cooled, or rather extinguished, her flame in a
11900 moment."
11901
11902 "You have a curious, designing mind, Mr. Rochester. I am afraid your
11903 principles on some points are eccentric."
11904
11905 "My principles were never trained, Jane: they may have grown a little
11906 awry for want of attention."
11907
11908 "Once again, seriously; may I enjoy the great good that has been
11909 vouchsafed to me, without fearing that any one else is suffering the
11910 bitter pain I myself felt a while ago?"
11911
11912 "That you may, my good little girl: there is not another being in the
11913 world has the same pure love for me as yourself--for I lay that pleasant
11914 unction to my soul, Jane, a belief in your affection."
11915
11916 I turned my lips to the hand that lay on my shoulder. I loved him very
11917 much--more than I could trust myself to say--more than words had power to
11918 express.
11919
11920 "Ask something more," he said presently; "it is my delight to be
11921 entreated, and to yield."
11922
11923 I was again ready with my request. "Communicate your intentions to Mrs.
11924 Fairfax, sir: she saw me with you last night in the hall, and she was
11925 shocked. Give her some explanation before I see her again. It pains me
11926 to be misjudged by so good a woman."
11927
11928 "Go to your room, and put on your bonnet," he replied. "I mean you to
11929 accompany me to Millcote this morning; and while you prepare for the
11930 drive, I will enlighten the old lady's understanding. Did she think,
11931 Janet, you had given the world for love, and considered it well lost?"
11932
11933 "I believe she thought I had forgotten my station, and yours, sir."
11934
11935 "Station! station!--your station is in my heart, and on the necks of
11936 those who would insult you, now or hereafter.--Go."
11937
11938 I was soon dressed; and when I heard Mr. Rochester quit Mrs. Fairfax's
11939 parlour, I hurried down to it. The old lady, had been reading her
11940 morning portion of Scripture--the Lesson for the day; her Bible lay open
11941 before her, and her spectacles were upon it. Her occupation, suspended
11942 by Mr. Rochester's announcement, seemed now forgotten: her eyes, fixed on
11943 the blank wall opposite, expressed the surprise of a quiet mind stirred
11944 by unwonted tidings. Seeing me, she roused herself: she made a sort of
11945 effort to smile, and framed a few words of congratulation; but the smile
11946 expired, and the sentence was abandoned unfinished. She put up her
11947 spectacles, shut the Bible, and pushed her chair back from the table.
11948
11949 "I feel so astonished," she began, "I hardly know what to say to you,
11950 Miss Eyre. I have surely not been dreaming, have I? Sometimes I half
11951 fall asleep when I am sitting alone and fancy things that have never
11952 happened. It has seemed to me more than once when I have been in a doze,
11953 that my dear husband, who died fifteen years since, has come in and sat
11954 down beside me; and that I have even heard him call me by my name, Alice,
11955 as he used to do. Now, can you tell me whether it is actually true that
11956 Mr. Rochester has asked you to marry him? Don't laugh at me. But I
11957 really thought he came in here five minutes ago, and said that in a month
11958 you would be his wife."
11959
11960 "He has said the same thing to me," I replied.
11961
11962 "He has! Do you believe him? Have you accepted him?"
11963
11964 "Yes."
11965
11966 She looked at me bewildered. "I could never have thought it. He is a
11967 proud man: all the Rochesters were proud: and his father, at least, liked
11968 money. He, too, has always been called careful. He means to marry you?"
11969
11970 "He tells me so."
11971
11972 She surveyed my whole person: in her eyes I read that they had there
11973 found no charm powerful enough to solve the enigma.
11974
11975 "It passes me!" she continued; "but no doubt, it is true since you say
11976 so. How it will answer, I cannot tell: I really don't know. Equality of
11977 position and fortune is often advisable in such cases; and there are
11978 twenty years of difference in your ages. He might almost be your
11979 father."
11980
11981 "No, indeed, Mrs. Fairfax!" exclaimed I, nettled; "he is nothing like my
11982 father! No one, who saw us together, would suppose it for an instant.
11983 Mr. Rochester looks as young, and is as young, as some men at five-and-
11984 twenty."
11985
11986 "Is it really for love he is going to marry you?" she asked.
11987
11988 I was so hurt by her coldness and scepticism, that the tears rose to my
11989 eyes.
11990
11991 "I am sorry to grieve you," pursued the widow; "but you are so young, and
11992 so little acquainted with men, I wished to put you on your guard. It is
11993 an old saying that 'all is not gold that glitters;' and in this case I do
11994 fear there will be something found to be different to what either you or
11995 I expect."
11996
11997 "Why?--am I a monster?" I said: "is it impossible that Mr. Rochester
11998 should have a sincere affection for me?"
11999
12000 "No: you are very well; and much improved of late; and Mr. Rochester, I
12001 daresay, is fond of you. I have always noticed that you were a sort of
12002 pet of his. There are times when, for your sake, I have been a little
12003 uneasy at his marked preference, and have wished to put you on your
12004 guard: but I did not like to suggest even the possibility of wrong. I
12005 knew such an idea would shock, perhaps offend you; and you were so
12006 discreet, and so thoroughly modest and sensible, I hoped you might be
12007 trusted to protect yourself. Last night I cannot tell you what I
12008 suffered when I sought all over the house, and could find you nowhere,
12009 nor the master either; and then, at twelve o'clock, saw you come in with
12010 him."
12011
12012 "Well, never mind that now," I interrupted impatiently; "it is enough
12013 that all was right."
12014
12015 "I hope all will be right in the end," she said: "but believe me, you
12016 cannot be too careful. Try and keep Mr. Rochester at a distance:
12017 distrust yourself as well as him. Gentlemen in his station are not
12018 accustomed to marry their governesses."
12019
12020 I was growing truly irritated: happily, Adele ran in.
12021
12022 "Let me go,--let me go to Millcote too!" she cried. "Mr. Rochester
12023 won't: though there is so much room in the new carriage. Beg him to let
12024 me go mademoiselle."
12025
12026 "That I will, Adele;" and I hastened away with her, glad to quit my
12027 gloomy monitress. The carriage was ready: they were bringing it round to
12028 the front, and my master was pacing the pavement, Pilot following him
12029 backwards and forwards.
12030
12031 "Adele may accompany us, may she not, sir?"
12032
12033 "I told her no. I'll have no brats!--I'll have only you."
12034
12035 "Do let her go, Mr. Rochester, if you please: it would be better."
12036
12037 "Not it: she will be a restraint."
12038
12039 He was quite peremptory, both in look and voice. The chill of Mrs.
12040 Fairfax's warnings, and the damp of her doubts were upon me: something of
12041 unsubstantiality and uncertainty had beset my hopes. I half lost the
12042 sense of power over him. I was about mechanically to obey him, without
12043 further remonstrance; but as he helped me into the carriage, he looked at
12044 my face.
12045
12046 "What is the matter?" he asked; "all the sunshine is gone. Do you really
12047 wish the bairn to go? Will it annoy you if she is left behind?"
12048
12049 "I would far rather she went, sir."
12050
12051 "Then off for your bonnet, and back like a flash of lightning!" cried he
12052 to Adele.
12053
12054 She obeyed him with what speed she might.
12055
12056 "After all, a single morning's interruption will not matter much," said
12057 he, "when I mean shortly to claim you--your thoughts, conversation, and
12058 company--for life."
12059
12060 Adele, when lifted in, commenced kissing me, by way of expressing her
12061 gratitude for my intercession: she was instantly stowed away into a
12062 corner on the other side of him. She then peeped round to where I sat;
12063 so stern a neighbour was too restrictive to him, in his present fractious
12064 mood, she dared whisper no observations, nor ask of him any information.
12065
12066 "Let her come to me," I entreated: "she will, perhaps, trouble you, sir:
12067 there is plenty of room on this side."
12068
12069 He handed her over as if she had been a lapdog. "I'll send her to school
12070 yet," he said, but now he was smiling.
12071
12072 Adele heard him, and asked if she was to go to school "sans
12073 mademoiselle?"
12074
12075 "Yes," he replied, "absolutely sans mademoiselle; for I am to take
12076 mademoiselle to the moon, and there I shall seek a cave in one of the
12077 white valleys among the volcano-tops, and mademoiselle shall live with me
12078 there, and only me."
12079
12080 "She will have nothing to eat: you will starve her," observed Adele.
12081
12082 "I shall gather manna for her morning and night: the plains and hillsides
12083 in the moon are bleached with manna, Adele."
12084
12085 "She will want to warm herself: what will she do for a fire?"
12086
12087 "Fire rises out of the lunar mountains: when she is cold, I'll carry her
12088 up to a peak, and lay her down on the edge of a crater."
12089
12090 "Oh, qu' elle y sera mal--peu comfortable! And her clothes, they will
12091 wear out: how can she get new ones?"
12092
12093 Mr. Rochester professed to be puzzled. "Hem!" said he. "What would you
12094 do, Adele? Cudgel your brains for an expedient. How would a white or a
12095 pink cloud answer for a gown, do you think? And one could cut a pretty
12096 enough scarf out of a rainbow."
12097
12098 "She is far better as she is," concluded Adele, after musing some time:
12099 "besides, she would get tired of living with only you in the moon. If I
12100 were mademoiselle, I would never consent to go with you."
12101
12102 "She has consented: she has pledged her word."
12103
12104 "But you can't get her there; there is no road to the moon: it is all
12105 air; and neither you nor she can fly."
12106
12107 "Adele, look at that field." We were now outside Thornfield gates, and
12108 bowling lightly along the smooth road to Millcote, where the dust was
12109 well laid by the thunderstorm, and, where the low hedges and lofty timber
12110 trees on each side glistened green and rain-refreshed.
12111
12112 "In that field, Adele, I was walking late one evening about a fortnight
12113 since--the evening of the day you helped me to make hay in the orchard
12114 meadows; and, as I was tired with raking swaths, I sat down to rest me on
12115 a stile; and there I took out a little book and a pencil, and began to
12116 write about a misfortune that befell me long ago, and a wish I had for
12117 happy days to come: I was writing away very fast, though daylight was
12118 fading from the leaf, when something came up the path and stopped two
12119 yards off me. I looked at it. It was a little thing with a veil of
12120 gossamer on its head. I beckoned it to come near me; it stood soon at my
12121 knee. I never spoke to it, and it never spoke to me, in words; but I
12122 read its eyes, and it read mine; and our speechless colloquy was to this
12123 effect--
12124
12125 "It was a fairy, and come from Elf-land, it said; and its errand was to
12126 make me happy: I must go with it out of the common world to a lonely
12127 place--such as the moon, for instance--and it nodded its head towards her
12128 horn, rising over Hay-hill: it told me of the alabaster cave and silver
12129 vale where we might live. I said I should like to go; but reminded it,
12130 as you did me, that I had no wings to fly.
12131
12132 "'Oh,' returned the fairy, 'that does not signify! Here is a talisman
12133 will remove all difficulties;' and she held out a pretty gold ring. 'Put
12134 it,' she said, 'on the fourth finger of my left hand, and I am yours, and
12135 you are mine; and we shall leave earth, and make our own heaven yonder.'
12136 She nodded again at the moon. The ring, Adele, is in my breeches-pocket,
12137 under the disguise of a sovereign: but I mean soon to change it to a ring
12138 again."
12139
12140 "But what has mademoiselle to do with it? I don't care for the fairy:
12141 you said it was mademoiselle you would take to the moon?"
12142
12143 "Mademoiselle is a fairy," he said, whispering mysteriously. Whereupon I
12144 told her not to mind his badinage; and she, on her part, evinced a fund
12145 of genuine French scepticism: denominating Mr. Rochester "un vrai
12146 menteur," and assuring him that she made no account whatever of his
12147 "contes de fee," and that "du reste, il n'y avait pas de fees, et quand
12148 meme il y en avait:" she was sure they would never appear to him, nor
12149 ever give him rings, or offer to live with him in the moon.
12150
12151 The hour spent at Millcote was a somewhat harassing one to me. Mr.
12152 Rochester obliged me to go to a certain silk warehouse: there I was
12153 ordered to choose half-a-dozen dresses. I hated the business, I begged
12154 leave to defer it: no--it should be gone through with now. By dint of
12155 entreaties expressed in energetic whispers, I reduced the half-dozen to
12156 two: these however, he vowed he would select himself. With anxiety I
12157 watched his eye rove over the gay stores: he fixed on a rich silk of the
12158 most brilliant amethyst dye, and a superb pink satin. I told him in a
12159 new series of whispers, that he might as well buy me a gold gown and a
12160 silver bonnet at once: I should certainly never venture to wear his
12161 choice. With infinite difficulty, for he was stubborn as a stone, I
12162 persuaded him to make an exchange in favour of a sober black satin and
12163 pearl-grey silk. "It might pass for the present," he said; "but he would
12164 yet see me glittering like a parterre."
12165
12166 Glad was I to get him out of the silk warehouse, and then out of a
12167 jewellers shop: the more he bought me, the more my cheek burned with a
12168 sense of annoyance and degradation. As we re-entered the carriage, and I
12169 sat back feverish and fagged, I remembered what, in the hurry of events,
12170 dark and bright, I had wholly forgotten--the letter of my uncle, John
12171 Eyre, to Mrs. Reed: his intention to adopt me and make me his legatee.
12172 "It would, indeed, be a relief," I thought, "if I had ever so small an
12173 independency; I never can bear being dressed like a doll by Mr.
12174 Rochester, or sitting like a second Danae with the golden shower falling
12175 daily round me. I will write to Madeira the moment I get home, and tell
12176 my uncle John I am going to be married, and to whom: if I had but a
12177 prospect of one day bringing Mr. Rochester an accession of fortune, I
12178 could better endure to be kept by him now." And somewhat relieved by
12179 this idea (which I failed not to execute that day), I ventured once more
12180 to meet my master's and lover's eye, which most pertinaciously sought
12181 mine, though I averted both face and gaze. He smiled; and I thought his
12182 smile was such as a sultan might, in a blissful and fond moment, bestow
12183 on a slave his gold and gems had enriched: I crushed his hand, which was
12184 ever hunting mine, vigorously, and thrust it back to him red with the
12185 passionate pressure.
12186
12187 "You need not look in that way," I said; "if you do, I'll wear nothing
12188 but my old Lowood frocks to the end of the chapter. I'll be married in
12189 this lilac gingham: you may make a dressing-gown for yourself out of the
12190 pearl-grey silk, and an infinite series of waistcoats out of the black
12191 satin."
12192
12193 He chuckled; he rubbed his hands. "Oh, it is rich to see and hear her?"
12194 he exclaimed. "Is she original? Is she piquant? I would not exchange
12195 this one little English girl for the Grand Turk's whole seraglio, gazelle-
12196 eyes, houri forms, and all!"
12197
12198 The Eastern allusion bit me again. "I'll not stand you an inch in the
12199 stead of a seraglio," I said; "so don't consider me an equivalent for
12200 one. If you have a fancy for anything in that line, away with you, sir,
12201 to the bazaars of Stamboul without delay, and lay out in extensive slave-
12202 purchases some of that spare cash you seem at a loss to spend
12203 satisfactorily here."
12204
12205 "And what will you do, Janet, while I am bargaining for so many tons of
12206 flesh and such an assortment of black eyes?"
12207
12208 "I'll be preparing myself to go out as a missionary to preach liberty to
12209 them that are enslaved--your harem inmates amongst the rest. I'll get
12210 admitted there, and I'll stir up mutiny; and you, three-tailed bashaw as
12211 you are, sir, shall in a trice find yourself fettered amongst our hands:
12212 nor will I, for one, consent to cut your bonds till you have signed a
12213 charter, the most liberal that despot ever yet conferred."
12214
12215 "I would consent to be at your mercy, Jane."
12216
12217 "I would have no mercy, Mr. Rochester, if you supplicated for it with an
12218 eye like that. While you looked so, I should be certain that whatever
12219 charter you might grant under coercion, your first act, when released,
12220 would be to violate its conditions."
12221
12222 "Why, Jane, what would you have? I fear you will compel me to go through
12223 a private marriage ceremony, besides that performed at the altar. You
12224 will stipulate, I see, for peculiar terms--what will they be?"
12225
12226 "I only want an easy mind, sir; not crushed by crowded obligations. Do
12227 you remember what you said of Celine Varens?--of the diamonds, the
12228 cashmeres you gave her? I will not be your English Celine Varens. I
12229 shall continue to act as Adele's governess; by that I shall earn my board
12230 and lodging, and thirty pounds a year besides. I'll furnish my own
12231 wardrobe out of that money, and you shall give me nothing but--"
12232
12233 "Well, but what?"
12234
12235 "Your regard; and if I give you mine in return, that debt will be quit."
12236
12237 "Well, for cool native impudence and pure innate pride, you haven't your
12238 equal," said he. We were now approaching Thornfield. "Will it please
12239 you to dine with me to-day?" he asked, as we re-entered the gates.
12240
12241 "No, thank you, sir."
12242
12243 "And what for, 'no, thank you?' if one may inquire."
12244
12245 "I never have dined with you, sir: and I see no reason why I should now:
12246 till--"
12247
12248 "Till what? You delight in half-phrases."
12249
12250 "Till I can't help it."
12251
12252 "Do you suppose I eat like an ogre or a ghoul, that you dread being the
12253 companion of my repast?"
12254
12255 "I have formed no supposition on the subject, sir; but I want to go on as
12256 usual for another month."
12257
12258 "You will give up your governessing slavery at once."
12259
12260 "Indeed, begging your pardon, sir, I shall not. I shall just go on with
12261 it as usual. I shall keep out of your way all day, as I have been
12262 accustomed to do: you may send for me in the evening, when you feel
12263 disposed to see me, and I'll come then; but at no other time."
12264
12265 "I want a smoke, Jane, or a pinch of snuff, to comfort me under all this,
12266 'pour me donner une contenance,' as Adele would say; and unfortunately I
12267 have neither my cigar-case, nor my snuff-box. But listen--whisper. It
12268 is your time now, little tyrant, but it will be mine presently; and when
12269 once I have fairly seized you, to have and to hold, I'll
12270 just--figuratively speaking--attach you to a chain like this" (touching
12271 his watch-guard). "Yes, bonny wee thing, I'll wear you in my bosom, lest
12272 my jewel I should tyne."
12273
12274 He said this as he helped me to alight from the carriage, and while he
12275 afterwards lifted out Adele, I entered the house, and made good my
12276 retreat upstairs.
12277
12278 He duly summoned me to his presence in the evening. I had prepared an
12279 occupation for him; for I was determined not to spend the whole time in a
12280 _tete-a-tete_ conversation. I remembered his fine voice; I knew he liked
12281 to sing--good singers generally do. I was no vocalist myself, and, in
12282 his fastidious judgment, no musician, either; but I delighted in
12283 listening when the performance was good. No sooner had twilight, that
12284 hour of romance, began to lower her blue and starry banner over the
12285 lattice, than I rose, opened the piano, and entreated him, for the love
12286 of heaven, to give me a song. He said I was a capricious witch, and that
12287 he would rather sing another time; but I averred that no time was like
12288 the present.
12289
12290 "Did I like his voice?" he asked.
12291
12292 "Very much." I was not fond of pampering that susceptible vanity of his;
12293 but for once, and from motives of expediency, I would e'en soothe and
12294 stimulate it.
12295
12296 "Then, Jane, you must play the accompaniment."
12297
12298 "Very well, sir, I will try."
12299
12300 I did try, but was presently swept off the stool and denominated "a
12301 little bungler." Being pushed unceremoniously to one side--which was
12302 precisely what I wished--he usurped my place, and proceeded to accompany
12303 himself: for he could play as well as sing. I hied me to the
12304 window-recess. And while I sat there and looked out on the still trees
12305 and dim lawn, to a sweet air was sung in mellow tones the following
12306 strain:--
12307
12308 "The truest love that ever heart
12309 Felt at its kindled core,
12310 Did through each vein, in quickened start,
12311 The tide of being pour.
12312
12313 Her coming was my hope each day,
12314 Her parting was my pain;
12315 The chance that did her steps delay
12316 Was ice in every vein.
12317
12318 I dreamed it would be nameless bliss,
12319 As I loved, loved to be;
12320 And to this object did I press
12321 As blind as eagerly.
12322
12323 But wide as pathless was the space
12324 That lay our lives between,
12325 And dangerous as the foamy race
12326 Of ocean-surges green.
12327
12328 And haunted as a robber-path
12329 Through wilderness or wood;
12330 For Might and Right, and Woe and Wrath,
12331 Between our spirits stood.
12332
12333 I dangers dared; I hindrance scorned;
12334 I omens did defy:
12335 Whatever menaced, harassed, warned,
12336 I passed impetuous by.
12337
12338 On sped my rainbow, fast as light;
12339 I flew as in a dream;
12340 For glorious rose upon my sight
12341 That child of Shower and Gleam.
12342
12343 Still bright on clouds of suffering dim
12344 Shines that soft, solemn joy;
12345 Nor care I now, how dense and grim
12346 Disasters gather nigh.
12347
12348 I care not in this moment sweet,
12349 Though all I have rushed o'er
12350 Should come on pinion, strong and fleet,
12351 Proclaiming vengeance sore:
12352
12353 Though haughty Hate should strike me down,
12354 Right, bar approach to me,
12355 And grinding Might, with furious frown,
12356 Swear endless enmity.
12357
12358 My love has placed her little hand
12359 With noble faith in mine,
12360 And vowed that wedlock's sacred band
12361 Our nature shall entwine.
12362
12363 My love has sworn, with sealing kiss,
12364 With me to live--to die;
12365 I have at last my nameless bliss.
12366 As I love--loved am I!"
12367
12368 He rose and came towards me, and I saw his face all kindled, and his full
12369 falcon-eye flashing, and tenderness and passion in every lineament. I
12370 quailed momentarily--then I rallied. Soft scene, daring demonstration, I
12371 would not have; and I stood in peril of both: a weapon of defence must be
12372 prepared--I whetted my tongue: as he reached me, I asked with asperity,
12373 "whom he was going to marry now?"
12374
12375 "That was a strange question to be put by his darling Jane."
12376
12377 "Indeed! I considered it a very natural and necessary one: he had talked
12378 of his future wife dying with him. What did he mean by such a pagan
12379 idea? _I_ had no intention of dying with him--he might depend on that."
12380
12381 "Oh, all he longed, all he prayed for, was that I might live with him!
12382 Death was not for such as I."
12383
12384 "Indeed it was: I had as good a right to die when my time came as he had:
12385 but I should bide that time, and not be hurried away in a suttee."
12386
12387 "Would I forgive him for the selfish idea, and prove my pardon by a
12388 reconciling kiss?"
12389
12390 "No: I would rather be excused."
12391
12392 Here I heard myself apostrophised as a "hard little thing;" and it was
12393 added, "any other woman would have been melted to marrow at hearing such
12394 stanzas crooned in her praise."
12395
12396 I assured him I was naturally hard--very flinty, and that he would often
12397 find me so; and that, moreover, I was determined to show him divers
12398 rugged points in my character before the ensuing four weeks elapsed: he
12399 should know fully what sort of a bargain he had made, while there was yet
12400 time to rescind it.
12401
12402 "Would I be quiet and talk rationally?"
12403
12404 "I would be quiet if he liked, and as to talking rationally, I flattered
12405 myself I was doing that now."
12406
12407 He fretted, pished, and pshawed. "Very good," I thought; "you may fume
12408 and fidget as you please: but this is the best plan to pursue with you, I
12409 am certain. I like you more than I can say; but I'll not sink into a
12410 bathos of sentiment: and with this needle of repartee I'll keep you from
12411 the edge of the gulf too; and, moreover, maintain by its pungent aid that
12412 distance between you and myself most conducive to our real mutual
12413 advantage."
12414
12415 From less to more, I worked him up to considerable irritation; then,
12416 after he had retired, in dudgeon, quite to the other end of the room, I
12417 got up, and saying, "I wish you good-night, sir," in my natural and
12418 wonted respectful manner, I slipped out by the side-door and got away.
12419
12420 The system thus entered on, I pursued during the whole season of
12421 probation; and with the best success. He was kept, to be sure, rather
12422 cross and crusty; but on the whole I could see he was excellently
12423 entertained, and that a lamb-like submission and turtle-dove sensibility,
12424 while fostering his despotism more, would have pleased his judgment,
12425 satisfied his common-sense, and even suited his taste less.
12426
12427 In other people's presence I was, as formerly, deferential and quiet; any
12428 other line of conduct being uncalled for: it was only in the evening
12429 conferences I thus thwarted and afflicted him. He continued to send for
12430 me punctually the moment the clock struck seven; though when I appeared
12431 before him now, he had no such honeyed terms as "love" and "darling" on
12432 his lips: the best words at my service were "provoking puppet,"
12433 "malicious elf," "sprite," "changeling," &c. For caresses, too, I now
12434 got grimaces; for a pressure of the hand, a pinch on the arm; for a kiss
12435 on the cheek, a severe tweak of the ear. It was all right: at present I
12436 decidedly preferred these fierce favours to anything more tender. Mrs.
12437 Fairfax, I saw, approved me: her anxiety on my account vanished;
12438 therefore I was certain I did well. Meantime, Mr. Rochester affirmed I
12439 was wearing him to skin and bone, and threatened awful vengeance for my
12440 present conduct at some period fast coming. I laughed in my sleeve at
12441 his menaces. "I can keep you in reasonable check now," I reflected; "and
12442 I don't doubt to be able to do it hereafter: if one expedient loses its
12443 virtue, another must be devised."
12444
12445 Yet after all my task was not an easy one; often I would rather have
12446 pleased than teased him. My future husband was becoming to me my whole
12447 world; and more than the world: almost my hope of heaven. He stood
12448 between me and every thought of religion, as an eclipse intervenes
12449 between man and the broad sun. I could not, in those days, see God for
12450 His creature: of whom I had made an idol.
12451
12452
12453
12454
12455 CHAPTER XXV
12456
12457
12458 The month of courtship had wasted: its very last hours were being
12459 numbered. There was no putting off the day that advanced--the bridal
12460 day; and all preparations for its arrival were complete. _I_, at least,
12461 had nothing more to do: there were my trunks, packed, locked, corded,
12462 ranged in a row along the wall of my little chamber; to-morrow, at this
12463 time, they would be far on their road to London: and so should I
12464 (D.V.),--or rather, not I, but one Jane Rochester, a person whom as yet I
12465 knew not. The cards of address alone remained to nail on: they lay, four
12466 little squares, in the drawer. Mr. Rochester had himself written the
12467 direction, "Mrs. Rochester, --- Hotel, London," on each: I could not
12468 persuade myself to affix them, or to have them affixed. Mrs. Rochester!
12469 She did not exist: she would not be born till to-morrow, some time after
12470 eight o'clock a.m.; and I would wait to be assured she had come into the
12471 world alive before I assigned to her all that property. It was enough
12472 that in yonder closet, opposite my dressing-table, garments said to be
12473 hers had already displaced my black stuff Lowood frock and straw bonnet:
12474 for not to me appertained that suit of wedding raiment; the
12475 pearl-coloured robe, the vapoury veil pendent from the usurped
12476 portmanteau. I shut the closet to conceal the strange, wraith-like
12477 apparel it contained; which, at this evening hour--nine o'clock--gave out
12478 certainly a most ghostly shimmer through the shadow of my apartment. "I
12479 will leave you by yourself, white dream," I said. "I am feverish: I hear
12480 the wind blowing: I will go out of doors and feel it."
12481
12482 It was not only the hurry of preparation that made me feverish; not only
12483 the anticipation of the great change--the new life which was to commence
12484 to-morrow: both these circumstances had their share, doubtless, in
12485 producing that restless, excited mood which hurried me forth at this late
12486 hour into the darkening grounds: but a third cause influenced my mind
12487 more than they.
12488
12489 I had at heart a strange and anxious thought. Something had happened
12490 which I could not comprehend; no one knew of or had seen the event but
12491 myself: it had taken place the preceding night. Mr. Rochester that night
12492 was absent from home; nor was he yet returned: business had called him to
12493 a small estate of two or three farms he possessed thirty miles
12494 off--business it was requisite he should settle in person, previous to
12495 his meditated departure from England. I waited now his return; eager to
12496 disburthen my mind, and to seek of him the solution of the enigma that
12497 perplexed me. Stay till he comes, reader; and, when I disclose my secret
12498 to him, you shall share the confidence.
12499
12500 I sought the orchard, driven to its shelter by the wind, which all day
12501 had blown strong and full from the south, without, however, bringing a
12502 speck of rain. Instead of subsiding as night drew on, it seemed to
12503 augment its rush and deepen its roar: the trees blew steadfastly one way,
12504 never writhing round, and scarcely tossing back their boughs once in an
12505 hour; so continuous was the strain bending their branchy heads
12506 northward--the clouds drifted from pole to pole, fast following, mass on
12507 mass: no glimpse of blue sky had been visible that July day.
12508
12509 It was not without a certain wild pleasure I ran before the wind,
12510 delivering my trouble of mind to the measureless air-torrent thundering
12511 through space. Descending the laurel walk, I faced the wreck of the
12512 chestnut-tree; it stood up black and riven: the trunk, split down the
12513 centre, gasped ghastly. The cloven halves were not broken from each
12514 other, for the firm base and strong roots kept them unsundered below;
12515 though community of vitality was destroyed--the sap could flow no more:
12516 their great boughs on each side were dead, and next winter's tempests
12517 would be sure to fell one or both to earth: as yet, however, they might
12518 be said to form one tree--a ruin, but an entire ruin.
12519
12520 "You did right to hold fast to each other," I said: as if the monster-
12521 splinters were living things, and could hear me. "I think, scathed as
12522 you look, and charred and scorched, there must be a little sense of life
12523 in you yet, rising out of that adhesion at the faithful, honest roots:
12524 you will never have green leaves more--never more see birds making nests
12525 and singing idyls in your boughs; the time of pleasure and love is over
12526 with you: but you are not desolate: each of you has a comrade to
12527 sympathise with him in his decay." As I looked up at them, the moon
12528 appeared momentarily in that part of the sky which filled their fissure;
12529 her disk was blood-red and half overcast; she seemed to throw on me one
12530 bewildered, dreary glance, and buried herself again instantly in the deep
12531 drift of cloud. The wind fell, for a second, round Thornfield; but far
12532 away over wood and water, poured a wild, melancholy wail: it was sad to
12533 listen to, and I ran off again.
12534
12535 Here and there I strayed through the orchard, gathered up the apples with
12536 which the grass round the tree roots was thickly strewn; then I employed
12537 myself in dividing the ripe from the unripe; I carried them into the
12538 house and put them away in the store-room. Then I repaired to the
12539 library to ascertain whether the fire was lit, for, though summer, I knew
12540 on such a gloomy evening Mr. Rochester would like to see a cheerful
12541 hearth when he came in: yes, the fire had been kindled some time, and
12542 burnt well. I placed his arm-chair by the chimney-corner: I wheeled the
12543 table near it: I let down the curtain, and had the candles brought in
12544 ready for lighting. More restless than ever, when I had completed these
12545 arrangements I could not sit still, nor even remain in the house: a
12546 little time-piece in the room and the old clock in the hall
12547 simultaneously struck ten.
12548
12549 "How late it grows!" I said. "I will run down to the gates: it is
12550 moonlight at intervals; I can see a good way on the road. He may be
12551 coming now, and to meet him will save some minutes of suspense."
12552
12553 The wind roared high in the great trees which embowered the gates; but
12554 the road as far as I could see, to the right hand and the left, was all
12555 still and solitary: save for the shadows of clouds crossing it at
12556 intervals as the moon looked out, it was but a long pale line, unvaried
12557 by one moving speck.
12558
12559 A puerile tear dimmed my eye while I looked--a tear of disappointment and
12560 impatience; ashamed of it, I wiped it away. I lingered; the moon shut
12561 herself wholly within her chamber, and drew close her curtain of dense
12562 cloud: the night grew dark; rain came driving fast on the gale.
12563
12564 "I wish he would come! I wish he would come!" I exclaimed, seized with
12565 hypochondriac foreboding. I had expected his arrival before tea; now it
12566 was dark: what could keep him? Had an accident happened? The event of
12567 last night again recurred to me. I interpreted it as a warning of
12568 disaster. I feared my hopes were too bright to be realised; and I had
12569 enjoyed so much bliss lately that I imagined my fortune had passed its
12570 meridian, and must now decline.
12571
12572 "Well, I cannot return to the house," I thought; "I cannot sit by the
12573 fireside, while he is abroad in inclement weather: better tire my limbs
12574 than strain my heart; I will go forward and meet him."
12575
12576 I set out; I walked fast, but not far: ere I had measured a quarter of a
12577 mile, I heard the tramp of hoofs; a horseman came on, full gallop; a dog
12578 ran by his side. Away with evil presentiment! It was he: here he was,
12579 mounted on Mesrour, followed by Pilot. He saw me; for the moon had
12580 opened a blue field in the sky, and rode in it watery bright: he took his
12581 hat off, and waved it round his head. I now ran to meet him.
12582
12583 "There!" he exclaimed, as he stretched out his hand and bent from the
12584 saddle: "You can't do without me, that is evident. Step on my boot-toe;
12585 give me both hands: mount!"
12586
12587 I obeyed: joy made me agile: I sprang up before him. A hearty kissing I
12588 got for a welcome, and some boastful triumph, which I swallowed as well
12589 as I could. He checked himself in his exultation to demand, "But is
12590 there anything the matter, Janet, that you come to meet me at such an
12591 hour? Is there anything wrong?"
12592
12593 "No, but I thought you would never come. I could not bear to wait in the
12594 house for you, especially with this rain and wind."
12595
12596 "Rain and wind, indeed! Yes, you are dripping like a mermaid; pull my
12597 cloak round you: but I think you are feverish, Jane: both your cheek and
12598 hand are burning hot. I ask again, is there anything the matter?"
12599
12600 "Nothing now; I am neither afraid nor unhappy."
12601
12602 "Then you have been both?"
12603
12604 "Rather: but I'll tell you all about it by-and-bye, sir; and I daresay
12605 you will only laugh at me for my pains."
12606
12607 "I'll laugh at you heartily when to-morrow is past; till then I dare not:
12608 my prize is not certain. This is you, who have been as slippery as an
12609 eel this last month, and as thorny as a briar-rose? I could not lay a
12610 finger anywhere but I was pricked; and now I seem to have gathered up a
12611 stray lamb in my arms. You wandered out of the fold to seek your
12612 shepherd, did you, Jane?"
12613
12614 "I wanted you: but don't boast. Here we are at Thornfield: now let me
12615 get down."
12616
12617 He landed me on the pavement. As John took his horse, and he followed me
12618 into the hall, he told me to make haste and put something dry on, and
12619 then return to him in the library; and he stopped me, as I made for the
12620 staircase, to extort a promise that I would not be long: nor was I long;
12621 in five minutes I rejoined him. I found him at supper.
12622
12623 "Take a seat and bear me company, Jane: please God, it is the last meal
12624 but one you will eat at Thornfield Hall for a long time."
12625
12626 I sat down near him, but told him I could not eat. "Is it because you
12627 have the prospect of a journey before you, Jane? Is it the thoughts of
12628 going to London that takes away your appetite?"
12629
12630 "I cannot see my prospects clearly to-night, sir; and I hardly know what
12631 thoughts I have in my head. Everything in life seems unreal."
12632
12633 "Except me: I am substantial enough--touch me."
12634
12635 "You, sir, are the most phantom-like of all: you are a mere dream."
12636
12637 He held out his hand, laughing. "Is that a dream?" said he, placing it
12638 close to my eyes. He had a rounded, muscular, and vigorous hand, as well
12639 as a long, strong arm.
12640
12641 "Yes; though I touch it, it is a dream," said I, as I put it down from
12642 before my face. "Sir, have you finished supper?"
12643
12644 "Yes, Jane."
12645
12646 I rang the bell and ordered away the tray. When we were again alone, I
12647 stirred the fire, and then took a low seat at my master's knee.
12648
12649 "It is near midnight," I said.
12650
12651 "Yes: but remember, Jane, you promised to wake with me the night before
12652 my wedding."
12653
12654 "I did; and I will keep my promise, for an hour or two at least: I have
12655 no wish to go to bed."
12656
12657 "Are all your arrangements complete?"
12658
12659 "All, sir."
12660
12661 "And on my part likewise," he returned, "I have settled everything; and
12662 we shall leave Thornfield to-morrow, within half-an-hour after our return
12663 from church."
12664
12665 "Very well, sir."
12666
12667 "With what an extraordinary smile you uttered that word--'very well,'
12668 Jane! What a bright spot of colour you have on each cheek! and how
12669 strangely your eyes glitter! Are you well?"
12670
12671 "I believe I am."
12672
12673 "Believe! What is the matter? Tell me what you feel."
12674
12675 "I could not, sir: no words could tell you what I feel. I wish this
12676 present hour would never end: who knows with what fate the next may come
12677 charged?"
12678
12679 "This is hypochondria, Jane. You have been over-excited, or
12680 over-fatigued."
12681
12682 "Do you, sir, feel calm and happy?"
12683
12684 "Calm?--no: but happy--to the heart's core."
12685
12686 I looked up at him to read the signs of bliss in his face: it was ardent
12687 and flushed.
12688
12689 "Give me your confidence, Jane," he said: "relieve your mind of any
12690 weight that oppresses it, by imparting it to me. What do you fear?--that
12691 I shall not prove a good husband?"
12692
12693 "It is the idea farthest from my thoughts."
12694
12695 "Are you apprehensive of the new sphere you are about to enter?--of the
12696 new life into which you are passing?"
12697
12698 "No."
12699
12700 "You puzzle me, Jane: your look and tone of sorrowful audacity perplex
12701 and pain me. I want an explanation."
12702
12703 "Then, sir, listen. You were from home last night?"
12704
12705 "I was: I know that; and you hinted a while ago at something which had
12706 happened in my absence:--nothing, probably, of consequence; but, in
12707 short, it has disturbed you. Let me hear it. Mrs. Fairfax has said
12708 something, perhaps? or you have overheard the servants talk?--your
12709 sensitive self-respect has been wounded?"
12710
12711 "No, sir." It struck twelve--I waited till the time-piece had concluded
12712 its silver chime, and the clock its hoarse, vibrating stroke, and then I
12713 proceeded.
12714
12715 "All day yesterday I was very busy, and very happy in my ceaseless
12716 bustle; for I am not, as you seem to think, troubled by any haunting
12717 fears about the new sphere, et cetera: I think it a glorious thing to
12718 have the hope of living with you, because I love you. No, sir, don't
12719 caress me now--let me talk undisturbed. Yesterday I trusted well in
12720 Providence, and believed that events were working together for your good
12721 and mine: it was a fine day, if you recollect--the calmness of the air
12722 and sky forbade apprehensions respecting your safety or comfort on your
12723 journey. I walked a little while on the pavement after tea, thinking of
12724 you; and I beheld you in imagination so near me, I scarcely missed your
12725 actual presence. I thought of the life that lay before me--_your_ life,
12726 sir--an existence more expansive and stirring than my own: as much more
12727 so as the depths of the sea to which the brook runs are than the shallows
12728 of its own strait channel. I wondered why moralists call this world a
12729 dreary wilderness: for me it blossomed like a rose. Just at sunset, the
12730 air turned cold and the sky cloudy: I went in, Sophie called me upstairs
12731 to look at my wedding-dress, which they had just brought; and under it in
12732 the box I found your present--the veil which, in your princely
12733 extravagance, you sent for from London: resolved, I suppose, since I
12734 would not have jewels, to cheat me into accepting something as costly. I
12735 smiled as I unfolded it, and devised how I would tease you about your
12736 aristocratic tastes, and your efforts to masque your plebeian bride in
12737 the attributes of a peeress. I thought how I would carry down to you the
12738 square of unembroidered blond I had myself prepared as a covering for my
12739 low-born head, and ask if that was not good enough for a woman who could
12740 bring her husband neither fortune, beauty, nor connections. I saw
12741 plainly how you would look; and heard your impetuous republican answers,
12742 and your haughty disavowal of any necessity on your part to augment your
12743 wealth, or elevate your standing, by marrying either a purse or a
12744 coronet."
12745
12746 "How well you read me, you witch!" interposed Mr. Rochester: "but what
12747 did you find in the veil besides its embroidery? Did you find poison, or
12748 a dagger, that you look so mournful now?"
12749
12750 "No, no, sir; besides the delicacy and richness of the fabric, I found
12751 nothing save Fairfax Rochester's pride; and that did not scare me,
12752 because I am used to the sight of the demon. But, sir, as it grew dark,
12753 the wind rose: it blew yesterday evening, not as it blows now--wild and
12754 high--but 'with a sullen, moaning sound' far more eerie. I wished you
12755 were at home. I came into this room, and the sight of the empty chair
12756 and fireless hearth chilled me. For some time after I went to bed, I
12757 could not sleep--a sense of anxious excitement distressed me. The gale
12758 still rising, seemed to my ear to muffle a mournful under-sound; whether
12759 in the house or abroad I could not at first tell, but it recurred,
12760 doubtful yet doleful at every lull; at last I made out it must be some
12761 dog howling at a distance. I was glad when it ceased. On sleeping, I
12762 continued in dreams the idea of a dark and gusty night. I continued also
12763 the wish to be with you, and experienced a strange, regretful
12764 consciousness of some barrier dividing us. During all my first sleep, I
12765 was following the windings of an unknown road; total obscurity environed
12766 me; rain pelted me; I was burdened with the charge of a little child: a
12767 very small creature, too young and feeble to walk, and which shivered in
12768 my cold arms, and wailed piteously in my ear. I thought, sir, that you
12769 were on the road a long way before me; and I strained every nerve to
12770 overtake you, and made effort on effort to utter your name and entreat
12771 you to stop--but my movements were fettered, and my voice still died away
12772 inarticulate; while you, I felt, withdrew farther and farther every
12773 moment."
12774
12775 "And these dreams weigh on your spirits now, Jane, when I am close to
12776 you? Little nervous subject! Forget visionary woe, and think only of
12777 real happiness! You say you love me, Janet: yes--I will not forget that;
12778 and you cannot deny it. _Those_ words did not die inarticulate on your
12779 lips. I heard them clear and soft: a thought too solemn perhaps, but
12780 sweet as music--'I think it is a glorious thing to have the hope of
12781 living with you, Edward, because I love you.' Do you love me,
12782 Jane?--repeat it."
12783
12784 "I do, sir--I do, with my whole heart."
12785
12786 "Well," he said, after some minutes' silence, "it is strange; but that
12787 sentence has penetrated my breast painfully. Why? I think because you
12788 said it with such an earnest, religious energy, and because your upward
12789 gaze at me now is the very sublime of faith, truth, and devotion: it is
12790 too much as if some spirit were near me. Look wicked, Jane: as you know
12791 well how to look: coin one of your wild, shy, provoking smiles; tell me
12792 you hate me--tease me, vex me; do anything but move me: I would rather be
12793 incensed than saddened."
12794
12795 "I will tease you and vex you to your heart's content, when I have
12796 finished my tale: but hear me to the end."
12797
12798 "I thought, Jane, you had told me all. I thought I had found the source
12799 of your melancholy in a dream."
12800
12801 I shook my head. "What! is there more? But I will not believe it to be
12802 anything important. I warn you of incredulity beforehand. Go on."
12803
12804 The disquietude of his air, the somewhat apprehensive impatience of his
12805 manner, surprised me: but I proceeded.
12806
12807 "I dreamt another dream, sir: that Thornfield Hall was a dreary ruin, the
12808 retreat of bats and owls. I thought that of all the stately front
12809 nothing remained but a shell-like wall, very high and very
12810 fragile-looking. I wandered, on a moonlight night, through the grass-
12811 grown enclosure within: here I stumbled over a marble hearth, and there
12812 over a fallen fragment of cornice. Wrapped up in a shawl, I still
12813 carried the unknown little child: I might not lay it down anywhere,
12814 however tired were my arms--however much its weight impeded my progress,
12815 I must retain it. I heard the gallop of a horse at a distance on the
12816 road; I was sure it was you; and you were departing for many years and
12817 for a distant country. I climbed the thin wall with frantic perilous
12818 haste, eager to catch one glimpse of you from the top: the stones rolled
12819 from under my feet, the ivy branches I grasped gave way, the child clung
12820 round my neck in terror, and almost strangled me; at last I gained the
12821 summit. I saw you like a speck on a white track, lessening every moment.
12822 The blast blew so strong I could not stand. I sat down on the narrow
12823 ledge; I hushed the scared infant in my lap: you turned an angle of the
12824 road: I bent forward to take a last look; the wall crumbled; I was
12825 shaken; the child rolled from my knee, I lost my balance, fell, and
12826 woke."
12827
12828 "Now, Jane, that is all."
12829
12830 "All the preface, sir; the tale is yet to come. On waking, a gleam
12831 dazzled my eyes; I thought--Oh, it is daylight! But I was mistaken; it
12832 was only candlelight. Sophie, I supposed, had come in. There was a
12833 light in the dressing-table, and the door of the closet, where, before
12834 going to bed, I had hung my wedding-dress and veil, stood open; I heard a
12835 rustling there. I asked, 'Sophie, what are you doing?' No one answered;
12836 but a form emerged from the closet; it took the light, held it aloft, and
12837 surveyed the garments pendent from the portmanteau. 'Sophie! Sophie!' I
12838 again cried: and still it was silent. I had risen up in bed, I bent
12839 forward: first surprise, then bewilderment, came over me; and then my
12840 blood crept cold through my veins. Mr. Rochester, this was not Sophie,
12841 it was not Leah, it was not Mrs. Fairfax: it was not--no, I was sure of
12842 it, and am still--it was not even that strange woman, Grace Poole."
12843
12844 "It must have been one of them," interrupted my master.
12845
12846 "No, sir, I solemnly assure you to the contrary. The shape standing
12847 before me had never crossed my eyes within the precincts of Thornfield
12848 Hall before; the height, the contour were new to me."
12849
12850 "Describe it, Jane."
12851
12852 "It seemed, sir, a woman, tall and large, with thick and dark hair
12853 hanging long down her back. I know not what dress she had on: it was
12854 white and straight; but whether gown, sheet, or shroud, I cannot tell."
12855
12856 "Did you see her face?"
12857
12858 "Not at first. But presently she took my veil from its place; she held
12859 it up, gazed at it long, and then she threw it over her own head, and
12860 turned to the mirror. At that moment I saw the reflection of the visage
12861 and features quite distinctly in the dark oblong glass."
12862
12863 "And how were they?"
12864
12865 "Fearful and ghastly to me--oh, sir, I never saw a face like it! It was
12866 a discoloured face--it was a savage face. I wish I could forget the roll
12867 of the red eyes and the fearful blackened inflation of the lineaments!"
12868
12869 "Ghosts are usually pale, Jane."
12870
12871 "This, sir, was purple: the lips were swelled and dark; the brow
12872 furrowed: the black eyebrows widely raised over the bloodshot eyes. Shall
12873 I tell you of what it reminded me?"
12874
12875 "You may."
12876
12877 "Of the foul German spectre--the Vampyre."
12878
12879 "Ah!--what did it do?"
12880
12881 "Sir, it removed my veil from its gaunt head, rent it in two parts, and
12882 flinging both on the floor, trampled on them."
12883
12884 {It removed my veil from its gaunt head, rent it in two parts, and
12885 flinging both on the floor, trampled on them: p272.jpg}
12886
12887 "Afterwards?"
12888
12889 "It drew aside the window-curtain and looked out; perhaps it saw dawn
12890 approaching, for, taking the candle, it retreated to the door. Just at
12891 my bedside, the figure stopped: the fiery eyes glared upon me--she thrust
12892 up her candle close to my face, and extinguished it under my eyes. I was
12893 aware her lurid visage flamed over mine, and I lost consciousness: for
12894 the second time in my life--only the second time--I became insensible
12895 from terror."
12896
12897 "Who was with you when you revived?"
12898
12899 "No one, sir, but the broad day. I rose, bathed my head and face in
12900 water, drank a long draught; felt that though enfeebled I was not ill,
12901 and determined that to none but you would I impart this vision. Now,
12902 sir, tell me who and what that woman was?"
12903
12904 "The creature of an over-stimulated brain; that is certain. I must be
12905 careful of you, my treasure: nerves like yours were not made for rough
12906 handling."
12907
12908 "Sir, depend on it, my nerves were not in fault; the thing was real: the
12909 transaction actually took place."
12910
12911 "And your previous dreams, were they real too? Is Thornfield Hall a
12912 ruin? Am I severed from you by insuperable obstacles? Am I leaving you
12913 without a tear--without a kiss--without a word?"
12914
12915 "Not yet."
12916
12917 "Am I about to do it? Why, the day is already commenced which is to bind
12918 us indissolubly; and when we are once united, there shall be no
12919 recurrence of these mental terrors: I guarantee that."
12920
12921 "Mental terrors, sir! I wish I could believe them to be only such: I
12922 wish it more now than ever; since even you cannot explain to me the
12923 mystery of that awful visitant."
12924
12925 "And since I cannot do it, Jane, it must have been unreal."
12926
12927 "But, sir, when I said so to myself on rising this morning, and when I
12928 looked round the room to gather courage and comfort from the cheerful
12929 aspect of each familiar object in full daylight, there--on the carpet--I
12930 saw what gave the distinct lie to my hypothesis,--the veil, torn from top
12931 to bottom in two halves!"
12932
12933 I felt Mr. Rochester start and shudder; he hastily flung his arms round
12934 me. "Thank God!" he exclaimed, "that if anything malignant did come near
12935 you last night, it was only the veil that was harmed. Oh, to think what
12936 might have happened!"
12937
12938 He drew his breath short, and strained me so close to him, I could
12939 scarcely pant. After some minutes' silence, he continued, cheerily--
12940
12941 "Now, Janet, I'll explain to you all about it. It was half dream, half
12942 reality. A woman did, I doubt not, enter your room: and that woman
12943 was--must have been--Grace Poole. You call her a strange being yourself:
12944 from all you know, you have reason so to call her--what did she do to me?
12945 what to Mason? In a state between sleeping and waking, you noticed her
12946 entrance and her actions; but feverish, almost delirious as you were, you
12947 ascribed to her a goblin appearance different from her own: the long
12948 dishevelled hair, the swelled black face, the exaggerated stature, were
12949 figments of imagination; results of nightmare: the spiteful tearing of
12950 the veil was real: and it is like her. I see you would ask why I keep
12951 such a woman in my house: when we have been married a year and a day, I
12952 will tell you; but not now. Are you satisfied, Jane? Do you accept my
12953 solution of the mystery?"
12954
12955 I reflected, and in truth it appeared to me the only possible one:
12956 satisfied I was not, but to please him I endeavoured to appear
12957 so--relieved, I certainly did feel; so I answered him with a contented
12958 smile. And now, as it was long past one, I prepared to leave him.
12959
12960 "Does not Sophie sleep with Adele in the nursery?" he asked, as I lit my
12961 candle.
12962
12963 "Yes, sir."
12964
12965 "And there is room enough in Adele's little bed for you. You must share
12966 it with her to-night, Jane: it is no wonder that the incident you have
12967 related should make you nervous, and I would rather you did not sleep
12968 alone: promise me to go to the nursery."
12969
12970 "I shall be very glad to do so, sir."
12971
12972 "And fasten the door securely on the inside. Wake Sophie when you go
12973 upstairs, under pretence of requesting her to rouse you in good time to-
12974 morrow; for you must be dressed and have finished breakfast before eight.
12975 And now, no more sombre thoughts: chase dull care away, Janet. Don't you
12976 hear to what soft whispers the wind has fallen? and there is no more
12977 beating of rain against the window-panes: look here" (he lifted up the
12978 curtain)--"it is a lovely night!"
12979
12980 It was. Half heaven was pure and stainless: the clouds, now trooping
12981 before the wind, which had shifted to the west, were filing off eastward
12982 in long, silvered columns. The moon shone peacefully.
12983
12984 "Well," said Mr. Rochester, gazing inquiringly into my eyes, "how is my
12985 Janet now?"
12986
12987 "The night is serene, sir; and so am I."
12988
12989 "And you will not dream of separation and sorrow to-night; but of happy
12990 love and blissful union."
12991
12992 This prediction was but half fulfilled: I did not indeed dream of sorrow,
12993 but as little did I dream of joy; for I never slept at all. With little
12994 Adele in my arms, I watched the slumber of childhood--so tranquil, so
12995 passionless, so innocent--and waited for the coming day: all my life was
12996 awake and astir in my frame: and as soon as the sun rose I rose too. I
12997 remember Adele clung to me as I left her: I remember I kissed her as I
12998 loosened her little hands from my neck; and I cried over her with strange
12999 emotion, and quitted her because I feared my sobs would break her still
13000 sound repose. She seemed the emblem of my past life; and here I was now
13001 to array myself to meet, the dread, but adored, type of my unknown future
13002 day.
13003
13004
13005
13006
13007 CHAPTER XXVI
13008
13009
13010 Sophie came at seven to dress me: she was very long indeed in
13011 accomplishing her task; so long that Mr. Rochester, grown, I suppose,
13012 impatient of my delay, sent up to ask why I did not come. She was just
13013 fastening my veil (the plain square of blond after all) to my hair with a
13014 brooch; I hurried from under her hands as soon as I could.
13015
13016 "Stop!" she cried in French. "Look at yourself in the mirror: you have
13017 not taken one peep."
13018
13019 So I turned at the door: I saw a robed and veiled figure, so unlike my
13020 usual self that it seemed almost the image of a stranger. "Jane!" called
13021 a voice, and I hastened down. I was received at the foot of the stairs
13022 by Mr. Rochester.
13023
13024 "Lingerer!" he said, "my brain is on fire with impatience, and you tarry
13025 so long!"
13026
13027 He took me into the dining-room, surveyed me keenly all over, pronounced
13028 me "fair as a lily, and not only the pride of his life, but the desire of
13029 his eyes," and then telling me he would give me but ten minutes to eat
13030 some breakfast, he rang the bell. One of his lately hired servants, a
13031 footman, answered it.
13032
13033 "Is John getting the carriage ready?"
13034
13035 "Yes, sir."
13036
13037 "Is the luggage brought down?"
13038
13039 "They are bringing it down, sir."
13040
13041 "Go you to the church: see if Mr. Wood (the clergyman) and the clerk are
13042 there: return and tell me."
13043
13044 The church, as the reader knows, was but just beyond the gates; the
13045 footman soon returned.
13046
13047 "Mr. Wood is in the vestry, sir, putting on his surplice."
13048
13049 "And the carriage?"
13050
13051 "The horses are harnessing."
13052
13053 "We shall not want it to go to church; but it must be ready the moment we
13054 return: all the boxes and luggage arranged and strapped on, and the
13055 coachman in his seat."
13056
13057 "Yes, sir."
13058
13059 "Jane, are you ready?"
13060
13061 I rose. There were no groomsmen, no bridesmaids, no relatives to wait
13062 for or marshal: none but Mr. Rochester and I. Mrs. Fairfax stood in the
13063 hall as we passed. I would fain have spoken to her, but my hand was
13064 held by a grasp of iron: I was hurried along by a stride I could hardly
13065 follow; and to look at Mr. Rochester's face was to feel that not a second
13066 of delay would be tolerated for any purpose. I wonder what other
13067 bridegroom ever looked as he did--so bent up to a purpose, so grimly
13068 resolute: or who, under such steadfast brows, ever revealed such flaming
13069 and flashing eyes.
13070
13071 I know not whether the day was fair or foul; in descending the drive, I
13072 gazed neither on sky nor earth: my heart was with my eyes; and both
13073 seemed migrated into Mr. Rochester's frame. I wanted to see the
13074 invisible thing on which, as we went along, he appeared to fasten a
13075 glance fierce and fell. I wanted to feel the thoughts whose force he
13076 seemed breasting and resisting.
13077
13078 At the churchyard wicket he stopped: he discovered I was quite out of
13079 breath. "Am I cruel in my love?" he said. "Delay an instant: lean on
13080 me, Jane."
13081
13082 And now I can recall the picture of the grey old house of God rising calm
13083 before me, of a rook wheeling round the steeple, of a ruddy morning sky
13084 beyond. I remember something, too, of the green grave-mounds; and I have
13085 not forgotten, either, two figures of strangers straying amongst the low
13086 hillocks and reading the mementoes graven on the few mossy head-stones. I
13087 noticed them, because, as they saw us, they passed round to the back of
13088 the church; and I doubted not they were going to enter by the side-aisle
13089 door and witness the ceremony. By Mr. Rochester they were not observed;
13090 he was earnestly looking at my face from which the blood had, I daresay,
13091 momentarily fled: for I felt my forehead dewy, and my cheeks and lips
13092 cold. When I rallied, which I soon did, he walked gently with me up the
13093 path to the porch.
13094
13095 We entered the quiet and humble temple; the priest waited in his white
13096 surplice at the lowly altar, the clerk beside him. All was still: two
13097 shadows only moved in a remote corner. My conjecture had been correct:
13098 the strangers had slipped in before us, and they now stood by the vault
13099 of the Rochesters, their backs towards us, viewing through the rails the
13100 old time-stained marble tomb, where a kneeling angel guarded the remains
13101 of Damer de Rochester, slain at Marston Moor in the time of the civil
13102 wars, and of Elizabeth, his wife.
13103
13104 Our place was taken at the communion rails. Hearing a cautious step
13105 behind me, I glanced over my shoulder: one of the strangers--a gentleman,
13106 evidently--was advancing up the chancel. The service began. The
13107 explanation of the intent of matrimony was gone through; and then the
13108 clergyman came a step further forward, and, bending slightly towards Mr.
13109 Rochester, went on.
13110
13111 "I require and charge you both (as ye will answer at the dreadful day of
13112 judgment, when the secrets of all hearts shall be disclosed), that if
13113 either of you know any impediment why ye may not lawfully be joined
13114 together in matrimony, ye do now confess it; for be ye well assured that
13115 so many as are coupled together otherwise than God's Word doth allow, are
13116 not joined together by God, neither is their matrimony lawful."
13117
13118 He paused, as the custom is. When is the pause after that sentence ever
13119 broken by reply? Not, perhaps, once in a hundred years. And the
13120 clergyman, who had not lifted his eyes from his book, and had held his
13121 breath but for a moment, was proceeding: his hand was already stretched
13122 towards Mr. Rochester, as his lips unclosed to ask, "Wilt thou have this
13123 woman for thy wedded wife?"--when a distinct and near voice said--
13124
13125 "The marriage cannot go on: I declare the existence of an impediment."
13126
13127 The clergyman looked up at the speaker and stood mute; the clerk did the
13128 same; Mr. Rochester moved slightly, as if an earthquake had rolled under
13129 his feet: taking a firmer footing, and not turning his head or eyes, he
13130 said, "Proceed."
13131
13132 Profound silence fell when he had uttered that word, with deep but low
13133 intonation. Presently Mr. Wood said--
13134
13135 "I cannot proceed without some investigation into what has been asserted,
13136 and evidence of its truth or falsehood."
13137
13138 "The ceremony is quite broken off," subjoined the voice behind us. "I am
13139 in a condition to prove my allegation: an insuperable impediment to this
13140 marriage exists."
13141
13142 Mr. Rochester heard, but heeded not: he stood stubborn and rigid, making
13143 no movement but to possess himself of my hand. What a hot and strong
13144 grasp he had! and how like quarried marble was his pale, firm, massive
13145 front at this moment! How his eye shone, still watchful, and yet wild
13146 beneath!
13147
13148 Mr. Wood seemed at a loss. "What is the nature of the impediment?" he
13149 asked. "Perhaps it may be got over--explained away?"
13150
13151 "Hardly," was the answer. "I have called it insuperable, and I speak
13152 advisedly."
13153
13154 The speaker came forward and leaned on the rails. He continued, uttering
13155 each word distinctly, calmly, steadily, but not loudly--
13156
13157 "It simply consists in the existence of a previous marriage. Mr.
13158 Rochester has a wife now living."
13159
13160 My nerves vibrated to those low-spoken words as they had never vibrated
13161 to thunder--my blood felt their subtle violence as it had never felt
13162 frost or fire; but I was collected, and in no danger of swooning. I
13163 looked at Mr. Rochester: I made him look at me. His whole face was
13164 colourless rock: his eye was both spark and flint. He disavowed nothing:
13165 he seemed as if he would defy all things. Without speaking, without
13166 smiling, without seeming to recognise in me a human being, he only twined
13167 my waist with his arm and riveted me to his side.
13168
13169 "Who are you?" he asked of the intruder.
13170
13171 "My name is Briggs, a solicitor of --- Street, London."
13172
13173 "And you would thrust on me a wife?"
13174
13175 "I would remind you of your lady's existence, sir, which the law
13176 recognises, if you do not."
13177
13178 "Favour me with an account of her--with her name, her parentage, her
13179 place of abode."
13180
13181 "Certainly." Mr. Briggs calmly took a paper from his pocket, and read
13182 out in a sort of official, nasal voice:--
13183
13184 "'I affirm and can prove that on the 20th of October A.D. --- (a date of
13185 fifteen years back), Edward Fairfax Rochester, of Thornfield Hall, in the
13186 county of ---, and of Ferndean Manor, in ---shire, England, was married
13187 to my sister, Bertha Antoinetta Mason, daughter of Jonas Mason, merchant,
13188 and of Antoinetta his wife, a Creole, at --- church, Spanish Town,
13189 Jamaica. The record of the marriage will be found in the register of
13190 that church--a copy of it is now in my possession. Signed, Richard
13191 Mason.'"
13192
13193 "That--if a genuine document--may prove I have been married, but it does
13194 not prove that the woman mentioned therein as my wife is still living."
13195
13196 "She was living three months ago," returned the lawyer.
13197
13198 "How do you know?"
13199
13200 "I have a witness to the fact, whose testimony even you, sir, will
13201 scarcely controvert."
13202
13203 "Produce him--or go to hell."
13204
13205 "I will produce him first--he is on the spot. Mr. Mason, have the
13206 goodness to step forward."
13207
13208 Mr. Rochester, on hearing the name, set his teeth; he experienced, too, a
13209 sort of strong convulsive quiver; near to him as I was, I felt the
13210 spasmodic movement of fury or despair run through his frame. The second
13211 stranger, who had hitherto lingered in the background, now drew near; a
13212 pale face looked over the solicitor's shoulder--yes, it was Mason
13213 himself. Mr. Rochester turned and glared at him. His eye, as I have
13214 often said, was a black eye: it had now a tawny, nay, a bloody light in
13215 its gloom; and his face flushed--olive cheek and hueless forehead
13216 received a glow as from spreading, ascending heart-fire: and he stirred,
13217 lifted his strong arm--he could have struck Mason, dashed him on the
13218 church-floor, shocked by ruthless blow the breath from his body--but
13219 Mason shrank away, and cried faintly, "Good God!" Contempt fell cool on
13220 Mr. Rochester--his passion died as if a blight had shrivelled it up: he
13221 only asked--"What have _you_ to say?"
13222
13223 An inaudible reply escaped Mason's white lips.
13224
13225 "The devil is in it if you cannot answer distinctly. I again demand,
13226 what have you to say?"
13227
13228 "Sir--sir," interrupted the clergyman, "do not forget you are in a sacred
13229 place." Then addressing Mason, he inquired gently, "Are you aware, sir,
13230 whether or not this gentleman's wife is still living?"
13231
13232 "Courage," urged the lawyer,--"speak out."
13233
13234 "She is now living at Thornfield Hall," said Mason, in more articulate
13235 tones: "I saw her there last April. I am her brother."
13236
13237 "At Thornfield Hall!" ejaculated the clergyman. "Impossible! I am an
13238 old resident in this neighbourhood, sir, and I never heard of a Mrs.
13239 Rochester at Thornfield Hall."
13240
13241 I saw a grim smile contort Mr. Rochester's lips, and he muttered--
13242
13243 "No, by God! I took care that none should hear of it--or of her under
13244 that name." He mused--for ten minutes he held counsel with himself: he
13245 formed his resolve, and announced it--
13246
13247 "Enough! all shall bolt out at once, like the bullet from the barrel.
13248 Wood, close your book and take off your surplice; John Green (to the
13249 clerk), leave the church: there will be no wedding to-day." The man
13250 obeyed.
13251
13252 Mr. Rochester continued, hardily and recklessly: "Bigamy is an ugly
13253 word!--I meant, however, to be a bigamist; but fate has out-manoeuvred
13254 me, or Providence has checked me,--perhaps the last. I am little better
13255 than a devil at this moment; and, as my pastor there would tell me,
13256 deserve no doubt the sternest judgments of God, even to the quenchless
13257 fire and deathless worm. Gentlemen, my plan is broken up:--what this
13258 lawyer and his client say is true: I have been married, and the woman to
13259 whom I was married lives! You say you never heard of a Mrs. Rochester at
13260 the house up yonder, Wood; but I daresay you have many a time inclined
13261 your ear to gossip about the mysterious lunatic kept there under watch
13262 and ward. Some have whispered to you that she is my bastard half-sister:
13263 some, my cast-off mistress. I now inform you that she is my wife, whom I
13264 married fifteen years ago,--Bertha Mason by name; sister of this resolute
13265 personage, who is now, with his quivering limbs and white cheeks, showing
13266 you what a stout heart men may bear. Cheer up, Dick!--never fear me!--I'd
13267 almost as soon strike a woman as you. Bertha Mason is mad; and she came
13268 of a mad family; idiots and maniacs through three generations! Her
13269 mother, the Creole, was both a madwoman and a drunkard!--as I found out
13270 after I had wed the daughter: for they were silent on family secrets
13271 before. Bertha, like a dutiful child, copied her parent in both points.
13272 I had a charming partner--pure, wise, modest: you can fancy I was a happy
13273 man. I went through rich scenes! Oh! my experience has been heavenly,
13274 if you only knew it! But I owe you no further explanation. Briggs,
13275 Wood, Mason, I invite you all to come up to the house and visit Mrs.
13276 Poole's patient, and _my wife_! You shall see what sort of a being I was
13277 cheated into espousing, and judge whether or not I had a right to break
13278 the compact, and seek sympathy with something at least human. This
13279 girl," he continued, looking at me, "knew no more than you, Wood, of the
13280 disgusting secret: she thought all was fair and legal and never dreamt
13281 she was going to be entrapped into a feigned union with a defrauded
13282 wretch, already bound to a bad, mad, and embruted partner! Come all of
13283 you--follow!"
13284
13285 Still holding me fast, he left the church: the three gentlemen came
13286 after. At the front door of the hall we found the carriage.
13287
13288 "Take it back to the coach-house, John," said Mr. Rochester coolly; "it
13289 will not be wanted to-day."
13290
13291 At our entrance, Mrs. Fairfax, Adele, Sophie, Leah, advanced to meet and
13292 greet us.
13293
13294 "To the right-about--every soul!" cried the master; "away with your
13295 congratulations! Who wants them? Not I!--they are fifteen years too
13296 late!"
13297
13298 He passed on and ascended the stairs, still holding my hand, and still
13299 beckoning the gentlemen to follow him, which they did. We mounted the
13300 first staircase, passed up the gallery, proceeded to the third storey:
13301 the low, black door, opened by Mr. Rochester's master-key, admitted us to
13302 the tapestried room, with its great bed and its pictorial cabinet.
13303
13304 "You know this place, Mason," said our guide; "she bit and stabbed you
13305 here."
13306
13307 He lifted the hangings from the wall, uncovering the second door: this,
13308 too, he opened. In a room without a window, there burnt a fire guarded
13309 by a high and strong fender, and a lamp suspended from the ceiling by a
13310 chain. Grace Poole bent over the fire, apparently cooking something in a
13311 saucepan. In the deep shade, at the farther end of the room, a figure
13312 ran backwards and forwards. What it was, whether beast or human being,
13313 one could not, at first sight, tell: it grovelled, seemingly, on all
13314 fours; it snatched and growled like some strange wild animal: but it was
13315 covered with clothing, and a quantity of dark, grizzled hair, wild as a
13316 mane, hid its head and face.
13317
13318 "Good-morrow, Mrs. Poole!" said Mr. Rochester. "How are you? and how is
13319 your charge to-day?"
13320
13321 "We're tolerable, sir, I thank you," replied Grace, lifting the boiling
13322 mess carefully on to the hob: "rather snappish, but not 'rageous."
13323
13324 A fierce cry seemed to give the lie to her favourable report: the clothed
13325 hyena rose up, and stood tall on its hind-feet.
13326
13327 "Ah! sir, she sees you!" exclaimed Grace: "you'd better not stay."
13328
13329 "Only a few moments, Grace: you must allow me a few moments."
13330
13331 "Take care then, sir!--for God's sake, take care!"
13332
13333 The maniac bellowed: she parted her shaggy locks from her visage, and
13334 gazed wildly at her visitors. I recognised well that purple face,--those
13335 bloated features. Mrs. Poole advanced.
13336
13337 "Keep out of the way," said Mr. Rochester, thrusting her aside: "she has
13338 no knife now, I suppose, and I'm on my guard."
13339
13340 "One never knows what she has, sir: she is so cunning: it is not in
13341 mortal discretion to fathom her craft."
13342
13343 "We had better leave her," whispered Mason.
13344
13345 "Go to the devil!" was his brother-in-law's recommendation.
13346
13347 "'Ware!" cried Grace. The three gentlemen retreated simultaneously. Mr.
13348 Rochester flung me behind him: the lunatic sprang and grappled his throat
13349 viciously, and laid her teeth to his cheek: they struggled. She was a
13350 big woman, in stature almost equalling her husband, and corpulent
13351 besides: she showed virile force in the contest--more than once she
13352 almost throttled him, athletic as he was. He could have settled her with
13353 a well-planted blow; but he would not strike: he would only wrestle. At
13354 last he mastered her arms; Grace Poole gave him a cord, and he pinioned
13355 them behind her: with more rope, which was at hand, he bound her to a
13356 chair. The operation was performed amidst the fiercest yells and the
13357 most convulsive plunges. Mr. Rochester then turned to the spectators: he
13358 looked at them with a smile both acrid and desolate.
13359
13360 "That is _my wife_," said he. "Such is the sole conjugal embrace I am
13361 ever to know--such are the endearments which are to solace my leisure
13362 hours! And _this_ is what I wished to have" (laying his hand on my
13363 shoulder): "this young girl, who stands so grave and quiet at the mouth
13364 of hell, looking collectedly at the gambols of a demon, I wanted her just
13365 as a change after that fierce ragout. Wood and Briggs, look at the
13366 difference! Compare these clear eyes with the red balls yonder--this
13367 face with that mask--this form with that bulk; then judge me, priest of
13368 the gospel and man of the law, and remember with what judgment ye judge
13369 ye shall be judged! Off with you now. I must shut up my prize."
13370
13371 We all withdrew. Mr. Rochester stayed a moment behind us, to give some
13372 further order to Grace Poole. The solicitor addressed me as he descended
13373 the stair.
13374
13375 "You, madam," said he, "are cleared from all blame: your uncle will be
13376 glad to hear it--if, indeed, he should be still living--when Mr. Mason
13377 returns to Madeira."
13378
13379 "My uncle! What of him? Do you know him?"
13380
13381 "Mr. Mason does. Mr. Eyre has been the Funchal correspondent of his
13382 house for some years. When your uncle received your letter intimating
13383 the contemplated union between yourself and Mr. Rochester, Mr. Mason, who
13384 was staying at Madeira to recruit his health, on his way back to Jamaica,
13385 happened to be with him. Mr. Eyre mentioned the intelligence; for he
13386 knew that my client here was acquainted with a gentleman of the name of
13387 Rochester. Mr. Mason, astonished and distressed as you may suppose,
13388 revealed the real state of matters. Your uncle, I am sorry to say, is
13389 now on a sick bed; from which, considering the nature of his
13390 disease--decline--and the stage it has reached, it is unlikely he will
13391 ever rise. He could not then hasten to England himself, to extricate you
13392 from the snare into which you had fallen, but he implored Mr. Mason to
13393 lose no time in taking steps to prevent the false marriage. He referred
13394 him to me for assistance. I used all despatch, and am thankful I was not
13395 too late: as you, doubtless, must be also. Were I not morally certain
13396 that your uncle will be dead ere you reach Madeira, I would advise you to
13397 accompany Mr. Mason back; but as it is, I think you had better remain in
13398 England till you can hear further, either from or of Mr. Eyre. Have we
13399 anything else to stay for?" he inquired of Mr. Mason.
13400
13401 "No, no--let us be gone," was the anxious reply; and without waiting to
13402 take leave of Mr. Rochester, they made their exit at the hall door. The
13403 clergyman stayed to exchange a few sentences, either of admonition or
13404 reproof, with his haughty parishioner; this duty done, he too departed.
13405
13406 I heard him go as I stood at the half-open door of my own room, to which
13407 I had now withdrawn. The house cleared, I shut myself in, fastened the
13408 bolt that none might intrude, and proceeded--not to weep, not to mourn, I
13409 was yet too calm for that, but--mechanically to take off the wedding
13410 dress, and replace it by the stuff gown I had worn yesterday, as I
13411 thought, for the last time. I then sat down: I felt weak and tired. I
13412 leaned my arms on a table, and my head dropped on them. And now I
13413 thought: till now I had only heard, seen, moved--followed up and down
13414 where I was led or dragged--watched event rush on event, disclosure open
13415 beyond disclosure: but _now_, _I thought_.
13416
13417 The morning had been a quiet morning enough--all except the brief scene
13418 with the lunatic: the transaction in the church had not been noisy; there
13419 was no explosion of passion, no loud altercation, no dispute, no defiance
13420 or challenge, no tears, no sobs: a few words had been spoken, a calmly
13421 pronounced objection to the marriage made; some stern, short questions
13422 put by Mr. Rochester; answers, explanations given, evidence adduced; an
13423 open admission of the truth had been uttered by my master; then the
13424 living proof had been seen; the intruders were gone, and all was over.
13425
13426 I was in my own room as usual--just myself, without obvious change:
13427 nothing had smitten me, or scathed me, or maimed me. And yet where was
13428 the Jane Eyre of yesterday?--where was her life?--where were her
13429 prospects?
13430
13431 Jane Eyre, who had been an ardent, expectant woman--almost a bride, was a
13432 cold, solitary girl again: her life was pale; her prospects were
13433 desolate. A Christmas frost had come at midsummer; a white December
13434 storm had whirled over June; ice glazed the ripe apples, drifts crushed
13435 the blowing roses; on hayfield and cornfield lay a frozen shroud: lanes
13436 which last night blushed full of flowers, to-day were pathless with
13437 untrodden snow; and the woods, which twelve hours since waved leafy and
13438 flagrant as groves between the tropics, now spread, waste, wild, and
13439 white as pine-forests in wintry Norway. My hopes were all dead--struck
13440 with a subtle doom, such as, in one night, fell on all the first-born in
13441 the land of Egypt. I looked on my cherished wishes, yesterday so
13442 blooming and glowing; they lay stark, chill, livid corpses that could
13443 never revive. I looked at my love: that feeling which was my
13444 master's--which he had created; it shivered in my heart, like a suffering
13445 child in a cold cradle; sickness and anguish had seized it; it could not
13446 seek Mr. Rochester's arms--it could not derive warmth from his breast.
13447 Oh, never more could it turn to him; for faith was blighted--confidence
13448 destroyed! Mr. Rochester was not to me what he had been; for he was not
13449 what I had thought him. I would not ascribe vice to him; I would not say
13450 he had betrayed me; but the attribute of stainless truth was gone from
13451 his idea, and from his presence I must go: _that_ I perceived well.
13452 When--how--whither, I could not yet discern; but he himself, I doubted
13453 not, would hurry me from Thornfield. Real affection, it seemed, he could
13454 not have for me; it had been only fitful passion: that was balked; he
13455 would want me no more. I should fear even to cross his path now: my view
13456 must be hateful to him. Oh, how blind had been my eyes! How weak my
13457 conduct!
13458
13459 My eyes were covered and closed: eddying darkness seemed to swim round
13460 me, and reflection came in as black and confused a flow. Self-abandoned,
13461 relaxed, and effortless, I seemed to have laid me down in the dried-up
13462 bed of a great river; I heard a flood loosened in remote mountains, and
13463 felt the torrent come: to rise I had no will, to flee I had no strength.
13464 I lay faint, longing to be dead. One idea only still throbbed life-like
13465 within me--a remembrance of God: it begot an unuttered prayer: these
13466 words went wandering up and down in my rayless mind, as something that
13467 should be whispered, but no energy was found to express them--
13468
13469 "Be not far from me, for trouble is near: there is none to help."
13470
13471 It was near: and as I had lifted no petition to Heaven to avert it--as I
13472 had neither joined my hands, nor bent my knees, nor moved my lips--it
13473 came: in full heavy swing the torrent poured over me. The whole
13474 consciousness of my life lorn, my love lost, my hope quenched, my faith
13475 death-struck, swayed full and mighty above me in one sullen mass. That
13476 bitter hour cannot be described: in truth, "the waters came into my soul;
13477 I sank in deep mire: I felt no standing; I came into deep waters; the
13478 floods overflowed me."
13479
13480
13481
13482
13483 CHAPTER XXVII
13484
13485
13486 Some time in the afternoon I raised my head, and looking round and seeing
13487 the western sun gilding the sign of its decline on the wall, I asked,
13488 "What am I to do?"
13489
13490 But the answer my mind gave--"Leave Thornfield at once"--was so prompt,
13491 so dread, that I stopped my ears. I said I could not bear such words
13492 now. "That I am not Edward Rochester's bride is the least part of my
13493 woe," I alleged: "that I have wakened out of most glorious dreams, and
13494 found them all void and vain, is a horror I could bear and master; but
13495 that I must leave him decidedly, instantly, entirely, is intolerable. I
13496 cannot do it."
13497
13498 But, then, a voice within me averred that I could do it and foretold that
13499 I should do it. I wrestled with my own resolution: I wanted to be weak
13500 that I might avoid the awful passage of further suffering I saw laid out
13501 for me; and Conscience, turned tyrant, held Passion by the throat, told
13502 her tauntingly, she had yet but dipped her dainty foot in the slough, and
13503 swore that with that arm of iron he would thrust her down to unsounded
13504 depths of agony.
13505
13506 "Let me be torn away," then I cried. "Let another help me!"
13507
13508 "No; you shall tear yourself away, none shall help you: you shall
13509 yourself pluck out your right eye; yourself cut off your right hand: your
13510 heart shall be the victim, and you the priest to transfix it."
13511
13512 I rose up suddenly, terror-struck at the solitude which so ruthless a
13513 judge haunted,--at the silence which so awful a voice filled. My head
13514 swam as I stood erect. I perceived that I was sickening from excitement
13515 and inanition; neither meat nor drink had passed my lips that day, for I
13516 had taken no breakfast. And, with a strange pang, I now reflected that,
13517 long as I had been shut up here, no message had been sent to ask how I
13518 was, or to invite me to come down: not even little Adele had tapped at
13519 the door; not even Mrs. Fairfax had sought me. "Friends always forget
13520 those whom fortune forsakes," I murmured, as I undrew the bolt and passed
13521 out. I stumbled over an obstacle: my head was still dizzy, my sight was
13522 dim, and my limbs were feeble. I could not soon recover myself. I fell,
13523 but not on to the ground: an outstretched arm caught me. I looked up--I
13524 was supported by Mr. Rochester, who sat in a chair across my chamber
13525 threshold.
13526
13527 "You come out at last," he said. "Well, I have been waiting for you
13528 long, and listening: yet not one movement have I heard, nor one sob: five
13529 minutes more of that death-like hush, and I should have forced the lock
13530 like a burglar. So you shun me?--you shut yourself up and grieve alone!
13531 I would rather you had come and upbraided me with vehemence. You are
13532 passionate. I expected a scene of some kind. I was prepared for the hot
13533 rain of tears; only I wanted them to be shed on my breast: now a
13534 senseless floor has received them, or your drenched handkerchief. But I
13535 err: you have not wept at all! I see a white cheek and a faded eye, but
13536 no trace of tears. I suppose, then, your heart has been weeping blood?"
13537
13538 "Well, Jane! not a word of reproach? Nothing bitter--nothing poignant?
13539 Nothing to cut a feeling or sting a passion? You sit quietly where I
13540 have placed you, and regard me with a weary, passive look."
13541
13542 "Jane, I never meant to wound you thus. If the man who had but one
13543 little ewe lamb that was dear to him as a daughter, that ate of his bread
13544 and drank of his cup, and lay in his bosom, had by some mistake
13545 slaughtered it at the shambles, he would not have rued his bloody blunder
13546 more than I now rue mine. Will you ever forgive me?"
13547
13548 Reader, I forgave him at the moment and on the spot. There was such deep
13549 remorse in his eye, such true pity in his tone, such manly energy in his
13550 manner; and besides, there was such unchanged love in his whole look and
13551 mien--I forgave him all: yet not in words, not outwardly; only at my
13552 heart's core.
13553
13554 "You know I am a scoundrel, Jane?" ere long he inquired
13555 wistfully--wondering, I suppose, at my continued silence and tameness,
13556 the result rather of weakness than of will.
13557
13558 "Yes, sir."
13559
13560 "Then tell me so roundly and sharply--don't spare me."
13561
13562 "I cannot: I am tired and sick. I want some water." He heaved a sort of
13563 shuddering sigh, and taking me in his arms, carried me downstairs. At
13564 first I did not know to what room he had borne me; all was cloudy to my
13565 glazed sight: presently I felt the reviving warmth of a fire; for, summer
13566 as it was, I had become icy cold in my chamber. He put wine to my lips;
13567 I tasted it and revived; then I ate something he offered me, and was soon
13568 myself. I was in the library--sitting in his chair--he was quite near.
13569 "If I could go out of life now, without too sharp a pang, it would be
13570 well for me," I thought; "then I should not have to make the effort of
13571 cracking my heart-strings in rending them from among Mr. Rochester's. I
13572 must leave him, it appears. I do not want to leave him--I cannot leave
13573 him."
13574
13575 "How are you now, Jane?"
13576
13577 "Much better, sir; I shall be well soon."
13578
13579 "Taste the wine again, Jane."
13580
13581 I obeyed him; then he put the glass on the table, stood before me, and
13582 looked at me attentively. Suddenly he turned away, with an inarticulate
13583 exclamation, full of passionate emotion of some kind; he walked fast
13584 through the room and came back; he stooped towards me as if to kiss me;
13585 but I remembered caresses were now forbidden. I turned my face away and
13586 put his aside.
13587
13588 "What!--How is this?" he exclaimed hastily. "Oh, I know! you won't kiss
13589 the husband of Bertha Mason? You consider my arms filled and my embraces
13590 appropriated?"
13591
13592 "At any rate, there is neither room nor claim for me, sir."
13593
13594 "Why, Jane? I will spare you the trouble of much talking; I will answer
13595 for you--Because I have a wife already, you would reply.--I guess
13596 rightly?"
13597
13598 "Yes."
13599
13600 "If you think so, you must have a strange opinion of me; you must regard
13601 me as a plotting profligate--a base and low rake who has been simulating
13602 disinterested love in order to draw you into a snare deliberately laid,
13603 and strip you of honour and rob you of self-respect. What do you say to
13604 that? I see you can say nothing in the first place, you are faint still,
13605 and have enough to do to draw your breath; in the second place, you
13606 cannot yet accustom yourself to accuse and revile me, and besides, the
13607 flood-gates of tears are opened, and they would rush out if you spoke
13608 much; and you have no desire to expostulate, to upbraid, to make a scene:
13609 you are thinking how _to act_--_talking_ you consider is of no use. I
13610 know you--I am on my guard."
13611
13612 "Sir, I do not wish to act against you," I said; and my unsteady voice
13613 warned me to curtail my sentence.
13614
13615 "Not in your sense of the word, but in mine you are scheming to destroy
13616 me. You have as good as said that I am a married man--as a married man
13617 you will shun me, keep out of my way: just now you have refused to kiss
13618 me. You intend to make yourself a complete stranger to me: to live under
13619 this roof only as Adele's governess; if ever I say a friendly word to
13620 you, if ever a friendly feeling inclines you again to me, you will
13621 say,--'That man had nearly made me his mistress: I must be ice and rock
13622 to him;' and ice and rock you will accordingly become."
13623
13624 I cleared and steadied my voice to reply: "All is changed about me, sir;
13625 I must change too--there is no doubt of that; and to avoid fluctuations
13626 of feeling, and continual combats with recollections and associations,
13627 there is only one way--Adele must have a new governess, sir."
13628
13629 "Oh, Adele will go to school--I have settled that already; nor do I mean
13630 to torment you with the hideous associations and recollections of
13631 Thornfield Hall--this accursed place--this tent of Achan--this insolent
13632 vault, offering the ghastliness of living death to the light of the open
13633 sky--this narrow stone hell, with its one real fiend, worse than a legion
13634 of such as we imagine. Jane, you shall not stay here, nor will I. I was
13635 wrong ever to bring you to Thornfield Hall, knowing as I did how it was
13636 haunted. I charged them to conceal from you, before I ever saw you, all
13637 knowledge of the curse of the place; merely because I feared Adele never
13638 would have a governess to stay if she knew with what inmate she was
13639 housed, and my plans would not permit me to remove the maniac
13640 elsewhere--though I possess an old house, Ferndean Manor, even more
13641 retired and hidden than this, where I could have lodged her safely
13642 enough, had not a scruple about the unhealthiness of the situation, in
13643 the heart of a wood, made my conscience recoil from the arrangement.
13644 Probably those damp walls would soon have eased me of her charge: but to
13645 each villain his own vice; and mine is not a tendency to indirect
13646 assassination, even of what I most hate.
13647
13648 "Concealing the mad-woman's neighbourhood from you, however, was
13649 something like covering a child with a cloak and laying it down near a
13650 upas-tree: that demon's vicinage is poisoned, and always was. But I'll
13651 shut up Thornfield Hall: I'll nail up the front door and board the lower
13652 windows: I'll give Mrs. Poole two hundred a year to live here with _my
13653 wife_, as you term that fearful hag: Grace will do much for money, and
13654 she shall have her son, the keeper at Grimsby Retreat, to bear her
13655 company and be at hand to give her aid in the paroxysms, when _my wife_
13656 is prompted by her familiar to burn people in their beds at night, to
13657 stab them, to bite their flesh from their bones, and so on--"
13658
13659 "Sir," I interrupted him, "you are inexorable for that unfortunate lady:
13660 you speak of her with hate--with vindictive antipathy. It is cruel--she
13661 cannot help being mad."
13662
13663 "Jane, my little darling (so I will call you, for so you are), you don't
13664 know what you are talking about; you misjudge me again: it is not because
13665 she is mad I hate her. If you were mad, do you think I should hate you?"
13666
13667 "I do indeed, sir."
13668
13669 "Then you are mistaken, and you know nothing about me, and nothing about
13670 the sort of love of which I am capable. Every atom of your flesh is as
13671 dear to me as my own: in pain and sickness it would still be dear. Your
13672 mind is my treasure, and if it were broken, it would be my treasure
13673 still: if you raved, my arms should confine you, and not a strait
13674 waistcoat--your grasp, even in fury, would have a charm for me: if you
13675 flew at me as wildly as that woman did this morning, I should receive you
13676 in an embrace, at least as fond as it would be restrictive. I should not
13677 shrink from you with disgust as I did from her: in your quiet moments you
13678 should have no watcher and no nurse but me; and I could hang over you
13679 with untiring tenderness, though you gave me no smile in return; and
13680 never weary of gazing into your eyes, though they had no longer a ray of
13681 recognition for me.--But why do I follow that train of ideas? I was
13682 talking of removing you from Thornfield. All, you know, is prepared for
13683 prompt departure: to-morrow you shall go. I only ask you to endure one
13684 more night under this roof, Jane; and then, farewell to its miseries and
13685 terrors for ever! I have a place to repair to, which will be a secure
13686 sanctuary from hateful reminiscences, from unwelcome intrusion--even from
13687 falsehood and slander."
13688
13689 "And take Adele with you, sir," I interrupted; "she will be a companion
13690 for you."
13691
13692 "What do you mean, Jane? I told you I would send Adele to school; and
13693 what do I want with a child for a companion, and not my own child,--a
13694 French dancer's bastard? Why do you importune me about her! I say, why
13695 do you assign Adele to me for a companion?"
13696
13697 "You spoke of a retirement, sir; and retirement and solitude are dull:
13698 too dull for you."
13699
13700 "Solitude! solitude!" he reiterated with irritation. "I see I must come
13701 to an explanation. I don't know what sphynx-like expression is forming
13702 in your countenance. You are to share my solitude. Do you understand?"
13703
13704 I shook my head: it required a degree of courage, excited as he was
13705 becoming, even to risk that mute sign of dissent. He had been walking
13706 fast about the room, and he stopped, as if suddenly rooted to one spot.
13707 He looked at me long and hard: I turned my eyes from him, fixed them on
13708 the fire, and tried to assume and maintain a quiet, collected aspect.
13709
13710 "Now for the hitch in Jane's character," he said at last, speaking more
13711 calmly than from his look I had expected him to speak. "The reel of silk
13712 has run smoothly enough so far; but I always knew there would come a knot
13713 and a puzzle: here it is. Now for vexation, and exasperation, and
13714 endless trouble! By God! I long to exert a fraction of Samson's
13715 strength, and break the entanglement like tow!"
13716
13717 He recommenced his walk, but soon again stopped, and this time just
13718 before me.
13719
13720 "Jane! will you hear reason?" (he stooped and approached his lips to my
13721 ear); "because, if you won't, I'll try violence." His voice was hoarse;
13722 his look that of a man who is just about to burst an insufferable bond
13723 and plunge headlong into wild license. I saw that in another moment, and
13724 with one impetus of frenzy more, I should be able to do nothing with him.
13725 The present--the passing second of time--was all I had in which to
13726 control and restrain him--a movement of repulsion, flight, fear would
13727 have sealed my doom,--and his. But I was not afraid: not in the least. I
13728 felt an inward power; a sense of influence, which supported me. The
13729 crisis was perilous; but not without its charm: such as the Indian,
13730 perhaps, feels when he slips over the rapid in his canoe. I took hold of
13731 his clenched hand, loosened the contorted fingers, and said to him,
13732 soothingly--
13733
13734 "Sit down; I'll talk to you as long as you like, and hear all you have to
13735 say, whether reasonable or unreasonable."
13736
13737 He sat down: but he did not get leave to speak directly. I had been
13738 struggling with tears for some time: I had taken great pains to repress
13739 them, because I knew he would not like to see me weep. Now, however, I
13740 considered it well to let them flow as freely and as long as they liked.
13741 If the flood annoyed him, so much the better. So I gave way and cried
13742 heartily.
13743
13744 Soon I heard him earnestly entreating me to be composed. I said I could
13745 not while he was in such a passion.
13746
13747 "But I am not angry, Jane: I only love you too well; and you had steeled
13748 your little pale face with such a resolute, frozen look, I could not
13749 endure it. Hush, now, and wipe your eyes."
13750
13751 His softened voice announced that he was subdued; so I, in my turn,
13752 became calm. Now he made an effort to rest his head on my shoulder, but
13753 I would not permit it. Then he would draw me to him: no.
13754
13755 "Jane! Jane!" he said, in such an accent of bitter sadness it thrilled
13756 along every nerve I had; "you don't love me, then? It was only my
13757 station, and the rank of my wife, that you valued? Now that you think me
13758 disqualified to become your husband, you recoil from my touch as if I
13759 were some toad or ape."
13760
13761 These words cut me: yet what could I do or I say? I ought probably to
13762 have done or said nothing; but I was so tortured by a sense of remorse at
13763 thus hurting his feelings, I could not control the wish to drop balm
13764 where I had wounded.
13765
13766 "I _do_ love you," I said, "more than ever: but I must not show or
13767 indulge the feeling: and this is the last time I must express it."
13768
13769 "The last time, Jane! What! do you think you can live with me, and see
13770 me daily, and yet, if you still love me, be always cold and distant?"
13771
13772 "No, sir; that I am certain I could not; and therefore I see there is but
13773 one way: but you will be furious if I mention it."
13774
13775 "Oh, mention it! If I storm, you have the art of weeping."
13776
13777 "Mr. Rochester, I must leave you."
13778
13779 "For how long, Jane? For a few minutes, while you smooth your hair--which
13780 is somewhat dishevelled; and bathe your face--which looks feverish?"
13781
13782 "I must leave Adele and Thornfield. I must part with you for my whole
13783 life: I must begin a new existence among strange faces and strange
13784 scenes."
13785
13786 "Of course: I told you you should. I pass over the madness about parting
13787 from me. You mean you must become a part of me. As to the new
13788 existence, it is all right: you shall yet be my wife: I am not married.
13789 You shall be Mrs. Rochester--both virtually and nominally. I shall keep
13790 only to you so long as you and I live. You shall go to a place I have in
13791 the south of France: a whitewashed villa on the shores of the
13792 Mediterranean. There you shall live a happy, and guarded, and most
13793 innocent life. Never fear that I wish to lure you into error--to make
13794 you my mistress. Why did you shake your head? Jane, you must be
13795 reasonable, or in truth I shall again become frantic."
13796
13797 His voice and hand quivered: his large nostrils dilated; his eye blazed:
13798 still I dared to speak.
13799
13800 "Sir, your wife is living: that is a fact acknowledged this morning by
13801 yourself. If I lived with you as you desire, I should then be your
13802 mistress: to say otherwise is sophistical--is false."
13803
13804 "Jane, I am not a gentle-tempered man--you forget that: I am not long-
13805 enduring; I am not cool and dispassionate. Out of pity to me and
13806 yourself, put your finger on my pulse, feel how it throbs, and--beware!"
13807
13808 He bared his wrist, and offered it to me: the blood was forsaking his
13809 cheek and lips, they were growing livid; I was distressed on all hands.
13810 To agitate him thus deeply, by a resistance he so abhorred, was cruel: to
13811 yield was out of the question. I did what human beings do instinctively
13812 when they are driven to utter extremity--looked for aid to one higher
13813 than man: the words "God help me!" burst involuntarily from my lips.
13814
13815 "I am a fool!" cried Mr. Rochester suddenly. "I keep telling her I am
13816 not married, and do not explain to her why. I forget she knows nothing
13817 of the character of that woman, or of the circumstances attending my
13818 infernal union with her. Oh, I am certain Jane will agree with me in
13819 opinion, when she knows all that I know! Just put your hand in mine,
13820 Janet--that I may have the evidence of touch as well as sight, to prove
13821 you are near me--and I will in a few words show you the real state of the
13822 case. Can you listen to me?"
13823
13824 "Yes, sir; for hours if you will."
13825
13826 "I ask only minutes. Jane, did you ever hear or know that I was not the
13827 eldest son of my house: that I had once a brother older than I?"
13828
13829 "I remember Mrs. Fairfax told me so once."
13830
13831 "And did you ever hear that my father was an avaricious, grasping man?"
13832
13833 "I have understood something to that effect."
13834
13835 "Well, Jane, being so, it was his resolution to keep the property
13836 together; he could not bear the idea of dividing his estate and leaving
13837 me a fair portion: all, he resolved, should go to my brother, Rowland.
13838 Yet as little could he endure that a son of his should be a poor man. I
13839 must be provided for by a wealthy marriage. He sought me a partner
13840 betimes. Mr. Mason, a West India planter and merchant, was his old
13841 acquaintance. He was certain his possessions were real and vast: he made
13842 inquiries. Mr. Mason, he found, had a son and daughter; and he learned
13843 from him that he could and would give the latter a fortune of thirty
13844 thousand pounds: that sufficed. When I left college, I was sent out to
13845 Jamaica, to espouse a bride already courted for me. My father said
13846 nothing about her money; but he told me Miss Mason was the boast of
13847 Spanish Town for her beauty: and this was no lie. I found her a fine
13848 woman, in the style of Blanche Ingram: tall, dark, and majestic. Her
13849 family wished to secure me because I was of a good race; and so did she.
13850 They showed her to me in parties, splendidly dressed. I seldom saw her
13851 alone, and had very little private conversation with her. She flattered
13852 me, and lavishly displayed for my pleasure her charms and
13853 accomplishments. All the men in her circle seemed to admire her and envy
13854 me. I was dazzled, stimulated: my senses were excited; and being
13855 ignorant, raw, and inexperienced, I thought I loved her. There is no
13856 folly so besotted that the idiotic rivalries of society, the prurience,
13857 the rashness, the blindness of youth, will not hurry a man to its
13858 commission. Her relatives encouraged me; competitors piqued me; she
13859 allured me: a marriage was achieved almost before I knew where I was. Oh,
13860 I have no respect for myself when I think of that act!--an agony of
13861 inward contempt masters me. I never loved, I never esteemed, I did not
13862 even know her. I was not sure of the existence of one virtue in her
13863 nature: I had marked neither modesty, nor benevolence, nor candour, nor
13864 refinement in her mind or manners--and, I married her:--gross,
13865 grovelling, mole-eyed blockhead that I was! With less sin I might
13866 have--But let me remember to whom I am speaking."
13867
13868 "My bride's mother I had never seen: I understood she was dead. The
13869 honeymoon over, I learned my mistake; she was only mad, and shut up in a
13870 lunatic asylum. There was a younger brother, too--a complete dumb idiot.
13871 The elder one, whom you have seen (and whom I cannot hate, whilst I abhor
13872 all his kindred, because he has some grains of affection in his feeble
13873 mind, shown in the continued interest he takes in his wretched sister,
13874 and also in a dog-like attachment he once bore me), will probably be in
13875 the same state one day. My father and my brother Rowland knew all this;
13876 but they thought only of the thirty thousand pounds, and joined in the
13877 plot against me."
13878
13879 "These were vile discoveries; but except for the treachery of
13880 concealment, I should have made them no subject of reproach to my wife,
13881 even when I found her nature wholly alien to mine, her tastes obnoxious
13882 to me, her cast of mind common, low, narrow, and singularly incapable of
13883 being led to anything higher, expanded to anything larger--when I found
13884 that I could not pass a single evening, nor even a single hour of the day
13885 with her in comfort; that kindly conversation could not be sustained
13886 between us, because whatever topic I started, immediately received from
13887 her a turn at once coarse and trite, perverse and imbecile--when I
13888 perceived that I should never have a quiet or settled household, because
13889 no servant would bear the continued outbreaks of her violent and
13890 unreasonable temper, or the vexations of her absurd, contradictory,
13891 exacting orders--even then I restrained myself: I eschewed upbraiding, I
13892 curtailed remonstrance; I tried to devour my repentance and disgust in
13893 secret; I repressed the deep antipathy I felt.
13894
13895 "Jane, I will not trouble you with abominable details: some strong words
13896 shall express what I have to say. I lived with that woman upstairs four
13897 years, and before that time she had tried me indeed: her character
13898 ripened and developed with frightful rapidity; her vices sprang up fast
13899 and rank: they were so strong, only cruelty could check them, and I would
13900 not use cruelty. What a pigmy intellect she had, and what giant
13901 propensities! How fearful were the curses those propensities entailed on
13902 me! Bertha Mason, the true daughter of an infamous mother, dragged me
13903 through all the hideous and degrading agonies which must attend a man
13904 bound to a wife at once intemperate and unchaste.
13905
13906 "My brother in the interval was dead, and at the end of the four years my
13907 father died too. I was rich enough now--yet poor to hideous indigence: a
13908 nature the most gross, impure, depraved I ever saw, was associated with
13909 mine, and called by the law and by society a part of me. And I could not
13910 rid myself of it by any legal proceedings: for the doctors now discovered
13911 that _my wife_ was mad--her excesses had prematurely developed the germs
13912 of insanity. Jane, you don't like my narrative; you look almost
13913 sick--shall I defer the rest to another day?"
13914
13915 "No, sir, finish it now; I pity you--I do earnestly pity you."
13916
13917 "Pity, Jane, from some people is a noxious and insulting sort of tribute,
13918 which one is justified in hurling back in the teeth of those who offer
13919 it; but that is the sort of pity native to callous, selfish hearts; it is
13920 a hybrid, egotistical pain at hearing of woes, crossed with ignorant
13921 contempt for those who have endured them. But that is not your pity,
13922 Jane; it is not the feeling of which your whole face is full at this
13923 moment--with which your eyes are now almost overflowing--with which your
13924 heart is heaving--with which your hand is trembling in mine. Your pity,
13925 my darling, is the suffering mother of love: its anguish is the very
13926 natal pang of the divine passion. I accept it, Jane; let the daughter
13927 have free advent--my arms wait to receive her."
13928
13929 "Now, sir, proceed; what did you do when you found she was mad?"
13930
13931 "Jane, I approached the verge of despair; a remnant of self-respect was
13932 all that intervened between me and the gulf. In the eyes of the world, I
13933 was doubtless covered with grimy dishonour; but I resolved to be clean in
13934 my own sight--and to the last I repudiated the contamination of her
13935 crimes, and wrenched myself from connection with her mental defects.
13936 Still, society associated my name and person with hers; I yet saw her and
13937 heard her daily: something of her breath (faugh!) mixed with the air I
13938 breathed; and besides, I remembered I had once been her husband--that
13939 recollection was then, and is now, inexpressibly odious to me; moreover,
13940 I knew that while she lived I could never be the husband of another and
13941 better wife; and, though five years my senior (her family and her father
13942 had lied to me even in the particular of her age), she was likely to live
13943 as long as I, being as robust in frame as she was infirm in mind. Thus,
13944 at the age of twenty-six, I was hopeless.
13945
13946 "One night I had been awakened by her yells--(since the medical men had
13947 pronounced her mad, she had, of course, been shut up)--it was a fiery
13948 West Indian night; one of the description that frequently precede the
13949 hurricanes of those climates. Being unable to sleep in bed, I got up and
13950 opened the window. The air was like sulphur-steams--I could find no
13951 refreshment anywhere. Mosquitoes came buzzing in and hummed sullenly
13952 round the room; the sea, which I could hear from thence, rumbled dull
13953 like an earthquake--black clouds were casting up over it; the moon was
13954 setting in the waves, broad and red, like a hot cannon-ball--she threw
13955 her last bloody glance over a world quivering with the ferment of
13956 tempest. I was physically influenced by the atmosphere and scene, and my
13957 ears were filled with the curses the maniac still shrieked out; wherein
13958 she momentarily mingled my name with such a tone of demon-hate, with such
13959 language!--no professed harlot ever had a fouler vocabulary than she:
13960 though two rooms off, I heard every word--the thin partitions of the West
13961 India house opposing but slight obstruction to her wolfish cries.
13962
13963 "'This life,' said I at last, 'is hell: this is the air--those are the
13964 sounds of the bottomless pit! I have a right to deliver myself from it
13965 if I can. The sufferings of this mortal state will leave me with the
13966 heavy flesh that now cumbers my soul. Of the fanatic's burning eternity
13967 I have no fear: there is not a future state worse than this present
13968 one--let me break away, and go home to God!'
13969
13970 "I said this whilst I knelt down at, and unlocked a trunk which contained
13971 a brace of loaded pistols: I mean to shoot myself. I only entertained
13972 the intention for a moment; for, not being insane, the crisis of
13973 exquisite and unalloyed despair, which had originated the wish and design
13974 of self-destruction, was past in a second.
13975
13976 "A wind fresh from Europe blew over the ocean and rushed through the open
13977 casement: the storm broke, streamed, thundered, blazed, and the air grew
13978 pure. I then framed and fixed a resolution. While I walked under the
13979 dripping orange-trees of my wet garden, and amongst its drenched
13980 pomegranates and pine-apples, and while the refulgent dawn of the tropics
13981 kindled round me--I reasoned thus, Jane--and now listen; for it was true
13982 Wisdom that consoled me in that hour, and showed me the right path to
13983 follow.
13984
13985 "The sweet wind from Europe was still whispering in the refreshed leaves,
13986 and the Atlantic was thundering in glorious liberty; my heart, dried up
13987 and scorched for a long time, swelled to the tone, and filled with living
13988 blood--my being longed for renewal--my soul thirsted for a pure draught.
13989 I saw hope revive--and felt regeneration possible. From a flowery arch
13990 at the bottom of my garden I gazed over the sea--bluer than the sky: the
13991 old world was beyond; clear prospects opened thus:--
13992
13993 "'Go,' said Hope, 'and live again in Europe: there it is not known what a
13994 sullied name you bear, nor what a filthy burden is bound to you. You may
13995 take the maniac with you to England; confine her with due attendance and
13996 precautions at Thornfield: then travel yourself to what clime you will,
13997 and form what new tie you like. That woman, who has so abused your long-
13998 suffering, so sullied your name, so outraged your honour, so blighted
13999 your youth, is not your wife, nor are you her husband. See that she is
14000 cared for as her condition demands, and you have done all that God and
14001 humanity require of you. Let her identity, her connection with yourself,
14002 be buried in oblivion: you are bound to impart them to no living being.
14003 Place her in safety and comfort: shelter her degradation with secrecy,
14004 and leave her.'
14005
14006 "I acted precisely on this suggestion. My father and brother had not
14007 made my marriage known to their acquaintance; because, in the very first
14008 letter I wrote to apprise them of the union--having already begun to
14009 experience extreme disgust of its consequences, and, from the family
14010 character and constitution, seeing a hideous future opening to me--I
14011 added an urgent charge to keep it secret: and very soon the infamous
14012 conduct of the wife my father had selected for me was such as to make him
14013 blush to own her as his daughter-in-law. Far from desiring to publish
14014 the connection, he became as anxious to conceal it as myself.
14015
14016 "To England, then, I conveyed her; a fearful voyage I had with such a
14017 monster in the vessel. Glad was I when I at last got her to Thornfield,
14018 and saw her safely lodged in that third-storey room, of whose secret
14019 inner cabinet she has now for ten years made a wild beast's den--a
14020 goblin's cell. I had some trouble in finding an attendant for her, as it
14021 was necessary to select one on whose fidelity dependence could be placed;
14022 for her ravings would inevitably betray my secret: besides, she had lucid
14023 intervals of days--sometimes weeks--which she filled up with abuse of me.
14024 At last I hired Grace Poole from the Grimbsy Retreat. She and the
14025 surgeon, Carter (who dressed Mason's wounds that night he was stabbed and
14026 worried), are the only two I have ever admitted to my confidence. Mrs.
14027 Fairfax may indeed have suspected something, but she could have gained no
14028 precise knowledge as to facts. Grace has, on the whole, proved a good
14029 keeper; though, owing partly to a fault of her own, of which it appears
14030 nothing can cure her, and which is incident to her harassing profession,
14031 her vigilance has been more than once lulled and baffled. The lunatic is
14032 both cunning and malignant; she has never failed to take advantage of her
14033 guardian's temporary lapses; once to secrete the knife with which she
14034 stabbed her brother, and twice to possess herself of the key of her cell,
14035 and issue therefrom in the night-time. On the first of these occasions,
14036 she perpetrated the attempt to burn me in my bed; on the second, she paid
14037 that ghastly visit to you. I thank Providence, who watched over you,
14038 that she then spent her fury on your wedding apparel, which perhaps
14039 brought back vague reminiscences of her own bridal days: but on what
14040 might have happened, I cannot endure to reflect. When I think of the
14041 thing which flew at my throat this morning, hanging its black and scarlet
14042 visage over the nest of my dove, my blood curdles--"
14043
14044 "And what, sir," I asked, while he paused, "did you do when you had
14045 settled her here? Where did you go?"
14046
14047 "What did I do, Jane? I transformed myself into a will-o'-the-wisp.
14048 Where did I go? I pursued wanderings as wild as those of the
14049 March-spirit. I sought the Continent, and went devious through all its
14050 lands. My fixed desire was to seek and find a good and intelligent
14051 woman, whom I could love: a contrast to the fury I left at Thornfield--"
14052
14053 "But you could not marry, sir."
14054
14055 "I had determined and was convinced that I could and ought. It was not
14056 my original intention to deceive, as I have deceived you. I meant to
14057 tell my tale plainly, and make my proposals openly: and it appeared to me
14058 so absolutely rational that I should be considered free to love and be
14059 loved, I never doubted some woman might be found willing and able to
14060 understand my case and accept me, in spite of the curse with which I was
14061 burdened."
14062
14063 "Well, sir?"
14064
14065 "When you are inquisitive, Jane, you always make me smile. You open your
14066 eyes like an eager bird, and make every now and then a restless movement,
14067 as if answers in speech did not flow fast enough for you, and you wanted
14068 to read the tablet of one's heart. But before I go on, tell me what you
14069 mean by your 'Well, sir?' It is a small phrase very frequent with you;
14070 and which many a time has drawn me on and on through interminable talk: I
14071 don't very well know why."
14072
14073 "I mean,--What next? How did you proceed? What came of such an event?"
14074
14075 "Precisely! and what do you wish to know now?"
14076
14077 "Whether you found any one you liked: whether you asked her to marry you;
14078 and what she said."
14079
14080 "I can tell you whether I found any one I liked, and whether I asked her
14081 to marry me: but what she said is yet to be recorded in the book of Fate.
14082 For ten long years I roved about, living first in one capital, then
14083 another: sometimes in St. Petersburg; oftener in Paris; occasionally in
14084 Rome, Naples, and Florence. Provided with plenty of money and the
14085 passport of an old name, I could choose my own society: no circles were
14086 closed against me. I sought my ideal of a woman amongst English ladies,
14087 French countesses, Italian signoras, and German grafinnen. I could not
14088 find her. Sometimes, for a fleeting moment, I thought I caught a glance,
14089 heard a tone, beheld a form, which announced the realisation of my dream:
14090 but I was presently undeserved. You are not to suppose that I desired
14091 perfection, either of mind or person. I longed only for what suited
14092 me--for the antipodes of the Creole: and I longed vainly. Amongst them
14093 all I found not one whom, had I been ever so free, I--warned as I was of
14094 the risks, the horrors, the loathings of incongruous unions--would have
14095 asked to marry me. Disappointment made me reckless. I tried
14096 dissipation--never debauchery: that I hated, and hate. That was my
14097 Indian Messalina's attribute: rooted disgust at it and her restrained me
14098 much, even in pleasure. Any enjoyment that bordered on riot seemed to
14099 approach me to her and her vices, and I eschewed it.
14100
14101 "Yet I could not live alone; so I tried the companionship of mistresses.
14102 The first I chose was Celine Varens--another of those steps which make a
14103 man spurn himself when he recalls them. You already know what she was,
14104 and how my liaison with her terminated. She had two successors: an
14105 Italian, Giacinta, and a German, Clara; both considered singularly
14106 handsome. What was their beauty to me in a few weeks? Giacinta was
14107 unprincipled and violent: I tired of her in three months. Clara was
14108 honest and quiet; but heavy, mindless, and unimpressible: not one whit to
14109 my taste. I was glad to give her a sufficient sum to set her up in a
14110 good line of business, and so get decently rid of her. But, Jane, I see
14111 by your face you are not forming a very favourable opinion of me just
14112 now. You think me an unfeeling, loose-principled rake: don't you?"
14113
14114 "I don't like you so well as I have done sometimes, indeed, sir. Did it
14115 not seem to you in the least wrong to live in that way, first with one
14116 mistress and then another? You talk of it as a mere matter of course."
14117
14118 "It was with me; and I did not like it. It was a grovelling fashion of
14119 existence: I should never like to return to it. Hiring a mistress is the
14120 next worse thing to buying a slave: both are often by nature, and always
14121 by position, inferior: and to live familiarly with inferiors is
14122 degrading. I now hate the recollection of the time I passed with Celine,
14123 Giacinta, and Clara."
14124
14125 I felt the truth of these words; and I drew from them the certain
14126 inference, that if I were so far to forget myself and all the teaching
14127 that had ever been instilled into me, as--under any pretext--with any
14128 justification--through any temptation--to become the successor of these
14129 poor girls, he would one day regard me with the same feeling which now in
14130 his mind desecrated their memory. I did not give utterance to this
14131 conviction: it was enough to feel it. I impressed it on my heart, that
14132 it might remain there to serve me as aid in the time of trial.
14133
14134 "Now, Jane, why don't you say 'Well, sir?' I have not done. You are
14135 looking grave. You disapprove of me still, I see. But let me come to
14136 the point. Last January, rid of all mistresses--in a harsh, bitter frame
14137 of mind, the result of a useless, roving, lonely life--corroded with
14138 disappointment, sourly disposed against all men, and especially against
14139 all womankind (for I began to regard the notion of an intellectual,
14140 faithful, loving woman as a mere dream), recalled by business, I came
14141 back to England.
14142
14143 "On a frosty winter afternoon, I rode in sight of Thornfield Hall.
14144 Abhorred spot! I expected no peace--no pleasure there. On a stile in
14145 Hay Lane I saw a quiet little figure sitting by itself. I passed it as
14146 negligently as I did the pollard willow opposite to it: I had no
14147 presentiment of what it would be to me; no inward warning that the
14148 arbitress of my life--my genius for good or evil--waited there in humble
14149 guise. I did not know it, even when, on the occasion of Mesrour's
14150 accident, it came up and gravely offered me help. Childish and slender
14151 creature! It seemed as if a linnet had hopped to my foot and proposed to
14152 bear me on its tiny wing. I was surly; but the thing would not go: it
14153 stood by me with strange perseverance, and looked and spoke with a sort
14154 of authority. I must be aided, and by that hand: and aided I was.
14155
14156 "When once I had pressed the frail shoulder, something new--a fresh sap
14157 and sense--stole into my frame. It was well I had learnt that this elf
14158 must return to me--that it belonged to my house down below--or I could
14159 not have felt it pass away from under my hand, and seen it vanish behind
14160 the dim hedge, without singular regret. I heard you come home that
14161 night, Jane, though probably you were not aware that I thought of you or
14162 watched for you. The next day I observed you--myself unseen--for half-an-
14163 hour, while you played with Adele in the gallery. It was a snowy day, I
14164 recollect, and you could not go out of doors. I was in my room; the door
14165 was ajar: I could both listen and watch. Adele claimed your outward
14166 attention for a while; yet I fancied your thoughts were elsewhere: but
14167 you were very patient with her, my little Jane; you talked to her and
14168 amused her a long time. When at last she left you, you lapsed at once
14169 into deep reverie: you betook yourself slowly to pace the gallery. Now
14170 and then, in passing a casement, you glanced out at the thick-falling
14171 snow; you listened to the sobbing wind, and again you paced gently on and
14172 dreamed. I think those day visions were not dark: there was a
14173 pleasurable illumination in your eye occasionally, a soft excitement in
14174 your aspect, which told of no bitter, bilious, hypochondriac brooding:
14175 your look revealed rather the sweet musings of youth when its spirit
14176 follows on willing wings the flight of Hope up and on to an ideal heaven.
14177 The voice of Mrs. Fairfax, speaking to a servant in the hall, wakened
14178 you: and how curiously you smiled to and at yourself, Janet! There was
14179 much sense in your smile: it was very shrewd, and seemed to make light of
14180 your own abstraction. It seemed to say--'My fine visions are all very
14181 well, but I must not forget they are absolutely unreal. I have a rosy
14182 sky and a green flowery Eden in my brain; but without, I am perfectly
14183 aware, lies at my feet a rough tract to travel, and around me gather
14184 black tempests to encounter.' You ran downstairs and demanded of Mrs.
14185 Fairfax some occupation: the weekly house accounts to make up, or
14186 something of that sort, I think it was. I was vexed with you for getting
14187 out of my sight.
14188
14189 "Impatiently I waited for evening, when I might summon you to my
14190 presence. An unusual--to me--a perfectly new character I suspected was
14191 yours: I desired to search it deeper and know it better. You entered the
14192 room with a look and air at once shy and independent: you were quaintly
14193 dressed--much as you are now. I made you talk: ere long I found you full
14194 of strange contrasts. Your garb and manner were restricted by rule; your
14195 air was often diffident, and altogether that of one refined by nature,
14196 but absolutely unused to society, and a good deal afraid of making
14197 herself disadvantageously conspicuous by some solecism or blunder; yet
14198 when addressed, you lifted a keen, a daring, and a glowing eye to your
14199 interlocutor's face: there was penetration and power in each glance you
14200 gave; when plied by close questions, you found ready and round answers.
14201 Very soon you seemed to get used to me: I believe you felt the existence
14202 of sympathy between you and your grim and cross master, Jane; for it was
14203 astonishing to see how quickly a certain pleasant ease tranquillised your
14204 manner: snarl as I would, you showed no surprise, fear, annoyance, or
14205 displeasure at my moroseness; you watched me, and now and then smiled at
14206 me with a simple yet sagacious grace I cannot describe. I was at once
14207 content and stimulated with what I saw: I liked what I had seen, and
14208 wished to see more. Yet, for a long time, I treated you distantly, and
14209 sought your company rarely. I was an intellectual epicure, and wished to
14210 prolong the gratification of making this novel and piquant acquaintance:
14211 besides, I was for a while troubled with a haunting fear that if I
14212 handled the flower freely its bloom would fade--the sweet charm of
14213 freshness would leave it. I did not then know that it was no transitory
14214 blossom, but rather the radiant resemblance of one, cut in an
14215 indestructible gem. Moreover, I wished to see whether you would seek me
14216 if I shunned you--but you did not; you kept in the schoolroom as still as
14217 your own desk and easel; if by chance I met you, you passed me as soon,
14218 and with as little token of recognition, as was consistent with respect.
14219 Your habitual expression in those days, Jane, was a thoughtful look; not
14220 despondent, for you were not sickly; but not buoyant, for you had little
14221 hope, and no actual pleasure. I wondered what you thought of me, or if
14222 you ever thought of me, and resolved to find this out.
14223
14224 "I resumed my notice of you. There was something glad in your glance,
14225 and genial in your manner, when you conversed: I saw you had a social
14226 heart; it was the silent schoolroom--it was the tedium of your life--that
14227 made you mournful. I permitted myself the delight of being kind to you;
14228 kindness stirred emotion soon: your face became soft in expression, your
14229 tones gentle; I liked my name pronounced by your lips in a grateful happy
14230 accent. I used to enjoy a chance meeting with you, Jane, at this time:
14231 there was a curious hesitation in your manner: you glanced at me with a
14232 slight trouble--a hovering doubt: you did not know what my caprice might
14233 be--whether I was going to play the master and be stern, or the friend
14234 and be benignant. I was now too fond of you often to simulate the first
14235 whim; and, when I stretched my hand out cordially, such bloom and light
14236 and bliss rose to your young, wistful features, I had much ado often to
14237 avoid straining you then and there to my heart."
14238
14239 "Don't talk any more of those days, sir," I interrupted, furtively
14240 dashing away some tears from my eyes; his language was torture to me; for
14241 I knew what I must do--and do soon--and all these reminiscences, and
14242 these revelations of his feelings only made my work more difficult.
14243
14244 "No, Jane," he returned: "what necessity is there to dwell on the Past,
14245 when the Present is so much surer--the Future so much brighter?"
14246
14247 I shuddered to hear the infatuated assertion.
14248
14249 "You see now how the case stands--do you not?" he continued. "After a
14250 youth and manhood passed half in unutterable misery and half in dreary
14251 solitude, I have for the first time found what I can truly love--I have
14252 found you. You are my sympathy--my better self--my good angel. I am
14253 bound to you with a strong attachment. I think you good, gifted, lovely:
14254 a fervent, a solemn passion is conceived in my heart; it leans to you,
14255 draws you to my centre and spring of life, wraps my existence about you,
14256 and, kindling in pure, powerful flame, fuses you and me in one.
14257
14258 "It was because I felt and knew this, that I resolved to marry you. To
14259 tell me that I had already a wife is empty mockery: you know now that I
14260 had but a hideous demon. I was wrong to attempt to deceive you; but I
14261 feared a stubbornness that exists in your character. I feared early
14262 instilled prejudice: I wanted to have you safe before hazarding
14263 confidences. This was cowardly: I should have appealed to your nobleness
14264 and magnanimity at first, as I do now--opened to you plainly my life of
14265 agony--described to you my hunger and thirst after a higher and worthier
14266 existence--shown to you, not my _resolution_ (that word is weak), but my
14267 resistless _bent_ to love faithfully and well, where I am faithfully and
14268 well loved in return. Then I should have asked you to accept my pledge
14269 of fidelity and to give me yours. Jane--give it me now."
14270
14271 A pause.
14272
14273 "Why are you silent, Jane?"
14274
14275 I was experiencing an ordeal: a hand of fiery iron grasped my vitals.
14276 Terrible moment: full of struggle, blackness, burning! Not a human being
14277 that ever lived could wish to be loved better than I was loved; and him
14278 who thus loved me I absolutely worshipped: and I must renounce love and
14279 idol. One drear word comprised my intolerable duty--"Depart!"
14280
14281 "Jane, you understand what I want of you? Just this promise--'I will be
14282 yours, Mr. Rochester.'"
14283
14284 "Mr. Rochester, I will _not_ be yours."
14285
14286 Another long silence.
14287
14288 "Jane!" recommenced he, with a gentleness that broke me down with grief,
14289 and turned me stone-cold with ominous terror--for this still voice was
14290 the pant of a lion rising--"Jane, do you mean to go one way in the world,
14291 and to let me go another?"
14292
14293 "I do."
14294
14295 "Jane" (bending towards and embracing me), "do you mean it now?"
14296
14297 "I do."
14298
14299 "And now?" softly kissing my forehead and cheek.
14300
14301 "I do," extricating myself from restraint rapidly and completely.
14302
14303 "Oh, Jane, this is bitter! This--this is wicked. It would not be wicked
14304 to love me."
14305
14306 "It would to obey you."
14307
14308 A wild look raised his brows--crossed his features: he rose; but he
14309 forebore yet. I laid my hand on the back of a chair for support: I
14310 shook, I feared--but I resolved.
14311
14312 "One instant, Jane. Give one glance to my horrible life when you are
14313 gone. All happiness will be torn away with you. What then is left? For
14314 a wife I have but the maniac upstairs: as well might you refer me to some
14315 corpse in yonder churchyard. What shall I do, Jane? Where turn for a
14316 companion and for some hope?"
14317
14318 "Do as I do: trust in God and yourself. Believe in heaven. Hope to meet
14319 again there."
14320
14321 "Then you will not yield?"
14322
14323 "No."
14324
14325 "Then you condemn me to live wretched and to die accursed?" His voice
14326 rose.
14327
14328 "I advise you to live sinless, and I wish you to die tranquil."
14329
14330 "Then you snatch love and innocence from me? You fling me back on lust
14331 for a passion--vice for an occupation?"
14332
14333 "Mr. Rochester, I no more assign this fate to you than I grasp at it for
14334 myself. We were born to strive and endure--you as well as I: do so. You
14335 will forget me before I forget you."
14336
14337 "You make me a liar by such language: you sully my honour. I declared I
14338 could not change: you tell me to my face I shall change soon. And what a
14339 distortion in your judgment, what a perversity in your ideas, is proved
14340 by your conduct! Is it better to drive a fellow-creature to despair than
14341 to transgress a mere human law, no man being injured by the breach? for
14342 you have neither relatives nor acquaintances whom you need fear to offend
14343 by living with me?"
14344
14345 This was true: and while he spoke my very conscience and reason turned
14346 traitors against me, and charged me with crime in resisting him. They
14347 spoke almost as loud as Feeling: and that clamoured wildly. "Oh,
14348 comply!" it said. "Think of his misery; think of his danger--look at his
14349 state when left alone; remember his headlong nature; consider the
14350 recklessness following on despair--soothe him; save him; love him; tell
14351 him you love him and will be his. Who in the world cares for _you_? or
14352 who will be injured by what you do?"
14353
14354 Still indomitable was the reply--"_I_ care for myself. The more
14355 solitary, the more friendless, the more unsustained I am, the more I will
14356 respect myself. I will keep the law given by God; sanctioned by man. I
14357 will hold to the principles received by me when I was sane, and not
14358 mad--as I am now. Laws and principles are not for the times when there
14359 is no temptation: they are for such moments as this, when body and soul
14360 rise in mutiny against their rigour; stringent are they; inviolate they
14361 shall be. If at my individual convenience I might break them, what would
14362 be their worth? They have a worth--so I have always believed; and if I
14363 cannot believe it now, it is because I am insane--quite insane: with my
14364 veins running fire, and my heart beating faster than I can count its
14365 throbs. Preconceived opinions, foregone determinations, are all I have
14366 at this hour to stand by: there I plant my foot."
14367
14368 I did. Mr. Rochester, reading my countenance, saw I had done so. His
14369 fury was wrought to the highest: he must yield to it for a moment,
14370 whatever followed; he crossed the floor and seized my arm and grasped my
14371 waist. He seemed to devour me with his flaming glance: physically, I
14372 felt, at the moment, powerless as stubble exposed to the draught and glow
14373 of a furnace: mentally, I still possessed my soul, and with it the
14374 certainty of ultimate safety. The soul, fortunately, has an
14375 interpreter--often an unconscious, but still a truthful interpreter--in
14376 the eye. My eye rose to his; and while I looked in his fierce face I
14377 gave an involuntary sigh; his gripe was painful, and my over-taxed
14378 strength almost exhausted.
14379
14380 "Never," said he, as he ground his teeth, "never was anything at once so
14381 frail and so indomitable. A mere reed she feels in my hand!" (And he
14382 shook me with the force of his hold.) "I could bend her with my finger
14383 and thumb: and what good would it do if I bent, if I uptore, if I crushed
14384 her? Consider that eye: consider the resolute, wild, free thing looking
14385 out of it, defying me, with more than courage--with a stern triumph.
14386 Whatever I do with its cage, I cannot get at it--the savage, beautiful
14387 creature! If I tear, if I rend the slight prison, my outrage will only
14388 let the captive loose. Conqueror I might be of the house; but the inmate
14389 would escape to heaven before I could call myself possessor of its clay
14390 dwelling-place. And it is you, spirit--with will and energy, and virtue
14391 and purity--that I want: not alone your brittle frame. Of yourself you
14392 could come with soft flight and nestle against my heart, if you would:
14393 seized against your will, you will elude the grasp like an essence--you
14394 will vanish ere I inhale your fragrance. Oh! come, Jane, come!"
14395
14396 As he said this, he released me from his clutch, and only looked at me.
14397 The look was far worse to resist than the frantic strain: only an idiot,
14398 however, would have succumbed now. I had dared and baffled his fury; I
14399 must elude his sorrow: I retired to the door.
14400
14401 "You are going, Jane?"
14402
14403 "I am going, sir."
14404
14405 "You are leaving me?"
14406
14407 "Yes."
14408
14409 "You will not come? You will not be my comforter, my rescuer? My deep
14410 love, my wild woe, my frantic prayer, are all nothing to you?"
14411
14412 What unutterable pathos was in his voice! How hard it was to reiterate
14413 firmly, "I am going."
14414
14415 "Jane!"
14416
14417 "Mr. Rochester!"
14418
14419 "Withdraw, then,--I consent; but remember, you leave me here in anguish.
14420 Go up to your own room; think over all I have said, and, Jane, cast a
14421 glance on my sufferings--think of me."
14422
14423 He turned away; he threw himself on his face on the sofa. "Oh, Jane! my
14424 hope--my love--my life!" broke in anguish from his lips. Then came a
14425 deep, strong sob.
14426
14427 I had already gained the door; but, reader, I walked back--walked back as
14428 determinedly as I had retreated. I knelt down by him; I turned his face
14429 from the cushion to me; I kissed his cheek; I smoothed his hair with my
14430 hand.
14431
14432 "God bless you, my dear master!" I said. "God keep you from harm and
14433 wrong--direct you, solace you--reward you well for your past kindness to
14434 me."
14435
14436 "Little Jane's love would have been my best reward," he answered;
14437 "without it, my heart is broken. But Jane will give me her love:
14438 yes--nobly, generously."
14439
14440 Up the blood rushed to his face; forth flashed the fire from his eyes;
14441 erect he sprang; he held his arms out; but I evaded the embrace, and at
14442 once quitted the room.
14443
14444 "Farewell!" was the cry of my heart as I left him. Despair added,
14445 "Farewell for ever!"
14446
14447 * * * * *
14448
14449 That night I never thought to sleep; but a slumber fell on me as soon as
14450 I lay down in bed. I was transported in thought to the scenes of
14451 childhood: I dreamt I lay in the red-room at Gateshead; that the night
14452 was dark, and my mind impressed with strange fears. The light that long
14453 ago had struck me into syncope, recalled in this vision, seemed glidingly
14454 to mount the wall, and tremblingly to pause in the centre of the obscured
14455 ceiling. I lifted up my head to look: the roof resolved to clouds, high
14456 and dim; the gleam was such as the moon imparts to vapours she is about
14457 to sever. I watched her come--watched with the strangest anticipation;
14458 as though some word of doom were to be written on her disk. She broke
14459 forth as never moon yet burst from cloud: a hand first penetrated the
14460 sable folds and waved them away; then, not a moon, but a white human form
14461 shone in the azure, inclining a glorious brow earthward. It gazed and
14462 gazed on me. It spoke to my spirit: immeasurably distant was the tone,
14463 yet so near, it whispered in my heart--
14464
14465 "My daughter, flee temptation."
14466
14467 "Mother, I will."
14468
14469 So I answered after I had waked from the trance-like dream. It was yet
14470 night, but July nights are short: soon after midnight, dawn comes. "It
14471 cannot be too early to commence the task I have to fulfil," thought I. I
14472 rose: I was dressed; for I had taken off nothing but my shoes. I knew
14473 where to find in my drawers some linen, a locket, a ring. In seeking
14474 these articles, I encountered the beads of a pearl necklace Mr. Rochester
14475 had forced me to accept a few days ago. I left that; it was not mine: it
14476 was the visionary bride's who had melted in air. The other articles I
14477 made up in a parcel; my purse, containing twenty shillings (it was all I
14478 had), I put in my pocket: I tied on my straw bonnet, pinned my shawl,
14479 took the parcel and my slippers, which I would not put on yet, and stole
14480 from my room.
14481
14482 "Farewell, kind Mrs. Fairfax!" I whispered, as I glided past her door.
14483 "Farewell, my darling Adele!" I said, as I glanced towards the nursery.
14484 No thought could be admitted of entering to embrace her. I had to
14485 deceive a fine ear: for aught I knew it might now be listening.
14486
14487 I would have got past Mr. Rochester's chamber without a pause; but my
14488 heart momentarily stopping its beat at that threshold, my foot was forced
14489 to stop also. No sleep was there: the inmate was walking restlessly from
14490 wall to wall; and again and again he sighed while I listened. There was
14491 a heaven--a temporary heaven--in this room for me, if I chose: I had but
14492 to go in and to say--
14493
14494 "Mr. Rochester, I will love you and live with you through life till
14495 death," and a fount of rapture would spring to my lips. I thought of
14496 this.
14497
14498 That kind master, who could not sleep now, was waiting with impatience
14499 for day. He would send for me in the morning; I should be gone. He
14500 would have me sought for: vainly. He would feel himself forsaken; his
14501 love rejected: he would suffer; perhaps grow desperate. I thought of
14502 this too. My hand moved towards the lock: I caught it back, and glided
14503 on.
14504
14505 Drearily I wound my way downstairs: I knew what I had to do, and I did it
14506 mechanically. I sought the key of the side-door in the kitchen; I
14507 sought, too, a phial of oil and a feather; I oiled the key and the lock.
14508 I got some water, I got some bread: for perhaps I should have to walk
14509 far; and my strength, sorely shaken of late, must not break down. All
14510 this I did without one sound. I opened the door, passed out, shut it
14511 softly. Dim dawn glimmered in the yard. The great gates were closed and
14512 locked; but a wicket in one of them was only latched. Through that I
14513 departed: it, too, I shut; and now I was out of Thornfield.
14514
14515 A mile off, beyond the fields, lay a road which stretched in the contrary
14516 direction to Millcote; a road I had never travelled, but often noticed,
14517 and wondered where it led: thither I bent my steps. No reflection was to
14518 be allowed now: not one glance was to be cast back; not even one forward.
14519 Not one thought was to be given either to the past or the future. The
14520 first was a page so heavenly sweet--so deadly sad--that to read one line
14521 of it would dissolve my courage and break down my energy. The last was
14522 an awful blank: something like the world when the deluge was gone by.
14523
14524 I skirted fields, and hedges, and lanes till after sunrise. I believe it
14525 was a lovely summer morning: I know my shoes, which I had put on when I
14526 left the house, were soon wet with dew. But I looked neither to rising
14527 sun, nor smiling sky, nor wakening nature. He who is taken out to pass
14528 through a fair scene to the scaffold, thinks not of the flowers that
14529 smile on his road, but of the block and axe-edge; of the disseverment of
14530 bone and vein; of the grave gaping at the end: and I thought of drear
14531 flight and homeless wandering--and oh! with agony I thought of what I
14532 left. I could not help it. I thought of him now--in his room--watching
14533 the sunrise; hoping I should soon come to say I would stay with him and
14534 be his. I longed to be his; I panted to return: it was not too late; I
14535 could yet spare him the bitter pang of bereavement. As yet my flight, I
14536 was sure, was undiscovered. I could go back and be his comforter--his
14537 pride; his redeemer from misery, perhaps from ruin. Oh, that fear of his
14538 self-abandonment--far worse than my abandonment--how it goaded me! It
14539 was a barbed arrow-head in my breast; it tore me when I tried to extract
14540 it; it sickened me when remembrance thrust it farther in. Birds began
14541 singing in brake and copse: birds were faithful to their mates; birds
14542 were emblems of love. What was I? In the midst of my pain of heart and
14543 frantic effort of principle, I abhorred myself. I had no solace from
14544 self-approbation: none even from self-respect. I had
14545 injured--wounded--left my master. I was hateful in my own eyes. Still I
14546 could not turn, nor retrace one step. God must have led me on. As to my
14547 own will or conscience, impassioned grief had trampled one and stifled
14548 the other. I was weeping wildly as I walked along my solitary way: fast,
14549 fast I went like one delirious. A weakness, beginning inwardly,
14550 extending to the limbs, seized me, and I fell: I lay on the ground some
14551 minutes, pressing my face to the wet turf. I had some fear--or hope--that
14552 here I should die: but I was soon up; crawling forwards on my hands and
14553 knees, and then again raised to my feet--as eager and as determined as
14554 ever to reach the road.
14555
14556 When I got there, I was forced to sit to rest me under the hedge; and
14557 while I sat, I heard wheels, and saw a coach come on. I stood up and
14558 lifted my hand; it stopped. I asked where it was going: the driver named
14559 a place a long way off, and where I was sure Mr. Rochester had no
14560 connections. I asked for what sum he would take me there; he said thirty
14561 shillings; I answered I had but twenty; well, he would try to make it do.
14562 He further gave me leave to get into the inside, as the vehicle was
14563 empty: I entered, was shut in, and it rolled on its way.
14564
14565 Gentle reader, may you never feel what I then felt! May your eyes never
14566 shed such stormy, scalding, heart-wrung tears as poured from mine. May
14567 you never appeal to Heaven in prayers so hopeless and so agonised as in
14568 that hour left my lips; for never may you, like me, dread to be the
14569 instrument of evil to what you wholly love.
14570
14571
14572
14573
14574 CHAPTER XXVIII
14575
14576
14577 Two days are passed. It is a summer evening; the coachman has set me
14578 down at a place called Whitcross; he could take me no farther for the sum
14579 I had given, and I was not possessed of another shilling in the world.
14580 The coach is a mile off by this time; I am alone. At this moment I
14581 discover that I forgot to take my parcel out of the pocket of the coach,
14582 where I had placed it for safety; there it remains, there it must remain;
14583 and now, I am absolutely destitute.
14584
14585 Whitcross is no town, nor even a hamlet; it is but a stone pillar set up
14586 where four roads meet: whitewashed, I suppose, to be more obvious at a
14587 distance and in darkness. Four arms spring from its summit: the nearest
14588 town to which these point is, according to the inscription, distant ten
14589 miles; the farthest, above twenty. From the well-known names of these
14590 towns I learn in what county I have lighted; a north-midland shire, dusk
14591 with moorland, ridged with mountain: this I see. There are great moors
14592 behind and on each hand of me; there are waves of mountains far beyond
14593 that deep valley at my feet. The population here must be thin, and I see
14594 no passengers on these roads: they stretch out east, west, north, and
14595 south--white, broad, lonely; they are all cut in the moor, and the
14596 heather grows deep and wild to their very verge. Yet a chance traveller
14597 might pass by; and I wish no eye to see me now: strangers would wonder
14598 what I am doing, lingering here at the sign-post, evidently objectless
14599 and lost. I might be questioned: I could give no answer but what would
14600 sound incredible and excite suspicion. Not a tie holds me to human
14601 society at this moment--not a charm or hope calls me where my
14602 fellow-creatures are--none that saw me would have a kind thought or a
14603 good wish for me. I have no relative but the universal mother, Nature: I
14604 will seek her breast and ask repose.
14605
14606 I struck straight into the heath; I held on to a hollow I saw deeply
14607 furrowing the brown moorside; I waded knee-deep in its dark growth; I
14608 turned with its turnings, and finding a moss-blackened granite crag in a
14609 hidden angle, I sat down under it. High banks of moor were about me; the
14610 crag protected my head: the sky was over that.
14611
14612 Some time passed before I felt tranquil even here: I had a vague dread
14613 that wild cattle might be near, or that some sportsman or poacher might
14614 discover me. If a gust of wind swept the waste, I looked up, fearing it
14615 was the rush of a bull; if a plover whistled, I imagined it a man.
14616 Finding my apprehensions unfounded, however, and calmed by the deep
14617 silence that reigned as evening declined at nightfall, I took confidence.
14618 As yet I had not thought; I had only listened, watched, dreaded; now I
14619 regained the faculty of reflection.
14620
14621 What was I to do? Where to go? Oh, intolerable questions, when I could
14622 do nothing and go nowhere!--when a long way must yet be measured by my
14623 weary, trembling limbs before I could reach human habitation--when cold
14624 charity must be entreated before I could get a lodging: reluctant
14625 sympathy importuned, almost certain repulse incurred, before my tale
14626 could be listened to, or one of my wants relieved!
14627
14628 I touched the heath: it was dry, and yet warm with the heat of the summer
14629 day. I looked at the sky; it was pure: a kindly star twinkled just above
14630 the chasm ridge. The dew fell, but with propitious softness; no breeze
14631 whispered. Nature seemed to me benign and good; I thought she loved me,
14632 outcast as I was; and I, who from man could anticipate only mistrust,
14633 rejection, insult, clung to her with filial fondness. To-night, at
14634 least, I would be her guest, as I was her child: my mother would lodge me
14635 without money and without price. I had one morsel of bread yet: the
14636 remnant of a roll I had bought in a town we passed through at noon with a
14637 stray penny--my last coin. I saw ripe bilberries gleaming here and
14638 there, like jet beads in the heath: I gathered a handful and ate them
14639 with the bread. My hunger, sharp before, was, if not satisfied, appeased
14640 by this hermit's meal. I said my evening prayers at its conclusion, and
14641 then chose my couch.
14642
14643 {I said my evening prayers: p311.jpg}
14644
14645 Beside the crag the heath was very deep: when I lay down my feet were
14646 buried in it; rising high on each side, it left only a narrow space for
14647 the night-air to invade. I folded my shawl double, and spread it over me
14648 for a coverlet; a low, mossy swell was my pillow. Thus lodged, I was
14649 not, at least--at the commencement of the night, cold.
14650
14651 My rest might have been blissful enough, only a sad heart broke it. It
14652 plained of its gaping wounds, its inward bleeding, its riven chords. It
14653 trembled for Mr. Rochester and his doom; it bemoaned him with bitter
14654 pity; it demanded him with ceaseless longing; and, impotent as a bird
14655 with both wings broken, it still quivered its shattered pinions in vain
14656 attempts to seek him.
14657
14658 Worn out with this torture of thought, I rose to my knees. Night was
14659 come, and her planets were risen: a safe, still night: too serene for the
14660 companionship of fear. We know that God is everywhere; but certainly we
14661 feel His presence most when His works are on the grandest scale spread
14662 before us; and it is in the unclouded night-sky, where His worlds wheel
14663 their silent course, that we read clearest His infinitude, His
14664 omnipotence, His omnipresence. I had risen to my knees to pray for Mr.
14665 Rochester. Looking up, I, with tear-dimmed eyes, saw the mighty Milky-
14666 way. Remembering what it was--what countless systems there swept space
14667 like a soft trace of light--I felt the might and strength of God. Sure
14668 was I of His efficiency to save what He had made: convinced I grew that
14669 neither earth should perish, nor one of the souls it treasured. I turned
14670 my prayer to thanksgiving: the Source of Life was also the Saviour of
14671 spirits. Mr. Rochester was safe; he was God's, and by God would he be
14672 guarded. I again nestled to the breast of the hill; and ere long in
14673 sleep forgot sorrow.
14674
14675 But next day, Want came to me pale and bare. Long after the little birds
14676 had left their nests; long after bees had come in the sweet prime of day
14677 to gather the heath honey before the dew was dried--when the long morning
14678 shadows were curtailed, and the sun filled earth and sky--I got up, and I
14679 looked round me.
14680
14681 What a still, hot, perfect day! What a golden desert this spreading
14682 moor! Everywhere sunshine. I wished I could live in it and on it. I
14683 saw a lizard run over the crag; I saw a bee busy among the sweet
14684 bilberries. I would fain at the moment have become bee or lizard, that I
14685 might have found fitting nutriment, permanent shelter here. But I was a
14686 human being, and had a human being's wants: I must not linger where there
14687 was nothing to supply them. I rose; I looked back at the bed I had left.
14688 Hopeless of the future, I wished but this--that my Maker had that night
14689 thought good to require my soul of me while I slept; and that this weary
14690 frame, absolved by death from further conflict with fate, had now but to
14691 decay quietly, and mingle in peace with the soil of this wilderness.
14692 Life, however, was yet in my possession, with all its requirements, and
14693 pains, and responsibilities. The burden must be carried; the want
14694 provided for; the suffering endured; the responsibility fulfilled. I set
14695 out.
14696
14697 Whitcross regained, I followed a road which led from the sun, now fervent
14698 and high. By no other circumstance had I will to decide my choice. I
14699 walked a long time, and when I thought I had nearly done enough, and
14700 might conscientiously yield to the fatigue that almost overpowered
14701 me--might relax this forced action, and, sitting down on a stone I saw
14702 near, submit resistlessly to the apathy that clogged heart and limb--I
14703 heard a bell chime--a church bell.
14704
14705 I turned in the direction of the sound, and there, amongst the romantic
14706 hills, whose changes and aspect I had ceased to note an hour ago, I saw a
14707 hamlet and a spire. All the valley at my right hand was full of pasture-
14708 fields, and cornfields, and wood; and a glittering stream ran zig-zag
14709 through the varied shades of green, the mellowing grain, the sombre
14710 woodland, the clear and sunny lea. Recalled by the rumbling of wheels to
14711 the road before me, I saw a heavily-laden waggon labouring up the hill,
14712 and not far beyond were two cows and their drover. Human life and human
14713 labour were near. I must struggle on: strive to live and bend to toil
14714 like the rest.
14715
14716 About two o'clock p.m. I entered the village. At the bottom of its one
14717 street there was a little shop with some cakes of bread in the window. I
14718 coveted a cake of bread. With that refreshment I could perhaps regain a
14719 degree of energy: without it, it would be difficult to proceed. The wish
14720 to have some strength and some vigour returned to me as soon as I was
14721 amongst my fellow-beings. I felt it would be degrading to faint with
14722 hunger on the causeway of a hamlet. Had I nothing about me I could offer
14723 in exchange for one of these rolls? I considered. I had a small silk
14724 handkerchief tied round my throat; I had my gloves. I could hardly tell
14725 how men and women in extremities of destitution proceeded. I did not
14726 know whether either of these articles would be accepted: probably they
14727 would not; but I must try.
14728
14729 I entered the shop: a woman was there. Seeing a respectably-dressed
14730 person, a lady as she supposed, she came forward with civility. How
14731 could she serve me? I was seized with shame: my tongue would not utter
14732 the request I had prepared. I dared not offer her the half-worn gloves,
14733 the creased handkerchief: besides, I felt it would be absurd. I only
14734 begged permission to sit down a moment, as I was tired. Disappointed in
14735 the expectation of a customer, she coolly acceded to my request. She
14736 pointed to a seat; I sank into it. I felt sorely urged to weep; but
14737 conscious how unseasonable such a manifestation would be, I restrained
14738 it. Soon I asked her "if there were any dressmaker or plain-workwoman in
14739 the village?"
14740
14741 "Yes; two or three. Quite as many as there was employment for."
14742
14743 I reflected. I was driven to the point now. I was brought face to face
14744 with Necessity. I stood in the position of one without a resource,
14745 without a friend, without a coin. I must do something. What? I must
14746 apply somewhere. Where?
14747
14748 "Did she know of any place in the neighbourhood where a servant was
14749 wanted?"
14750
14751 "Nay; she couldn't say."
14752
14753 "What was the chief trade in this place? What did most of the people
14754 do?"
14755
14756 "Some were farm labourers; a good deal worked at Mr. Oliver's
14757 needle-factory, and at the foundry."
14758
14759 "Did Mr. Oliver employ women?"
14760
14761 "Nay; it was men's work."
14762
14763 "And what do the women do?"
14764
14765 "I knawn't," was the answer. "Some does one thing, and some another.
14766 Poor folk mun get on as they can."
14767
14768 She seemed to be tired of my questions: and, indeed, what claim had I to
14769 importune her? A neighbour or two came in; my chair was evidently
14770 wanted. I took leave.
14771
14772 I passed up the street, looking as I went at all the houses to the right
14773 hand and to the left; but I could discover no pretext, nor see an
14774 inducement to enter any. I rambled round the hamlet, going sometimes to
14775 a little distance and returning again, for an hour or more. Much
14776 exhausted, and suffering greatly now for want of food, I turned aside
14777 into a lane and sat down under the hedge. Ere many minutes had elapsed,
14778 I was again on my feet, however, and again searching something--a
14779 resource, or at least an informant. A pretty little house stood at the
14780 top of the lane, with a garden before it, exquisitely neat and
14781 brilliantly blooming. I stopped at it. What business had I to approach
14782 the white door or touch the glittering knocker? In what way could it
14783 possibly be the interest of the inhabitants of that dwelling to serve me?
14784 Yet I drew near and knocked. A mild-looking, cleanly-attired young woman
14785 opened the door. In such a voice as might be expected from a hopeless
14786 heart and fainting frame--a voice wretchedly low and faltering--I asked
14787 if a servant was wanted here?
14788
14789 "No," said she; "we do not keep a servant."
14790
14791 "Can you tell me where I could get employment of any kind?" I continued.
14792 "I am a stranger, without acquaintance in this place. I want some work:
14793 no matter what."
14794
14795 But it was not her business to think for me, or to seek a place for me:
14796 besides, in her eyes, how doubtful must have appeared my character,
14797 position, tale. She shook her head, she "was sorry she could give me no
14798 information," and the white door closed, quite gently and civilly: but it
14799 shut me out. If she had held it open a little longer, I believe I should
14800 have begged a piece of bread; for I was now brought low.
14801
14802 I could not bear to return to the sordid village, where, besides, no
14803 prospect of aid was visible. I should have longed rather to deviate to a
14804 wood I saw not far off, which appeared in its thick shade to offer
14805 inviting shelter; but I was so sick, so weak, so gnawed with nature's
14806 cravings, instinct kept me roaming round abodes where there was a chance
14807 of food. Solitude would be no solitude--rest no rest--while the vulture,
14808 hunger, thus sank beak and talons in my side.
14809
14810 I drew near houses; I left them, and came back again, and again I
14811 wandered away: always repelled by the consciousness of having no claim to
14812 ask--no right to expect interest in my isolated lot. Meantime, the
14813 afternoon advanced, while I thus wandered about like a lost and starving
14814 dog. In crossing a field, I saw the church spire before me: I hastened
14815 towards it. Near the churchyard, and in the middle of a garden, stood a
14816 well-built though small house, which I had no doubt was the parsonage. I
14817 remembered that strangers who arrive at a place where they have no
14818 friends, and who want employment, sometimes apply to the clergyman for
14819 introduction and aid. It is the clergyman's function to help--at least
14820 with advice--those who wished to help themselves. I seemed to have
14821 something like a right to seek counsel here. Renewing then my courage,
14822 and gathering my feeble remains of strength, I pushed on. I reached the
14823 house, and knocked at the kitchen-door. An old woman opened: I asked was
14824 this the parsonage?
14825
14826 "Yes."
14827
14828 "Was the clergyman in?"
14829
14830 "No."
14831
14832 "Would he be in soon?"
14833
14834 "No, he was gone from home."
14835
14836 "To a distance?"
14837
14838 "Not so far--happen three mile. He had been called away by the sudden
14839 death of his father: he was at Marsh End now, and would very likely stay
14840 there a fortnight longer."
14841
14842 "Was there any lady of the house?"
14843
14844 "Nay, there was naught but her, and she was housekeeper;" and of her,
14845 reader, I could not bear to ask the relief for want of which I was
14846 sinking; I could not yet beg; and again I crawled away.
14847
14848 Once more I took off my handkerchief--once more I thought of the cakes of
14849 bread in the little shop. Oh, for but a crust! for but one mouthful to
14850 allay the pang of famine! Instinctively I turned my face again to the
14851 village; I found the shop again, and I went in; and though others were
14852 there besides the woman I ventured the request--"Would she give me a roll
14853 for this handkerchief?"
14854
14855 She looked at me with evident suspicion: "Nay, she never sold stuff i'
14856 that way."
14857
14858 Almost desperate, I asked for half a cake; she again refused. "How could
14859 she tell where I had got the handkerchief?" she said.
14860
14861 "Would she take my gloves?"
14862
14863 "No! what could she do with them?"
14864
14865 Reader, it is not pleasant to dwell on these details. Some say there is
14866 enjoyment in looking back to painful experience past; but at this day I
14867 can scarcely bear to review the times to which I allude: the moral
14868 degradation, blent with the physical suffering, form too distressing a
14869 recollection ever to be willingly dwelt on. I blamed none of those who
14870 repulsed me. I felt it was what was to be expected, and what could not
14871 be helped: an ordinary beggar is frequently an object of suspicion; a
14872 well-dressed beggar inevitably so. To be sure, what I begged was
14873 employment; but whose business was it to provide me with employment? Not,
14874 certainly, that of persons who saw me then for the first time, and who
14875 knew nothing about my character. And as to the woman who would not take
14876 my handkerchief in exchange for her bread, why, she was right, if the
14877 offer appeared to her sinister or the exchange unprofitable. Let me
14878 condense now. I am sick of the subject.
14879
14880 A little before dark I passed a farm-house, at the open door of which the
14881 farmer was sitting, eating his supper of bread and cheese. I stopped and
14882 said--
14883
14884 "Will you give me a piece of bread? for I am very hungry." He cast on me
14885 a glance of surprise; but without answering, he cut a thick slice from
14886 his loaf, and gave it to me. I imagine he did not think I was a beggar,
14887 but only an eccentric sort of lady, who had taken a fancy to his brown
14888 loaf. As soon as I was out of sight of his house, I sat down and ate it.
14889
14890 I could not hope to get a lodging under a roof, and sought it in the wood
14891 I have before alluded to. But my night was wretched, my rest broken: the
14892 ground was damp, the air cold: besides, intruders passed near me more
14893 than once, and I had again and again to change my quarters; no sense of
14894 safety or tranquillity befriended me. Towards morning it rained; the
14895 whole of the following day was wet. Do not ask me, reader, to give a
14896 minute account of that day; as before, I sought work; as before, I was
14897 repulsed; as before, I starved; but once did food pass my lips. At the
14898 door of a cottage I saw a little girl about to throw a mess of cold
14899 porridge into a pig trough. "Will you give me that?" I asked.
14900
14901 {"Will you give me that?" I asked: p316.jpg}
14902
14903 She stared at me. "Mother!" she exclaimed, "there is a woman wants me to
14904 give her these porridge."
14905
14906 "Well lass," replied a voice within, "give it her if she's a beggar. T'
14907 pig doesn't want it."
14908
14909 The girl emptied the stiffened mould into my hand, and I devoured it
14910 ravenously.
14911
14912 As the wet twilight deepened, I stopped in a solitary bridle-path, which
14913 I had been pursuing an hour or more.
14914
14915 "My strength is quite failing me," I said in a soliloquy. "I feel I
14916 cannot go much farther. Shall I be an outcast again this night? While
14917 the rain descends so, must I lay my head on the cold, drenched ground? I
14918 fear I cannot do otherwise: for who will receive me? But it will be very
14919 dreadful, with this feeling of hunger, faintness, chill, and this sense
14920 of desolation--this total prostration of hope. In all likelihood,
14921 though, I should die before morning. And why cannot I reconcile myself
14922 to the prospect of death? Why do I struggle to retain a valueless life?
14923 Because I know, or believe, Mr. Rochester is living: and then, to die of
14924 want and cold is a fate to which nature cannot submit passively. Oh,
14925 Providence! sustain me a little longer! Aid!--direct me!"
14926
14927 My glazed eye wandered over the dim and misty landscape. I saw I had
14928 strayed far from the village: it was quite out of sight. The very
14929 cultivation surrounding it had disappeared. I had, by cross-ways and by-
14930 paths, once more drawn near the tract of moorland; and now, only a few
14931 fields, almost as wild and unproductive as the heath from which they were
14932 scarcely reclaimed, lay between me and the dusky hill.
14933
14934 "Well, I would rather die yonder than in a street or on a frequented
14935 road," I reflected. "And far better that crows and ravens--if any ravens
14936 there be in these regions--should pick my flesh from my bones, than that
14937 they should be prisoned in a workhouse coffin and moulder in a pauper's
14938 grave."
14939
14940 To the hill, then, I turned. I reached it. It remained now only to find
14941 a hollow where I could lie down, and feel at least hidden, if not secure.
14942 But all the surface of the waste looked level. It showed no variation
14943 but of tint: green, where rush and moss overgrew the marshes; black,
14944 where the dry soil bore only heath. Dark as it was getting, I could
14945 still see these changes, though but as mere alternations of light and
14946 shade; for colour had faded with the daylight.
14947
14948 My eye still roved over the sullen swell and along the moor-edge,
14949 vanishing amidst the wildest scenery, when at one dim point, far in among
14950 the marshes and the ridges, a light sprang up. "That is an _ignis
14951 fatuus_," was my first thought; and I expected it would soon vanish. It
14952 burnt on, however, quite steadily, neither receding nor advancing. "Is
14953 it, then, a bonfire just kindled?" I questioned. I watched to see
14954 whether it would spread: but no; as it did not diminish, so it did not
14955 enlarge. "It may be a candle in a house," I then conjectured; "but if
14956 so, I can never reach it. It is much too far away: and were it within a
14957 yard of me, what would it avail? I should but knock at the door to have
14958 it shut in my face."
14959
14960 And I sank down where I stood, and hid my face against the ground. I lay
14961 still a while: the night-wind swept over the hill and over me, and died
14962 moaning in the distance; the rain fell fast, wetting me afresh to the
14963 skin. Could I but have stiffened to the still frost--the friendly
14964 numbness of death--it might have pelted on; I should not have felt it;
14965 but my yet living flesh shuddered at its chilling influence. I rose ere
14966 long.
14967
14968 The light was yet there, shining dim but constant through the rain. I
14969 tried to walk again: I dragged my exhausted limbs slowly towards it. It
14970 led me aslant over the hill, through a wide bog, which would have been
14971 impassable in winter, and was splashy and shaking even now, in the height
14972 of summer. Here I fell twice; but as often I rose and rallied my
14973 faculties. This light was my forlorn hope: I must gain it.
14974
14975 Having crossed the marsh, I saw a trace of white over the moor. I
14976 approached it; it was a road or a track: it led straight up to the light,
14977 which now beamed from a sort of knoll, amidst a clump of trees--firs,
14978 apparently, from what I could distinguish of the character of their forms
14979 and foliage through the gloom. My star vanished as I drew near: some
14980 obstacle had intervened between me and it. I put out my hand to feel the
14981 dark mass before me: I discriminated the rough stones of a low wall--above
14982 it, something like palisades, and within, a high and prickly hedge. I
14983 groped on. Again a whitish object gleamed before me: it was a gate--a
14984 wicket; it moved on its hinges as I touched it. On each side stood a
14985 sable bush-holly or yew.
14986
14987 Entering the gate and passing the shrubs, the silhouette of a house rose
14988 to view, black, low, and rather long; but the guiding light shone
14989 nowhere. All was obscurity. Were the inmates retired to rest? I feared
14990 it must be so. In seeking the door, I turned an angle: there shot out
14991 the friendly gleam again, from the lozenged panes of a very small
14992 latticed window, within a foot of the ground, made still smaller by the
14993 growth of ivy or some other creeping plant, whose leaves clustered thick
14994 over the portion of the house wall in which it was set. The aperture was
14995 so screened and narrow, that curtain or shutter had been deemed
14996 unnecessary; and when I stooped down and put aside the spray of foliage
14997 shooting over it, I could see all within. I could see clearly a room
14998 with a sanded floor, clean scoured; a dresser of walnut, with pewter
14999 plates ranged in rows, reflecting the redness and radiance of a glowing
15000 peat-fire. I could see a clock, a white deal table, some chairs. The
15001 candle, whose ray had been my beacon, burnt on the table; and by its
15002 light an elderly woman, somewhat rough-looking, but scrupulously clean,
15003 like all about her, was knitting a stocking.
15004
15005 I noticed these objects cursorily only--in them there was nothing
15006 extraordinary. A group of more interest appeared near the hearth,
15007 sitting still amidst the rosy peace and warmth suffusing it. Two young,
15008 graceful women--ladies in every point--sat, one in a low rocking-chair,
15009 the other on a lower stool; both wore deep mourning of crape and
15010 bombazeen, which sombre garb singularly set off very fair necks and
15011 faces: a large old pointer dog rested its massive head on the knee of one
15012 girl--in the lap of the other was cushioned a black cat.
15013
15014 A strange place was this humble kitchen for such occupants! Who were
15015 they? They could not be the daughters of the elderly person at the
15016 table; for she looked like a rustic, and they were all delicacy and
15017 cultivation. I had nowhere seen such faces as theirs: and yet, as I
15018 gazed on them, I seemed intimate with every lineament. I cannot call
15019 them handsome--they were too pale and grave for the word: as they each
15020 bent over a book, they looked thoughtful almost to severity. A stand
15021 between them supported a second candle and two great volumes, to which
15022 they frequently referred, comparing them, seemingly, with the smaller
15023 books they held in their hands, like people consulting a dictionary to
15024 aid them in the task of translation. This scene was as silent as if all
15025 the figures had been shadows and the firelit apartment a picture: so
15026 hushed was it, I could hear the cinders fall from the grate, the clock
15027 tick in its obscure corner; and I even fancied I could distinguish the
15028 click-click of the woman's knitting-needles. When, therefore, a voice
15029 broke the strange stillness at last, it was audible enough to me.
15030
15031 "Listen, Diana," said one of the absorbed students; "Franz and old Daniel
15032 are together in the night-time, and Franz is telling a dream from which
15033 he has awakened in terror--listen!" And in a low voice she read
15034 something, of which not one word was intelligible to me; for it was in an
15035 unknown tongue--neither French nor Latin. Whether it were Greek or
15036 German I could not tell.
15037
15038 "That is strong," she said, when she had finished: "I relish it." The
15039 other girl, who had lifted her head to listen to her sister, repeated,
15040 while she gazed at the fire, a line of what had been read. At a later
15041 day, I knew the language and the book; therefore, I will here quote the
15042 line: though, when I first heard it, it was only like a stroke on
15043 sounding brass to me--conveying no meaning:--
15044
15045 "'Da trat hervor Einer, anzusehen wie die Sternen Nacht.' Good! good!"
15046 she exclaimed, while her dark and deep eye sparkled. "There you have a
15047 dim and mighty archangel fitly set before you! The line is worth a
15048 hundred pages of fustian. 'Ich wage die Gedanken in der Schale meines
15049 Zornes und die Werke mit dem Gewichte meines Grimms.' I like it!"
15050
15051 Both were again silent.
15052
15053 "Is there ony country where they talk i' that way?" asked the old woman,
15054 looking up from her knitting.
15055
15056 "Yes, Hannah--a far larger country than England, where they talk in no
15057 other way."
15058
15059 "Well, for sure case, I knawn't how they can understand t' one t'other:
15060 and if either o' ye went there, ye could tell what they said, I guess?"
15061
15062 "We could probably tell something of what they said, but not all--for we
15063 are not as clever as you think us, Hannah. We don't speak German, and we
15064 cannot read it without a dictionary to help us."
15065
15066 "And what good does it do you?"
15067
15068 "We mean to teach it some time--or at least the elements, as they say;
15069 and then we shall get more money than we do now."
15070
15071 "Varry like: but give ower studying; ye've done enough for to-night."
15072
15073 "I think we have: at least I'm tired. Mary, are you?"
15074
15075 "Mortally: after all, it's tough work fagging away at a language with no
15076 master but a lexicon."
15077
15078 "It is, especially such a language as this crabbed but glorious Deutsch.
15079 I wonder when St. John will come home."
15080
15081 "Surely he will not be long now: it is just ten (looking at a little gold
15082 watch she drew from her girdle). It rains fast, Hannah: will you have
15083 the goodness to look at the fire in the parlour?"
15084
15085 The woman rose: she opened a door, through which I dimly saw a passage:
15086 soon I heard her stir a fire in an inner room; she presently came back.
15087
15088 "Ah, childer!" said she, "it fair troubles me to go into yond' room now:
15089 it looks so lonesome wi' the chair empty and set back in a corner."
15090
15091 She wiped her eyes with her apron: the two girls, grave before, looked
15092 sad now.
15093
15094 "But he is in a better place," continued Hannah: "we shouldn't wish him
15095 here again. And then, nobody need to have a quieter death nor he had."
15096
15097 "You say he never mentioned us?" inquired one of the ladies.
15098
15099 "He hadn't time, bairn: he was gone in a minute, was your father. He had
15100 been a bit ailing like the day before, but naught to signify; and when
15101 Mr. St. John asked if he would like either o' ye to be sent for, he fair
15102 laughed at him. He began again with a bit of a heaviness in his head the
15103 next day--that is, a fortnight sin'--and he went to sleep and niver
15104 wakened: he wor a'most stark when your brother went into t' chamber and
15105 fand him. Ah, childer! that's t' last o' t' old stock--for ye and Mr.
15106 St. John is like of different soart to them 'at's gone; for all your
15107 mother wor mich i' your way, and a'most as book-learned. She wor the
15108 pictur' o' ye, Mary: Diana is more like your father."
15109
15110 I thought them so similar I could not tell where the old servant (for
15111 such I now concluded her to be) saw the difference. Both were fair
15112 complexioned and slenderly made; both possessed faces full of distinction
15113 and intelligence. One, to be sure, had hair a shade darker than the
15114 other, and there was a difference in their style of wearing it; Mary's
15115 pale brown locks were parted and braided smooth: Diana's duskier tresses
15116 covered her neck with thick curls. The clock struck ten.
15117
15118 "Ye'll want your supper, I am sure," observed Hannah; "and so will Mr.
15119 St. John when he comes in."
15120
15121 And she proceeded to prepare the meal. The ladies rose; they seemed
15122 about to withdraw to the parlour. Till this moment, I had been so intent
15123 on watching them, their appearance and conversation had excited in me so
15124 keen an interest, I had half-forgotten my own wretched position: now it
15125 recurred to me. More desolate, more desperate than ever, it seemed from
15126 contrast. And how impossible did it appear to touch the inmates of this
15127 house with concern on my behalf; to make them believe in the truth of my
15128 wants and woes--to induce them to vouchsafe a rest for my wanderings! As
15129 I groped out the door, and knocked at it hesitatingly, I felt that last
15130 idea to be a mere chimera. Hannah opened.
15131
15132 "What do you want?" she inquired, in a voice of surprise, as she surveyed
15133 me by the light of the candle she held.
15134
15135 "May I speak to your mistresses?" I said.
15136
15137 "You had better tell me what you have to say to them. Where do you come
15138 from?"
15139
15140 "I am a stranger."
15141
15142 "What is your business here at this hour?"
15143
15144 "I want a night's shelter in an out-house or anywhere, and a morsel of
15145 bread to eat."
15146
15147 Distrust, the very feeling I dreaded, appeared in Hannah's face. "I'll
15148 give you a piece of bread," she said, after a pause; "but we can't take
15149 in a vagrant to lodge. It isn't likely."
15150
15151 "Do let me speak to your mistresses."
15152
15153 "No, not I. What can they do for you? You should not be roving about
15154 now; it looks very ill."
15155
15156 "But where shall I go if you drive me away? What shall I do?"
15157
15158 "Oh, I'll warrant you know where to go and what to do. Mind you don't do
15159 wrong, that's all. Here is a penny; now go--"
15160
15161 "A penny cannot feed me, and I have no strength to go farther. Don't
15162 shut the door:--oh, don't, for God's sake!"
15163
15164 "I must; the rain is driving in--"
15165
15166 "Tell the young ladies. Let me see them--"
15167
15168 "Indeed, I will not. You are not what you ought to be, or you wouldn't
15169 make such a noise. Move off."
15170
15171 "But I must die if I am turned away."
15172
15173 "Not you. I'm fear'd you have some ill plans agate, that bring you about
15174 folk's houses at this time o' night. If you've any
15175 followers--housebreakers or such like--anywhere near, you may tell them
15176 we are not by ourselves in the house; we have a gentleman, and dogs, and
15177 guns." Here the honest but inflexible servant clapped the door to and
15178 bolted it within.
15179
15180 This was the climax. A pang of exquisite suffering--a throe of true
15181 despair--rent and heaved my heart. Worn out, indeed, I was; not another
15182 step could I stir. I sank on the wet doorstep: I groaned--I wrung my
15183 hands--I wept in utter anguish. Oh, this spectre of death! Oh, this
15184 last hour, approaching in such horror! Alas, this isolation--this
15185 banishment from my kind! Not only the anchor of hope, but the footing of
15186 fortitude was gone--at least for a moment; but the last I soon
15187 endeavoured to regain.
15188
15189 "I can but die," I said, "and I believe in God. Let me try to wait His
15190 will in silence."
15191
15192 These words I not only thought, but uttered; and thrusting back all my
15193 misery into my heart, I made an effort to compel it to remain there--dumb
15194 and still.
15195
15196 "All men must die," said a voice quite close at hand; "but all are not
15197 condemned to meet a lingering and premature doom, such as yours would be
15198 if you perished here of want."
15199
15200 "Who or what speaks?" I asked, terrified at the unexpected sound, and
15201 incapable now of deriving from any occurrence a hope of aid. A form was
15202 near--what form, the pitch-dark night and my enfeebled vision prevented
15203 me from distinguishing. With a loud long knock, the new-comer appealed
15204 to the door.
15205
15206 "Is it you, Mr. St. John?" cried Hannah.
15207
15208 "Yes--yes; open quickly."
15209
15210 "Well, how wet and cold you must be, such a wild night as it is! Come
15211 in--your sisters are quite uneasy about you, and I believe there are bad
15212 folks about. There has been a beggar-woman--I declare she is not gone
15213 yet!--laid down there. Get up! for shame! Move off, I say!"
15214
15215 "Hush, Hannah! I have a word to say to the woman. You have done your
15216 duty in excluding, now let me do mine in admitting her. I was near, and
15217 listened to both you and her. I think this is a peculiar case--I must at
15218 least examine into it. Young woman, rise, and pass before me into the
15219 house."
15220
15221 {Hush, Hannah; I have a word to say to the woman: p323.jpg}
15222
15223 With difficulty I obeyed him. Presently I stood within that clean,
15224 bright kitchen--on the very hearth--trembling, sickening; conscious of an
15225 aspect in the last degree ghastly, wild, and weather-beaten. The two
15226 ladies, their brother, Mr. St. John, the old servant, were all gazing at
15227 me.
15228
15229 "St. John, who is it?" I heard one ask.
15230
15231 "I cannot tell: I found her at the door," was the reply.
15232
15233 "She does look white," said Hannah.
15234
15235 "As white as clay or death," was responded. "She will fall: let her
15236 sit."
15237
15238 And indeed my head swam: I dropped, but a chair received me. I still
15239 possessed my senses, though just now I could not speak.
15240
15241 "Perhaps a little water would restore her. Hannah, fetch some. But she
15242 is worn to nothing. How very thin, and how very bloodless!"
15243
15244 "A mere spectre!"
15245
15246 "Is she ill, or only famished?"
15247
15248 "Famished, I think. Hannah, is that milk? Give it me, and a piece of
15249 bread."
15250
15251 Diana (I knew her by the long curls which I saw drooping between me and
15252 the fire as she bent over me) broke some bread, dipped it in milk, and
15253 put it to my lips. Her face was near mine: I saw there was pity in it,
15254 and I felt sympathy in her hurried breathing. In her simple words, too,
15255 the same balm-like emotion spoke: "Try to eat."
15256
15257 "Yes--try," repeated Mary gently; and Mary's hand removed my sodden
15258 bonnet and lifted my head. I tasted what they offered me: feebly at
15259 first, eagerly soon.
15260
15261 "Not too much at first--restrain her," said the brother; "she has had
15262 enough." And he withdrew the cup of milk and the plate of bread.
15263
15264 "A little more, St. John--look at the avidity in her eyes."
15265
15266 "No more at present, sister. Try if she can speak now--ask her her
15267 name."
15268
15269 I felt I could speak, and I answered--"My name is Jane Elliott." Anxious
15270 as ever to avoid discovery, I had before resolved to assume an _alias_.
15271
15272 "And where do you live? Where are your friends?"
15273
15274 I was silent.
15275
15276 "Can we send for any one you know?"
15277
15278 I shook my head.
15279
15280 "What account can you give of yourself?"
15281
15282 Somehow, now that I had once crossed the threshold of this house, and
15283 once was brought face to face with its owners, I felt no longer outcast,
15284 vagrant, and disowned by the wide world. I dared to put off the
15285 mendicant--to resume my natural manner and character. I began once more
15286 to know myself; and when Mr. St. John demanded an account--which at
15287 present I was far too weak to render--I said after a brief pause--
15288
15289 "Sir, I can give you no details to-night."
15290
15291 "But what, then," said he, "do you expect me to do for you?"
15292
15293 "Nothing," I replied. My strength sufficed for but short answers. Diana
15294 took the word--
15295
15296 "Do you mean," she asked, "that we have now given you what aid you
15297 require? and that we may dismiss you to the moor and the rainy night?"
15298
15299 I looked at her. She had, I thought, a remarkable countenance, instinct
15300 both with power and goodness. I took sudden courage. Answering her
15301 compassionate gaze with a smile, I said--"I will trust you. If I were a
15302 masterless and stray dog, I know that you would not turn me from your
15303 hearth to-night: as it is, I really have no fear. Do with me and for me
15304 as you like; but excuse me from much discourse--my breath is short--I
15305 feel a spasm when I speak." All three surveyed me, and all three were
15306 silent.
15307
15308 "Hannah," said Mr. St. John, at last, "let her sit there at present, and
15309 ask her no questions; in ten minutes more, give her the remainder of that
15310 milk and bread. Mary and Diana, let us go into the parlour and talk the
15311 matter over."
15312
15313 They withdrew. Very soon one of the ladies returned--I could not tell
15314 which. A kind of pleasant stupor was stealing over me as I sat by the
15315 genial fire. In an undertone she gave some directions to Hannah. Ere
15316 long, with the servant's aid, I contrived to mount a staircase; my
15317 dripping clothes were removed; soon a warm, dry bed received me. I
15318 thanked God--experienced amidst unutterable exhaustion a glow of grateful
15319 joy--and slept.
15320
15321
15322
15323
15324 CHAPTER XXIX
15325
15326
15327 The recollection of about three days and nights succeeding this is very
15328 dim in my mind. I can recall some sensations felt in that interval; but
15329 few thoughts framed, and no actions performed. I knew I was in a small
15330 room and in a narrow bed. To that bed I seemed to have grown; I lay on
15331 it motionless as a stone; and to have torn me from it would have been
15332 almost to kill me. I took no note of the lapse of time--of the change
15333 from morning to noon, from noon to evening. I observed when any one
15334 entered or left the apartment: I could even tell who they were; I could
15335 understand what was said when the speaker stood near to me; but I could
15336 not answer; to open my lips or move my limbs was equally impossible.
15337 Hannah, the servant, was my most frequent visitor. Her coming disturbed
15338 me. I had a feeling that she wished me away: that she did not understand
15339 me or my circumstances; that she was prejudiced against me. Diana and
15340 Mary appeared in the chamber once or twice a day. They would whisper
15341 sentences of this sort at my bedside--
15342
15343 "It is very well we took her in."
15344
15345 "Yes; she would certainly have been found dead at the door in the morning
15346 had she been left out all night. I wonder what she has gone through?"
15347
15348 "Strange hardships, I imagine--poor, emaciated, pallid wanderer?"
15349
15350 "She is not an uneducated person, I should think, by her manner of
15351 speaking; her accent was quite pure; and the clothes she took off, though
15352 splashed and wet, were little worn and fine."
15353
15354 "She has a peculiar face; fleshless and haggard as it is, I rather like
15355 it; and when in good health and animated, I can fancy her physiognomy
15356 would be agreeable."
15357
15358 Never once in their dialogues did I hear a syllable of regret at the
15359 hospitality they had extended to me, or of suspicion of, or aversion to,
15360 myself. I was comforted.
15361
15362 Mr. St. John came but once: he looked at me, and said my state of
15363 lethargy was the result of reaction from excessive and protracted
15364 fatigue. He pronounced it needless to send for a doctor: nature, he was
15365 sure, would manage best, left to herself. He said every nerve had been
15366 overstrained in some way, and the whole system must sleep torpid a while.
15367 There was no disease. He imagined my recovery would be rapid enough when
15368 once commenced. These opinions he delivered in a few words, in a quiet,
15369 low voice; and added, after a pause, in the tone of a man little
15370 accustomed to expansive comment, "Rather an unusual physiognomy;
15371 certainly, not indicative of vulgarity or degradation."
15372
15373 "Far otherwise," responded Diana. "To speak truth, St. John, my heart
15374 rather warms to the poor little soul. I wish we may be able to benefit
15375 her permanently."
15376
15377 "That is hardly likely," was the reply. "You will find she is some young
15378 lady who has had a misunderstanding with her friends, and has probably
15379 injudiciously left them. We may, perhaps, succeed in restoring her to
15380 them, if she is not obstinate: but I trace lines of force in her face
15381 which make me sceptical of her tractability." He stood considering me
15382 some minutes; then added, "She looks sensible, but not at all handsome."
15383
15384 "She is so ill, St. John."
15385
15386 "Ill or well, she would always be plain. The grace and harmony of beauty
15387 are quite wanting in those features."
15388
15389 On the third day I was better; on the fourth, I could speak, move, rise
15390 in bed, and turn. Hannah had brought me some gruel and dry toast, about,
15391 as I supposed, the dinner-hour. I had eaten with relish: the food was
15392 good--void of the feverish flavour which had hitherto poisoned what I had
15393 swallowed. When she left me, I felt comparatively strong and revived:
15394 ere long satiety of repose and desire for action stirred me. I wished to
15395 rise; but what could I put on? Only my damp and bemired apparel; in
15396 which I had slept on the ground and fallen in the marsh. I felt ashamed
15397 to appear before my benefactors so clad. I was spared the humiliation.
15398
15399 On a chair by the bedside were all my own things, clean and dry. My
15400 black silk frock hung against the wall. The traces of the bog were
15401 removed from it; the creases left by the wet smoothed out: it was quite
15402 decent. My very shoes and stockings were purified and rendered
15403 presentable. There were the means of washing in the room, and a comb and
15404 brush to smooth my hair. After a weary process, and resting every five
15405 minutes, I succeeded in dressing myself. My clothes hung loose on me;
15406 for I was much wasted, but I covered deficiencies with a shawl, and once
15407 more, clean and respectable looking--no speck of the dirt, no trace of
15408 the disorder I so hated, and which seemed so to degrade me, left--I crept
15409 down a stone staircase with the aid of the banisters, to a narrow low
15410 passage, and found my way presently to the kitchen.
15411
15412 It was full of the fragrance of new bread and the warmth of a generous
15413 fire. Hannah was baking. Prejudices, it is well known, are most
15414 difficult to eradicate from the heart whose soil has never been loosened
15415 or fertilised by education: they grow there, firm as weeds among stones.
15416 Hannah had been cold and stiff, indeed, at the first: latterly she had
15417 begun to relent a little; and when she saw me come in tidy and
15418 well-dressed, she even smiled.
15419
15420 "What, you have got up!" she said. "You are better, then. You may sit
15421 you down in my chair on the hearthstone, if you will."
15422
15423 She pointed to the rocking-chair: I took it. She bustled about,
15424 examining me every now and then with the corner of her eye. Turning to
15425 me, as she took some loaves from the oven, she asked bluntly--
15426
15427 "Did you ever go a-begging afore you came here?"
15428
15429 I was indignant for a moment; but remembering that anger was out of the
15430 question, and that I had indeed appeared as a beggar to her, I answered
15431 quietly, but still not without a certain marked firmness--
15432
15433 "You are mistaken in supposing me a beggar. I am no beggar; any more
15434 than yourself or your young ladies."
15435
15436 After a pause she said, "I dunnut understand that: you've like no house,
15437 nor no brass, I guess?"
15438
15439 "The want of house or brass (by which I suppose you mean money) does not
15440 make a beggar in your sense of the word."
15441
15442 "Are you book-learned?" she inquired presently.
15443
15444 "Yes, very."
15445
15446 "But you've never been to a boarding-school?"
15447
15448 "I was at a boarding-school eight years."
15449
15450 She opened her eyes wide. "Whatever cannot ye keep yourself for, then?"
15451
15452 "I have kept myself; and, I trust, shall keep myself again. What are you
15453 going to do with these gooseberries?" I inquired, as she brought out a
15454 basket of the fruit.
15455
15456 "Mak' 'em into pies."
15457
15458 "Give them to me and I'll pick them."
15459
15460 "Nay; I dunnut want ye to do nought."
15461
15462 "But I must do something. Let me have them."
15463
15464 She consented; and she even brought me a clean towel to spread over my
15465 dress, "lest," as she said, "I should mucky it."
15466
15467 "Ye've not been used to sarvant's wark, I see by your hands," she
15468 remarked. "Happen ye've been a dressmaker?"
15469
15470 "No, you are wrong. And now, never mind what I have been: don't trouble
15471 your head further about me; but tell me the name of the house where we
15472 are."
15473
15474 "Some calls it Marsh End, and some calls it Moor House."
15475
15476 "And the gentleman who lives here is called Mr. St. John?"
15477
15478 "Nay; he doesn't live here: he is only staying a while. When he is at
15479 home, he is in his own parish at Morton."
15480
15481 "That village a few miles off?
15482
15483 "Aye."
15484
15485 "And what is he?"
15486
15487 "He is a parson."
15488
15489 I remembered the answer of the old housekeeper at the parsonage, when I
15490 had asked to see the clergyman. "This, then, was his father's
15491 residence?"
15492
15493 "Aye; old Mr. Rivers lived here, and his father, and grandfather, and
15494 gurt (great) grandfather afore him."
15495
15496 "The name, then, of that gentleman, is Mr. St. John Rivers?"
15497
15498 "Aye; St. John is like his kirstened name."
15499
15500 "And his sisters are called Diana and Mary Rivers?"
15501
15502 "Yes."
15503
15504 "Their father is dead?"
15505
15506 "Dead three weeks sin' of a stroke."
15507
15508 "They have no mother?"
15509
15510 "The mistress has been dead this mony a year."
15511
15512 "Have you lived with the family long?"
15513
15514 "I've lived here thirty year. I nursed them all three."
15515
15516 "That proves you must have been an honest and faithful servant. I will
15517 say so much for you, though you have had the incivility to call me a
15518 beggar."
15519
15520 She again regarded me with a surprised stare. "I believe," she said, "I
15521 was quite mista'en in my thoughts of you: but there is so mony cheats
15522 goes about, you mun forgie me."
15523
15524 "And though," I continued, rather severely, "you wished to turn me from
15525 the door, on a night when you should not have shut out a dog."
15526
15527 "Well, it was hard: but what can a body do? I thought more o' th'
15528 childer nor of mysel: poor things! They've like nobody to tak' care on
15529 'em but me. I'm like to look sharpish."
15530
15531 I maintained a grave silence for some minutes.
15532
15533 "You munnut think too hardly of me," she again remarked.
15534
15535 "But I do think hardly of you," I said; "and I'll tell you why--not so
15536 much because you refused to give me shelter, or regarded me as an
15537 impostor, as because you just now made it a species of reproach that I
15538 had no 'brass' and no house. Some of the best people that ever lived
15539 have been as destitute as I am; and if you are a Christian, you ought not
15540 to consider poverty a crime."
15541
15542 "No more I ought," said she: "Mr. St. John tells me so too; and I see I
15543 wor wrang--but I've clear a different notion on you now to what I had.
15544 You look a raight down dacent little crater."
15545
15546 "That will do--I forgive you now. Shake hands."
15547
15548 She put her floury and horny hand into mine; another and heartier smile
15549 illumined her rough face, and from that moment we were friends.
15550
15551 Hannah was evidently fond of talking. While I picked the fruit, and she
15552 made the paste for the pies, she proceeded to give me sundry details
15553 about her deceased master and mistress, and "the childer," as she called
15554 the young people.
15555
15556 Old Mr. Rivers, she said, was a plain man enough, but a gentleman, and of
15557 as ancient a family as could be found. Marsh End had belonged to the
15558 Rivers ever since it was a house: and it was, she affirmed, "aboon two
15559 hundred year old--for all it looked but a small, humble place, naught to
15560 compare wi' Mr. Oliver's grand hall down i' Morton Vale. But she could
15561 remember Bill Oliver's father a journeyman needlemaker; and th' Rivers
15562 wor gentry i' th' owd days o' th' Henrys, as onybody might see by looking
15563 into th' registers i' Morton Church vestry." Still, she allowed, "the
15564 owd maister was like other folk--naught mich out o' t' common way: stark
15565 mad o' shooting, and farming, and sich like." The mistress was
15566 different. She was a great reader, and studied a deal; and the "bairns"
15567 had taken after her. There was nothing like them in these parts, nor
15568 ever had been; they had liked learning, all three, almost from the time
15569 they could speak; and they had always been "of a mak' of their own." Mr.
15570 St. John, when he grew up, would go to college and be a parson; and the
15571 girls, as soon as they left school, would seek places as governesses: for
15572 they had told her their father had some years ago lost a great deal of
15573 money by a man he had trusted turning bankrupt; and as he was now not
15574 rich enough to give them fortunes, they must provide for themselves. They
15575 had lived very little at home for a long while, and were only come now to
15576 stay a few weeks on account of their father's death; but they did so like
15577 Marsh End and Morton, and all these moors and hills about. They had been
15578 in London, and many other grand towns; but they always said there was no
15579 place like home; and then they were so agreeable with each other--never
15580 fell out nor "threaped." She did not know where there was such a family
15581 for being united.
15582
15583 Having finished my task of gooseberry picking, I asked where the two
15584 ladies and their brother were now.
15585
15586 "Gone over to Morton for a walk; but they would be back in half-an-hour
15587 to tea."
15588
15589 They returned within the time Hannah had allotted them: they entered by
15590 the kitchen door. Mr. St. John, when he saw me, merely bowed and passed
15591 through; the two ladies stopped: Mary, in a few words, kindly and calmly
15592 expressed the pleasure she felt in seeing me well enough to be able to
15593 come down; Diana took my hand: she shook her head at me.
15594
15595 "You should have waited for my leave to descend," she said. "You still
15596 look very pale--and so thin! Poor child!--poor girl!"
15597
15598 Diana had a voice toned, to my ear, like the cooing of a dove. She
15599 possessed eyes whose gaze I delighted to encounter. Her whole face
15600 seemed to me full of charm. Mary's countenance was equally
15601 intelligent--her features equally pretty; but her expression was more
15602 reserved, and her manners, though gentle, more distant. Diana looked and
15603 spoke with a certain authority: she had a will, evidently. It was my
15604 nature to feel pleasure in yielding to an authority supported like hers,
15605 and to bend, where my conscience and self-respect permitted, to an active
15606 will.
15607
15608 "And what business have you here?" she continued. "It is not your place.
15609 Mary and I sit in the kitchen sometimes, because at home we like to be
15610 free, even to license--but you are a visitor, and must go into the
15611 parlour."
15612
15613 "I am very well here."
15614
15615 "Not at all, with Hannah bustling about and covering you with flour."
15616
15617 "Besides, the fire is too hot for you," interposed Mary.
15618
15619 "To be sure," added her sister. "Come, you must be obedient." And still
15620 holding my hand she made me rise, and led me into the inner room.
15621
15622 "Sit there," she said, placing me on the sofa, "while we take our things
15623 off and get the tea ready; it is another privilege we exercise in our
15624 little moorland home--to prepare our own meals when we are so inclined,
15625 or when Hannah is baking, brewing, washing, or ironing."
15626
15627 She closed the door, leaving me solus with Mr. St. John, who sat
15628 opposite, a book or newspaper in his hand. I examined first, the
15629 parlour, and then its occupant.
15630
15631 The parlour was rather a small room, very plainly furnished, yet
15632 comfortable, because clean and neat. The old-fashioned chairs were very
15633 bright, and the walnut-wood table was like a looking-glass. A few
15634 strange, antique portraits of the men and women of other days decorated
15635 the stained walls; a cupboard with glass doors contained some books and
15636 an ancient set of china. There was no superfluous ornament in the
15637 room--not one modern piece of furniture, save a brace of workboxes and a
15638 lady's desk in rosewood, which stood on a side-table:
15639 everything--including the carpet and curtains--looked at once well worn
15640 and well saved.
15641
15642 Mr. St. John--sitting as still as one of the dusty pictures on the walls,
15643 keeping his eyes fixed on the page he perused, and his lips mutely
15644 sealed--was easy enough to examine. Had he been a statue instead of a
15645 man, he could not have been easier. He was young--perhaps from twenty-
15646 eight to thirty--tall, slender; his face riveted the eye; it was like a
15647 Greek face, very pure in outline: quite a straight, classic nose; quite
15648 an Athenian mouth and chin. It is seldom, indeed, an English face comes
15649 so near the antique models as did his. He might well be a little shocked
15650 at the irregularity of my lineaments, his own being so harmonious. His
15651 eyes were large and blue, with brown lashes; his high forehead,
15652 colourless as ivory, was partially streaked over by careless locks of
15653 fair hair.
15654
15655 This is a gentle delineation, is it not, reader? Yet he whom it
15656 describes scarcely impressed one with the idea of a gentle, a yielding,
15657 an impressible, or even of a placid nature. Quiescent as he now sat,
15658 there was something about his nostril, his mouth, his brow, which, to my
15659 perceptions, indicated elements within either restless, or hard, or
15660 eager. He did not speak to me one word, nor even direct to me one
15661 glance, till his sisters returned. Diana, as she passed in and out, in
15662 the course of preparing tea, brought me a little cake, baked on the top
15663 of the oven.
15664
15665 "Eat that now," she said: "you must be hungry. Hannah says you have had
15666 nothing but some gruel since breakfast."
15667
15668 I did not refuse it, for my appetite was awakened and keen. Mr. Rivers
15669 now closed his book, approached the table, and, as he took a seat, fixed
15670 his blue pictorial-looking eyes full on me. There was an unceremonious
15671 directness, a searching, decided steadfastness in his gaze now, which
15672 told that intention, and not diffidence, had hitherto kept it averted
15673 from the stranger.
15674
15675 "You are very hungry," he said.
15676
15677 "I am, sir." It is my way--it always was my way, by instinct--ever to
15678 meet the brief with brevity, the direct with plainness.
15679
15680 "It is well for you that a low fever has forced you to abstain for the
15681 last three days: there would have been danger in yielding to the cravings
15682 of your appetite at first. Now you may eat, though still not
15683 immoderately."
15684
15685 "I trust I shall not eat long at your expense, sir," was my very clumsily-
15686 contrived, unpolished answer.
15687
15688 "No," he said coolly: "when you have indicated to us the residence of
15689 your friends, we can write to them, and you may be restored to home."
15690
15691 "That, I must plainly tell you, is out of my power to do; being
15692 absolutely without home and friends."
15693
15694 The three looked at me, but not distrustfully; I felt there was no
15695 suspicion in their glances: there was more of curiosity. I speak
15696 particularly of the young ladies. St. John's eyes, though clear enough
15697 in a literal sense, in a figurative one were difficult to fathom. He
15698 seemed to use them rather as instruments to search other people's
15699 thoughts, than as agents to reveal his own: the which combination of
15700 keenness and reserve was considerably more calculated to embarrass than
15701 to encourage.
15702
15703 "Do you mean to say," he asked, "that you are completely isolated from
15704 every connection?"
15705
15706 "I do. Not a tie links me to any living thing: not a claim do I possess
15707 to admittance under any roof in England."
15708
15709 "A most singular position at your age!"
15710
15711 Here I saw his glance directed to my hands, which were folded on the
15712 table before me. I wondered what he sought there: his words soon
15713 explained the quest.
15714
15715 "You have never been married? You are a spinster?"
15716
15717 Diana laughed. "Why, she can't be above seventeen or eighteen years old,
15718 St. John," said she.
15719
15720 "I am near nineteen: but I am not married. No."
15721
15722 I felt a burning glow mount to my face; for bitter and agitating
15723 recollections were awakened by the allusion to marriage. They all saw
15724 the embarrassment and the emotion. Diana and Mary relieved me by turning
15725 their eyes elsewhere than to my crimsoned visage; but the colder and
15726 sterner brother continued to gaze, till the trouble he had excited forced
15727 out tears as well as colour.
15728
15729 "Where did you last reside?" he now asked.
15730
15731 "You are too inquisitive, St. John," murmured Mary in a low voice; but he
15732 leaned over the table and required an answer by a second firm and
15733 piercing look.
15734
15735 "The name of the place where, and of the person with whom I lived, is my
15736 secret," I replied concisely.
15737
15738 "Which, if you like, you have, in my opinion, a right to keep, both from
15739 St. John and every other questioner," remarked Diana.
15740
15741 "Yet if I know nothing about you or your history, I cannot help you," he
15742 said. "And you need help, do you not?"
15743
15744 "I need it, and I seek it so far, sir, that some true philanthropist will
15745 put me in the way of getting work which I can do, and the remuneration
15746 for which will keep me, if but in the barest necessaries of life."
15747
15748 "I know not whether I am a true philanthropist; yet I am willing to aid
15749 you to the utmost of my power in a purpose so honest. First, then, tell
15750 me what you have been accustomed to do, and what you _can_ do."
15751
15752 I had now swallowed my tea. I was mightily refreshed by the beverage; as
15753 much so as a giant with wine: it gave new tone to my unstrung nerves, and
15754 enabled me to address this penetrating young judge steadily.
15755
15756 "Mr. Rivers," I said, turning to him, and looking at him, as he looked at
15757 me, openly and without diffidence, "you and your sisters have done me a
15758 great service--the greatest man can do his fellow-being; you have rescued
15759 me, by your noble hospitality, from death. This benefit conferred gives
15760 you an unlimited claim on my gratitude, and a claim, to a certain extent,
15761 on my confidence. I will tell you as much of the history of the wanderer
15762 you have harboured, as I can tell without compromising my own peace of
15763 mind--my own security, moral and physical, and that of others.
15764
15765 "I am an orphan, the daughter of a clergyman. My parents died before I
15766 could know them. I was brought up a dependant; educated in a charitable
15767 institution. I will even tell you the name of the establishment, where I
15768 passed six years as a pupil, and two as a teacher--Lowood Orphan Asylum,
15769 ---shire: you will have heard of it, Mr. Rivers?--the Rev. Robert
15770 Brocklehurst is the treasurer."
15771
15772 "I have heard of Mr. Brocklehurst, and I have seen the school."
15773
15774 "I left Lowood nearly a year since to become a private governess. I
15775 obtained a good situation, and was happy. This place I was obliged to
15776 leave four days before I came here. The reason of my departure I cannot
15777 and ought not to explain: it would be useless, dangerous, and would sound
15778 incredible. No blame attached to me: I am as free from culpability as
15779 any one of you three. Miserable I am, and must be for a time; for the
15780 catastrophe which drove me from a house I had found a paradise was of a
15781 strange and direful nature. I observed but two points in planning my
15782 departure--speed, secrecy: to secure these, I had to leave behind me
15783 everything I possessed except a small parcel; which, in my hurry and
15784 trouble of mind, I forgot to take out of the coach that brought me to
15785 Whitcross. To this neighbourhood, then, I came, quite destitute. I
15786 slept two nights in the open air, and wandered about two days without
15787 crossing a threshold: but twice in that space of time did I taste food;
15788 and it was when brought by hunger, exhaustion, and despair almost to the
15789 last gasp, that you, Mr. Rivers, forbade me to perish of want at your
15790 door, and took me under the shelter of your roof. I know all your
15791 sisters have done for me since--for I have not been insensible during my
15792 seeming torpor--and I owe to their spontaneous, genuine, genial
15793 compassion as large a debt as to your evangelical charity."
15794
15795 "Don't make her talk any more now, St. John," said Diana, as I paused;
15796 "she is evidently not yet fit for excitement. Come to the sofa and sit
15797 down now, Miss Elliott."
15798
15799 I gave an involuntary half start at hearing the _alias_: I had forgotten
15800 my new name. Mr. Rivers, whom nothing seemed to escape, noticed it at
15801 once.
15802
15803 "You said your name was Jane Elliott?" he observed.
15804
15805 "I did say so; and it is the name by which I think it expedient to be
15806 called at present, but it is not my real name, and when I hear it, it
15807 sounds strange to me."
15808
15809 "Your real name you will not give?"
15810
15811 "No: I fear discovery above all things; and whatever disclosure would
15812 lead to it, I avoid."
15813
15814 "You are quite right, I am sure," said Diana. "Now do, brother, let her
15815 be at peace a while."
15816
15817 But when St. John had mused a few moments he recommenced as imperturbably
15818 and with as much acumen as ever.
15819
15820 "You would not like to be long dependent on our hospitality--you would
15821 wish, I see, to dispense as soon as may be with my sisters' compassion,
15822 and, above all, with my _charity_ (I am quite sensible of the distinction
15823 drawn, nor do I resent it--it is just): you desire to be independent of
15824 us?"
15825
15826 "I do: I have already said so. Show me how to work, or how to seek work:
15827 that is all I now ask; then let me go, if it be but to the meanest
15828 cottage; but till then, allow me to stay here: I dread another essay of
15829 the horrors of homeless destitution."
15830
15831 "Indeed you _shall_ stay here," said Diana, putting her white hand on my
15832 head. "You _shall_," repeated Mary, in the tone of undemonstrative
15833 sincerity which seemed natural to her.
15834
15835 "My sisters, you see, have a pleasure in keeping you," said Mr. St. John,
15836 "as they would have a pleasure in keeping and cherishing a half-frozen
15837 bird, some wintry wind might have driven through their casement. I feel
15838 more inclination to put you in the way of keeping yourself, and shall
15839 endeavour to do so; but observe, my sphere is narrow. I am but the
15840 incumbent of a poor country parish: my aid must be of the humblest sort.
15841 And if you are inclined to despise the day of small things, seek some
15842 more efficient succour than such as I can offer."
15843
15844 "She has already said that she is willing to do anything honest she can
15845 do," answered Diana for me; "and you know, St. John, she has no choice of
15846 helpers: she is forced to put up with such crusty people as you."
15847
15848 "I will be a dressmaker; I will be a plain-workwoman; I will be a
15849 servant, a nurse-girl, if I can be no better," I answered.
15850
15851 "Right," said Mr. St. John, quite coolly. "If such is your spirit, I
15852 promise to aid you, in my own time and way."
15853
15854 He now resumed the book with which he had been occupied before tea. I
15855 soon withdrew, for I had talked as much, and sat up as long, as my
15856 present strength would permit.
15857
15858
15859
15860
15861 CHAPTER XXX
15862
15863
15864 The more I knew of the inmates of Moor House, the better I liked them. In
15865 a few days I had so far recovered my health that I could sit up all day,
15866 and walk out sometimes. I could join with Diana and Mary in all their
15867 occupations; converse with them as much as they wished, and aid them when
15868 and where they would allow me. There was a reviving pleasure in this
15869 intercourse, of a kind now tasted by me for the first time--the pleasure
15870 arising from perfect congeniality of tastes, sentiments, and principles.
15871
15872 I liked to read what they liked to read: what they enjoyed, delighted me;
15873 what they approved, I reverenced. They loved their sequestered home. I,
15874 too, in the grey, small, antique structure, with its low roof, its
15875 latticed casements, its mouldering walls, its avenue of aged firs--all
15876 grown aslant under the stress of mountain winds; its garden, dark with
15877 yew and holly--and where no flowers but of the hardiest species would
15878 bloom--found a charm both potent and permanent. They clung to the purple
15879 moors behind and around their dwelling--to the hollow vale into which the
15880 pebbly bridle-path leading from their gate descended, and which wound
15881 between fern-banks first, and then amongst a few of the wildest little
15882 pasture-fields that ever bordered a wilderness of heath, or gave
15883 sustenance to a flock of grey moorland sheep, with their little mossy-
15884 faced lambs:--they clung to this scene, I say, with a perfect enthusiasm
15885 of attachment. I could comprehend the feeling, and share both its
15886 strength and truth. I saw the fascination of the locality. I felt the
15887 consecration of its loneliness: my eye feasted on the outline of swell
15888 and sweep--on the wild colouring communicated to ridge and dell by moss,
15889 by heath-bell, by flower-sprinkled turf, by brilliant bracken, and mellow
15890 granite crag. These details were just to me what they were to them--so
15891 many pure and sweet sources of pleasure. The strong blast and the soft
15892 breeze; the rough and the halcyon day; the hours of sunrise and sunset;
15893 the moonlight and the clouded night, developed for me, in these regions,
15894 the same attraction as for them--wound round my faculties the same spell
15895 that entranced theirs.
15896
15897 Indoors we agreed equally well. They were both more accomplished and
15898 better read than I was; but with eagerness I followed in the path of
15899 knowledge they had trodden before me. I devoured the books they lent me:
15900 then it was full satisfaction to discuss with them in the evening what I
15901 had perused during the day. Thought fitted thought; opinion met opinion:
15902 we coincided, in short, perfectly.
15903
15904 If in our trio there was a superior and a leader, it was Diana.
15905 Physically, she far excelled me: she was handsome; she was vigorous. In
15906 her animal spirits there was an affluence of life and certainty of flow,
15907 such as excited my wonder, while it baffled my comprehension. I could
15908 talk a while when the evening commenced, but the first gush of vivacity
15909 and fluency gone, I was fain to sit on a stool at Diana's feet, to rest
15910 my head on her knee, and listen alternately to her and Mary, while they
15911 sounded thoroughly the topic on which I had but touched. Diana offered
15912 to teach me German. I liked to learn of her: I saw the part of
15913 instructress pleased and suited her; that of scholar pleased and suited
15914 me no less. Our natures dovetailed: mutual affection--of the strongest
15915 kind--was the result. They discovered I could draw: their pencils and
15916 colour-boxes were immediately at my service. My skill, greater in this
15917 one point than theirs, surprised and charmed them. Mary would sit and
15918 watch me by the hour together: then she would take lessons; and a docile,
15919 intelligent, assiduous pupil she made. Thus occupied, and mutually
15920 entertained, days passed like hours, and weeks like days.
15921
15922 As to Mr. St John, the intimacy which had arisen so naturally and rapidly
15923 between me and his sisters did not extend to him. One reason of the
15924 distance yet observed between us was, that he was comparatively seldom at
15925 home: a large proportion of his time appeared devoted to visiting the
15926 sick and poor among the scattered population of his parish.
15927
15928 No weather seemed to hinder him in these pastoral excursions: rain or
15929 fair, he would, when his hours of morning study were over, take his hat,
15930 and, followed by his father's old pointer, Carlo, go out on his mission
15931 of love or duty--I scarcely know in which light he regarded it.
15932 Sometimes, when the day was very unfavourable, his sisters would
15933 expostulate. He would then say, with a peculiar smile, more solemn than
15934 cheerful--
15935
15936 "And if I let a gust of wind or a sprinkling of rain turn me aside from
15937 these easy tasks, what preparation would such sloth be for the future I
15938 propose to myself?"
15939
15940 Diana and Mary's general answer to this question was a sigh, and some
15941 minutes of apparently mournful meditation.
15942
15943 But besides his frequent absences, there was another barrier to
15944 friendship with him: he seemed of a reserved, an abstracted, and even of
15945 a brooding nature. Zealous in his ministerial labours, blameless in his
15946 life and habits, he yet did not appear to enjoy that mental serenity,
15947 that inward content, which should be the reward of every sincere
15948 Christian and practical philanthropist. Often, of an evening, when he
15949 sat at the window, his desk and papers before him, he would cease reading
15950 or writing, rest his chin on his hand, and deliver himself up to I know
15951 not what course of thought; but that it was perturbed and exciting might
15952 be seen in the frequent flash and changeful dilation of his eye.
15953
15954 I think, moreover, that Nature was not to him that treasury of delight it
15955 was to his sisters. He expressed once, and but once in my hearing, a
15956 strong sense of the rugged charm of the hills, and an inborn affection
15957 for the dark roof and hoary walls he called his home; but there was more
15958 of gloom than pleasure in the tone and words in which the sentiment was
15959 manifested; and never did he seem to roam the moors for the sake of their
15960 soothing silence--never seek out or dwell upon the thousand peaceful
15961 delights they could yield.
15962
15963 Incommunicative as he was, some time elapsed before I had an opportunity
15964 of gauging his mind. I first got an idea of its calibre when I heard him
15965 preach in his own church at Morton. I wish I could describe that sermon:
15966 but it is past my power. I cannot even render faithfully the effect it
15967 produced on me.
15968
15969 It began calm--and indeed, as far as delivery and pitch of voice went, it
15970 was calm to the end: an earnestly felt, yet strictly restrained zeal
15971 breathed soon in the distinct accents, and prompted the nervous language.
15972 This grew to force--compressed, condensed, controlled. The heart was
15973 thrilled, the mind astonished, by the power of the preacher: neither were
15974 softened. Throughout there was a strange bitterness; an absence of
15975 consolatory gentleness; stern allusions to Calvinistic
15976 doctrines--election, predestination, reprobation--were frequent; and each
15977 reference to these points sounded like a sentence pronounced for doom.
15978 When he had done, instead of feeling better, calmer, more enlightened by
15979 his discourse, I experienced an inexpressible sadness; for it seemed to
15980 me--I know not whether equally so to others--that the eloquence to which
15981 I had been listening had sprung from a depth where lay turbid dregs of
15982 disappointment--where moved troubling impulses of insatiate yearnings and
15983 disquieting aspirations. I was sure St. John Rivers--pure-lived,
15984 conscientious, zealous as he was--had not yet found that peace of God
15985 which passeth all understanding: he had no more found it, I thought, than
15986 had I with my concealed and racking regrets for my broken idol and lost
15987 elysium--regrets to which I have latterly avoided referring, but which
15988 possessed me and tyrannised over me ruthlessly.
15989
15990 Meantime a month was gone. Diana and Mary were soon to leave Moor House,
15991 and return to the far different life and scene which awaited them, as
15992 governesses in a large, fashionable, south-of-England city, where each
15993 held a situation in families by whose wealthy and haughty members they
15994 were regarded only as humble dependants, and who neither knew nor sought
15995 out their innate excellences, and appreciated only their acquired
15996 accomplishments as they appreciated the skill of their cook or the taste
15997 of their waiting-woman. Mr. St. John had said nothing to me yet about
15998 the employment he had promised to obtain for me; yet it became urgent
15999 that I should have a vocation of some kind. One morning, being left
16000 alone with him a few minutes in the parlour, I ventured to approach the
16001 window-recess--which his table, chair, and desk consecrated as a kind of
16002 study--and I was going to speak, though not very well knowing in what
16003 words to frame my inquiry--for it is at all times difficult to break the
16004 ice of reserve glassing over such natures as his--when he saved me the
16005 trouble by being the first to commence a dialogue.
16006
16007 Looking up as I drew near--"You have a question to ask of me?" he said.
16008
16009 "Yes; I wish to know whether you have heard of any service I can offer
16010 myself to undertake?"
16011
16012 "I found or devised something for you three weeks ago; but as you seemed
16013 both useful and happy here--as my sisters had evidently become attached
16014 to you, and your society gave them unusual pleasure--I deemed it
16015 inexpedient to break in on your mutual comfort till their approaching
16016 departure from Marsh End should render yours necessary."
16017
16018 "And they will go in three days now?" I said.
16019
16020 "Yes; and when they go, I shall return to the parsonage at Morton: Hannah
16021 will accompany me; and this old house will be shut up."
16022
16023 I waited a few moments, expecting he would go on with the subject first
16024 broached: but he seemed to have entered another train of reflection: his
16025 look denoted abstraction from me and my business. I was obliged to
16026 recall him to a theme which was of necessity one of close and anxious
16027 interest to me.
16028
16029 "What is the employment you had in view, Mr. Rivers? I hope this delay
16030 will not have increased the difficulty of securing it."
16031
16032 "Oh, no; since it is an employment which depends only on me to give, and
16033 you to accept."
16034
16035 He again paused: there seemed a reluctance to continue. I grew
16036 impatient: a restless movement or two, and an eager and exacting glance
16037 fastened on his face, conveyed the feeling to him as effectually as words
16038 could have done, and with less trouble.
16039
16040 "You need be in no hurry to hear," he said: "let me frankly tell you, I
16041 have nothing eligible or profitable to suggest. Before I explain,
16042 recall, if you please, my notice, clearly given, that if I helped you, it
16043 must be as the blind man would help the lame. I am poor; for I find
16044 that, when I have paid my father's debts, all the patrimony remaining to
16045 me will be this crumbling grange, the row of scathed firs behind, and the
16046 patch of moorish soil, with the yew-trees and holly-bushes in front. I
16047 am obscure: Rivers is an old name; but of the three sole descendants of
16048 the race, two earn the dependant's crust among strangers, and the third
16049 considers himself an alien from his native country--not only for life,
16050 but in death. Yes, and deems, and is bound to deem, himself honoured by
16051 the lot, and aspires but after the day when the cross of separation from
16052 fleshly ties shall be laid on his shoulders, and when the Head of that
16053 church-militant of whose humblest members he is one, shall give the word,
16054 'Rise, follow Me!'"
16055
16056 St. John said these words as he pronounced his sermons, with a quiet,
16057 deep voice; with an unflushed cheek, and a coruscating radiance of
16058 glance. He resumed--
16059
16060 "And since I am myself poor and obscure, I can offer you but a service of
16061 poverty and obscurity. _You_ may even think it degrading--for I see now
16062 your habits have been what the world calls refined: your tastes lean to
16063 the ideal, and your society has at least been amongst the educated; but
16064 _I_ consider that no service degrades which can better our race. I hold
16065 that the more arid and unreclaimed the soil where the Christian
16066 labourer's task of tillage is appointed him--the scantier the meed his
16067 toil brings--the higher the honour. His, under such circumstances, is
16068 the destiny of the pioneer; and the first pioneers of the Gospel were the
16069 Apostles--their captain was Jesus, the Redeemer, Himself."
16070
16071 "Well?" I said, as he again paused--"proceed."
16072
16073 He looked at me before he proceeded: indeed, he seemed leisurely to read
16074 my face, as if its features and lines were characters on a page. The
16075 conclusions drawn from this scrutiny he partially expressed in his
16076 succeeding observations.
16077
16078 "I believe you will accept the post I offer you," said he, "and hold it
16079 for a while: not permanently, though: any more than I could permanently
16080 keep the narrow and narrowing--the tranquil, hidden office of English
16081 country incumbent; for in your nature is an alloy as detrimental to
16082 repose as that in mine, though of a different kind."
16083
16084 "Do explain," I urged, when he halted once more.
16085
16086 "I will; and you shall hear how poor the proposal is,--how trivial--how
16087 cramping. I shall not stay long at Morton, now that my father is dead,
16088 and that I am my own master. I shall leave the place probably in the
16089 course of a twelve-month; but while I do stay, I will exert myself to the
16090 utmost for its improvement. Morton, when I came to it two years ago, had
16091 no school: the children of the poor were excluded from every hope of
16092 progress. I established one for boys: I mean now to open a second school
16093 for girls. I have hired a building for the purpose, with a cottage of
16094 two rooms attached to it for the mistress's house. Her salary will be
16095 thirty pounds a year: her house is already furnished, very simply, but
16096 sufficiently, by the kindness of a lady, Miss Oliver; the only daughter
16097 of the sole rich man in my parish--Mr. Oliver, the proprietor of a needle-
16098 factory and iron-foundry in the valley. The same lady pays for the
16099 education and clothing of an orphan from the workhouse, on condition that
16100 she shall aid the mistress in such menial offices connected with her own
16101 house and the school as her occupation of teaching will prevent her
16102 having time to discharge in person. Will you be this mistress?"
16103
16104 He put the question rather hurriedly; he seemed half to expect an
16105 indignant, or at least a disdainful rejection of the offer: not knowing
16106 all my thoughts and feelings, though guessing some, he could not tell in
16107 what light the lot would appear to me. In truth it was humble--but then
16108 it was sheltered, and I wanted a safe asylum: it was plodding--but then,
16109 compared with that of a governess in a rich house, it was independent;
16110 and the fear of servitude with strangers entered my soul like iron: it
16111 was not ignoble--not unworthy--not mentally degrading, I made my
16112 decision.
16113
16114 "I thank you for the proposal, Mr. Rivers, and I accept it with all my
16115 heart."
16116
16117 "But you comprehend me?" he said. "It is a village school: your scholars
16118 will be only poor girls--cottagers' children--at the best, farmers'
16119 daughters. Knitting, sewing, reading, writing, ciphering, will be all
16120 you will have to teach. What will you do with your accomplishments?
16121 What, with the largest portion of your mind--sentiments--tastes?"
16122
16123 "Save them till they are wanted. They will keep."
16124
16125 "You know what you undertake, then?"
16126
16127 "I do."
16128
16129 He now smiled: and not a bitter or a sad smile, but one well pleased and
16130 deeply gratified.
16131
16132 "And when will you commence the exercise of your function?"
16133
16134 "I will go to my house to-morrow, and open the school, if you like, next
16135 week."
16136
16137 "Very well: so be it."
16138
16139 He rose and walked through the room. Standing still, he again looked at
16140 me. He shook his head.
16141
16142 "What do you disapprove of, Mr. Rivers?" I asked.
16143
16144 "You will not stay at Morton long: no, no!"
16145
16146 "Why? What is your reason for saying so?"
16147
16148 "I read it in your eye; it is not of that description which promises the
16149 maintenance of an even tenor in life."
16150
16151 "I am not ambitious."
16152
16153 He started at the word "ambitious." He repeated, "No. What made you
16154 think of ambition? Who is ambitious? I know I am: but how did you find
16155 it out?"
16156
16157 "I was speaking of myself."
16158
16159 "Well, if you are not ambitious, you are--" He paused.
16160
16161 "What?"
16162
16163 "I was going to say, impassioned: but perhaps you would have
16164 misunderstood the word, and been displeased. I mean, that human
16165 affections and sympathies have a most powerful hold on you. I am sure
16166 you cannot long be content to pass your leisure in solitude, and to
16167 devote your working hours to a monotonous labour wholly void of stimulus:
16168 any more than I can be content," he added, with emphasis, "to live here
16169 buried in morass, pent in with mountains--my nature, that God gave me,
16170 contravened; my faculties, heaven-bestowed, paralysed--made useless. You
16171 hear now how I contradict myself. I, who preached contentment with a
16172 humble lot, and justified the vocation even of hewers of wood and drawers
16173 of water in God's service--I, His ordained minister, almost rave in my
16174 restlessness. Well, propensities and principles must be reconciled by
16175 some means."
16176
16177 He left the room. In this brief hour I had learnt more of him than in
16178 the whole previous month: yet still he puzzled me.
16179
16180 Diana and Mary Rivers became more sad and silent as the day approached
16181 for leaving their brother and their home. They both tried to appear as
16182 usual; but the sorrow they had to struggle against was one that could not
16183 be entirely conquered or concealed. Diana intimated that this would be a
16184 different parting from any they had ever yet known. It would probably,
16185 as far as St. John was concerned, be a parting for years: it might be a
16186 parting for life.
16187
16188 "He will sacrifice all to his long-framed resolves," she said: "natural
16189 affection and feelings more potent still. St. John looks quiet, Jane;
16190 but he hides a fever in his vitals. You would think him gentle, yet in
16191 some things he is inexorable as death; and the worst of it is, my
16192 conscience will hardly permit me to dissuade him from his severe
16193 decision: certainly, I cannot for a moment blame him for it. It is
16194 right, noble, Christian: yet it breaks my heart!" And the tears gushed
16195 to her fine eyes. Mary bent her head low over her work.
16196
16197 "We are now without father: we shall soon be without home and brother,"
16198 she murmured.
16199
16200 At that moment a little accident supervened, which seemed decreed by fate
16201 purposely to prove the truth of the adage, that "misfortunes never come
16202 singly," and to add to their distresses the vexing one of the slip
16203 between the cup and the lip. St. John passed the window reading a
16204 letter. He entered.
16205
16206 "Our uncle John is dead," said he.
16207
16208 Both the sisters seemed struck: not shocked or appalled; the tidings
16209 appeared in their eyes rather momentous than afflicting.
16210
16211 "Dead?" repeated Diana.
16212
16213 "Yes."
16214
16215 She riveted a searching gaze on her brother's face. "And what then?" she
16216 demanded, in a low voice.
16217
16218 "What then, Die?" he replied, maintaining a marble immobility of feature.
16219 "What then? Why--nothing. Read."
16220
16221 He threw the letter into her lap. She glanced over it, and handed it to
16222 Mary. Mary perused it in silence, and returned it to her brother. All
16223 three looked at each other, and all three smiled--a dreary, pensive smile
16224 enough.
16225
16226 "Amen! We can yet live," said Diana at last.
16227
16228 "At any rate, it makes us no worse off than we were before," remarked
16229 Mary.
16230
16231 "Only it forces rather strongly on the mind the picture of what _might
16232 have been_," said Mr. Rivers, "and contrasts it somewhat too vividly with
16233 what _is_."
16234
16235 He folded the letter, locked it in his desk, and again went out.
16236
16237 For some minutes no one spoke. Diana then turned to me.
16238
16239 "Jane, you will wonder at us and our mysteries," she said, "and think us
16240 hard-hearted beings not to be more moved at the death of so near a
16241 relation as an uncle; but we have never seen him or known him. He was my
16242 mother's brother. My father and he quarrelled long ago. It was by his
16243 advice that my father risked most of his property in the speculation that
16244 ruined him. Mutual recrimination passed between them: they parted in
16245 anger, and were never reconciled. My uncle engaged afterwards in more
16246 prosperous undertakings: it appears he realised a fortune of twenty
16247 thousand pounds. He was never married, and had no near kindred but
16248 ourselves and one other person, not more closely related than we. My
16249 father always cherished the idea that he would atone for his error by
16250 leaving his possessions to us; that letter informs us that he has
16251 bequeathed every penny to the other relation, with the exception of
16252 thirty guineas, to be divided between St. John, Diana, and Mary Rivers,
16253 for the purchase of three mourning rings. He had a right, of course, to
16254 do as he pleased: and yet a momentary damp is cast on the spirits by the
16255 receipt of such news. Mary and I would have esteemed ourselves rich with
16256 a thousand pounds each; and to St. John such a sum would have been
16257 valuable, for the good it would have enabled him to do."
16258
16259 This explanation given, the subject was dropped, and no further reference
16260 made to it by either Mr. Rivers or his sisters. The next day I left
16261 Marsh End for Morton. The day after, Diana and Mary quitted it for
16262 distant B-. In a week, Mr. Rivers and Hannah repaired to the parsonage:
16263 and so the old grange was abandoned.
16264
16265
16266
16267
16268 CHAPTER XXXI
16269
16270
16271 My home, then, when I at last find a home,--is a cottage; a little room
16272 with whitewashed walls and a sanded floor, containing four painted chairs
16273 and a table, a clock, a cupboard, with two or three plates and dishes,
16274 and a set of tea-things in delf. Above, a chamber of the same dimensions
16275 as the kitchen, with a deal bedstead and chest of drawers; small, yet too
16276 large to be filled with my scanty wardrobe: though the kindness of my
16277 gentle and generous friends has increased that, by a modest stock of such
16278 things as are necessary.
16279
16280 It is evening. I have dismissed, with the fee of an orange, the little
16281 orphan who serves me as a handmaid. I am sitting alone on the hearth.
16282 This morning, the village school opened. I had twenty scholars. But
16283 three of the number can read: none write or cipher. Several knit, and a
16284 few sew a little. They speak with the broadest accent of the district.
16285 At present, they and I have a difficulty in understanding each other's
16286 language. Some of them are unmannered, rough, intractable, as well as
16287 ignorant; but others are docile, have a wish to learn, and evince a
16288 disposition that pleases me. I must not forget that these coarsely-clad
16289 little peasants are of flesh and blood as good as the scions of gentlest
16290 genealogy; and that the germs of native excellence, refinement,
16291 intelligence, kind feeling, are as likely to exist in their hearts as in
16292 those of the best-born. My duty will be to develop these germs: surely I
16293 shall find some happiness in discharging that office. Much enjoyment I
16294 do not expect in the life opening before me: yet it will, doubtless, if I
16295 regulate my mind, and exert my powers as I ought, yield me enough to live
16296 on from day to day.
16297
16298 Was I very gleeful, settled, content, during the hours I passed in yonder
16299 bare, humble schoolroom this morning and afternoon? Not to deceive
16300 myself, I must reply--No: I felt desolate to a degree. I felt--yes,
16301 idiot that I am--I felt degraded. I doubted I had taken a step which
16302 sank instead of raising me in the scale of social existence. I was
16303 weakly dismayed at the ignorance, the poverty, the coarseness of all I
16304 heard and saw round me. But let me not hate and despise myself too much
16305 for these feelings; I know them to be wrong--that is a great step gained;
16306 I shall strive to overcome them. To-morrow, I trust, I shall get the
16307 better of them partially; and in a few weeks, perhaps, they will be quite
16308 subdued. In a few months, it is possible, the happiness of seeing
16309 progress, and a change for the better in my scholars may substitute
16310 gratification for disgust.
16311
16312 Meantime, let me ask myself one question--Which is better?--To have
16313 surrendered to temptation; listened to passion; made no painful effort--no
16314 struggle;--but to have sunk down in the silken snare; fallen asleep on
16315 the flowers covering it; wakened in a southern clime, amongst the
16316 luxuries of a pleasure villa: to have been now living in France, Mr.
16317 Rochester's mistress; delirious with his love half my time--for he
16318 would--oh, yes, he would have loved me well for a while. He _did_ love
16319 me--no one will ever love me so again. I shall never more know the sweet
16320 homage given to beauty, youth, and grace--for never to any one else shall
16321 I seem to possess these charms. He was fond and proud of me--it is what
16322 no man besides will ever be.--But where am I wandering, and what am I
16323 saying, and above all, feeling? Whether is it better, I ask, to be a
16324 slave in a fool's paradise at Marseilles--fevered with delusive bliss one
16325 hour--suffocating with the bitterest tears of remorse and shame the
16326 next--or to be a village-schoolmistress, free and honest, in a breezy
16327 mountain nook in the healthy heart of England?
16328
16329 Yes; I feel now that I was right when I adhered to principle and law, and
16330 scorned and crushed the insane promptings of a frenzied moment. God
16331 directed me to a correct choice: I thank His providence for the guidance!
16332
16333 Having brought my eventide musings to this point, I rose, went to my
16334 door, and looked at the sunset of the harvest-day, and at the quiet
16335 fields before my cottage, which, with the school, was distant half a mile
16336 from the village. The birds were singing their last strains--
16337
16338 "The air was mild, the dew was balm."
16339
16340 While I looked, I thought myself happy, and was surprised to find myself
16341 ere long weeping--and why? For the doom which had reft me from adhesion
16342 to my master: for him I was no more to see; for the desperate grief and
16343 fatal fury--consequences of my departure--which might now, perhaps, be
16344 dragging him from the path of right, too far to leave hope of ultimate
16345 restoration thither. At this thought, I turned my face aside from the
16346 lovely sky of eve and lonely vale of Morton--I say _lonely_, for in that
16347 bend of it visible to me there was no building apparent save the church
16348 and the parsonage, half-hid in trees, and, quite at the extremity, the
16349 roof of Vale Hall, where the rich Mr. Oliver and his daughter lived. I
16350 hid my eyes, and leant my head against the stone frame of my door; but
16351 soon a slight noise near the wicket which shut in my tiny garden from the
16352 meadow beyond it made me look up. A dog--old Carlo, Mr. Rivers' pointer,
16353 as I saw in a moment--was pushing the gate with his nose, and St. John
16354 himself leant upon it with folded arms; his brow knit, his gaze, grave
16355 almost to displeasure, fixed on me. I asked him to come in.
16356
16357 "No, I cannot stay; I have only brought you a little parcel my sisters
16358 left for you. I think it contains a colour-box, pencils, and paper."
16359
16360 I approached to take it: a welcome gift it was. He examined my face, I
16361 thought, with austerity, as I came near: the traces of tears were
16362 doubtless very visible upon it.
16363
16364 "Have you found your first day's work harder than you expected?" he
16365 asked.
16366
16367 "Oh, no! On the contrary, I think in time I shall get on with my
16368 scholars very well."
16369
16370 "But perhaps your accommodations--your cottage--your furniture--have
16371 disappointed your expectations? They are, in truth, scanty enough; but--"
16372 I interrupted--
16373
16374 "My cottage is clean and weather-proof; my furniture sufficient and
16375 commodious. All I see has made me thankful, not despondent. I am not
16376 absolutely such a fool and sensualist as to regret the absence of a
16377 carpet, a sofa, and silver plate; besides, five weeks ago I had nothing--I
16378 was an outcast, a beggar, a vagrant; now I have acquaintance, a home, a
16379 business. I wonder at the goodness of God; the generosity of my friends;
16380 the bounty of my lot. I do not repine."
16381
16382 "But you feel solitude an oppression? The little house there behind you
16383 is dark and empty."
16384
16385 "I have hardly had time yet to enjoy a sense of tranquillity, much less
16386 to grow impatient under one of loneliness."
16387
16388 "Very well; I hope you feel the content you express: at any rate, your
16389 good sense will tell you that it is too soon yet to yield to the
16390 vacillating fears of Lot's wife. What you had left before I saw you, of
16391 course I do not know; but I counsel you to resist firmly every temptation
16392 which would incline you to look back: pursue your present career
16393 steadily, for some months at least."
16394
16395 "It is what I mean to do," I answered. St. John continued--
16396
16397 "It is hard work to control the workings of inclination and turn the bent
16398 of nature; but that it may be done, I know from experience. God has
16399 given us, in a measure, the power to make our own fate; and when our
16400 energies seem to demand a sustenance they cannot get--when our will
16401 strains after a path we may not follow--we need neither starve from
16402 inanition, nor stand still in despair: we have but to seek another
16403 nourishment for the mind, as strong as the forbidden food it longed to
16404 taste--and perhaps purer; and to hew out for the adventurous foot a road
16405 as direct and broad as the one Fortune has blocked up against us, if
16406 rougher than it.
16407
16408 "A year ago I was myself intensely miserable, because I thought I had
16409 made a mistake in entering the ministry: its uniform duties wearied me to
16410 death. I burnt for the more active life of the world--for the more
16411 exciting toils of a literary career--for the destiny of an artist,
16412 author, orator; anything rather than that of a priest: yes, the heart of
16413 a politician, of a soldier, of a votary of glory, a lover of renown, a
16414 luster after power, beat under my curate's surplice. I considered; my
16415 life was so wretched, it must be changed, or I must die. After a season
16416 of darkness and struggling, light broke and relief fell: my cramped
16417 existence all at once spread out to a plain without bounds--my powers
16418 heard a call from heaven to rise, gather their full strength, spread
16419 their wings, and mount beyond ken. God had an errand for me; to bear
16420 which afar, to deliver it well, skill and strength, courage and
16421 eloquence, the best qualifications of soldier, statesman, and orator,
16422 were all needed: for these all centre in the good missionary.
16423
16424 "A missionary I resolved to be. From that moment my state of mind
16425 changed; the fetters dissolved and dropped from every faculty, leaving
16426 nothing of bondage but its galling soreness--which time only can heal. My
16427 father, indeed, imposed the determination, but since his death, I have
16428 not a legitimate obstacle to contend with; some affairs settled, a
16429 successor for Morton provided, an entanglement or two of the feelings
16430 broken through or cut asunder--a last conflict with human weakness, in
16431 which I know I shall overcome, because I have vowed that I _will_
16432 overcome--and I leave Europe for the East."
16433
16434 He said this, in his peculiar, subdued, yet emphatic voice; looking, when
16435 he had ceased speaking, not at me, but at the setting sun, at which I
16436 looked too. Both he and I had our backs towards the path leading up the
16437 field to the wicket. We had heard no step on that grass-grown track; the
16438 water running in the vale was the one lulling sound of the hour and
16439 scene; we might well then start when a gay voice, sweet as a silver bell,
16440 exclaimed--
16441
16442 "Good evening, Mr. Rivers. And good evening, old Carlo. Your dog is
16443 quicker to recognise his friends than you are, sir; he pricked his ears
16444 and wagged his tail when I was at the bottom of the field, and you have
16445 your back towards me now."
16446
16447 It was true. Though Mr. Rivers had started at the first of those musical
16448 accents, as if a thunderbolt had split a cloud over his head, he stood
16449 yet, at the close of the sentence, in the same attitude in which the
16450 speaker had surprised him--his arm resting on the gate, his face directed
16451 towards the west. He turned at last, with measured deliberation. A
16452 vision, as it seemed to me, had risen at his side. There appeared,
16453 within three feet of him, a form clad in pure white--a youthful, graceful
16454 form: full, yet fine in contour; and when, after bending to caress Carlo,
16455 it lifted up its head, and threw back a long veil, there bloomed under
16456 his glance a face of perfect beauty. Perfect beauty is a strong
16457 expression; but I do not retrace or qualify it: as sweet features as ever
16458 the temperate clime of Albion moulded; as pure hues of rose and lily as
16459 ever her humid gales and vapoury skies generated and screened, justified,
16460 in this instance, the term. No charm was wanting, no defect was
16461 perceptible; the young girl had regular and delicate lineaments; eyes
16462 shaped and coloured as we see them in lovely pictures, large, and dark,
16463 and full; the long and shadowy eyelash which encircles a fine eye with so
16464 soft a fascination; the pencilled brow which gives such clearness; the
16465 white smooth forehead, which adds such repose to the livelier beauties of
16466 tint and ray; the cheek oval, fresh, and smooth; the lips, fresh too,
16467 ruddy, healthy, sweetly formed; the even and gleaming teeth without flaw;
16468 the small dimpled chin; the ornament of rich, plenteous tresses--all
16469 advantages, in short, which, combined, realise the ideal of beauty, were
16470 fully hers. I wondered, as I looked at this fair creature: I admired her
16471 with my whole heart. Nature had surely formed her in a partial mood;
16472 and, forgetting her usual stinted step-mother dole of gifts, had endowed
16473 this, her darling, with a grand-dame's bounty.
16474
16475 What did St. John Rivers think of this earthly angel? I naturally asked
16476 myself that question as I saw him turn to her and look at her; and, as
16477 naturally, I sought the answer to the inquiry in his countenance. He had
16478 already withdrawn his eye from the Peri, and was looking at a humble tuft
16479 of daisies which grew by the wicket.
16480
16481 "A lovely evening, but late for you to be out alone," he said, as he
16482 crushed the snowy heads of the closed flowers with his foot.
16483
16484 "Oh, I only came home from S-" (she mentioned the name of a large town
16485 some twenty miles distant) "this afternoon. Papa told me you had opened
16486 your school, and that the new mistress was come; and so I put on my
16487 bonnet after tea, and ran up the valley to see her: this is she?"
16488 pointing to me.
16489
16490 "It is," said St. John.
16491
16492 "Do you think you shall like Morton?" she asked of me, with a direct and
16493 naive simplicity of tone and manner, pleasing, if child-like.
16494
16495 "I hope I shall. I have many inducements to do so."
16496
16497 "Did you find your scholars as attentive as you expected?"
16498
16499 "Quite."
16500
16501 "Do you like your house?"
16502
16503 "Very much."
16504
16505 "Have I furnished it nicely?"
16506
16507 "Very nicely, indeed."
16508
16509 "And made a good choice of an attendant for you in Alice Wood?"
16510
16511 "You have indeed. She is teachable and handy." (This then, I thought,
16512 is Miss Oliver, the heiress; favoured, it seems, in the gifts of fortune,
16513 as well as in those of nature! What happy combination of the planets
16514 presided over her birth, I wonder?)
16515
16516 "I shall come up and help you to teach sometimes," she added. "It will
16517 be a change for me to visit you now and then; and I like a change. Mr.
16518 Rivers, I have been _so_ gay during my stay at S-. Last night, or rather
16519 this morning, I was dancing till two o'clock. The ---th regiment are
16520 stationed there since the riots; and the officers are the most agreeable
16521 men in the world: they put all our young knife-grinders and scissor
16522 merchants to shame."
16523
16524 It seemed to me that Mr. St. John's under lip protruded, and his upper
16525 lip curled a moment. His mouth certainly looked a good deal compressed,
16526 and the lower part of his face unusually stern and square, as the
16527 laughing girl gave him this information. He lifted his gaze, too, from
16528 the daisies, and turned it on her. An unsmiling, a searching, a meaning
16529 gaze it was. She answered it with a second laugh, and laughter well
16530 became her youth, her roses, her dimples, her bright eyes.
16531
16532 As he stood, mute and grave, she again fell to caressing Carlo. "Poor
16533 Carlo loves me," said she. "_He_ is not stern and distant to his
16534 friends; and if he could speak, he would not be silent."
16535
16536 As she patted the dog's head, bending with native grace before his young
16537 and austere master, I saw a glow rise to that master's face. I saw his
16538 solemn eye melt with sudden fire, and flicker with resistless emotion.
16539 Flushed and kindled thus, he looked nearly as beautiful for a man as she
16540 for a woman. His chest heaved once, as if his large heart, weary of
16541 despotic constriction, had expanded, despite the will, and made a
16542 vigorous bound for the attainment of liberty. But he curbed it, I think,
16543 as a resolute rider would curb a rearing steed. He responded neither by
16544 word nor movement to the gentle advances made him.
16545
16546 "Papa says you never come to see us now," continued Miss Oliver, looking
16547 up. "You are quite a stranger at Vale Hall. He is alone this evening,
16548 and not very well: will you return with me and visit him?"
16549
16550 "It is not a seasonable hour to intrude on Mr. Oliver," answered St.
16551 John.
16552
16553 "Not a seasonable hour! But I declare it is. It is just the hour when
16554 papa most wants company: when the works are closed and he has no business
16555 to occupy him. Now, Mr. Rivers, _do_ come. Why are you so very shy, and
16556 so very sombre?" She filled up the hiatus his silence left by a reply of
16557 her own.
16558
16559 "I forgot!" she exclaimed, shaking her beautiful curled head, as if
16560 shocked at herself. "I am so giddy and thoughtless! _Do_ excuse me. It
16561 had slipped my memory that you have good reasons to be indisposed for
16562 joining in my chatter. Diana and Mary have left you, and Moor House is
16563 shut up, and you are so lonely. I am sure I pity you. Do come and see
16564 papa."
16565
16566 "Not to-night, Miss Rosamond, not to-night."
16567
16568 Mr. St. John spoke almost like an automaton: himself only knew the effort
16569 it cost him thus to refuse.
16570
16571 "Well, if you are so obstinate, I will leave you; for I dare not stay any
16572 longer: the dew begins to fall. Good evening!"
16573
16574 She held out her hand. He just touched it. "Good evening!" he repeated,
16575 in a voice low and hollow as an echo. She turned, but in a moment
16576 returned.
16577
16578 "Are you well?" she asked. Well might she put the question: his face was
16579 blanched as her gown.
16580
16581 "Quite well," he enunciated; and, with a bow, he left the gate. She went
16582 one way; he another. She turned twice to gaze after him as she tripped
16583 fairy-like down the field; he, as he strode firmly across, never turned
16584 at all.
16585
16586 This spectacle of another's suffering and sacrifice rapt my thoughts from
16587 exclusive meditation on my own. Diana Rivers had designated her brother
16588 "inexorable as death." She had not exaggerated.
16589
16590
16591
16592
16593 CHAPTER XXXII
16594
16595
16596 I continued the labours of the village-school as actively and faithfully
16597 as I could. It was truly hard work at first. Some time elapsed before,
16598 with all my efforts, I could comprehend my scholars and their nature.
16599 Wholly untaught, with faculties quite torpid, they seemed to me
16600 hopelessly dull; and, at first sight, all dull alike: but I soon found I
16601 was mistaken. There was a difference amongst them as amongst the
16602 educated; and when I got to know them, and they me, this difference
16603 rapidly developed itself. Their amazement at me, my language, my rules,
16604 and ways, once subsided, I found some of these heavy-looking, gaping
16605 rustics wake up into sharp-witted girls enough. Many showed themselves
16606 obliging, and amiable too; and I discovered amongst them not a few
16607 examples of natural politeness, and innate self-respect, as well as of
16608 excellent capacity, that won both my goodwill and my admiration. These
16609 soon took a pleasure in doing their work well, in keeping their persons
16610 neat, in learning their tasks regularly, in acquiring quiet and orderly
16611 manners. The rapidity of their progress, in some instances, was even
16612 surprising; and an honest and happy pride I took in it: besides, I began
16613 personally to like some of the best girls; and they liked me. I had
16614 amongst my scholars several farmers' daughters: young women grown,
16615 almost. These could already read, write, and sew; and to them I taught
16616 the elements of grammar, geography, history, and the finer kinds of
16617 needlework. I found estimable characters amongst them--characters
16618 desirous of information and disposed for improvement--with whom I passed
16619 many a pleasant evening hour in their own homes. Their parents then (the
16620 farmer and his wife) loaded me with attentions. There was an enjoyment
16621 in accepting their simple kindness, and in repaying it by a
16622 consideration--a scrupulous regard to their feelings--to which they were
16623 not, perhaps, at all times accustomed, and which both charmed and
16624 benefited them; because, while it elevated them in their own eyes, it
16625 made them emulous to merit the deferential treatment they received.
16626
16627 I felt I became a favourite in the neighbourhood. Whenever I went out, I
16628 heard on all sides cordial salutations, and was welcomed with friendly
16629 smiles. To live amidst general regard, though it be but the regard of
16630 working people, is like "sitting in sunshine, calm and sweet;" serene
16631 inward feelings bud and bloom under the ray. At this period of my life,
16632 my heart far oftener swelled with thankfulness than sank with dejection:
16633 and yet, reader, to tell you all, in the midst of this calm, this useful
16634 existence--after a day passed in honourable exertion amongst my scholars,
16635 an evening spent in drawing or reading contentedly alone--I used to rush
16636 into strange dreams at night: dreams many-coloured, agitated, full of the
16637 ideal, the stirring, the stormy--dreams where, amidst unusual scenes,
16638 charged with adventure, with agitating risk and romantic chance, I still
16639 again and again met Mr. Rochester, always at some exciting crisis; and
16640 then the sense of being in his arms, hearing his voice, meeting his eye,
16641 touching his hand and cheek, loving him, being loved by him--the hope of
16642 passing a lifetime at his side, would be renewed, with all its first
16643 force and fire. Then I awoke. Then I recalled where I was, and how
16644 situated. Then I rose up on my curtainless bed, trembling and quivering;
16645 and then the still, dark night witnessed the convulsion of despair, and
16646 heard the burst of passion. By nine o'clock the next morning I was
16647 punctually opening the school; tranquil, settled, prepared for the steady
16648 duties of the day.
16649
16650 Rosamond Oliver kept her word in coming to visit me. Her call at the
16651 school was generally made in the course of her morning ride. She would
16652 canter up to the door on her pony, followed by a mounted livery servant.
16653 Anything more exquisite than her appearance, in her purple habit, with
16654 her Amazon's cap of black velvet placed gracefully above the long curls
16655 that kissed her cheek and floated to her shoulders, can scarcely be
16656 imagined: and it was thus she would enter the rustic building, and glide
16657 through the dazzled ranks of the village children. She generally came at
16658 the hour when Mr. Rivers was engaged in giving his daily catechising
16659 lesson. Keenly, I fear, did the eye of the visitress pierce the young
16660 pastor's heart. A sort of instinct seemed to warn him of her entrance,
16661 even when he did not see it; and when he was looking quite away from the
16662 door, if she appeared at it, his cheek would glow, and his marble-seeming
16663 features, though they refused to relax, changed indescribably, and in
16664 their very quiescence became expressive of a repressed fervour, stronger
16665 than working muscle or darting glance could indicate.
16666
16667 Of course, she knew her power: indeed, he did not, because he could not,
16668 conceal it from her. In spite of his Christian stoicism, when she went
16669 up and addressed him, and smiled gaily, encouragingly, even fondly in his
16670 face, his hand would tremble and his eye burn. He seemed to say, with
16671 his sad and resolute look, if he did not say it with his lips, "I love
16672 you, and I know you prefer me. It is not despair of success that keeps
16673 me dumb. If I offered my heart, I believe you would accept it. But that
16674 heart is already laid on a sacred altar: the fire is arranged round it.
16675 It will soon be no more than a sacrifice consumed."
16676
16677 And then she would pout like a disappointed child; a pensive cloud would
16678 soften her radiant vivacity; she would withdraw her hand hastily from
16679 his, and turn in transient petulance from his aspect, at once so heroic
16680 and so martyr-like. St. John, no doubt, would have given the world to
16681 follow, recall, retain her, when she thus left him; but he would not give
16682 one chance of heaven, nor relinquish, for the elysium of her love, one
16683 hope of the true, eternal Paradise. Besides, he could not bind all that
16684 he had in his nature--the rover, the aspirant, the poet, the priest--in
16685 the limits of a single passion. He could not--he would not--renounce his
16686 wild field of mission warfare for the parlours and the peace of Vale
16687 Hall. I learnt so much from himself in an inroad I once, despite his
16688 reserve, had the daring to make on his confidence.
16689
16690 Miss Oliver already honoured me with frequent visits to my cottage. I
16691 had learnt her whole character, which was without mystery or disguise:
16692 she was coquettish but not heartless; exacting, but not worthlessly
16693 selfish. She had been indulged from her birth, but was not absolutely
16694 spoilt. She was hasty, but good-humoured; vain (she could not help it,
16695 when every glance in the glass showed her such a flush of loveliness),
16696 but not affected; liberal-handed; innocent of the pride of wealth;
16697 ingenuous; sufficiently intelligent; gay, lively, and unthinking: she was
16698 very charming, in short, even to a cool observer of her own sex like me;
16699 but she was not profoundly interesting or thoroughly impressive. A very
16700 different sort of mind was hers from that, for instance, of the sisters
16701 of St. John. Still, I liked her almost as I liked my pupil Adele; except
16702 that, for a child whom we have watched over and taught, a closer
16703 affection is engendered than we can give an equally attractive adult
16704 acquaintance.
16705
16706 She had taken an amiable caprice to me. She said I was like Mr. Rivers,
16707 only, certainly, she allowed, "not one-tenth so handsome, though I was a
16708 nice neat little soul enough, but he was an angel." I was, however,
16709 good, clever, composed, and firm, like him. I was a _lusus naturae_, she
16710 affirmed, as a village schoolmistress: she was sure my previous history,
16711 if known, would make a delightful romance.
16712
16713 One evening, while, with her usual child-like activity, and thoughtless
16714 yet not offensive inquisitiveness, she was rummaging the cupboard and the
16715 table-drawer of my little kitchen, she discovered first two French books,
16716 a volume of Schiller, a German grammar and dictionary, and then my
16717 drawing-materials and some sketches, including a pencil-head of a pretty
16718 little cherub-like girl, one of my scholars, and sundry views from
16719 nature, taken in the Vale of Morton and on the surrounding moors. She
16720 was first transfixed with surprise, and then electrified with delight.
16721
16722 "Had I done these pictures? Did I know French and German? What a
16723 love--what a miracle I was! I drew better than her master in the first
16724 school in S-. Would I sketch a portrait of her, to show to papa?"
16725
16726 "With pleasure," I replied; and I felt a thrill of artist-delight at the
16727 idea of copying from so perfect and radiant a model. She had then on a
16728 dark-blue silk dress; her arms and her neck were bare; her only ornament
16729 was her chestnut tresses, which waved over her shoulders with all the
16730 wild grace of natural curls. I took a sheet of fine card-board, and drew
16731 a careful outline. I promised myself the pleasure of colouring it; and,
16732 as it was getting late then, I told her she must come and sit another
16733 day.
16734
16735 She made such a report of me to her father, that Mr. Oliver himself
16736 accompanied her next evening--a tall, massive-featured, middle-aged, and
16737 grey-headed man, at whose side his lovely daughter looked like a bright
16738 flower near a hoary turret. He appeared a taciturn, and perhaps a proud
16739 personage; but he was very kind to me. The sketch of Rosamond's portrait
16740 pleased him highly: he said I must make a finished picture of it. He
16741 insisted, too, on my coming the next day to spend the evening at Vale
16742 Hall.
16743
16744 I went. I found it a large, handsome residence, showing abundant
16745 evidences of wealth in the proprietor. Rosamond was full of glee and
16746 pleasure all the time I stayed. Her father was affable; and when he
16747 entered into conversation with me after tea, he expressed in strong terms
16748 his approbation of what I had done in Morton school, and said he only
16749 feared, from what he saw and heard, I was too good for the place, and
16750 would soon quit it for one more suitable.
16751
16752 "Indeed," cried Rosamond, "she is clever enough to be a governess in a
16753 high family, papa."
16754
16755 I thought I would far rather be where I am than in any high family in the
16756 land. Mr. Oliver spoke of Mr. Rivers--of the Rivers family--with great
16757 respect. He said it was a very old name in that neighbourhood; that the
16758 ancestors of the house were wealthy; that all Morton had once belonged to
16759 them; that even now he considered the representative of that house might,
16760 if he liked, make an alliance with the best. He accounted it a pity that
16761 so fine and talented a young man should have formed the design of going
16762 out as a missionary; it was quite throwing a valuable life away. It
16763 appeared, then, that her father would throw no obstacle in the way of
16764 Rosamond's union with St. John. Mr. Oliver evidently regarded the young
16765 clergyman's good birth, old name, and sacred profession as sufficient
16766 compensation for the want of fortune.
16767
16768 It was the 5th of November, and a holiday. My little servant, after
16769 helping me to clean my house, was gone, well satisfied with the fee of a
16770 penny for her aid. All about me was spotless and bright--scoured floor,
16771 polished grate, and well-rubbed chairs. I had also made myself neat, and
16772 had now the afternoon before me to spend as I would.
16773
16774 The translation of a few pages of German occupied an hour; then I got my
16775 palette and pencils, and fell to the more soothing, because easier
16776 occupation, of completing Rosamond Oliver's miniature. The head was
16777 finished already: there was but the background to tint and the drapery to
16778 shade off; a touch of carmine, too, to add to the ripe lips--a soft curl
16779 here and there to the tresses--a deeper tinge to the shadow of the lash
16780 under the azured eyelid. I was absorbed in the execution of these nice
16781 details, when, after one rapid tap, my door unclosed, admitting St. John
16782 Rivers.
16783
16784 "I am come to see how you are spending your holiday," he said. "Not, I
16785 hope, in thought? No, that is well: while you draw you will not feel
16786 lonely. You see, I mistrust you still, though you have borne up
16787 wonderfully so far. I have brought you a book for evening solace," and
16788 he laid on the table a new publication--a poem: one of those genuine
16789 productions so often vouchsafed to the fortunate public of those days--the
16790 golden age of modern literature. Alas! the readers of our era are less
16791 favoured. But courage! I will not pause either to accuse or repine. I
16792 know poetry is not dead, nor genius lost; nor has Mammon gained power
16793 over either, to bind or slay: they will both assert their existence,
16794 their presence, their liberty and strength again one day. Powerful
16795 angels, safe in heaven! they smile when sordid souls triumph, and feeble
16796 ones weep over their destruction. Poetry destroyed? Genius banished?
16797 No! Mediocrity, no: do not let envy prompt you to the thought. No; they
16798 not only live, but reign and redeem: and without their divine influence
16799 spread everywhere, you would be in hell--the hell of your own meanness.
16800
16801 While I was eagerly glancing at the bright pages of "Marmion" (for
16802 "Marmion" it was), St. John stooped to examine my drawing. His tall
16803 figure sprang erect again with a start: he said nothing. I looked up at
16804 him: he shunned my eye. I knew his thoughts well, and could read his
16805 heart plainly; at the moment I felt calmer and cooler than he: I had then
16806 temporarily the advantage of him, and I conceived an inclination to do
16807 him some good, if I could.
16808
16809 "With all his firmness and self-control," thought I, "he tasks himself
16810 too far: locks every feeling and pang within--expresses, confesses,
16811 imparts nothing. I am sure it would benefit him to talk a little about
16812 this sweet Rosamond, whom he thinks he ought not to marry: I will make
16813 him talk."
16814
16815 I said first, "Take a chair, Mr. Rivers." But he answered, as he always
16816 did, that he could not stay. "Very well," I responded, mentally, "stand
16817 if you like; but you shall not go just yet, I am determined: solitude is
16818 at least as bad for you as it is for me. I'll try if I cannot discover
16819 the secret spring of your confidence, and find an aperture in that marble
16820 breast through which I can shed one drop of the balm of sympathy."
16821
16822 "Is this portrait like?" I asked bluntly.
16823
16824 "Like! Like whom? I did not observe it closely."
16825
16826 "You did, Mr. Rivers."
16827
16828 He almost started at my sudden and strange abruptness: he looked at me
16829 astonished. "Oh, that is nothing yet," I muttered within. "I don't mean
16830 to be baffled by a little stiffness on your part; I'm prepared to go to
16831 considerable lengths." I continued, "You observed it closely and
16832 distinctly; but I have no objection to your looking at it again," and I
16833 rose and placed it in his hand.
16834
16835 "A well-executed picture," he said; "very soft, clear colouring; very
16836 graceful and correct drawing."
16837
16838 "Yes, yes; I know all that. But what of the resemblance? Who is it
16839 like?"
16840
16841 Mastering some hesitation, he answered, "Miss Oliver, I presume."
16842
16843 "Of course. And now, sir, to reward you for the accurate guess, I will
16844 promise to paint you a careful and faithful duplicate of this very
16845 picture, provided you admit that the gift would be acceptable to you. I
16846 don't wish to throw away my time and trouble on an offering you would
16847 deem worthless."
16848
16849 He continued to gaze at the picture: the longer he looked, the firmer he
16850 held it, the more he seemed to covet it. "It is like!" he murmured; "the
16851 eye is well managed: the colour, light, expression, are perfect. It
16852 smiles!"
16853
16854 "Would it comfort, or would it wound you to have a similar painting? Tell
16855 me that. When you are at Madagascar, or at the Cape, or in India, would
16856 it be a consolation to have that memento in your possession? or would the
16857 sight of it bring recollections calculated to enervate and distress?"
16858
16859 He now furtively raised his eyes: he glanced at me, irresolute,
16860 disturbed: he again surveyed the picture.
16861
16862 "That I should like to have it is certain: whether it would be judicious
16863 or wise is another question."
16864
16865 Since I had ascertained that Rosamond really preferred him, and that her
16866 father was not likely to oppose the match, I--less exalted in my views
16867 than St. John--had been strongly disposed in my own heart to advocate
16868 their union. It seemed to me that, should he become the possessor of Mr.
16869 Oliver's large fortune, he might do as much good with it as if he went
16870 and laid his genius out to wither, and his strength to waste, under a
16871 tropical sun. With this persuasion I now answered--
16872
16873 "As far as I can see, it would be wiser and more judicious if you were to
16874 take to yourself the original at once."
16875
16876 By this time he had sat down: he had laid the picture on the table before
16877 him, and with his brow supported on both hands, hung fondly over it. I
16878 discerned he was now neither angry nor shocked at my audacity. I saw
16879 even that to be thus frankly addressed on a subject he had deemed
16880 unapproachable--to hear it thus freely handled--was beginning to be felt
16881 by him as a new pleasure--an unhoped-for relief. Reserved people often
16882 really need the frank discussion of their sentiments and griefs more than
16883 the expansive. The sternest-seeming stoic is human after all; and to
16884 "burst" with boldness and good-will into "the silent sea" of their souls
16885 is often to confer on them the first of obligations.
16886
16887 "She likes you, I am sure," said I, as I stood behind his chair, "and her
16888 father respects you. Moreover, she is a sweet girl--rather thoughtless;
16889 but you would have sufficient thought for both yourself and her. You
16890 ought to marry her."
16891
16892 "_Does_ she like me?" he asked.
16893
16894 "Certainly; better than she likes any one else. She talks of you
16895 continually: there is no subject she enjoys so much or touches upon so
16896 often."
16897
16898 "It is very pleasant to hear this," he said--"very: go on for another
16899 quarter of an hour." And he actually took out his watch and laid it upon
16900 the table to measure the time.
16901
16902 "But where is the use of going on," I asked, "when you are probably
16903 preparing some iron blow of contradiction, or forging a fresh chain to
16904 fetter your heart?"
16905
16906 "Don't imagine such hard things. Fancy me yielding and melting, as I am
16907 doing: human love rising like a freshly opened fountain in my mind and
16908 overflowing with sweet inundation all the field I have so carefully and
16909 with such labour prepared--so assiduously sown with the seeds of good
16910 intentions, of self-denying plans. And now it is deluged with a
16911 nectarous flood--the young germs swamped--delicious poison cankering
16912 them: now I see myself stretched on an ottoman in the drawing-room at
16913 Vale Hall at my bride Rosamond Oliver's feet: she is talking to me with
16914 her sweet voice--gazing down on me with those eyes your skilful hand has
16915 copied so well--smiling at me with these coral lips. She is mine--I am
16916 hers--this present life and passing world suffice to me. Hush! say
16917 nothing--my heart is full of delight--my senses are entranced--let the
16918 time I marked pass in peace."
16919
16920 I humoured him: the watch ticked on: he breathed fast and low: I stood
16921 silent. Amidst this hush the quartet sped; he replaced the watch, laid
16922 the picture down, rose, and stood on the hearth.
16923
16924 "Now," said he, "that little space was given to delirium and delusion. I
16925 rested my temples on the breast of temptation, and put my neck
16926 voluntarily under her yoke of flowers. I tasted her cup. The pillow was
16927 burning: there is an asp in the garland: the wine has a bitter taste: her
16928 promises are hollow--her offers false: I see and know all this."
16929
16930 I gazed at him in wonder.
16931
16932 "It is strange," pursued he, "that while I love Rosamond Oliver so
16933 wildly--with all the intensity, indeed, of a first passion, the object of
16934 which is exquisitely beautiful, graceful, fascinating--I experience at
16935 the same time a calm, unwarped consciousness that she would not make me a
16936 good wife; that she is not the partner suited to me; that I should
16937 discover this within a year after marriage; and that to twelve months'
16938 rapture would succeed a lifetime of regret. This I know."
16939
16940 "Strange indeed!" I could not help ejaculating.
16941
16942 "While something in me," he went on, "is acutely sensible to her charms,
16943 something else is as deeply impressed with her defects: they are such
16944 that she could sympathise in nothing I aspired to--co-operate in nothing
16945 I undertook. Rosamond a sufferer, a labourer, a female apostle? Rosamond
16946 a missionary's wife? No!"
16947
16948 "But you need not be a missionary. You might relinquish that scheme."
16949
16950 "Relinquish! What! my vocation? My great work? My foundation laid on
16951 earth for a mansion in heaven? My hopes of being numbered in the band
16952 who have merged all ambitions in the glorious one of bettering their
16953 race--of carrying knowledge into the realms of ignorance--of substituting
16954 peace for war--freedom for bondage--religion for superstition--the hope
16955 of heaven for the fear of hell? Must I relinquish that? It is dearer
16956 than the blood in my veins. It is what I have to look forward to, and to
16957 live for."
16958
16959 After a considerable pause, I said--"And Miss Oliver? Are her
16960 disappointment and sorrow of no interest to you?"
16961
16962 "Miss Oliver is ever surrounded by suitors and flatterers: in less than a
16963 month, my image will be effaced from her heart. She will forget me; and
16964 will marry, probably, some one who will make her far happier than I
16965 should do."
16966
16967 "You speak coolly enough; but you suffer in the conflict. You are
16968 wasting away."
16969
16970 "No. If I get a little thin, it is with anxiety about my prospects, yet
16971 unsettled--my departure, continually procrastinated. Only this morning,
16972 I received intelligence that the successor, whose arrival I have been so
16973 long expecting, cannot be ready to replace me for three months to come
16974 yet; and perhaps the three months may extend to six."
16975
16976 "You tremble and become flushed whenever Miss Oliver enters the
16977 schoolroom."
16978
16979 Again the surprised expression crossed his face. He had not imagined
16980 that a woman would dare to speak so to a man. For me, I felt at home in
16981 this sort of discourse. I could never rest in communication with strong,
16982 discreet, and refined minds, whether male or female, till I had passed
16983 the outworks of conventional reserve, and crossed the threshold of
16984 confidence, and won a place by their heart's very hearthstone.
16985
16986 "You are original," said he, "and not timid. There is something brave in
16987 your spirit, as well as penetrating in your eye; but allow me to assure
16988 you that you partially misinterpret my emotions. You think them more
16989 profound and potent than they are. You give me a larger allowance of
16990 sympathy than I have a just claim to. When I colour, and when I shade
16991 before Miss Oliver, I do not pity myself. I scorn the weakness. I know
16992 it is ignoble: a mere fever of the flesh: not, I declare, the convulsion
16993 of the soul. _That_ is just as fixed as a rock, firm set in the depths
16994 of a restless sea. Know me to be what I am--a cold hard man."
16995
16996 I smiled incredulously.
16997
16998 "You have taken my confidence by storm," he continued, "and now it is
16999 much at your service. I am simply, in my original state--stripped of
17000 that blood-bleached robe with which Christianity covers human deformity--a
17001 cold, hard, ambitious man. Natural affection only, of all the
17002 sentiments, has permanent power over me. Reason, and not feeling, is my
17003 guide; my ambition is unlimited: my desire to rise higher, to do more
17004 than others, insatiable. I honour endurance, perseverance, industry,
17005 talent; because these are the means by which men achieve great ends and
17006 mount to lofty eminence. I watch your career with interest, because I
17007 consider you a specimen of a diligent, orderly, energetic woman: not
17008 because I deeply compassionate what you have gone through, or what you
17009 still suffer."
17010
17011 "You would describe yourself as a mere pagan philosopher," I said.
17012
17013 "No. There is this difference between me and deistic philosophers: I
17014 believe; and I believe the Gospel. You missed your epithet. I am not a
17015 pagan, but a Christian philosopher--a follower of the sect of Jesus. As
17016 His disciple I adopt His pure, His merciful, His benignant doctrines. I
17017 advocate them: I am sworn to spread them. Won in youth to religion, she
17018 has cultivated my original qualities thus:--From the minute germ, natural
17019 affection, she has developed the overshadowing tree, philanthropy. From
17020 the wild stringy root of human uprightness, she has reared a due sense of
17021 the Divine justice. Of the ambition to win power and renown for my
17022 wretched self, she has formed the ambition to spread my Master's kingdom;
17023 to achieve victories for the standard of the cross. So much has religion
17024 done for me; turning the original materials to the best account; pruning
17025 and training nature. But she could not eradicate nature: nor will it be
17026 eradicated 'till this mortal shall put on immortality.'"
17027
17028 Having said this, he took his hat, which lay on the table beside my
17029 palette. Once more he looked at the portrait.
17030
17031 "She _is_ lovely," he murmured. "She is well named the Rose of the
17032 World, indeed!"
17033
17034 "And may I not paint one like it for you?"
17035
17036 "_Cui bono_? No."
17037
17038 He drew over the picture the sheet of thin paper on which I was
17039 accustomed to rest my hand in painting, to prevent the cardboard from
17040 being sullied. What he suddenly saw on this blank paper, it was
17041 impossible for me to tell; but something had caught his eye. He took it
17042 up with a snatch; he looked at the edge; then shot a glance at me,
17043 inexpressibly peculiar, and quite incomprehensible: a glance that seemed
17044 to take and make note of every point in my shape, face, and dress; for it
17045 traversed all, quick, keen as lightning. His lips parted, as if to
17046 speak: but he checked the coming sentence, whatever it was.
17047
17048 "What is the matter?" I asked.
17049
17050 "Nothing in the world," was the reply; and, replacing the paper, I saw
17051 him dexterously tear a narrow slip from the margin. It disappeared in
17052 his glove; and, with one hasty nod and "good-afternoon," he vanished.
17053
17054 "Well!" I exclaimed, using an expression of the district, "that caps the
17055 globe, however!"
17056
17057 I, in my turn, scrutinised the paper; but saw nothing on it save a few
17058 dingy stains of paint where I had tried the tint in my pencil. I
17059 pondered the mystery a minute or two; but finding it insolvable, and
17060 being certain it could not be of much moment, I dismissed, and soon
17061 forgot it.
17062
17063
17064
17065
17066 CHAPTER XXXIII
17067
17068
17069 When Mr. St. John went, it was beginning to snow; the whirling storm
17070 continued all night. The next day a keen wind brought fresh and blinding
17071 falls; by twilight the valley was drifted up and almost impassable. I
17072 had closed my shutter, laid a mat to the door to prevent the snow from
17073 blowing in under it, trimmed my fire, and after sitting nearly an hour on
17074 the hearth listening to the muffled fury of the tempest, I lit a candle,
17075 took down "Marmion," and beginning--
17076
17077 "Day set on Norham's castled steep,
17078 And Tweed's fair river broad and deep,
17079 And Cheviot's mountains lone;
17080 The massive towers, the donjon keep,
17081 The flanking walls that round them sweep,
17082 In yellow lustre shone"--
17083
17084 I soon forgot storm in music.
17085
17086 I heard a noise: the wind, I thought, shook the door. No; it was St.
17087 John Rivers, who, lifting the latch, came in out of the frozen
17088 hurricane--the howling darkness--and stood before me: the cloak that
17089 covered his tall figure all white as a glacier. I was almost in
17090 consternation, so little had I expected any guest from the blocked-up
17091 vale that night.
17092
17093 "Any ill news?" I demanded. "Has anything happened?"
17094
17095 "No. How very easily alarmed you are!" he answered, removing his cloak
17096 and hanging it up against the door, towards which he again coolly pushed
17097 the mat which his entrance had deranged. He stamped the snow from his
17098 boots.
17099
17100 "I shall sully the purity of your floor," said he, "but you must excuse
17101 me for once." Then he approached the fire. "I have had hard work to get
17102 here, I assure you," he observed, as he warmed his hands over the flame.
17103 "One drift took me up to the waist; happily the snow is quite soft yet."
17104
17105 "But why are you come?" I could not forbear saying.
17106
17107 "Rather an inhospitable question to put to a visitor; but since you ask
17108 it, I answer simply to have a little talk with you; I got tired of my
17109 mute books and empty rooms. Besides, since yesterday I have experienced
17110 the excitement of a person to whom a tale has been half-told, and who is
17111 impatient to hear the sequel."
17112
17113 He sat down. I recalled his singular conduct of yesterday, and really I
17114 began to fear his wits were touched. If he were insane, however, his was
17115 a very cool and collected insanity: I had never seen that
17116 handsome-featured face of his look more like chiselled marble than it did
17117 just now, as he put aside his snow-wet hair from his forehead and let the
17118 firelight shine free on his pale brow and cheek as pale, where it grieved
17119 me to discover the hollow trace of care or sorrow now so plainly graved.
17120 I waited, expecting he would say something I could at least comprehend;
17121 but his hand was now at his chin, his finger on his lip: he was thinking.
17122 It struck me that his hand looked wasted like his face. A perhaps
17123 uncalled-for gush of pity came over my heart: I was moved to say--
17124
17125 "I wish Diana or Mary would come and live with you: it is too bad that
17126 you should be quite alone; and you are recklessly rash about your own
17127 health."
17128
17129 "Not at all," said he: "I care for myself when necessary. I am well now.
17130 What do you see amiss in me?"
17131
17132 This was said with a careless, abstracted indifference, which showed that
17133 my solicitude was, at least in his opinion, wholly superfluous. I was
17134 silenced.
17135
17136 He still slowly moved his finger over his upper lip, and still his eye
17137 dwelt dreamily on the glowing grate; thinking it urgent to say something,
17138 I asked him presently if he felt any cold draught from the door, which
17139 was behind him.
17140
17141 "No, no!" he responded shortly and somewhat testily.
17142
17143 "Well," I reflected, "if you won't talk, you may be still; I'll let you
17144 alone now, and return to my book."
17145
17146 So I snuffed the candle and resumed the perusal of "Marmion." He soon
17147 stirred; my eye was instantly drawn to his movements; he only took out a
17148 morocco pocket-book, thence produced a letter, which he read in silence,
17149 folded it, put it back, relapsed into meditation. It was vain to try to
17150 read with such an inscrutable fixture before me; nor could I, in
17151 impatience, consent to be dumb; he might rebuff me if he liked, but talk
17152 I would.
17153
17154 "Have you heard from Diana and Mary lately?"
17155
17156 "Not since the letter I showed you a week ago."
17157
17158 "There has not been any change made about your own arrangements? You
17159 will not be summoned to leave England sooner than you expected?"
17160
17161 "I fear not, indeed: such chance is too good to befall me." Baffled so
17162 far, I changed my ground. I bethought myself to talk about the school
17163 and my scholars.
17164
17165 "Mary Garrett's mother is better, and Mary came back to the school this
17166 morning, and I shall have four new girls next week from the Foundry
17167 Close--they would have come to-day but for the snow."
17168
17169 "Indeed!"
17170
17171 "Mr. Oliver pays for two."
17172
17173 "Does he?"
17174
17175 "He means to give the whole school a treat at Christmas."
17176
17177 "I know."
17178
17179 "Was it your suggestion?"
17180
17181 "No."
17182
17183 "Whose, then?"
17184
17185 "His daughter's, I think."
17186
17187 "It is like her: she is so good-natured."
17188
17189 "Yes."
17190
17191 Again came the blank of a pause: the clock struck eight strokes. It
17192 aroused him; he uncrossed his legs, sat erect, turned to me.
17193
17194 "Leave your book a moment, and come a little nearer the fire," he said.
17195
17196 Wondering, and of my wonder finding no end, I complied.
17197
17198 "Half-an-hour ago," he pursued, "I spoke of my impatience to hear the
17199 sequel of a tale: on reflection, I find the matter will be better managed
17200 by my assuming the narrator's part, and converting you into a listener.
17201 Before commencing, it is but fair to warn you that the story will sound
17202 somewhat hackneyed in your ears; but stale details often regain a degree
17203 of freshness when they pass through new lips. For the rest, whether
17204 trite or novel, it is short.
17205
17206 "Twenty years ago, a poor curate--never mind his name at this moment--fell
17207 in love with a rich man's daughter; she fell in love with him, and
17208 married him, against the advice of all her friends, who consequently
17209 disowned her immediately after the wedding. Before two years passed, the
17210 rash pair were both dead, and laid quietly side by side under one slab.
17211 (I have seen their grave; it formed part of the pavement of a huge
17212 churchyard surrounding the grim, soot-black old cathedral of an overgrown
17213 manufacturing town in ---shire.) They left a daughter, which, at its
17214 very birth, Charity received in her lap--cold as that of the snow-drift I
17215 almost stuck fast in to-night. Charity carried the friendless thing to
17216 the house of its rich maternal relations; it was reared by an aunt-in-
17217 law, called (I come to names now) Mrs. Reed of Gateshead. You start--did
17218 you hear a noise? I daresay it is only a rat scrambling along the
17219 rafters of the adjoining schoolroom: it was a barn before I had it
17220 repaired and altered, and barns are generally haunted by rats.--To
17221 proceed. Mrs. Reed kept the orphan ten years: whether it was happy or
17222 not with her, I cannot say, never having been told; but at the end of
17223 that time she transferred it to a place you know--being no other than
17224 Lowood School, where you so long resided yourself. It seems her career
17225 there was very honourable: from a pupil, she became a teacher, like
17226 yourself--really it strikes me there are parallel points in her history
17227 and yours--she left it to be a governess: there, again, your fates were
17228 analogous; she undertook the education of the ward of a certain Mr.
17229 Rochester."
17230
17231 "Mr. Rivers!" I interrupted.
17232
17233 "I can guess your feelings," he said, "but restrain them for a while: I
17234 have nearly finished; hear me to the end. Of Mr. Rochester's character I
17235 know nothing, but the one fact that he professed to offer honourable
17236 marriage to this young girl, and that at the very altar she discovered he
17237 had a wife yet alive, though a lunatic. What his subsequent conduct and
17238 proposals were is a matter of pure conjecture; but when an event
17239 transpired which rendered inquiry after the governess necessary, it was
17240 discovered she was gone--no one could tell when, where, or how. She had
17241 left Thornfield Hall in the night; every research after her course had
17242 been vain: the country had been scoured far and wide; no vestige of
17243 information could be gathered respecting her. Yet that she should be
17244 found is become a matter of serious urgency: advertisements have been put
17245 in all the papers; I myself have received a letter from one Mr. Briggs, a
17246 solicitor, communicating the details I have just imparted. Is it not an
17247 odd tale?"
17248
17249 "Just tell me this," said I, "and since you know so much, you surely can
17250 tell it me--what of Mr. Rochester? How and where is he? What is he
17251 doing? Is he well?"
17252
17253 "I am ignorant of all concerning Mr. Rochester: the letter never mentions
17254 him but to narrate the fraudulent and illegal attempt I have adverted to.
17255 You should rather ask the name of the governess--the nature of the event
17256 which requires her appearance."
17257
17258 "Did no one go to Thornfield Hall, then? Did no one see Mr. Rochester?"
17259
17260 "I suppose not."
17261
17262 "But they wrote to him?"
17263
17264 "Of course."
17265
17266 "And what did he say? Who has his letters?"
17267
17268 "Mr. Briggs intimates that the answer to his application was not from Mr.
17269 Rochester, but from a lady: it is signed 'Alice Fairfax.'"
17270
17271 I felt cold and dismayed: my worst fears then were probably true: he had
17272 in all probability left England and rushed in reckless desperation to
17273 some former haunt on the Continent. And what opiate for his severe
17274 sufferings--what object for his strong passions--had he sought there? I
17275 dared not answer the question. Oh, my poor master--once almost my
17276 husband--whom I had often called "my dear Edward!"
17277
17278 "He must have been a bad man," observed Mr. Rivers.
17279
17280 "You don't know him--don't pronounce an opinion upon him," I said, with
17281 warmth.
17282
17283 "Very well," he answered quietly: "and indeed my head is otherwise
17284 occupied than with him: I have my tale to finish. Since you won't ask
17285 the governess's name, I must tell it of my own accord. Stay! I have it
17286 here--it is always more satisfactory to see important points written
17287 down, fairly committed to black and white."
17288
17289 And the pocket-book was again deliberately produced, opened, sought
17290 through; from one of its compartments was extracted a shabby slip of
17291 paper, hastily torn off: I recognised in its texture and its stains of
17292 ultra-marine, and lake, and vermillion, the ravished margin of the
17293 portrait-cover. He got up, held it close to my eyes: and I read, traced
17294 in Indian ink, in my own handwriting, the words "JANE EYRE"--the work
17295 doubtless of some moment of abstraction.
17296
17297 "Briggs wrote to me of a Jane Eyre:" he said, "the advertisements
17298 demanded a Jane Eyre: I knew a Jane Elliott.--I confess I had my
17299 suspicions, but it was only yesterday afternoon they were at once
17300 resolved into certainty. You own the name and renounce the _alias_?"
17301
17302 "Yes--yes; but where is Mr. Briggs? He perhaps knows more of Mr.
17303 Rochester than you do."
17304
17305 "Briggs is in London. I should doubt his knowing anything at all about
17306 Mr. Rochester; it is not in Mr. Rochester he is interested. Meantime,
17307 you forget essential points in pursuing trifles: you do not inquire why
17308 Mr. Briggs sought after you--what he wanted with you."
17309
17310 "Well, what did he want?"
17311
17312 "Merely to tell you that your uncle, Mr. Eyre of Madeira, is dead; that
17313 he has left you all his property, and that you are now rich--merely
17314 that--nothing more."
17315
17316 "I!--rich?"
17317
17318 "Yes, you, rich--quite an heiress."
17319
17320 Silence succeeded.
17321
17322 "You must prove your identity of course," resumed St. John presently: "a
17323 step which will offer no difficulties; you can then enter on immediate
17324 possession. Your fortune is vested in the English funds; Briggs has the
17325 will and the necessary documents."
17326
17327 Here was a new card turned up! It is a fine thing, reader, to be lifted
17328 in a moment from indigence to wealth--a very fine thing; but not a matter
17329 one can comprehend, or consequently enjoy, all at once. And then there
17330 are other chances in life far more thrilling and rapture-giving: _this_
17331 is solid, an affair of the actual world, nothing ideal about it: all its
17332 associations are solid and sober, and its manifestations are the same.
17333 One does not jump, and spring, and shout hurrah! at hearing one has got a
17334 fortune; one begins to consider responsibilities, and to ponder business;
17335 on a base of steady satisfaction rise certain grave cares, and we contain
17336 ourselves, and brood over our bliss with a solemn brow.
17337
17338 Besides, the words Legacy, Bequest, go side by side with the words,
17339 Death, Funeral. My uncle I had heard was dead--my only relative; ever
17340 since being made aware of his existence, I had cherished the hope of one
17341 day seeing him: now, I never should. And then this money came only to
17342 me: not to me and a rejoicing family, but to my isolated self. It was a
17343 grand boon doubtless; and independence would be glorious--yes, I felt
17344 that--that thought swelled my heart.
17345
17346 "You unbend your forehead at last," said Mr. Rivers. "I thought Medusa
17347 had looked at you, and that you were turning to stone. Perhaps now you
17348 will ask how much you are worth?"
17349
17350 "How much am I worth?"
17351
17352 "Oh, a trifle! Nothing of course to speak of--twenty thousand pounds, I
17353 think they say--but what is that?"
17354
17355 "Twenty thousand pounds?"
17356
17357 Here was a new stunner--I had been calculating on four or five thousand.
17358 This news actually took my breath for a moment: Mr. St. John, whom I had
17359 never heard laugh before, laughed now.
17360
17361 "Well," said he, "if you had committed a murder, and I had told you your
17362 crime was discovered, you could scarcely look more aghast."
17363
17364 "It is a large sum--don't you think there is a mistake?"
17365
17366 "No mistake at all."
17367
17368 "Perhaps you have read the figures wrong--it may be two thousand!"
17369
17370 "It is written in letters, not figures,--twenty thousand."
17371
17372 I again felt rather like an individual of but average gastronomical
17373 powers sitting down to feast alone at a table spread with provisions for
17374 a hundred. Mr. Rivers rose now and put his cloak on.
17375
17376 "If it were not such a very wild night," he said, "I would send Hannah
17377 down to keep you company: you look too desperately miserable to be left
17378 alone. But Hannah, poor woman! could not stride the drifts so well as I:
17379 her legs are not quite so long: so I must e'en leave you to your sorrows.
17380 Good-night."
17381
17382 He was lifting the latch: a sudden thought occurred to me. "Stop one
17383 minute!" I cried.
17384
17385 "Well?"
17386
17387 "It puzzles me to know why Mr. Briggs wrote to you about me; or how he
17388 knew you, or could fancy that you, living in such an out-of-the-way
17389 place, had the power to aid in my discovery."
17390
17391 "Oh! I am a clergyman," he said; "and the clergy are often appealed to
17392 about odd matters." Again the latch rattled.
17393
17394 "No; that does not satisfy me!" I exclaimed: and indeed there was
17395 something in the hasty and unexplanatory reply which, instead of
17396 allaying, piqued my curiosity more than ever.
17397
17398 "It is a very strange piece of business," I added; "I must know more
17399 about it."
17400
17401 "Another time."
17402
17403 "No; to-night!--to-night!" and as he turned from the door, I placed
17404 myself between it and him. He looked rather embarrassed.
17405
17406 "You certainly shall not go till you have told me all," I said.
17407
17408 "I would rather not just now."
17409
17410 "You shall!--you must!"
17411
17412 "I would rather Diana or Mary informed you."
17413
17414 Of course these objections wrought my eagerness to a climax: gratified it
17415 must be, and that without delay; and I told him so.
17416
17417 "But I apprised you that I was a hard man," said he, "difficult to
17418 persuade."
17419
17420 "And I am a hard woman,--impossible to put off."
17421
17422 {And I am a hard woman,--impossible to put off: p369.jpg}
17423
17424 "And then," he pursued, "I am cold: no fervour infects me."
17425
17426 "Whereas I am hot, and fire dissolves ice. The blaze there has thawed
17427 all the snow from your cloak; by the same token, it has streamed on to my
17428 floor, and made it like a trampled street. As you hope ever to be
17429 forgiven, Mr. Rivers, the high crime and misdemeanour of spoiling a
17430 sanded kitchen, tell me what I wish to know."
17431
17432 "Well, then," he said, "I yield; if not to your earnestness, to your
17433 perseverance: as stone is worn by continual dropping. Besides, you must
17434 know some day,--as well now as later. Your name is Jane Eyre?"
17435
17436 "Of course: that was all settled before."
17437
17438 "You are not, perhaps, aware that I am your namesake?--that I was
17439 christened St. John Eyre Rivers?"
17440
17441 "No, indeed! I remember now seeing the letter E. comprised in your
17442 initials written in books you have at different times lent me; but I
17443 never asked for what name it stood. But what then? Surely--"
17444
17445 I stopped: I could not trust myself to entertain, much less to express,
17446 the thought that rushed upon me--that embodied itself,--that, in a
17447 second, stood out a strong, solid probability. Circumstances knit
17448 themselves, fitted themselves, shot into order: the chain that had been
17449 lying hitherto a formless lump of links was drawn out straight,--every
17450 ring was perfect, the connection complete. I knew, by instinct, how the
17451 matter stood, before St. John had said another word; but I cannot expect
17452 the reader to have the same intuitive perception, so I must repeat his
17453 explanation.
17454
17455 "My mother's name was Eyre; she had two brothers; one a clergyman, who
17456 married Miss Jane Reed, of Gateshead; the other, John Eyre, Esq.,
17457 merchant, late of Funchal, Madeira. Mr. Briggs, being Mr. Eyre's
17458 solicitor, wrote to us last August to inform us of our uncle's death, and
17459 to say that he had left his property to his brother the clergyman's
17460 orphan daughter, overlooking us, in consequence of a quarrel, never
17461 forgiven, between him and my father. He wrote again a few weeks since,
17462 to intimate that the heiress was lost, and asking if we knew anything of
17463 her. A name casually written on a slip of paper has enabled me to find
17464 her out. You know the rest." Again he was going, but I set my back
17465 against the door.
17466
17467 "Do let me speak," I said; "let me have one moment to draw breath and
17468 reflect." I paused--he stood before me, hat in hand, looking composed
17469 enough. I resumed--
17470
17471 "Your mother was my father's sister?"
17472
17473 "Yes."
17474
17475 "My aunt, consequently?"
17476
17477 He bowed.
17478
17479 "My uncle John was your uncle John? You, Diana, and Mary are his
17480 sister's children, as I am his brother's child?"
17481
17482 "Undeniably."
17483
17484 "You three, then, are my cousins; half our blood on each side flows from
17485 the same source?"
17486
17487 "We are cousins; yes."
17488
17489 I surveyed him. It seemed I had found a brother: one I could be proud
17490 of,--one I could love; and two sisters, whose qualities were such, that,
17491 when I knew them but as mere strangers, they had inspired me with genuine
17492 affection and admiration. The two girls, on whom, kneeling down on the
17493 wet ground, and looking through the low, latticed window of Moor House
17494 kitchen, I had gazed with so bitter a mixture of interest and despair,
17495 were my near kinswomen; and the young and stately gentleman who had found
17496 me almost dying at his threshold was my blood relation. Glorious
17497 discovery to a lonely wretch! This was wealth indeed!--wealth to the
17498 heart!--a mine of pure, genial affections. This was a blessing, bright,
17499 vivid, and exhilarating;--not like the ponderous gift of gold: rich and
17500 welcome enough in its way, but sobering from its weight. I now clapped
17501 my hands in sudden joy--my pulse bounded, my veins thrilled.
17502
17503 "Oh, I am glad!--I am glad!" I exclaimed.
17504
17505 St. John smiled. "Did I not say you neglected essential points to pursue
17506 trifles?" he asked. "You were serious when I told you you had got a
17507 fortune; and now, for a matter of no moment, you are excited."
17508
17509 "What can you mean? It may be of no moment to you; you have sisters and
17510 don't care for a cousin; but I had nobody; and now three relations,--or
17511 two, if you don't choose to be counted,--are born into my world
17512 full-grown. I say again, I am glad!"
17513
17514 I walked fast through the room: I stopped, half suffocated with the
17515 thoughts that rose faster than I could receive, comprehend, settle
17516 them:--thoughts of what might, could, would, and should be, and that ere
17517 long. I looked at the blank wall: it seemed a sky thick with ascending
17518 stars,--every one lit me to a purpose or delight. Those who had saved my
17519 life, whom, till this hour, I had loved barrenly, I could now benefit.
17520 They were under a yoke,--I could free them: they were scattered,--I could
17521 reunite them: the independence, the affluence which was mine, might be
17522 theirs too. Were we not four? Twenty thousand pounds shared equally
17523 would be five thousand each, justice--enough and to spare: justice would
17524 be done,--mutual happiness secured. Now the wealth did not weigh on me:
17525 now it was not a mere bequest of coin,--it was a legacy of life, hope,
17526 enjoyment.
17527
17528 How I looked while these ideas were taking my spirit by storm, I cannot
17529 tell; but I perceived soon that Mr. Rivers had placed a chair behind me,
17530 and was gently attempting to make me sit down on it. He also advised me
17531 to be composed; I scorned the insinuation of helplessness and
17532 distraction, shook off his hand, and began to walk about again.
17533
17534 "Write to Diana and Mary to-morrow," I said, "and tell them to come home
17535 directly. Diana said they would both consider themselves rich with a
17536 thousand pounds, so with five thousand they will do very well."
17537
17538 "Tell me where I can get you a glass of water," said St. John; "you must
17539 really make an effort to tranquillise your feelings."
17540
17541 "Nonsense! and what sort of an effect will the bequest have on you? Will
17542 it keep you in England, induce you to marry Miss Oliver, and settle down
17543 like an ordinary mortal?"
17544
17545 "You wander: your head becomes confused. I have been too abrupt in
17546 communicating the news; it has excited you beyond your strength."
17547
17548 "Mr. Rivers! you quite put me out of patience: I am rational enough; it
17549 is you who misunderstand, or rather who affect to misunderstand."
17550
17551 "Perhaps, if you explained yourself a little more fully, I should
17552 comprehend better."
17553
17554 "Explain! What is there to explain? You cannot fail to see that twenty
17555 thousand pounds, the sum in question, divided equally between the nephew
17556 and three nieces of our uncle, will give five thousand to each? What I
17557 want is, that you should write to your sisters and tell them of the
17558 fortune that has accrued to them."
17559
17560 "To you, you mean."
17561
17562 "I have intimated my view of the case: I am incapable of taking any
17563 other. I am not brutally selfish, blindly unjust, or fiendishly
17564 ungrateful. Besides, I am resolved I will have a home and connections. I
17565 like Moor House, and I will live at Moor House; I like Diana and Mary,
17566 and I will attach myself for life to Diana and Mary. It would please and
17567 benefit me to have five thousand pounds; it would torment and oppress me
17568 to have twenty thousand; which, moreover, could never be mine in justice,
17569 though it might in law. I abandon to you, then, what is absolutely
17570 superfluous to me. Let there be no opposition, and no discussion about
17571 it; let us agree amongst each other, and decide the point at once."
17572
17573 "This is acting on first impulses; you must take days to consider such a
17574 matter, ere your word can be regarded as valid."
17575
17576 "Oh! if all you doubt is my sincerity, I am easy: you see the justice of
17577 the case?"
17578
17579 "I _do_ see a certain justice; but it is contrary to all custom. Besides,
17580 the entire fortune is your right: my uncle gained it by his own efforts;
17581 he was free to leave it to whom he would: he left it to you. After all,
17582 justice permits you to keep it: you may, with a clear conscience,
17583 consider it absolutely your own."
17584
17585 "With me," said I, "it is fully as much a matter of feeling as of
17586 conscience: I must indulge my feelings; I so seldom have had an
17587 opportunity of doing so. Were you to argue, object, and annoy me for a
17588 year, I could not forego the delicious pleasure of which I have caught a
17589 glimpse--that of repaying, in part, a mighty obligation, and winning to
17590 myself lifelong friends."
17591
17592 "You think so now," rejoined St. John, "because you do not know what it
17593 is to possess, nor consequently to enjoy wealth: you cannot form a notion
17594 of the importance twenty thousand pounds would give you; of the place it
17595 would enable you to take in society; of the prospects it would open to
17596 you: you cannot--"
17597
17598 "And you," I interrupted, "cannot at all imagine the craving I have for
17599 fraternal and sisterly love. I never had a home, I never had brothers or
17600 sisters; I must and will have them now: you are not reluctant to admit me
17601 and own me, are you?"
17602
17603 "Jane, I will be your brother--my sisters will be your sisters--without
17604 stipulating for this sacrifice of your just rights."
17605
17606 "Brother? Yes; at the distance of a thousand leagues! Sisters? Yes;
17607 slaving amongst strangers! I, wealthy--gorged with gold I never earned
17608 and do not merit! You, penniless! Famous equality and fraternisation!
17609 Close union! Intimate attachment!"
17610
17611 "But, Jane, your aspirations after family ties and domestic happiness may
17612 be realised otherwise than by the means you contemplate: you may marry."
17613
17614 "Nonsense, again! Marry! I don't want to marry, and never shall marry."
17615
17616 "That is saying too much: such hazardous affirmations are a proof of the
17617 excitement under which you labour."
17618
17619 "It is not saying too much: I know what I feel, and how averse are my
17620 inclinations to the bare thought of marriage. No one would take me for
17621 love; and I will not be regarded in the light of a mere money
17622 speculation. And I do not want a stranger--unsympathising, alien,
17623 different from me; I want my kindred: those with whom I have full fellow-
17624 feeling. Say again you will be my brother: when you uttered the words I
17625 was satisfied, happy; repeat them, if you can, repeat them sincerely."
17626
17627 "I think I can. I know I have always loved my own sisters; and I know on
17628 what my affection for them is grounded,--respect for their worth and
17629 admiration of their talents. You too have principle and mind: your
17630 tastes and habits resemble Diana's and Mary's; your presence is always
17631 agreeable to me; in your conversation I have already for some time found
17632 a salutary solace. I feel I can easily and naturally make room in my
17633 heart for you, as my third and youngest sister."
17634
17635 "Thank you: that contents me for to-night. Now you had better go; for if
17636 you stay longer, you will perhaps irritate me afresh by some mistrustful
17637 scruple."
17638
17639 "And the school, Miss Eyre? It must now be shut up, I suppose?"
17640
17641 "No. I will retain my post of mistress till you get a substitute."
17642
17643 He smiled approbation: we shook hands, and he took leave.
17644
17645 I need not narrate in detail the further struggles I had, and arguments I
17646 used, to get matters regarding the legacy settled as I wished. My task
17647 was a very hard one; but, as I was absolutely resolved--as my cousins saw
17648 at length that my mind was really and immutably fixed on making a just
17649 division of the property--as they must in their own hearts have felt the
17650 equity of the intention; and must, besides, have been innately conscious
17651 that in my place they would have done precisely what I wished to do--they
17652 yielded at length so far as to consent to put the affair to arbitration.
17653 The judges chosen were Mr. Oliver and an able lawyer: both coincided in
17654 my opinion: I carried my point. The instruments of transfer were drawn
17655 out: St. John, Diana, Mary, and I, each became possessed of a competency.
17656
17657
17658
17659
17660 CHAPTER XXXIV
17661
17662
17663 It was near Christmas by the time all was settled: the season of general
17664 holiday approached. I now closed Morton school, taking care that the
17665 parting should not be barren on my side. Good fortune opens the hand as
17666 well as the heart wonderfully; and to give somewhat when we have largely
17667 received, is but to afford a vent to the unusual ebullition of the
17668 sensations. I had long felt with pleasure that many of my rustic
17669 scholars liked me, and when we parted, that consciousness was confirmed:
17670 they manifested their affection plainly and strongly. Deep was my
17671 gratification to find I had really a place in their unsophisticated
17672 hearts: I promised them that never a week should pass in future that I
17673 did not visit them, and give them an hour's teaching in their school.
17674
17675 Mr. Rivers came up as, having seen the classes, now numbering sixty
17676 girls, file out before me, and locked the door, I stood with the key in
17677 my hand, exchanging a few words of special farewell with some half-dozen
17678 of my best scholars: as decent, respectable, modest, and well-informed
17679 young women as could be found in the ranks of the British peasantry. And
17680 that is saying a great deal; for after all, the British peasantry are the
17681 best taught, best mannered, most self-respecting of any in Europe: since
17682 those days I have seen paysannes and Bauerinnen; and the best of them
17683 seemed to me ignorant, coarse, and besotted, compared with my Morton
17684 girls.
17685
17686 "Do you consider you have got your reward for a season of exertion?"
17687 asked Mr. Rivers, when they were gone. "Does not the consciousness of
17688 having done some real good in your day and generation give pleasure?"
17689
17690 "Doubtless."
17691
17692 "And you have only toiled a few months! Would not a life devoted to the
17693 task of regenerating your race be well spent?"
17694
17695 "Yes," I said; "but I could not go on for ever so: I want to enjoy my own
17696 faculties as well as to cultivate those of other people. I must enjoy
17697 them now; don't recall either my mind or body to the school; I am out of
17698 it and disposed for full holiday."
17699
17700 He looked grave. "What now? What sudden eagerness is this you evince?
17701 What are you going to do?"
17702
17703 "To be active: as active as I can. And first I must beg you to set
17704 Hannah at liberty, and get somebody else to wait on you."
17705
17706 "Do you want her?"
17707
17708 "Yes, to go with me to Moor House. Diana and Mary will be at home in a
17709 week, and I want to have everything in order against their arrival."
17710
17711 "I understand. I thought you were for flying off on some excursion. It
17712 is better so: Hannah shall go with you."
17713
17714 "Tell her to be ready by to-morrow then; and here is the schoolroom key:
17715 I will give you the key of my cottage in the morning."
17716
17717 He took it. "You give it up very gleefully," said he; "I don't quite
17718 understand your light-heartedness, because I cannot tell what employment
17719 you propose to yourself as a substitute for the one you are
17720 relinquishing. What aim, what purpose, what ambition in life have you
17721 now?"
17722
17723 "My first aim will be to _clean down_ (do you comprehend the full force
17724 of the expression?)--to _clean down_ Moor House from chamber to cellar;
17725 my next to rub it up with bees-wax, oil, and an indefinite number of
17726 cloths, till it glitters again; my third, to arrange every chair, table,
17727 bed, carpet, with mathematical precision; afterwards I shall go near to
17728 ruin you in coals and peat to keep up good fires in every room; and
17729 lastly, the two days preceding that on which your sisters are expected
17730 will be devoted by Hannah and me to such a beating of eggs, sorting of
17731 currants, grating of spices, compounding of Christmas cakes, chopping up
17732 of materials for mince-pies, and solemnising of other culinary rites, as
17733 words can convey but an inadequate notion of to the uninitiated like you.
17734 My purpose, in short, is to have all things in an absolutely perfect
17735 state of readiness for Diana and Mary before next Thursday; and my
17736 ambition is to give them a beau-ideal of a welcome when they come."
17737
17738 St. John smiled slightly: still he was dissatisfied.
17739
17740 "It is all very well for the present," said he; "but seriously, I trust
17741 that when the first flush of vivacity is over, you will look a little
17742 higher than domestic endearments and household joys."
17743
17744 "The best things the world has!" I interrupted.
17745
17746 "No, Jane, no: this world is not the scene of fruition; do not attempt to
17747 make it so: nor of rest; do not turn slothful."
17748
17749 "I mean, on the contrary, to be busy."
17750
17751 "Jane, I excuse you for the present: two months' grace I allow you for
17752 the full enjoyment of your new position, and for pleasing yourself with
17753 this late-found charm of relationship; but _then_, I hope you will begin
17754 to look beyond Moor House and Morton, and sisterly society, and the
17755 selfish calm and sensual comfort of civilised affluence. I hope your
17756 energies will then once more trouble you with their strength."
17757
17758 I looked at him with surprise. "St. John," I said, "I think you are
17759 almost wicked to talk so. I am disposed to be as content as a queen, and
17760 you try to stir me up to restlessness! To what end?"
17761
17762 "To the end of turning to profit the talents which God has committed to
17763 your keeping; and of which He will surely one day demand a strict
17764 account. Jane, I shall watch you closely and anxiously--I warn you of
17765 that. And try to restrain the disproportionate fervour with which you
17766 throw yourself into commonplace home pleasures. Don't cling so
17767 tenaciously to ties of the flesh; save your constancy and ardour for an
17768 adequate cause; forbear to waste them on trite transient objects. Do you
17769 hear, Jane?"
17770
17771 "Yes; just as if you were speaking Greek. I feel I have adequate cause
17772 to be happy, and I _will_ be happy. Goodbye!"
17773
17774 Happy at Moor House I was, and hard I worked; and so did Hannah: she was
17775 charmed to see how jovial I could be amidst the bustle of a house turned
17776 topsy-turvy--how I could brush, and dust, and clean, and cook. And
17777 really, after a day or two of confusion worse confounded, it was
17778 delightful by degrees to invoke order from the chaos ourselves had made.
17779 I had previously taken a journey to S--- to purchase some new furniture:
17780 my cousins having given me _carte blanche_ to effect what alterations I
17781 pleased, and a sum having been set aside for that purpose. The ordinary
17782 sitting-room and bedrooms I left much as they were: for I knew Diana and
17783 Mary would derive more pleasure from seeing again the old homely tables,
17784 and chairs, and beds, than from the spectacle of the smartest
17785 innovations. Still some novelty was necessary, to give to their return
17786 the piquancy with which I wished it to be invested. Dark handsome new
17787 carpets and curtains, an arrangement of some carefully selected antique
17788 ornaments in porcelain and bronze, new coverings, and mirrors, and
17789 dressing-cases, for the toilet tables, answered the end: they looked
17790 fresh without being glaring. A spare parlour and bedroom I refurnished
17791 entirely, with old mahogany and crimson upholstery: I laid canvas on the
17792 passage, and carpets on the stairs. When all was finished, I thought
17793 Moor House as complete a model of bright modest snugness within, as it
17794 was, at this season, a specimen of wintry waste and desert dreariness
17795 without.
17796
17797 The eventful Thursday at length came. They were expected about dark, and
17798 ere dusk fires were lit upstairs and below; the kitchen was in perfect
17799 trim; Hannah and I were dressed, and all was in readiness.
17800
17801 St. John arrived first. I had entreated him to keep quite clear of the
17802 house till everything was arranged: and, indeed, the bare idea of the
17803 commotion, at once sordid and trivial, going on within its walls sufficed
17804 to scare him to estrangement. He found me in the kitchen, watching the
17805 progress of certain cakes for tea, then baking. Approaching the hearth,
17806 he asked, "If I was at last satisfied with housemaid's work?" I answered
17807 by inviting him to accompany me on a general inspection of the result of
17808 my labours. With some difficulty, I got him to make the tour of the
17809 house. He just looked in at the doors I opened; and when he had wandered
17810 upstairs and downstairs, he said I must have gone through a great deal of
17811 fatigue and trouble to have effected such considerable changes in so
17812 short a time: but not a syllable did he utter indicating pleasure in the
17813 improved aspect of his abode.
17814
17815 This silence damped me. I thought perhaps the alterations had disturbed
17816 some old associations he valued. I inquired whether this was the case:
17817 no doubt in a somewhat crest-fallen tone.
17818
17819 "Not at all; he had, on the contrary, remarked that I had scrupulously
17820 respected every association: he feared, indeed, I must have bestowed more
17821 thought on the matter than it was worth. How many minutes, for instance,
17822 had I devoted to studying the arrangement of this very room?--By-the-bye,
17823 could I tell him where such a book was?"
17824
17825 I showed him the volume on the shelf: he took it down, and withdrawing to
17826 his accustomed window recess, he began to read it.
17827
17828 Now, I did not like this, reader. St. John was a good man; but I began
17829 to feel he had spoken truth of himself when he said he was hard and cold.
17830 The humanities and amenities of life had no attraction for him--its
17831 peaceful enjoyments no charm. Literally, he lived only to aspire--after
17832 what was good and great, certainly; but still he would never rest, nor
17833 approve of others resting round him. As I looked at his lofty forehead,
17834 still and pale as a white stone--at his fine lineaments fixed in study--I
17835 comprehended all at once that he would hardly make a good husband: that
17836 it would be a trying thing to be his wife. I understood, as by
17837 inspiration, the nature of his love for Miss Oliver; I agreed with him
17838 that it was but a love of the senses. I comprehended how he should
17839 despise himself for the feverish influence it exercised over him; how he
17840 should wish to stifle and destroy it; how he should mistrust its ever
17841 conducting permanently to his happiness or hers. I saw he was of the
17842 material from which nature hews her heroes--Christian and Pagan--her
17843 lawgivers, her statesmen, her conquerors: a steadfast bulwark for great
17844 interests to rest upon; but, at the fireside, too often a cold cumbrous
17845 column, gloomy and out of place.
17846
17847 "This parlour is not his sphere," I reflected: "the Himalayan ridge or
17848 Caffre bush, even the plague-cursed Guinea Coast swamp would suit him
17849 better. Well may he eschew the calm of domestic life; it is not his
17850 element: there his faculties stagnate--they cannot develop or appear to
17851 advantage. It is in scenes of strife and danger--where courage is
17852 proved, and energy exercised, and fortitude tasked--that he will speak
17853 and move, the leader and superior. A merry child would have the
17854 advantage of him on this hearth. He is right to choose a missionary's
17855 career--I see it now."
17856
17857 "They are coming! they are coming!" cried Hannah, throwing open the
17858 parlour door. At the same moment old Carlo barked joyfully. Out I ran.
17859 It was now dark; but a rumbling of wheels was audible. Hannah soon had a
17860 lantern lit. The vehicle had stopped at the wicket; the driver opened
17861 the door: first one well-known form, then another, stepped out. In a
17862 minute I had my face under their bonnets, in contact first with Mary's
17863 soft cheek, then with Diana's flowing curls. They laughed--kissed
17864 me--then Hannah: patted Carlo, who was half wild with delight; asked
17865 eagerly if all was well; and being assured in the affirmative, hastened
17866 into the house.
17867
17868 They were stiff with their long and jolting drive from Whitcross, and
17869 chilled with the frosty night air; but their pleasant countenances
17870 expanded to the cheerful firelight. While the driver and Hannah brought
17871 in the boxes, they demanded St. John. At this moment he advanced from
17872 the parlour. They both threw their arms round his neck at once. He gave
17873 each one quiet kiss, said in a low tone a few words of welcome, stood a
17874 while to be talked to, and then, intimating that he supposed they would
17875 soon rejoin him in the parlour, withdrew there as to a place of refuge.
17876
17877 I had lit their candles to go upstairs, but Diana had first to give
17878 hospitable orders respecting the driver; this done, both followed me.
17879 They were delighted with the renovation and decorations of their rooms;
17880 with the new drapery, and fresh carpets, and rich tinted china vases:
17881 they expressed their gratification ungrudgingly. I had the pleasure of
17882 feeling that my arrangements met their wishes exactly, and that what I
17883 had done added a vivid charm to their joyous return home.
17884
17885 Sweet was that evening. My cousins, full of exhilaration, were so
17886 eloquent in narrative and comment, that their fluency covered St. John's
17887 taciturnity: he was sincerely glad to see his sisters; but in their glow
17888 of fervour and flow of joy he could not sympathise. The event of the
17889 day--that is, the return of Diana and Mary--pleased him; but the
17890 accompaniments of that event, the glad tumult, the garrulous glee of
17891 reception irked him: I saw he wished the calmer morrow was come. In the
17892 very meridian of the night's enjoyment, about an hour after tea, a rap
17893 was heard at the door. Hannah entered with the intimation that "a poor
17894 lad was come, at that unlikely time, to fetch Mr. Rivers to see his
17895 mother, who was drawing away."
17896
17897 "Where does she live, Hannah?"
17898
17899 "Clear up at Whitcross Brow, almost four miles off, and moor and moss all
17900 the way."
17901
17902 "Tell him I will go."
17903
17904 "I'm sure, sir, you had better not. It's the worst road to travel after
17905 dark that can be: there's no track at all over the bog. And then it is
17906 such a bitter night--the keenest wind you ever felt. You had better send
17907 word, sir, that you will be there in the morning."
17908
17909 But he was already in the passage, putting on his cloak; and without one
17910 objection, one murmur, he departed. It was then nine o'clock: he did not
17911 return till midnight. Starved and tired enough he was: but he looked
17912 happier than when he set out. He had performed an act of duty; made an
17913 exertion; felt his own strength to do and deny, and was on better terms
17914 with himself.
17915
17916 I am afraid the whole of the ensuing week tried his patience. It was
17917 Christmas week: we took to no settled employment, but spent it in a sort
17918 of merry domestic dissipation. The air of the moors, the freedom of
17919 home, the dawn of prosperity, acted on Diana and Mary's spirits like some
17920 life-giving elixir: they were gay from morning till noon, and from noon
17921 till night. They could always talk; and their discourse, witty, pithy,
17922 original, had such charms for me, that I preferred listening to, and
17923 sharing in it, to doing anything else. St. John did not rebuke our
17924 vivacity; but he escaped from it: he was seldom in the house; his parish
17925 was large, the population scattered, and he found daily business in
17926 visiting the sick and poor in its different districts.
17927
17928 One morning at breakfast, Diana, after looking a little pensive for some
17929 minutes, asked him, "If his plans were yet unchanged."
17930
17931 "Unchanged and unchangeable," was the reply. And he proceeded to inform
17932 us that his departure from England was now definitively fixed for the
17933 ensuing year.
17934
17935 "And Rosamond Oliver?" suggested Mary, the words seeming to escape her
17936 lips involuntarily: for no sooner had she uttered them, than she made a
17937 gesture as if wishing to recall them. St. John had a book in his hand--it
17938 was his unsocial custom to read at meals--he closed it, and looked up.
17939
17940 "Rosamond Oliver," said he, "is about to be married to Mr. Granby, one of
17941 the best connected and most estimable residents in S-, grandson and heir
17942 to Sir Frederic Granby: I had the intelligence from her father
17943 yesterday."
17944
17945 His sisters looked at each other and at me; we all three looked at him:
17946 he was serene as glass.
17947
17948 "The match must have been got up hastily," said Diana: "they cannot have
17949 known each other long."
17950
17951 "But two months: they met in October at the county ball at S-. But where
17952 there are no obstacles to a union, as in the present case, where the
17953 connection is in every point desirable, delays are unnecessary: they will
17954 be married as soon as S--- Place, which Sir Frederic gives up to them,
17955 can he refitted for their reception."
17956
17957 The first time I found St. John alone after this communication, I felt
17958 tempted to inquire if the event distressed him: but he seemed so little
17959 to need sympathy, that, so far from venturing to offer him more, I
17960 experienced some shame at the recollection of what I had already
17961 hazarded. Besides, I was out of practice in talking to him: his reserve
17962 was again frozen over, and my frankness was congealed beneath it. He had
17963 not kept his promise of treating me like his sisters; he continually made
17964 little chilling differences between us, which did not at all tend to the
17965 development of cordiality: in short, now that I was acknowledged his
17966 kinswoman, and lived under the same roof with him, I felt the distance
17967 between us to be far greater than when he had known me only as the
17968 village schoolmistress. When I remembered how far I had once been
17969 admitted to his confidence, I could hardly comprehend his present
17970 frigidity.
17971
17972 Such being the case, I felt not a little surprised when he raised his
17973 head suddenly from the desk over which he was stooping, and said--
17974
17975 "You see, Jane, the battle is fought and the victory won."
17976
17977 Startled at being thus addressed, I did not immediately reply: after a
17978 moment's hesitation I answered--
17979
17980 "But are you sure you are not in the position of those conquerors whose
17981 triumphs have cost them too dear? Would not such another ruin you?"
17982
17983 "I think not; and if I were, it does not much signify; I shall never be
17984 called upon to contend for such another. The event of the conflict is
17985 decisive: my way is now clear; I thank God for it!" So saying, he
17986 returned to his papers and his silence.
17987
17988 As our mutual happiness (_i.e._, Diana's, Mary's, and mine) settled into
17989 a quieter character, and we resumed our usual habits and regular studies,
17990 St. John stayed more at home: he sat with us in the same room, sometimes
17991 for hours together. While Mary drew, Diana pursued a course of
17992 encyclopaedic reading she had (to my awe and amazement) undertaken, and I
17993 fagged away at German, he pondered a mystic lore of his own: that of some
17994 Eastern tongue, the acquisition of which he thought necessary to his
17995 plans.
17996
17997 Thus engaged, he appeared, sitting in his own recess, quiet and absorbed
17998 enough; but that blue eye of his had a habit of leaving the outlandish-
17999 looking grammar, and wandering over, and sometimes fixing upon us, his
18000 fellow-students, with a curious intensity of observation: if caught, it
18001 would be instantly withdrawn; yet ever and anon, it returned searchingly
18002 to our table. I wondered what it meant: I wondered, too, at the punctual
18003 satisfaction he never failed to exhibit on an occasion that seemed to me
18004 of small moment, namely, my weekly visit to Morton school; and still more
18005 was I puzzled when, if the day was unfavourable, if there was snow, or
18006 rain, or high wind, and his sisters urged me not to go, he would
18007 invariably make light of their solicitude, and encourage me to accomplish
18008 the task without regard to the elements.
18009
18010 "Jane is not such a weakling as you would make her," he would say: "she
18011 can bear a mountain blast, or a shower, or a few flakes of snow, as well
18012 as any of us. Her constitution is both sound and elastic;--better
18013 calculated to endure variations of climate than many more robust."
18014
18015 And when I returned, sometimes a good deal tired, and not a little
18016 weather-beaten, I never dared complain, because I saw that to murmur
18017 would be to vex him: on all occasions fortitude pleased him; the reverse
18018 was a special annoyance.
18019
18020 One afternoon, however, I got leave to stay at home, because I really had
18021 a cold. His sisters were gone to Morton in my stead: I sat reading
18022 Schiller; he, deciphering his crabbed Oriental scrolls. As I exchanged a
18023 translation for an exercise, I happened to look his way: there I found
18024 myself under the influence of the ever-watchful blue eye. How long it
18025 had been searching me through and through, and over and over, I cannot
18026 tell: so keen was it, and yet so cold, I felt for the moment
18027 superstitious--as if I were sitting in the room with something uncanny.
18028
18029 "Jane, what are you doing?"
18030
18031 "Learning German."
18032
18033 "I want you to give up German and learn Hindostanee."
18034
18035 "You are not in earnest?"
18036
18037 "In such earnest that I must have it so: and I will tell you why."
18038
18039 He then went on to explain that Hindostanee was the language he was
18040 himself at present studying; that, as he advanced, he was apt to forget
18041 the commencement; that it would assist him greatly to have a pupil with
18042 whom he might again and again go over the elements, and so fix them
18043 thoroughly in his mind; that his choice had hovered for some time between
18044 me and his sisters; but that he had fixed on me because he saw I could
18045 sit at a task the longest of the three. Would I do him this favour? I
18046 should not, perhaps, have to make the sacrifice long, as it wanted now
18047 barely three months to his departure.
18048
18049 St. John was not a man to be lightly refused: you felt that every
18050 impression made on him, either for pain or pleasure, was deep-graved and
18051 permanent. I consented. When Diana and Mary returned, the former found
18052 her scholar transferred from her to her brother: she laughed, and both
18053 she and Mary agreed that St. John should never have persuaded them to
18054 such a step. He answered quietly--
18055
18056 "I know it."
18057
18058 I found him a very patient, very forbearing, and yet an exacting master:
18059 he expected me to do a great deal; and when I fulfilled his expectations,
18060 he, in his own way, fully testified his approbation. By degrees, he
18061 acquired a certain influence over me that took away my liberty of mind:
18062 his praise and notice were more restraining than his indifference. I
18063 could no longer talk or laugh freely when he was by, because a tiresomely
18064 importunate instinct reminded me that vivacity (at least in me) was
18065 distasteful to him. I was so fully aware that only serious moods and
18066 occupations were acceptable, that in his presence every effort to sustain
18067 or follow any other became vain: I fell under a freezing spell. When he
18068 said "go," I went; "come," I came; "do this," I did it. But I did not
18069 love my servitude: I wished, many a time, he had continued to neglect me.
18070
18071 One evening when, at bedtime, his sisters and I stood round him, bidding
18072 him good-night, he kissed each of them, as was his custom; and, as was
18073 equally his custom, he gave me his hand. Diana, who chanced to be in a
18074 frolicsome humour (_she_ was not painfully controlled by his will; for
18075 hers, in another way, was as strong), exclaimed--
18076
18077 "St. John! you used to call Jane your third sister, but you don't treat
18078 her as such: you should kiss her too."
18079
18080 She pushed me towards him. I thought Diana very provoking, and felt
18081 uncomfortably confused; and while I was thus thinking and feeling, St.
18082 John bent his head; his Greek face was brought to a level with mine, his
18083 eyes questioned my eyes piercingly--he kissed me. There are no such
18084 things as marble kisses or ice kisses, or I should say my ecclesiastical
18085 cousin's salute belonged to one of these classes; but there may be
18086 experiment kisses, and his was an experiment kiss. When given, he viewed
18087 me to learn the result; it was not striking: I am sure I did not blush;
18088 perhaps I might have turned a little pale, for I felt as if this kiss
18089 were a seal affixed to my fetters. He never omitted the ceremony
18090 afterwards, and the gravity and quiescence with which I underwent it,
18091 seemed to invest it for him with a certain charm.
18092
18093 As for me, I daily wished more to please him; but to do so, I felt daily
18094 more and more that I must disown half my nature, stifle half my
18095 faculties, wrest my tastes from their original bent, force myself to the
18096 adoption of pursuits for which I had no natural vocation. He wanted to
18097 train me to an elevation I could never reach; it racked me hourly to
18098 aspire to the standard he uplifted. The thing was as impossible as to
18099 mould my irregular features to his correct and classic pattern, to give
18100 to my changeable green eyes the sea-blue tint and solemn lustre of his
18101 own.
18102
18103 Not his ascendancy alone, however, held me in thrall at present. Of late
18104 it had been easy enough for me to look sad: a cankering evil sat at my
18105 heart and drained my happiness at its source--the evil of suspense.
18106
18107 Perhaps you think I had forgotten Mr. Rochester, reader, amidst these
18108 changes of place and fortune. Not for a moment. His idea was still with
18109 me, because it was not a vapour sunshine could disperse, nor a
18110 sand-traced effigy storms could wash away; it was a name graven on a
18111 tablet, fated to last as long as the marble it inscribed. The craving to
18112 know what had become of him followed me everywhere; when I was at Morton,
18113 I re-entered my cottage every evening to think of that; and now at Moor
18114 House, I sought my bedroom each night to brood over it.
18115
18116 In the course of my necessary correspondence with Mr. Briggs about the
18117 will, I had inquired if he knew anything of Mr. Rochester's present
18118 residence and state of health; but, as St. John had conjectured, he was
18119 quite ignorant of all concerning him. I then wrote to Mrs. Fairfax,
18120 entreating information on the subject. I had calculated with certainty
18121 on this step answering my end: I felt sure it would elicit an early
18122 answer. I was astonished when a fortnight passed without reply; but when
18123 two months wore away, and day after day the post arrived and brought
18124 nothing for me, I fell a prey to the keenest anxiety.
18125
18126 I wrote again: there was a chance of my first letter having missed.
18127 Renewed hope followed renewed effort: it shone like the former for some
18128 weeks, then, like it, it faded, flickered: not a line, not a word reached
18129 me. When half a year wasted in vain expectancy, my hope died out, and
18130 then I felt dark indeed.
18131
18132 A fine spring shone round me, which I could not enjoy. Summer
18133 approached; Diana tried to cheer me: she said I looked ill, and wished to
18134 accompany me to the sea-side. This St. John opposed; he said I did not
18135 want dissipation, I wanted employment; my present life was too
18136 purposeless, I required an aim; and, I suppose, by way of supplying
18137 deficiencies, he prolonged still further my lessons in Hindostanee, and
18138 grew more urgent in requiring their accomplishment: and I, like a fool,
18139 never thought of resisting him--I could not resist him.
18140
18141 One day I had come to my studies in lower spirits than usual; the ebb was
18142 occasioned by a poignantly felt disappointment. Hannah had told me in
18143 the morning there was a letter for me, and when I went down to take it,
18144 almost certain that the long-looked for tidings were vouchsafed me at
18145 last, I found only an unimportant note from Mr. Briggs on business. The
18146 bitter check had wrung from me some tears; and now, as I sat poring over
18147 the crabbed characters and flourishing tropes of an Indian scribe, my
18148 eyes filled again.
18149
18150 St. John called me to his side to read; in attempting to do this my voice
18151 failed me: words were lost in sobs. He and I were the only occupants of
18152 the parlour: Diana was practising her music in the drawing-room, Mary was
18153 gardening--it was a very fine May day, clear, sunny, and breezy. My
18154 companion expressed no surprise at this emotion, nor did he question me
18155 as to its cause; he only said--
18156
18157 "We will wait a few minutes, Jane, till you are more composed." And
18158 while I smothered the paroxysm with all haste, he sat calm and patient,
18159 leaning on his desk, and looking like a physician watching with the eye
18160 of science an expected and fully understood crisis in a patient's malady.
18161 Having stifled my sobs, wiped my eyes, and muttered something about not
18162 being very well that morning, I resumed my task, and succeeded in
18163 completing it. St. John put away my books and his, locked his desk, and
18164 said--
18165
18166 "Now, Jane, you shall take a walk; and with me."
18167
18168 "I will call Diana and Mary."
18169
18170 "No; I want only one companion this morning, and that must be you. Put
18171 on your things; go out by the kitchen-door: take the road towards the
18172 head of Marsh Glen: I will join you in a moment."
18173
18174 I know no medium: I never in my life have known any medium in my dealings
18175 with positive, hard characters, antagonistic to my own, between absolute
18176 submission and determined revolt. I have always faithfully observed the
18177 one, up to the very moment of bursting, sometimes with volcanic
18178 vehemence, into the other; and as neither present circumstances
18179 warranted, nor my present mood inclined me to mutiny, I observed careful
18180 obedience to St. John's directions; and in ten minutes I was treading the
18181 wild track of the glen, side by side with him.
18182
18183 The breeze was from the west: it came over the hills, sweet with scents
18184 of heath and rush; the sky was of stainless blue; the stream descending
18185 the ravine, swelled with past spring rains, poured along plentiful and
18186 clear, catching golden gleams from the sun, and sapphire tints from the
18187 firmament. As we advanced and left the track, we trod a soft turf, mossy
18188 fine and emerald green, minutely enamelled with a tiny white flower, and
18189 spangled with a star-like yellow blossom: the hills, meantime, shut us
18190 quite in; for the glen, towards its head, wound to their very core.
18191
18192 "Let us rest here," said St. John, as we reached the first stragglers of
18193 a battalion of rocks, guarding a sort of pass, beyond which the beck
18194 rushed down a waterfall; and where, still a little farther, the mountain
18195 shook off turf and flower, had only heath for raiment and crag for
18196 gem--where it exaggerated the wild to the savage, and exchanged the fresh
18197 for the frowning--where it guarded the forlorn hope of solitude, and a
18198 last refuge for silence.
18199
18200 I took a seat: St. John stood near me. He looked up the pass and down
18201 the hollow; his glance wandered away with the stream, and returned to
18202 traverse the unclouded heaven which coloured it: he removed his hat, let
18203 the breeze stir his hair and kiss his brow. He seemed in communion with
18204 the genius of the haunt: with his eye he bade farewell to something.
18205
18206 "And I shall see it again," he said aloud, "in dreams when I sleep by the
18207 Ganges: and again in a more remote hour--when another slumber overcomes
18208 me--on the shore of a darker stream!"
18209
18210 Strange words of a strange love! An austere patriot's passion for his
18211 fatherland! He sat down; for half-an-hour we never spoke; neither he to
18212 me nor I to him: that interval past, he recommenced--
18213
18214 "Jane, I go in six weeks; I have taken my berth in an East Indiaman which
18215 sails on the 20th of June."
18216
18217 "God will protect you; for you have undertaken His work," I answered.
18218
18219 "Yes," said he, "there is my glory and joy. I am the servant of an
18220 infallible Master. I am not going out under human guidance, subject to
18221 the defective laws and erring control of my feeble fellow-worms: my king,
18222 my lawgiver, my captain, is the All-perfect. It seems strange to me that
18223 all round me do not burn to enlist under the same banner,--to join in the
18224 same enterprise."
18225
18226 "All have not your powers, and it would be folly for the feeble to wish
18227 to march with the strong."
18228
18229 "I do not speak to the feeble, or think of them: I address only such as
18230 are worthy of the work, and competent to accomplish it."
18231
18232 "Those are few in number, and difficult to discover."
18233
18234 "You say truly; but when found, it is right to stir them up--to urge and
18235 exhort them to the effort--to show them what their gifts are, and why
18236 they were given--to speak Heaven's message in their ear,--to offer them,
18237 direct from God, a place in the ranks of His chosen."
18238
18239 "If they are really qualified for the task, will not their own hearts be
18240 the first to inform them of it?"
18241
18242 I felt as if an awful charm was framing round and gathering over me: I
18243 trembled to hear some fatal word spoken which would at once declare and
18244 rivet the spell.
18245
18246 "And what does _your_ heart say?" demanded St. John.
18247
18248 "My heart is mute,--my heart is mute," I answered, struck and thrilled.
18249
18250 "Then I must speak for it," continued the deep, relentless voice. "Jane,
18251 come with me to India: come as my helpmeet and fellow-labourer."
18252
18253 The glen and sky spun round: the hills heaved! It was as if I had heard
18254 a summons from Heaven--as if a visionary messenger, like him of
18255 Macedonia, had enounced, "Come over and help us!" But I was no
18256 apostle,--I could not behold the herald,--I could not receive his call.
18257
18258 "Oh, St. John!" I cried, "have some mercy!"
18259
18260 I appealed to one who, in the discharge of what he believed his duty,
18261 knew neither mercy nor remorse. He continued--
18262
18263 "God and nature intended you for a missionary's wife. It is not
18264 personal, but mental endowments they have given you: you are formed for
18265 labour, not for love. A missionary's wife you must--shall be. You shall
18266 be mine: I claim you--not for my pleasure, but for my Sovereign's
18267 service."
18268
18269 "I am not fit for it: I have no vocation," I said.
18270
18271 He had calculated on these first objections: he was not irritated by
18272 them. Indeed, as he leaned back against the crag behind him, folded his
18273 arms on his chest, and fixed his countenance, I saw he was prepared for a
18274 long and trying opposition, and had taken in a stock of patience to last
18275 him to its close--resolved, however, that that close should be conquest
18276 for him.
18277
18278 "Humility, Jane," said he, "is the groundwork of Christian virtues: you
18279 say right that you are not fit for the work. Who is fit for it? Or who,
18280 that ever was truly called, believed himself worthy of the summons? I,
18281 for instance, am but dust and ashes. With St. Paul, I acknowledge myself
18282 the chiefest of sinners; but I do not suffer this sense of my personal
18283 vileness to daunt me. I know my Leader: that He is just as well as
18284 mighty; and while He has chosen a feeble instrument to perform a great
18285 task, He will, from the boundless stores of His providence, supply the
18286 inadequacy of the means to the end. Think like me, Jane--trust like me.
18287 It is the Rock of Ages I ask you to lean on: do not doubt but it will
18288 bear the weight of your human weakness."
18289
18290 "I do not understand a missionary life: I have never studied missionary
18291 labours."
18292
18293 "There I, humble as I am, can give you the aid you want: I can set you
18294 your task from hour to hour; stand by you always; help you from moment to
18295 moment. This I could do in the beginning: soon (for I know your powers)
18296 you would be as strong and apt as myself, and would not require my help."
18297
18298 "But my powers--where are they for this undertaking? I do not feel them.
18299 Nothing speaks or stirs in me while you talk. I am sensible of no light
18300 kindling--no life quickening--no voice counselling or cheering. Oh, I
18301 wish I could make you see how much my mind is at this moment like a
18302 rayless dungeon, with one shrinking fear fettered in its depths--the fear
18303 of being persuaded by you to attempt what I cannot accomplish!"
18304
18305 "I have an answer for you--hear it. I have watched you ever since we
18306 first met: I have made you my study for ten months. I have proved you in
18307 that time by sundry tests: and what have I seen and elicited? In the
18308 village school I found you could perform well, punctually, uprightly,
18309 labour uncongenial to your habits and inclinations; I saw you could
18310 perform it with capacity and tact: you could win while you controlled. In
18311 the calm with which you learnt you had become suddenly rich, I read a
18312 mind clear of the vice of Demas:--lucre had no undue power over you. In
18313 the resolute readiness with which you cut your wealth into four shares,
18314 keeping but one to yourself, and relinquishing the three others to the
18315 claim of abstract justice, I recognised a soul that revelled in the flame
18316 and excitement of sacrifice. In the tractability with which, at my wish,
18317 you forsook a study in which you were interested, and adopted another
18318 because it interested me; in the untiring assiduity with which you have
18319 since persevered in it--in the unflagging energy and unshaken temper with
18320 which you have met its difficulties--I acknowledge the complement of the
18321 qualities I seek. Jane, you are docile, diligent, disinterested,
18322 faithful, constant, and courageous; very gentle, and very heroic: cease
18323 to mistrust yourself--I can trust you unreservedly. As a conductress of
18324 Indian schools, and a helper amongst Indian women, your assistance will
18325 be to me invaluable."
18326
18327 My iron shroud contracted round me; persuasion advanced with slow sure
18328 step. Shut my eyes as I would, these last words of his succeeded in
18329 making the way, which had seemed blocked up, comparatively clear. My
18330 work, which had appeared so vague, so hopelessly diffuse, condensed
18331 itself as he proceeded, and assumed a definite form under his shaping
18332 hand. He waited for an answer. I demanded a quarter of an hour to
18333 think, before I again hazarded a reply.
18334
18335 "Very willingly," he rejoined; and rising, he strode a little distance up
18336 the pass, threw himself down on a swell of heath, and there lay still.
18337
18338 {He threw himself down on a swell of heath, and there lay still:
18339 p389.jpg}
18340
18341 "I _can_ do what he wants me to do: I am forced to see and acknowledge
18342 that," I meditated,--"that is, if life be spared me. But I feel mine is
18343 not the existence to be long protracted under an Indian sun. What then?
18344 He does not care for that: when my time came to die, he would resign me,
18345 in all serenity and sanctity, to the God who gave me. The case is very
18346 plain before me. In leaving England, I should leave a loved but empty
18347 land--Mr. Rochester is not there; and if he were, what is, what can that
18348 ever be to me? My business is to live without him now: nothing so
18349 absurd, so weak as to drag on from day to day, as if I were waiting some
18350 impossible change in circumstances, which might reunite me to him. Of
18351 course (as St. John once said) I must seek another interest in life to
18352 replace the one lost: is not the occupation he now offers me truly the
18353 most glorious man can adopt or God assign? Is it not, by its noble cares
18354 and sublime results, the one best calculated to fill the void left by
18355 uptorn affections and demolished hopes? I believe I must say, Yes--and
18356 yet I shudder. Alas! If I join St. John, I abandon half myself: if I go
18357 to India, I go to premature death. And how will the interval between
18358 leaving England for India, and India for the grave, be filled? Oh, I
18359 know well! That, too, is very clear to my vision. By straining to
18360 satisfy St. John till my sinews ache, I _shall_ satisfy him--to the
18361 finest central point and farthest outward circle of his expectations. If
18362 I _do_ go with him--if I _do_ make the sacrifice he urges, I will make it
18363 absolutely: I will throw all on the altar--heart, vitals, the entire
18364 victim. He will never love me; but he shall approve me; I will show him
18365 energies he has not yet seen, resources he has never suspected. Yes, I
18366 can work as hard as he can, and with as little grudging.
18367
18368 "Consent, then, to his demand is possible: but for one item--one dreadful
18369 item. It is--that he asks me to be his wife, and has no more of a
18370 husband's heart for me than that frowning giant of a rock, down which the
18371 stream is foaming in yonder gorge. He prizes me as a soldier would a
18372 good weapon; and that is all. Unmarried to him, this would never grieve
18373 me; but can I let him complete his calculations--coolly put into practice
18374 his plans--go through the wedding ceremony? Can I receive from him the
18375 bridal ring, endure all the forms of love (which I doubt not he would
18376 scrupulously observe) and know that the spirit was quite absent? Can I
18377 bear the consciousness that every endearment he bestows is a sacrifice
18378 made on principle? No: such a martyrdom would be monstrous. I will
18379 never undergo it. As his sister, I might accompany him--not as his wife:
18380 I will tell him so."
18381
18382 I looked towards the knoll: there he lay, still as a prostrate column;
18383 his face turned to me: his eye beaming watchful and keen. He started to
18384 his feet and approached me.
18385
18386 "I am ready to go to India, if I may go free."
18387
18388 "Your answer requires a commentary," he said; "it is not clear."
18389
18390 "You have hitherto been my adopted brother--I, your adopted sister: let
18391 us continue as such: you and I had better not marry."
18392
18393 He shook his head. "Adopted fraternity will not do in this case. If you
18394 were my real sister it would be different: I should take you, and seek no
18395 wife. But as it is, either our union must be consecrated and sealed by
18396 marriage, or it cannot exist: practical obstacles oppose themselves to
18397 any other plan. Do you not see it, Jane? Consider a moment--your strong
18398 sense will guide you."
18399
18400 I did consider; and still my sense, such as it was, directed me only to
18401 the fact that we did not love each other as man and wife should: and
18402 therefore it inferred we ought not to marry. I said so. "St. John," I
18403 returned, "I regard you as a brother--you, me as a sister: so let us
18404 continue."
18405
18406 "We cannot--we cannot," he answered, with short, sharp determination: "it
18407 would not do. You have said you will go with me to India: remember--you
18408 have said that."
18409
18410 "Conditionally."
18411
18412 "Well--well. To the main point--the departure with me from England, the
18413 co-operation with me in my future labours--you do not object. You have
18414 already as good as put your hand to the plough: you are too consistent to
18415 withdraw it. You have but one end to keep in view--how the work you have
18416 undertaken can best be done. Simplify your complicated interests,
18417 feelings, thoughts, wishes, aims; merge all considerations in one
18418 purpose: that of fulfilling with effect--with power--the mission of your
18419 great Master. To do so, you must have a coadjutor: not a brother--that
18420 is a loose tie--but a husband. I, too, do not want a sister: a sister
18421 might any day be taken from me. I want a wife: the sole helpmeet I can
18422 influence efficiently in life, and retain absolutely till death."
18423
18424 I shuddered as he spoke: I felt his influence in my marrow--his hold on
18425 my limbs.
18426
18427 "Seek one elsewhere than in me, St. John: seek one fitted to you."
18428
18429 "One fitted to my purpose, you mean--fitted to my vocation. Again I tell
18430 you it is not the insignificant private individual--the mere man, with
18431 the man's selfish senses--I wish to mate: it is the missionary."
18432
18433 "And I will give the missionary my energies--it is all he wants--but not
18434 myself: that would be only adding the husk and shell to the kernel. For
18435 them he has no use: I retain them."
18436
18437 "You cannot--you ought not. Do you think God will be satisfied with half
18438 an oblation? Will He accept a mutilated sacrifice? It is the cause of
18439 God I advocate: it is under His standard I enlist you. I cannot accept
18440 on His behalf a divided allegiance: it must be entire."
18441
18442 "Oh! I will give my heart to God," I said. "_You_ do not want it."
18443
18444 I will not swear, reader, that there was not something of repressed
18445 sarcasm both in the tone in which I uttered this sentence, and in the
18446 feeling that accompanied it. I had silently feared St. John till now,
18447 because I had not understood him. He had held me in awe, because he had
18448 held me in doubt. How much of him was saint, how much mortal, I could
18449 not heretofore tell: but revelations were being made in this conference:
18450 the analysis of his nature was proceeding before my eyes. I saw his
18451 fallibilities: I comprehended them. I understood that, sitting there
18452 where I did, on the bank of heath, and with that handsome form before me,
18453 I sat at the feet of a man, caring as I. The veil fell from his hardness
18454 and despotism. Having felt in him the presence of these qualities, I
18455 felt his imperfection and took courage. I was with an equal--one with
18456 whom I might argue--one whom, if I saw good, I might resist.
18457
18458 He was silent after I had uttered the last sentence, and I presently
18459 risked an upward glance at his countenance.
18460
18461 His eye, bent on me, expressed at once stern surprise and keen inquiry.
18462 "Is she sarcastic, and sarcastic to _me_!" it seemed to say. "What does
18463 this signify?"
18464
18465 "Do not let us forget that this is a solemn matter," he said ere long;
18466 "one of which we may neither think nor talk lightly without sin. I
18467 trust, Jane, you are in earnest when you say you will serve your heart to
18468 God: it is all I want. Once wrench your heart from man, and fix it on
18469 your Maker, the advancement of that Maker's spiritual kingdom on earth
18470 will be your chief delight and endeavour; you will be ready to do at once
18471 whatever furthers that end. You will see what impetus would be given to
18472 your efforts and mine by our physical and mental union in marriage: the
18473 only union that gives a character of permanent conformity to the
18474 destinies and designs of human beings; and, passing over all minor
18475 caprices--all trivial difficulties and delicacies of feeling--all scruple
18476 about the degree, kind, strength or tenderness of mere personal
18477 inclination--you will hasten to enter into that union at once."
18478
18479 "Shall I?" I said briefly; and I looked at his features, beautiful in
18480 their harmony, but strangely formidable in their still severity; at his
18481 brow, commanding but not open; at his eyes, bright and deep and
18482 searching, but never soft; at his tall imposing figure; and fancied
18483 myself in idea _his wife_. Oh! it would never do! As his curate, his
18484 comrade, all would be right: I would cross oceans with him in that
18485 capacity; toil under Eastern suns, in Asian deserts with him in that
18486 office; admire and emulate his courage and devotion and vigour;
18487 accommodate quietly to his masterhood; smile undisturbed at his
18488 ineradicable ambition; discriminate the Christian from the man:
18489 profoundly esteem the one, and freely forgive the other. I should suffer
18490 often, no doubt, attached to him only in this capacity: my body would be
18491 under rather a stringent yoke, but my heart and mind would be free. I
18492 should still have my unblighted self to turn to: my natural unenslaved
18493 feelings with which to communicate in moments of loneliness. There would
18494 be recesses in my mind which would be only mine, to which he never came,
18495 and sentiments growing there fresh and sheltered which his austerity
18496 could never blight, nor his measured warrior-march trample down: but as
18497 his wife--at his side always, and always restrained, and always
18498 checked--forced to keep the fire of my nature continually low, to compel
18499 it to burn inwardly and never utter a cry, though the imprisoned flame
18500 consumed vital after vital--_this_ would be unendurable.
18501
18502 "St. John!" I exclaimed, when I had got so far in my meditation.
18503
18504 "Well?" he answered icily.
18505
18506 "I repeat I freely consent to go with you as your fellow-missionary, but
18507 not as your wife; I cannot marry you and become part of you."
18508
18509 "A part of me you must become," he answered steadily; "otherwise the
18510 whole bargain is void. How can I, a man not yet thirty, take out with me
18511 to India a girl of nineteen, unless she be married to me? How can we be
18512 for ever together--sometimes in solitudes, sometimes amidst savage
18513 tribes--and unwed?"
18514
18515 "Very well," I said shortly; "under the circumstances, quite as well as
18516 if I were either your real sister, or a man and a clergyman like
18517 yourself."
18518
18519 "It is known that you are not my sister; I cannot introduce you as such:
18520 to attempt it would be to fasten injurious suspicions on us both. And
18521 for the rest, though you have a man's vigorous brain, you have a woman's
18522 heart and--it would not do."
18523
18524 "It would do," I affirmed with some disdain, "perfectly well. I have a
18525 woman's heart, but not where you are concerned; for you I have only a
18526 comrade's constancy; a fellow-soldier's frankness, fidelity, fraternity,
18527 if you like; a neophyte's respect and submission to his hierophant:
18528 nothing more--don't fear."
18529
18530 "It is what I want," he said, speaking to himself; "it is just what I
18531 want. And there are obstacles in the way: they must be hewn down. Jane,
18532 you would not repent marrying me--be certain of that; we _must_ be
18533 married. I repeat it: there is no other way; and undoubtedly enough of
18534 love would follow upon marriage to render the union right even in your
18535 eyes."
18536
18537 "I scorn your idea of love," I could not help saying, as I rose up and
18538 stood before him, leaning my back against the rock. "I scorn the
18539 counterfeit sentiment you offer: yes, St. John, and I scorn you when you
18540 offer it."
18541
18542 He looked at me fixedly, compressing his well-cut lips while he did so.
18543 Whether he was incensed or surprised, or what, it was not easy to tell:
18544 he could command his countenance thoroughly.
18545
18546 "I scarcely expected to hear that expression from you," he said: "I think
18547 I have done and uttered nothing to deserve scorn."
18548
18549 I was touched by his gentle tone, and overawed by his high, calm mien.
18550
18551 "Forgive me the words, St. John; but it is your own fault that I have
18552 been roused to speak so unguardedly. You have introduced a topic on
18553 which our natures are at variance--a topic we should never discuss: the
18554 very name of love is an apple of discord between us. If the reality were
18555 required, what should we do? How should we feel? My dear cousin,
18556 abandon your scheme of marriage--forget it."
18557
18558 "No," said he; "it is a long-cherished scheme, and the only one which can
18559 secure my great end: but I shall urge you no further at present.
18560 To-morrow, I leave home for Cambridge: I have many friends there to whom
18561 I should wish to say farewell. I shall be absent a fortnight--take that
18562 space of time to consider my offer: and do not forget that if you reject
18563 it, it is not me you deny, but God. Through my means, He opens to you a
18564 noble career; as my wife only can you enter upon it. Refuse to be my
18565 wife, and you limit yourself for ever to a track of selfish ease and
18566 barren obscurity. Tremble lest in that case you should be numbered with
18567 those who have denied the faith, and are worse than infidels!"
18568
18569 He had done. Turning from me, he once more
18570
18571 "Looked to river, looked to hill."
18572
18573 But this time his feelings were all pent in his heart: I was not worthy
18574 to hear them uttered. As I walked by his side homeward, I read well in
18575 his iron silence all he felt towards me: the disappointment of an austere
18576 and despotic nature, which has met resistance where it expected
18577 submission--the disapprobation of a cool, inflexible judgment, which has
18578 detected in another feelings and views in which it has no power to
18579 sympathise: in short, as a man, he would have wished to coerce me into
18580 obedience: it was only as a sincere Christian he bore so patiently with
18581 my perversity, and allowed so long a space for reflection and repentance.
18582
18583 That night, after he had kissed his sisters, he thought proper to forget
18584 even to shake hands with me, but left the room in silence. I--who,
18585 though I had no love, had much friendship for him--was hurt by the marked
18586 omission: so much hurt that tears started to my eyes.
18587
18588 "I see you and St. John have been quarrelling, Jane," said Diana, "during
18589 your walk on the moor. But go after him; he is now lingering in the
18590 passage expecting you--he will make it up."
18591
18592 I have not much pride under such circumstances: I would always rather be
18593 happy than dignified; and I ran after him--he stood at the foot of the
18594 stairs.
18595
18596 "Good-night, St. John," said I.
18597
18598 "Good-night, Jane," he replied calmly.
18599
18600 "Then shake hands," I added.
18601
18602 What a cold, loose touch, he impressed on my fingers! He was deeply
18603 displeased by what had occurred that day; cordiality would not warm, nor
18604 tears move him. No happy reconciliation was to be had with him--no
18605 cheering smile or generous word: but still the Christian was patient and
18606 placid; and when I asked him if he forgave me, he answered that he was
18607 not in the habit of cherishing the remembrance of vexation; that he had
18608 nothing to forgive, not having been offended.
18609
18610 And with that answer he left me. I would much rather he had knocked me
18611 down.
18612
18613
18614
18615
18616 CHAPTER XXXV
18617
18618
18619 He did not leave for Cambridge the next day, as he had said he would. He
18620 deferred his departure a whole week, and during that time he made me feel
18621 what severe punishment a good yet stern, a conscientious yet implacable
18622 man can inflict on one who has offended him. Without one overt act of
18623 hostility, one upbraiding word, he contrived to impress me momently with
18624 the conviction that I was put beyond the pale of his favour.
18625
18626 Not that St. John harboured a spirit of unchristian vindictiveness--not
18627 that he would have injured a hair of my head, if it had been fully in his
18628 power to do so. Both by nature and principle, he was superior to the
18629 mean gratification of vengeance: he had forgiven me for saying I scorned
18630 him and his love, but he had not forgotten the words; and as long as he
18631 and I lived he never would forget them. I saw by his look, when he
18632 turned to me, that they were always written on the air between me and
18633 him; whenever I spoke, they sounded in my voice to his ear, and their
18634 echo toned every answer he gave me.
18635
18636 He did not abstain from conversing with me: he even called me as usual
18637 each morning to join him at his desk; and I fear the corrupt man within
18638 him had a pleasure unimparted to, and unshared by, the pure Christian, in
18639 evincing with what skill he could, while acting and speaking apparently
18640 just as usual, extract from every deed and every phrase the spirit of
18641 interest and approval which had formerly communicated a certain austere
18642 charm to his language and manner. To me, he was in reality become no
18643 longer flesh, but marble; his eye was a cold, bright, blue gem; his
18644 tongue a speaking instrument--nothing more.
18645
18646 All this was torture to me--refined, lingering torture. It kept up a
18647 slow fire of indignation and a trembling trouble of grief, which harassed
18648 and crushed me altogether. I felt how--if I were his wife, this good
18649 man, pure as the deep sunless source, could soon kill me, without drawing
18650 from my veins a single drop of blood, or receiving on his own crystal
18651 conscience the faintest stain of crime. Especially I felt this when I
18652 made any attempt to propitiate him. No ruth met my ruth. _He_
18653 experienced no suffering from estrangement--no yearning after
18654 reconciliation; and though, more than once, my fast falling tears
18655 blistered the page over which we both bent, they produced no more effect
18656 on him than if his heart had been really a matter of stone or metal. To
18657 his sisters, meantime, he was somewhat kinder than usual: as if afraid
18658 that mere coldness would not sufficiently convince me how completely I
18659 was banished and banned, he added the force of contrast; and this I am
18660 sure he did not by force, but on principle.
18661
18662 The night before he left home, happening to see him walking in the garden
18663 about sunset, and remembering, as I looked at him, that this man,
18664 alienated as he now was, had once saved my life, and that we were near
18665 relations, I was moved to make a last attempt to regain his friendship. I
18666 went out and approached him as he stood leaning over the little gate; I
18667 spoke to the point at once.
18668
18669 "St. John, I am unhappy because you are still angry with me. Let us be
18670 friends."
18671
18672 "I hope we are friends," was the unmoved reply; while he still watched
18673 the rising of the moon, which he had been contemplating as I approached.
18674
18675 "No, St. John, we are not friends as we were. You know that."
18676
18677 "Are we not? That is wrong. For my part, I wish you no ill and all
18678 good."
18679
18680 "I believe you, St. John; for I am sure you are incapable of wishing any
18681 one ill; but, as I am your kinswoman, I should desire somewhat more of
18682 affection than that sort of general philanthropy you extend to mere
18683 strangers."
18684
18685 "Of course," he said. "Your wish is reasonable, and I am far from
18686 regarding you as a stranger."
18687
18688 This, spoken in a cool, tranquil tone, was mortifying and baffling
18689 enough. Had I attended to the suggestions of pride and ire, I should
18690 immediately have left him; but something worked within me more strongly
18691 than those feelings could. I deeply venerated my cousin's talent and
18692 principle. His friendship was of value to me: to lose it tried me
18693 severely. I would not so soon relinquish the attempt to reconquer it.
18694
18695 "Must we part in this way, St. John? And when you go to India, will you
18696 leave me so, without a kinder word than you have yet spoken?"
18697
18698 He now turned quite from the moon and faced me.
18699
18700 "When I go to India, Jane, will I leave you! What! do you not go to
18701 India?"
18702
18703 "You said I could not unless I married you."
18704
18705 "And you will not marry me! You adhere to that resolution?"
18706
18707 Reader, do you know, as I do, what terror those cold people can put into
18708 the ice of their questions? How much of the fall of the avalanche is in
18709 their anger? of the breaking up of the frozen sea in their displeasure?
18710
18711 "No. St. John, I will not marry you. I adhere to my resolution."
18712
18713 The avalanche had shaken and slid a little forward, but it did not yet
18714 crash down.
18715
18716 "Once more, why this refusal?" he asked.
18717
18718 "Formerly," I answered, "because you did not love me; now, I reply,
18719 because you almost hate me. If I were to marry you, you would kill me.
18720 You are killing me now."
18721
18722 His lips and cheeks turned white--quite white.
18723
18724 "_I should kill you_--_I am killing you_? Your words are such as ought
18725 not to be used: violent, unfeminine, and untrue. They betray an
18726 unfortunate state of mind: they merit severe reproof: they would seem
18727 inexcusable, but that it is the duty of man to forgive his fellow even
18728 until seventy-and-seven times."
18729
18730 I had finished the business now. While earnestly wishing to erase from
18731 his mind the trace of my former offence, I had stamped on that tenacious
18732 surface another and far deeper impression, I had burnt it in.
18733
18734 "Now you will indeed hate me," I said. "It is useless to attempt to
18735 conciliate you: I see I have made an eternal enemy of you."
18736
18737 A fresh wrong did these words inflict: the worse, because they touched on
18738 the truth. That bloodless lip quivered to a temporary spasm. I knew the
18739 steely ire I had whetted. I was heart-wrung.
18740
18741 "You utterly misinterpret my words," I said, at once seizing his hand: "I
18742 have no intention to grieve or pain you--indeed, I have not."
18743
18744 Most bitterly he smiled--most decidedly he withdrew his hand from mine.
18745 "And now you recall your promise, and will not go to India at all, I
18746 presume?" said he, after a considerable pause.
18747
18748 "Yes, I will, as your assistant," I answered.
18749
18750 A very long silence succeeded. What struggle there was in him between
18751 Nature and Grace in this interval, I cannot tell: only singular gleams
18752 scintillated in his eyes, and strange shadows passed over his face. He
18753 spoke at last.
18754
18755 "I before proved to you the absurdity of a single woman of your age
18756 proposing to accompany abroad a single man of mine. I proved it to you
18757 in such terms as, I should have thought, would have prevented your ever
18758 again alluding to the plan. That you have done so, I regret--for your
18759 sake."
18760
18761 I interrupted him. Anything like a tangible reproach gave me courage at
18762 once. "Keep to common sense, St. John: you are verging on nonsense. You
18763 pretend to be shocked by what I have said. You are not really shocked:
18764 for, with your superior mind, you cannot be either so dull or so
18765 conceited as to misunderstand my meaning. I say again, I will be your
18766 curate, if you like, but never your wife."
18767
18768 Again he turned lividly pale; but, as before, controlled his passion
18769 perfectly. He answered emphatically but calmly--
18770
18771 "A female curate, who is not my wife, would never suit me. With me,
18772 then, it seems, you cannot go: but if you are sincere in your offer, I
18773 will, while in town, speak to a married missionary, whose wife needs a
18774 coadjutor. Your own fortune will make you independent of the Society's
18775 aid; and thus you may still be spared the dishonour of breaking your
18776 promise and deserting the band you engaged to join."
18777
18778 Now I never had, as the reader knows, either given any formal promise or
18779 entered into any engagement; and this language was all much too hard and
18780 much too despotic for the occasion. I replied--
18781
18782 "There is no dishonour, no breach of promise, no desertion in the case. I
18783 am not under the slightest obligation to go to India, especially with
18784 strangers. With you I would have ventured much, because I admire,
18785 confide in, and, as a sister, I love you; but I am convinced that, go
18786 when and with whom I would, I should not live long in that climate."
18787
18788 "Ah! you are afraid of yourself," he said, curling his lip.
18789
18790 "I am. God did not give me my life to throw away; and to do as you wish
18791 me would, I begin to think, be almost equivalent to committing suicide.
18792 Moreover, before I definitively resolve on quitting England, I will know
18793 for certain whether I cannot be of greater use by remaining in it than by
18794 leaving it."
18795
18796 "What do you mean?"
18797
18798 "It would be fruitless to attempt to explain; but there is a point on
18799 which I have long endured painful doubt, and I can go nowhere till by
18800 some means that doubt is removed."
18801
18802 "I know where your heart turns and to what it clings. The interest you
18803 cherish is lawless and unconsecrated. Long since you ought to have
18804 crushed it: now you should blush to allude to it. You think of Mr.
18805 Rochester?"
18806
18807 It was true. I confessed it by silence.
18808
18809 "Are you going to seek Mr. Rochester?"
18810
18811 "I must find out what is become of him."
18812
18813 "It remains for me, then," he said, "to remember you in my prayers, and
18814 to entreat God for you, in all earnestness, that you may not indeed
18815 become a castaway. I had thought I recognised in you one of the chosen.
18816 But God sees not as man sees: _His_ will be done--"
18817
18818 He opened the gate, passed through it, and strayed away down the glen. He
18819 was soon out of sight.
18820
18821 On re-entering the parlour, I found Diana standing at the window, looking
18822 very thoughtful. Diana was a great deal taller than I: she put her hand
18823 on my shoulder, and, stooping, examined my face.
18824
18825 "Jane," she said, "you are always agitated and pale now. I am sure there
18826 is something the matter. Tell me what business St. John and you have on
18827 hands. I have watched you this half hour from the window; you must
18828 forgive my being such a spy, but for a long time I have fancied I hardly
18829 know what. St. John is a strange being--"
18830
18831 She paused--I did not speak: soon she resumed--
18832
18833 "That brother of mine cherishes peculiar views of some sort respecting
18834 you, I am sure: he has long distinguished you by a notice and interest he
18835 never showed to any one else--to what end? I wish he loved you--does he,
18836 Jane?"
18837
18838 I put her cool hand to my hot forehead; "No, Die, not one whit."
18839
18840 "Then why does he follow you so with his eyes, and get you so frequently
18841 alone with him, and keep you so continually at his side? Mary and I had
18842 both concluded he wished you to marry him."
18843
18844 "He does--he has asked me to be his wife."
18845
18846 Diana clapped her hands. "That is just what we hoped and thought! And
18847 you will marry him, Jane, won't you? And then he will stay in England."
18848
18849 "Far from that, Diana; his sole idea in proposing to me is to procure a
18850 fitting fellow-labourer in his Indian toils."
18851
18852 "What! He wishes you to go to India?"
18853
18854 "Yes."
18855
18856 "Madness!" she exclaimed. "You would not live three months there, I am
18857 certain. You never shall go: you have not consented, have you, Jane?"
18858
18859 "I have refused to marry him--"
18860
18861 "And have consequently displeased him?" she suggested.
18862
18863 "Deeply: he will never forgive me, I fear: yet I offered to accompany him
18864 as his sister."
18865
18866 "It was frantic folly to do so, Jane. Think of the task you
18867 undertook--one of incessant fatigue, where fatigue kills even the strong,
18868 and you are weak. St. John--you know him--would urge you to
18869 impossibilities: with him there would be no permission to rest during the
18870 hot hours; and unfortunately, I have noticed, whatever he exacts, you
18871 force yourself to perform. I am astonished you found courage to refuse
18872 his hand. You do not love him then, Jane?"
18873
18874 "Not as a husband."
18875
18876 "Yet he is a handsome fellow."
18877
18878 "And I am so plain, you see, Die. We should never suit."
18879
18880 "Plain! You? Not at all. You are much too pretty, as well as too good,
18881 to be grilled alive in Calcutta." And again she earnestly conjured me to
18882 give up all thoughts of going out with her brother.
18883
18884 "I must indeed," I said; "for when just now I repeated the offer of
18885 serving him for a deacon, he expressed himself shocked at my want of
18886 decency. He seemed to think I had committed an impropriety in proposing
18887 to accompany him unmarried: as if I had not from the first hoped to find
18888 in him a brother, and habitually regarded him as such."
18889
18890 "What makes you say he does not love you, Jane?"
18891
18892 "You should hear himself on the subject. He has again and again
18893 explained that it is not himself, but his office he wishes to mate. He
18894 has told me I am formed for labour--not for love: which is true, no
18895 doubt. But, in my opinion, if I am not formed for love, it follows that
18896 I am not formed for marriage. Would it not be strange, Die, to be
18897 chained for life to a man who regarded one but as a useful tool?"
18898
18899 "Insupportable--unnatural--out of the question!"
18900
18901 "And then," I continued, "though I have only sisterly affection for him
18902 now, yet, if forced to be his wife, I can imagine the possibility of
18903 conceiving an inevitable, strange, torturing kind of love for him,
18904 because he is so talented; and there is often a certain heroic grandeur
18905 in his look, manner, and conversation. In that case, my lot would become
18906 unspeakably wretched. He would not want me to love him; and if I showed
18907 the feeling, he would make me sensible that it was a superfluity,
18908 unrequired by him, unbecoming in me. I know he would."
18909
18910 "And yet St. John is a good man," said Diana.
18911
18912 "He is a good and a great man; but he forgets, pitilessly, the feelings
18913 and claims of little people, in pursuing his own large views. It is
18914 better, therefore, for the insignificant to keep out of his way, lest, in
18915 his progress, he should trample them down. Here he comes! I will leave
18916 you, Diana." And I hastened upstairs as I saw him entering the garden.
18917
18918 But I was forced to meet him again at supper. During that meal he
18919 appeared just as composed as usual. I had thought he would hardly speak
18920 to me, and I was certain he had given up the pursuit of his matrimonial
18921 scheme: the sequel showed I was mistaken on both points. He addressed me
18922 precisely in his ordinary manner, or what had, of late, been his ordinary
18923 manner--one scrupulously polite. No doubt he had invoked the help of the
18924 Holy Spirit to subdue the anger I had roused in him, and now believed he
18925 had forgiven me once more.
18926
18927 For the evening reading before prayers, he selected the twenty-first
18928 chapter of Revelation. It was at all times pleasant to listen while from
18929 his lips fell the words of the Bible: never did his fine voice sound at
18930 once so sweet and full--never did his manner become so impressive in its
18931 noble simplicity, as when he delivered the oracles of God: and to-night
18932 that voice took a more solemn tone--that manner a more thrilling
18933 meaning--as he sat in the midst of his household circle (the May moon
18934 shining in through the uncurtained window, and rendering almost
18935 unnecessary the light of the candle on the table): as he sat there,
18936 bending over the great old Bible, and described from its page the vision
18937 of the new heaven and the new earth--told how God would come to dwell
18938 with men, how He would wipe away all tears from their eyes, and promised
18939 that there should be no more death, neither sorrow nor crying, nor any
18940 more pain, because the former things were passed away.
18941
18942 The succeeding words thrilled me strangely as he spoke them: especially
18943 as I felt, by the slight, indescribable alteration in sound, that in
18944 uttering them, his eye had turned on me.
18945
18946 "He that overcometh shall inherit all things; and I will be his God, and
18947 he shall be my son. But," was slowly, distinctly read, "the fearful, the
18948 unbelieving, &c., shall have their part in the lake which burneth with
18949 fire and brimstone, which is the second death."
18950
18951 Henceforward, I knew what fate St. John feared for me.
18952
18953 A calm, subdued triumph, blent with a longing earnestness, marked his
18954 enunciation of the last glorious verses of that chapter. The reader
18955 believed his name was already written in the Lamb's book of life, and he
18956 yearned after the hour which should admit him to the city to which the
18957 kings of the earth bring their glory and honour; which has no need of sun
18958 or moon to shine in it, because the glory of God lightens it, and the
18959 Lamb is the light thereof.
18960
18961 In the prayer following the chapter, all his energy gathered--all his
18962 stern zeal woke: he was in deep earnest, wrestling with God, and resolved
18963 on a conquest. He supplicated strength for the weak-hearted; guidance
18964 for wanderers from the fold: a return, even at the eleventh hour, for
18965 those whom the temptations of the world and the flesh were luring from
18966 the narrow path. He asked, he urged, he claimed the boon of a brand
18967 snatched from the burning. Earnestness is ever deeply solemn: first, as
18968 I listened to that prayer, I wondered at his; then, when it continued and
18969 rose, I was touched by it, and at last awed. He felt the greatness and
18970 goodness of his purpose so sincerely: others who heard him plead for it,
18971 could not but feel it too.
18972
18973 The prayer over, we took leave of him: he was to go at a very early hour
18974 in the morning. Diana and Mary having kissed him, left the room--in
18975 compliance, I think, with a whispered hint from him: I tendered my hand,
18976 and wished him a pleasant journey.
18977
18978 "Thank you, Jane. As I said, I shall return from Cambridge in a
18979 fortnight: that space, then, is yet left you for reflection. If I
18980 listened to human pride, I should say no more to you of marriage with me;
18981 but I listen to my duty, and keep steadily in view my first aim--to do
18982 all things to the glory of God. My Master was long-suffering: so will I
18983 be. I cannot give you up to perdition as a vessel of wrath:
18984 repent--resolve, while there is yet time. Remember, we are bid to work
18985 while it is day--warned that 'the night cometh when no man shall work.'
18986 Remember the fate of Dives, who had his good things in this life. God
18987 give you strength to choose that better part which shall not be taken
18988 from you!"
18989
18990 He laid his hand on my head as he uttered the last words. He had spoken
18991 earnestly, mildly: his look was not, indeed, that of a lover beholding
18992 his mistress, but it was that of a pastor recalling his wandering
18993 sheep--or better, of a guardian angel watching the soul for which he is
18994 responsible. All men of talent, whether they be men of feeling or not;
18995 whether they be zealots, or aspirants, or despots--provided only they be
18996 sincere--have their sublime moments, when they subdue and rule. I felt
18997 veneration for St. John--veneration so strong that its impetus thrust me
18998 at once to the point I had so long shunned. I was tempted to cease
18999 struggling with him--to rush down the torrent of his will into the gulf
19000 of his existence, and there lose my own. I was almost as hard beset by
19001 him now as I had been once before, in a different way, by another. I was
19002 a fool both times. To have yielded then would have been an error of
19003 principle; to have yielded now would have been an error of judgment. So
19004 I think at this hour, when I look back to the crisis through the quiet
19005 medium of time: I was unconscious of folly at the instant.
19006
19007 I stood motionless under my hierophant's touch. My refusals were
19008 forgotten--my fears overcome--my wrestlings paralysed. The
19009 Impossible--_i.e._, my marriage with St. John--was fast becoming the
19010 Possible. All was changing utterly with a sudden sweep. Religion
19011 called--Angels beckoned--God commanded--life rolled together like a
19012 scroll--death's gates opening, showed eternity beyond: it seemed, that
19013 for safety and bliss there, all here might be sacrificed in a second. The
19014 dim room was full of visions.
19015
19016 "Could you decide now?" asked the missionary. The inquiry was put in
19017 gentle tones: he drew me to him as gently. Oh, that gentleness! how far
19018 more potent is it than force! I could resist St. John's wrath: I grew
19019 pliant as a reed under his kindness. Yet I knew all the time, if I
19020 yielded now, I should not the less be made to repent, some day, of my
19021 former rebellion. His nature was not changed by one hour of solemn
19022 prayer: it was only elevated.
19023
19024 "I could decide if I were but certain," I answered: "were I but convinced
19025 that it is God's will I should marry you, I could vow to marry you here
19026 and now--come afterwards what would!"
19027
19028 "My prayers are heard!" ejaculated St. John. He pressed his hand firmer
19029 on my head, as if he claimed me: he surrounded me with his arm, _almost_
19030 as if he loved me (I say _almost_--I knew the difference--for I had felt
19031 what it was to be loved; but, like him, I had now put love out of the
19032 question, and thought only of duty). I contended with my inward dimness
19033 of vision, before which clouds yet rolled. I sincerely, deeply,
19034 fervently longed to do what was right; and only that. "Show me, show me
19035 the path!" I entreated of Heaven. I was excited more than I had ever
19036 been; and whether what followed was the effect of excitement the reader
19037 shall judge.
19038
19039 All the house was still; for I believe all, except St. John and myself,
19040 were now retired to rest. The one candle was dying out: the room was
19041 full of moonlight. My heart beat fast and thick: I heard its throb.
19042 Suddenly it stood still to an inexpressible feeling that thrilled it
19043 through, and passed at once to my head and extremities. The feeling was
19044 not like an electric shock, but it was quite as sharp, as strange, as
19045 startling: it acted on my senses as if their utmost activity hitherto had
19046 been but torpor, from which they were now summoned and forced to wake.
19047 They rose expectant: eye and ear waited while the flesh quivered on my
19048 bones.
19049
19050 "What have you heard? What do you see?" asked St. John. I saw nothing,
19051 but I heard a voice somewhere cry--
19052
19053 "Jane! Jane! Jane!"--nothing more.
19054
19055 "O God! what is it?" I gasped.
19056
19057 I might have said, "Where is it?" for it did not seem in the room--nor in
19058 the house--nor in the garden; it did not come out of the air--nor from
19059 under the earth--nor from overhead. I had heard it--where, or whence,
19060 for ever impossible to know! And it was the voice of a human being--a
19061 known, loved, well-remembered voice--that of Edward Fairfax Rochester;
19062 and it spoke in pain and woe, wildly, eerily, urgently.
19063
19064 "I am coming!" I cried. "Wait for me! Oh, I will come!" I flew to the
19065 door and looked into the passage: it was dark. I ran out into the
19066 garden: it was void.
19067
19068 "Where are you?" I exclaimed.
19069
19070 The hills beyond Marsh Glen sent the answer faintly back--"Where are
19071 you?" I listened. The wind sighed low in the firs: all was moorland
19072 loneliness and midnight hush.
19073
19074 "Down superstition!" I commented, as that spectre rose up black by the
19075 black yew at the gate. "This is not thy deception, nor thy witchcraft:
19076 it is the work of nature. She was roused, and did--no miracle--but her
19077 best."
19078
19079 I broke from St. John, who had followed, and would have detained me. It
19080 was _my_ time to assume ascendency. _My_ powers were in play and in
19081 force. I told him to forbear question or remark; I desired him to leave
19082 me: I must and would be alone. He obeyed at once. Where there is energy
19083 to command well enough, obedience never fails. I mounted to my chamber;
19084 locked myself in; fell on my knees; and prayed in my way--a different way
19085 to St. John's, but effective in its own fashion. I seemed to penetrate
19086 very near a Mighty Spirit; and my soul rushed out in gratitude at His
19087 feet. I rose from the thanksgiving--took a resolve--and lay down,
19088 unscared, enlightened--eager but for the daylight.
19089
19090
19091
19092
19093 CHAPTER XXXVI
19094
19095
19096 The daylight came. I rose at dawn. I busied myself for an hour or two
19097 with arranging my things in my chamber, drawers, and wardrobe, in the
19098 order wherein I should wish to leave them during a brief absence.
19099 Meantime, I heard St. John quit his room. He stopped at my door: I
19100 feared he would knock--no, but a slip of paper was passed under the door.
19101 I took it up. It bore these words--
19102
19103 "You left me too suddenly last night. Had you stayed but a little
19104 longer, you would have laid your hand on the Christian's cross and the
19105 angel's crown. I shall expect your clear decision when I return this day
19106 fortnight. Meantime, watch and pray that you enter not into temptation:
19107 the spirit, I trust, is willing, but the flesh, I see, is weak. I shall
19108 pray for you hourly.--Yours, ST. JOHN."
19109
19110 "My spirit," I answered mentally, "is willing to do what is right; and my
19111 flesh, I hope, is strong enough to accomplish the will of Heaven, when
19112 once that will is distinctly known to me. At any rate, it shall be
19113 strong enough to search--inquire--to grope an outlet from this cloud of
19114 doubt, and find the open day of certainty."
19115
19116 It was the first of June; yet the morning was overcast and chilly: rain
19117 beat fast on my casement. I heard the front-door open, and St. John pass
19118 out. Looking through the window, I saw him traverse the garden. He took
19119 the way over the misty moors in the direction of Whitcross--there he
19120 would meet the coach.
19121
19122 "In a few more hours I shall succeed you in that track, cousin," thought
19123 I: "I too have a coach to meet at Whitcross. I too have some to see and
19124 ask after in England, before I depart for ever."
19125
19126 It wanted yet two hours of breakfast-time. I filled the interval in
19127 walking softly about my room, and pondering the visitation which had
19128 given my plans their present bent. I recalled that inward sensation I
19129 had experienced: for I could recall it, with all its unspeakable
19130 strangeness. I recalled the voice I had heard; again I questioned whence
19131 it came, as vainly as before: it seemed in _me_--not in the external
19132 world. I asked was it a mere nervous impression--a delusion? I could
19133 not conceive or believe: it was more like an inspiration. The wondrous
19134 shock of feeling had come like the earthquake which shook the foundations
19135 of Paul and Silas's prison; it had opened the doors of the soul's cell
19136 and loosed its bands--it had wakened it out of its sleep, whence it
19137 sprang trembling, listening, aghast; then vibrated thrice a cry on my
19138 startled ear, and in my quaking heart and through my spirit, which
19139 neither feared nor shook, but exulted as if in joy over the success of
19140 one effort it had been privileged to make, independent of the cumbrous
19141 body.
19142
19143 "Ere many days," I said, as I terminated my musings, "I will know
19144 something of him whose voice seemed last night to summon me. Letters
19145 have proved of no avail--personal inquiry shall replace them."
19146
19147 At breakfast I announced to Diana and Mary that I was going a journey,
19148 and should be absent at least four days.
19149
19150 "Alone, Jane?" they asked.
19151
19152 "Yes; it was to see or hear news of a friend about whom I had for some
19153 time been uneasy."
19154
19155 They might have said, as I have no doubt they thought, that they had
19156 believed me to be without any friends save them: for, indeed, I had often
19157 said so; but, with their true natural delicacy, they abstained from
19158 comment, except that Diana asked me if I was sure I was well enough to
19159 travel. I looked very pale, she observed. I replied, that nothing ailed
19160 me save anxiety of mind, which I hoped soon to alleviate.
19161
19162 It was easy to make my further arrangements; for I was troubled with no
19163 inquiries--no surmises. Having once explained to them that I could not
19164 now be explicit about my plans, they kindly and wisely acquiesced in the
19165 silence with which I pursued them, according to me the privilege of free
19166 action I should under similar circumstances have accorded them.
19167
19168 I left Moor House at three o'clock p.m., and soon after four I stood at
19169 the foot of the sign-post of Whitcross, waiting the arrival of the coach
19170 which was to take me to distant Thornfield. Amidst the silence of those
19171 solitary roads and desert hills, I heard it approach from a great
19172 distance. It was the same vehicle whence, a year ago, I had alighted one
19173 summer evening on this very spot--how desolate, and hopeless, and
19174 objectless! It stopped as I beckoned. I entered--not now obliged to
19175 part with my whole fortune as the price of its accommodation. Once more
19176 on the road to Thornfield, I felt like the messenger-pigeon flying home.
19177
19178 It was a journey of six-and-thirty hours. I had set out from Whitcross
19179 on a Tuesday afternoon, and early on the succeeding Thursday morning the
19180 coach stopped to water the horses at a wayside inn, situated in the midst
19181 of scenery whose green hedges and large fields and low pastoral hills
19182 (how mild of feature and verdant of hue compared with the stern North-
19183 Midland moors of Morton!) met my eye like the lineaments of a once
19184 familiar face. Yes, I knew the character of this landscape: I was sure
19185 we were near my bourne.
19186
19187 "How far is Thornfield Hall from here?" I asked of the ostler.
19188
19189 "Just two miles, ma'am, across the fields."
19190
19191 "My journey is closed," I thought to myself. I got out of the coach,
19192 gave a box I had into the ostler's charge, to be kept till I called for
19193 it; paid my fare; satisfied the coachman, and was going: the brightening
19194 day gleamed on the sign of the inn, and I read in gilt letters, "The
19195 Rochester Arms." My heart leapt up: I was already on my master's very
19196 lands. It fell again: the thought struck it:--
19197
19198 "Your master himself may be beyond the British Channel, for aught you
19199 know: and then, if he is at Thornfield Hall, towards which you hasten,
19200 who besides him is there? His lunatic wife: and you have nothing to do
19201 with him: you dare not speak to him or seek his presence. You have lost
19202 your labour--you had better go no farther," urged the monitor. "Ask
19203 information of the people at the inn; they can give you all you seek:
19204 they can solve your doubts at once. Go up to that man, and inquire if
19205 Mr. Rochester be at home."
19206
19207 The suggestion was sensible, and yet I could not force myself to act on
19208 it. I so dreaded a reply that would crush me with despair. To prolong
19209 doubt was to prolong hope. I might yet once more see the Hall under the
19210 ray of her star. There was the stile before me--the very fields through
19211 which I had hurried, blind, deaf, distracted with a revengeful fury
19212 tracking and scourging me, on the morning I fled from Thornfield: ere I
19213 well knew what course I had resolved to take, I was in the midst of them.
19214 How fast I walked! How I ran sometimes! How I looked forward to catch
19215 the first view of the well-known woods! With what feelings I welcomed
19216 single trees I knew, and familiar glimpses of meadow and hill between
19217 them!
19218
19219 At last the woods rose; the rookery clustered dark; a loud cawing broke
19220 the morning stillness. Strange delight inspired me: on I hastened.
19221 Another field crossed--a lane threaded--and there were the courtyard
19222 walls--the back offices: the house itself, the rookery still hid. "My
19223 first view of it shall be in front," I determined, "where its bold
19224 battlements will strike the eye nobly at once, and where I can single out
19225 my master's very window: perhaps he will be standing at it--he rises
19226 early: perhaps he is now walking in the orchard, or on the pavement in
19227 front. Could I but see him!--but a moment! Surely, in that case, I
19228 should not be so mad as to run to him? I cannot tell--I am not certain.
19229 And if I did--what then? God bless him! What then? Who would be hurt
19230 by my once more tasting the life his glance can give me? I rave: perhaps
19231 at this moment he is watching the sun rise over the Pyrenees, or on the
19232 tideless sea of the south."
19233
19234 I had coasted along the lower wall of the orchard--turned its angle:
19235 there was a gate just there, opening into the meadow, between two stone
19236 pillars crowned by stone balls. From behind one pillar I could peep
19237 round quietly at the full front of the mansion. I advanced my head with
19238 precaution, desirous to ascertain if any bedroom window-blinds were yet
19239 drawn up: battlements, windows, long front--all from this sheltered
19240 station were at my command.
19241
19242 The crows sailing overhead perhaps watched me while I took this survey. I
19243 wonder what they thought. They must have considered I was very careful
19244 and timid at first, and that gradually I grew very bold and reckless. A
19245 peep, and then a long stare; and then a departure from my niche and a
19246 straying out into the meadow; and a sudden stop full in front of the
19247 great mansion, and a protracted, hardy gaze towards it. "What
19248 affectation of diffidence was this at first?" they might have demanded;
19249 "what stupid regardlessness now?"
19250
19251 Hear an illustration, reader.
19252
19253 A lover finds his mistress asleep on a mossy bank; he wishes to catch a
19254 glimpse of her fair face without waking her. He steals softly over the
19255 grass, careful to make no sound; he pauses--fancying she has stirred: he
19256 withdraws: not for worlds would he be seen. All is still: he again
19257 advances: he bends above her; a light veil rests on her features: he
19258 lifts it, bends lower; now his eyes anticipate the vision of beauty--warm,
19259 and blooming, and lovely, in rest. How hurried was their first glance!
19260 But how they fix! How he starts! How he suddenly and vehemently clasps
19261 in both arms the form he dared not, a moment since, touch with his
19262 finger! How he calls aloud a name, and drops his burden, and gazes on it
19263 wildly! He thus grasps and cries, and gazes, because he no longer fears
19264 to waken by any sound he can utter--by any movement he can make. He
19265 thought his love slept sweetly: he finds she is stone dead.
19266
19267 I looked with timorous joy towards a stately house: I saw a blackened
19268 ruin.
19269
19270 No need to cower behind a gate-post, indeed!--to peep up at chamber
19271 lattices, fearing life was astir behind them! No need to listen for
19272 doors opening--to fancy steps on the pavement or the gravel-walk! The
19273 lawn, the grounds were trodden and waste: the portal yawned void. The
19274 front was, as I had once seen it in a dream, but a well-like wall, very
19275 high and very fragile-looking, perforated with paneless windows: no roof,
19276 no battlements, no chimneys--all had crashed in.
19277
19278 And there was the silence of death about it: the solitude of a lonesome
19279 wild. No wonder that letters addressed to people here had never received
19280 an answer: as well despatch epistles to a vault in a church aisle. The
19281 grim blackness of the stones told by what fate the Hall had fallen--by
19282 conflagration: but how kindled? What story belonged to this disaster?
19283 What loss, besides mortar and marble and wood-work had followed upon it?
19284 Had life been wrecked as well as property? If so, whose? Dreadful
19285 question: there was no one here to answer it--not even dumb sign, mute
19286 token.
19287
19288 In wandering round the shattered walls and through the devastated
19289 interior, I gathered evidence that the calamity was not of late
19290 occurrence. Winter snows, I thought, had drifted through that void arch,
19291 winter rains beaten in at those hollow casements; for, amidst the
19292 drenched piles of rubbish, spring had cherished vegetation: grass and
19293 weed grew here and there between the stones and fallen rafters. And oh!
19294 where meantime was the hapless owner of this wreck? In what land? Under
19295 what auspices? My eye involuntarily wandered to the grey church tower
19296 near the gates, and I asked, "Is he with Damer de Rochester, sharing the
19297 shelter of his narrow marble house?"
19298
19299 Some answer must be had to these questions. I could find it nowhere but
19300 at the inn, and thither, ere long, I returned. The host himself brought
19301 my breakfast into the parlour. I requested him to shut the door and sit
19302 down: I had some questions to ask him. But when he complied, I scarcely
19303 knew how to begin; such horror had I of the possible answers. And yet
19304 the spectacle of desolation I had just left prepared me in a measure for
19305 a tale of misery. The host was a respectable-looking, middle-aged man.
19306
19307 "You know Thornfield Hall, of course?" I managed to say at last.
19308
19309 "Yes, ma'am; I lived there once."
19310
19311 "Did you?" Not in my time, I thought: you are a stranger to me.
19312
19313 "I was the late Mr. Rochester's butler," he added.
19314
19315 The late! I seem to have received, with full force, the blow I had been
19316 trying to evade.
19317
19318 "The late!" I gasped. "Is he dead?"
19319
19320 "I mean the present gentleman, Mr. Edward's father," he explained. I
19321 breathed again: my blood resumed its flow. Fully assured by these words
19322 that Mr. Edward--_my_ Mr. Rochester (God bless him, wherever he was!)--was
19323 at least alive: was, in short, "the present gentleman." Gladdening
19324 words! It seemed I could hear all that was to come--whatever the
19325 disclosures might be--with comparative tranquillity. Since he was not in
19326 the grave, I could bear, I thought, to learn that he was at the
19327 Antipodes.
19328
19329 "Is Mr. Rochester living at Thornfield Hall now?" I asked, knowing, of
19330 course, what the answer would be, but yet desirous of deferring the
19331 direct question as to where he really was.
19332
19333 "No, ma'am--oh, no! No one is living there. I suppose you are a
19334 stranger in these parts, or you would have heard what happened last
19335 autumn,--Thornfield Hall is quite a ruin: it was burnt down just about
19336 harvest-time. A dreadful calamity! such an immense quantity of valuable
19337 property destroyed: hardly any of the furniture could be saved. The fire
19338 broke out at dead of night, and before the engines arrived from Millcote,
19339 the building was one mass of flame. It was a terrible spectacle: I
19340 witnessed it myself."
19341
19342 "At dead of night!" I muttered. Yes, that was ever the hour of fatality
19343 at Thornfield. "Was it known how it originated?" I demanded.
19344
19345 "They guessed, ma'am: they guessed. Indeed, I should say it was
19346 ascertained beyond a doubt. You are not perhaps aware," he continued,
19347 edging his chair a little nearer the table, and speaking low, "that there
19348 was a lady--a--a lunatic, kept in the house?"
19349
19350 "I have heard something of it."
19351
19352 "She was kept in very close confinement, ma'am: people even for some
19353 years was not absolutely certain of her existence. No one saw her: they
19354 only knew by rumour that such a person was at the Hall; and who or what
19355 she was it was difficult to conjecture. They said Mr. Edward had brought
19356 her from abroad, and some believed she had been his mistress. But a
19357 queer thing happened a year since--a very queer thing."
19358
19359 I feared now to hear my own story. I endeavoured to recall him to the
19360 main fact.
19361
19362 "And this lady?"
19363
19364 "This lady, ma'am," he answered, "turned out to be Mr. Rochester's wife!
19365 The discovery was brought about in the strangest way. There was a young
19366 lady, a governess at the Hall, that Mr. Rochester fell in--"
19367
19368 "But the fire," I suggested.
19369
19370 "I'm coming to that, ma'am--that Mr. Edward fell in love with. The
19371 servants say they never saw anybody so much in love as he was: he was
19372 after her continually. They used to watch him--servants will, you know,
19373 ma'am--and he set store on her past everything: for all, nobody but him
19374 thought her so very handsome. She was a little small thing, they say,
19375 almost like a child. I never saw her myself; but I've heard Leah, the
19376 house-maid, tell of her. Leah liked her well enough. Mr. Rochester was
19377 about forty, and this governess not twenty; and you see, when gentlemen
19378 of his age fall in love with girls, they are often like as if they were
19379 bewitched. Well, he would marry her."
19380
19381 "You shall tell me this part of the story another time," I said; "but now
19382 I have a particular reason for wishing to hear all about the fire. Was
19383 it suspected that this lunatic, Mrs. Rochester, had any hand in it?"
19384
19385 "You've hit it, ma'am: it's quite certain that it was her, and nobody but
19386 her, that set it going. She had a woman to take care of her called Mrs.
19387 Poole--an able woman in her line, and very trustworthy, but for one
19388 fault--a fault common to a deal of them nurses and matrons--she _kept a
19389 private bottle of gin by her_, and now and then took a drop over-much. It
19390 is excusable, for she had a hard life of it: but still it was dangerous;
19391 for when Mrs. Poole was fast asleep after the gin and water, the mad
19392 lady, who was as cunning as a witch, would take the keys out of her
19393 pocket, let herself out of her chamber, and go roaming about the house,
19394 doing any wild mischief that came into her head. They say she had nearly
19395 burnt her husband in his bed once: but I don't know about that. However,
19396 on this night, she set fire first to the hangings of the room next her
19397 own, and then she got down to a lower storey, and made her way to the
19398 chamber that had been the governess's--(she was like as if she knew
19399 somehow how matters had gone on, and had a spite at her)--and she kindled
19400 the bed there; but there was nobody sleeping in it, fortunately. The
19401 governess had run away two months before; and for all Mr. Rochester
19402 sought her as if she had been the most precious thing he had in the
19403 world, he never could hear a word of her; and he grew savage--quite
19404 savage on his disappointment: he never was a wild man, but he got
19405 dangerous after he lost her. He would be alone, too. He sent Mrs.
19406 Fairfax, the housekeeper, away to her friends at a distance; but he did
19407 it handsomely, for he settled an annuity on her for life: and she
19408 deserved it--she was a very good woman. Miss Adele, a ward he had, was
19409 put to school. He broke off acquaintance with all the gentry, and shut
19410 himself up like a hermit at the Hall."
19411
19412 "What! did he not leave England?"
19413
19414 "Leave England? Bless you, no! He would not cross the door-stones of
19415 the house, except at night, when he walked just like a ghost about the
19416 grounds and in the orchard as if he had lost his senses--which it is my
19417 opinion he had; for a more spirited, bolder, keener gentleman than he was
19418 before that midge of a governess crossed him, you never saw, ma'am. He
19419 was not a man given to wine, or cards, or racing, as some are, and he was
19420 not so very handsome; but he had a courage and a will of his own, if ever
19421 man had. I knew him from a boy, you see: and for my part, I have often
19422 wished that Miss Eyre had been sunk in the sea before she came to
19423 Thornfield Hall."
19424
19425 "Then Mr. Rochester was at home when the fire broke out?"
19426
19427 "Yes, indeed was he; and he went up to the attics when all was burning
19428 above and below, and got the servants out of their beds and helped them
19429 down himself, and went back to get his mad wife out of her cell. And
19430 then they called out to him that she was on the roof, where she was
19431 standing, waving her arms, above the battlements, and shouting out till
19432 they could hear her a mile off: I saw her and heard her with my own eyes.
19433 She was a big woman, and had long black hair: we could see it streaming
19434 against the flames as she stood. I witnessed, and several more
19435 witnessed, Mr. Rochester ascend through the sky-light on to the roof; we
19436 heard him call 'Bertha!' We saw him approach her; and then, ma'am, she
19437 yelled and gave a spring, and the next minute she lay smashed on the
19438 pavement."
19439
19440 {The next minute she lay smashed on the pavement: p413.jpg}
19441
19442 "Dead?"
19443
19444 "Dead! Ay, dead as the stones on which her brains and blood were
19445 scattered."
19446
19447 "Good God!"
19448
19449 "You may well say so, ma'am: it was frightful!"
19450
19451 He shuddered.
19452
19453 "And afterwards?" I urged.
19454
19455 "Well, ma'am, afterwards the house was burnt to the ground: there are
19456 only some bits of walls standing now."
19457
19458 "Were any other lives lost?"
19459
19460 "No--perhaps it would have been better if there had."
19461
19462 "What do you mean?"
19463
19464 "Poor Mr. Edward!" he ejaculated, "I little thought ever to have seen it!
19465 Some say it was a just judgment on him for keeping his first marriage
19466 secret, and wanting to take another wife while he had one living: but I
19467 pity him, for my part."
19468
19469 "You said he was alive?" I exclaimed.
19470
19471 "Yes, yes: he is alive; but many think he had better be dead."
19472
19473 "Why? How?" My blood was again running cold. "Where is he?" I
19474 demanded. "Is he in England?"
19475
19476 "Ay--ay--he's in England; he can't get out of England, I fancy--he's a
19477 fixture now."
19478
19479 What agony was this! And the man seemed resolved to protract it.
19480
19481 "He is stone-blind," he said at last. "Yes, he is stone-blind, is Mr.
19482 Edward."
19483
19484 I had dreaded worse. I had dreaded he was mad. I summoned strength to
19485 ask what had caused this calamity.
19486
19487 "It was all his own courage, and a body may say, his kindness, in a way,
19488 ma'am: he wouldn't leave the house till every one else was out before
19489 him. As he came down the great staircase at last, after Mrs. Rochester
19490 had flung herself from the battlements, there was a great crash--all
19491 fell. He was taken out from under the ruins, alive, but sadly hurt: a
19492 beam had fallen in such a way as to protect him partly; but one eye was
19493 knocked out, and one hand so crushed that Mr. Carter, the surgeon, had to
19494 amputate it directly. The other eye inflamed: he lost the sight of that
19495 also. He is now helpless, indeed--blind and a cripple."
19496
19497 "Where is he? Where does he now live?"
19498
19499 "At Ferndean, a manor-house on a farm he has, about thirty miles off:
19500 quite a desolate spot."
19501
19502 "Who is with him?"
19503
19504 "Old John and his wife: he would have none else. He is quite broken
19505 down, they say."
19506
19507 "Have you any sort of conveyance?"
19508
19509 "We have a chaise, ma'am, a very handsome chaise."
19510
19511 "Let it be got ready instantly; and if your post-boy can drive me to
19512 Ferndean before dark this day, I'll pay both you and him twice the hire
19513 you usually demand."
19514
19515
19516
19517
19518 CHAPTER XXXVII
19519
19520
19521 The manor-house of Ferndean was a building of considerable antiquity,
19522 moderate size, and no architectural pretensions, deep buried in a wood. I
19523 had heard of it before. Mr. Rochester often spoke of it, and sometimes
19524 went there. His father had purchased the estate for the sake of the game
19525 covers. He would have let the house, but could find no tenant, in
19526 consequence of its ineligible and insalubrious site. Ferndean then
19527 remained uninhabited and unfurnished, with the exception of some two or
19528 three rooms fitted up for the accommodation of the squire when he went
19529 there in the season to shoot.
19530
19531 To this house I came just ere dark on an evening marked by the
19532 characteristics of sad sky, cold gale, and continued small penetrating
19533 rain. The last mile I performed on foot, having dismissed the chaise and
19534 driver with the double remuneration I had promised. Even when within a
19535 very short distance of the manor-house, you could see nothing of it, so
19536 thick and dark grew the timber of the gloomy wood about it. Iron gates
19537 between granite pillars showed me where to enter, and passing through
19538 them, I found myself at once in the twilight of close-ranked trees. There
19539 was a grass-grown track descending the forest aisle between hoar and
19540 knotty shafts and under branched arches. I followed it, expecting soon
19541 to reach the dwelling; but it stretched on and on, it wound far and
19542 farther: no sign of habitation or grounds was visible.
19543
19544 I thought I had taken a wrong direction and lost my way. The darkness of
19545 natural as well as of sylvan dusk gathered over me. I looked round in
19546 search of another road. There was none: all was interwoven stem,
19547 columnar trunk, dense summer foliage--no opening anywhere.
19548
19549 I proceeded: at last my way opened, the trees thinned a little; presently
19550 I beheld a railing, then the house--scarce, by this dim light,
19551 distinguishable from the trees; so dank and green were its decaying
19552 walls. Entering a portal, fastened only by a latch, I stood amidst a
19553 space of enclosed ground, from which the wood swept away in a semicircle.
19554 There were no flowers, no garden-beds; only a broad gravel-walk girdling
19555 a grass-plat, and this set in the heavy frame of the forest. The house
19556 presented two pointed gables in its front; the windows were latticed and
19557 narrow: the front door was narrow too, one step led up to it. The whole
19558 looked, as the host of the Rochester Arms had said, "quite a desolate
19559 spot." It was as still as a church on a week-day: the pattering rain on
19560 the forest leaves was the only sound audible in its vicinage.
19561
19562 "Can there be life here?" I asked.
19563
19564 Yes, life of some kind there was; for I heard a movement--that narrow
19565 front-door was unclosing, and some shape was about to issue from the
19566 grange.
19567
19568 It opened slowly: a figure came out into the twilight and stood on the
19569 step; a man without a hat: he stretched forth his hand as if to feel
19570 whether it rained. Dusk as it was, I had recognised him--it was my
19571 master, Edward Fairfax Rochester, and no other.
19572
19573 I stayed my step, almost my breath, and stood to watch him--to examine
19574 him, myself unseen, and alas! to him invisible. It was a sudden meeting,
19575 and one in which rapture was kept well in check by pain. I had no
19576 difficulty in restraining my voice from exclamation, my step from hasty
19577 advance.
19578
19579 His form was of the same strong and stalwart contour as ever: his port
19580 was still erect, his hair was still raven black; nor were his features
19581 altered or sunk: not in one year's space, by any sorrow, could his
19582 athletic strength be quelled or his vigorous prime blighted. But in his
19583 countenance I saw a change: that looked desperate and brooding--that
19584 reminded me of some wronged and fettered wild beast or bird, dangerous to
19585 approach in his sullen woe. The caged eagle, whose gold-ringed eyes
19586 cruelty has extinguished, might look as looked that sightless Samson.
19587
19588 And, reader, do you think I feared him in his blind ferocity?--if you do,
19589 you little know me. A soft hope blest with my sorrow that soon I should
19590 dare to drop a kiss on that brow of rock, and on those lips so sternly
19591 sealed beneath it: but not yet. I would not accost him yet.
19592
19593 He descended the one step, and advanced slowly and gropingly towards the
19594 grass-plat. Where was his daring stride now? Then he paused, as if he
19595 knew not which way to turn. He lifted his hand and opened his eyelids;
19596 gazed blank, and with a straining effort, on the sky, and toward the
19597 amphitheatre of trees: one saw that all to him was void darkness. He
19598 stretched his right hand (the left arm, the mutilated one, he kept hidden
19599 in his bosom); he seemed to wish by touch to gain an idea of what lay
19600 around him: he met but vacancy still; for the trees were some yards off
19601 where he stood. He relinquished the endeavour, folded his arms, and
19602 stood quiet and mute in the rain, now falling fast on his uncovered head.
19603 At this moment John approached him from some quarter.
19604
19605 "Will you take my arm, sir?" he said; "there is a heavy shower coming on:
19606 had you not better go in?"
19607
19608 "Let me alone," was the answer.
19609
19610 John withdrew without having observed me. Mr. Rochester now tried to
19611 walk about: vainly,--all was too uncertain. He groped his way back to
19612 the house, and, re-entering it, closed the door.
19613
19614 I now drew near and knocked: John's wife opened for me. "Mary," I said,
19615 "how are you?"
19616
19617 She started as if she had seen a ghost: I calmed her. To her hurried "Is
19618 it really you, miss, come at this late hour to this lonely place?" I
19619 answered by taking her hand; and then I followed her into the kitchen,
19620 where John now sat by a good fire. I explained to them, in few words,
19621 that I had heard all which had happened since I left Thornfield, and that
19622 I was come to see Mr. Rochester. I asked John to go down to the turn-
19623 pike-house, where I had dismissed the chaise, and bring my trunk, which I
19624 had left there: and then, while I removed my bonnet and shawl, I
19625 questioned Mary as to whether I could be accommodated at the Manor House
19626 for the night; and finding that arrangements to that effect, though
19627 difficult, would not be impossible, I informed her I should stay. Just
19628 at this moment the parlour-bell rang.
19629
19630 "When you go in," said I, "tell your master that a person wishes to speak
19631 to him, but do not give my name."
19632
19633 "I don't think he will see you," she answered; "he refuses everybody."
19634
19635 When she returned, I inquired what he had said. "You are to send in your
19636 name and your business," she replied. She then proceeded to fill a glass
19637 with water, and place it on a tray, together with candles.
19638
19639 "Is that what he rang for?" I asked.
19640
19641 "Yes: he always has candles brought in at dark, though he is blind."
19642
19643 "Give the tray to me; I will carry it in."
19644
19645 I took it from her hand: she pointed me out the parlour door. The tray
19646 shook as I held it; the water spilt from the glass; my heart struck my
19647 ribs loud and fast. Mary opened the door for me, and shut it behind me.
19648
19649 This parlour looked gloomy: a neglected handful of fire burnt low in the
19650 grate; and, leaning over it, with his head supported against the high,
19651 old-fashioned mantelpiece, appeared the blind tenant of the room. His
19652 old dog, Pilot, lay on one side, removed out of the way, and coiled up as
19653 if afraid of being inadvertently trodden upon. Pilot pricked up his ears
19654 when I came in: then he jumped up with a yelp and a whine, and bounded
19655 towards me: he almost knocked the tray from my hands. I set it on the
19656 table; then patted him, and said softly, "Lie down!" Mr. Rochester
19657 turned mechanically to _see_ what the commotion was: but as he _saw_
19658 nothing, he returned and sighed.
19659
19660 "Give me the water, Mary," he said.
19661
19662 I approached him with the now only half-filled glass; Pilot followed me,
19663 still excited.
19664
19665 "What is the matter?" he inquired.
19666
19667 "Down, Pilot!" I again said. He checked the water on its way to his
19668 lips, and seemed to listen: he drank, and put the glass down. "This is
19669 you, Mary, is it not?"
19670
19671 "Mary is in the kitchen," I answered.
19672
19673 He put out his hand with a quick gesture, but not seeing where I stood,
19674 he did not touch me. "Who is this? Who is this?" he demanded, trying,
19675 as it seemed, to _see_ with those sightless eyes--unavailing and
19676 distressing attempt! "Answer me--speak again!" he ordered, imperiously
19677 and aloud.
19678
19679 "Will you have a little more water, sir? I spilt half of what was in the
19680 glass," I said.
19681
19682 "_Who_ is it? _What_ is it? Who speaks?"
19683
19684 "Pilot knows me, and John and Mary know I am here. I came only this
19685 evening," I answered.
19686
19687 "Great God!--what delusion has come over me? What sweet madness has
19688 seized me?"
19689
19690 "No delusion--no madness: your mind, sir, is too strong for delusion,
19691 your health too sound for frenzy."
19692
19693 "And where is the speaker? Is it only a voice? Oh! I _cannot_ see, but
19694 I must feel, or my heart will stop and my brain burst. Whatever--whoever
19695 you are--be perceptible to the touch or I cannot live!"
19696
19697 He groped; I arrested his wandering hand, and prisoned it in both mine.
19698
19699 "Her very fingers!" he cried; "her small, slight fingers! If so there
19700 must be more of her."
19701
19702 The muscular hand broke from my custody; my arm was seized, my
19703 shoulder--neck--waist--I was entwined and gathered to him.
19704
19705 "Is it Jane? _What_ is it? This is her shape--this is her size--"
19706
19707 "And this her voice," I added. "She is all here: her heart, too. God
19708 bless you, sir! I am glad to be so near you again."
19709
19710 "Jane Eyre!--Jane Eyre," was all he said.
19711
19712 "My dear master," I answered, "I am Jane Eyre: I have found you out--I am
19713 come back to you."
19714
19715 "In truth?--in the flesh? My living Jane?"
19716
19717 "You touch me, sir,--you hold me, and fast enough: I am not cold like a
19718 corpse, nor vacant like air, am I?"
19719
19720 "My living darling! These are certainly her limbs, and these her
19721 features; but I cannot be so blest, after all my misery. It is a dream;
19722 such dreams as I have had at night when I have clasped her once more to
19723 my heart, as I do now; and kissed her, as thus--and felt that she loved
19724 me, and trusted that she would not leave me."
19725
19726 "Which I never will, sir, from this day."
19727
19728 "Never will, says the vision? But I always woke and found it an empty
19729 mockery; and I was desolate and abandoned--my life dark, lonely,
19730 hopeless--my soul athirst and forbidden to drink--my heart famished and
19731 never to be fed. Gentle, soft dream, nestling in my arms now, you will
19732 fly, too, as your sisters have all fled before you: but kiss me before
19733 you go--embrace me, Jane."
19734
19735 "There, sir--and there!"'
19736
19737 I pressed my lips to his once brilliant and now rayless eyes--I swept his
19738 hair from his brow, and kissed that too. He suddenly seemed to arouse
19739 himself: the conviction of the reality of all this seized him.
19740
19741 "It is you--is it, Jane? You are come back to me then?"
19742
19743 "I am."
19744
19745 "And you do not lie dead in some ditch under some stream? And you are
19746 not a pining outcast amongst strangers?"
19747
19748 "No, sir! I am an independent woman now."
19749
19750 "Independent! What do you mean, Jane?"
19751
19752 "My uncle in Madeira is dead, and he left me five thousand pounds."
19753
19754 "Ah! this is practical--this is real!" he cried: "I should never dream
19755 that. Besides, there is that peculiar voice of hers, so animating and
19756 piquant, as well as soft: it cheers my withered heart; it puts life into
19757 it.--What, Janet! Are you an independent woman? A rich woman?"
19758
19759 "If you won't let me live with you, I can build a house of my own close
19760 up to your door, and you may come and sit in my parlour when you want
19761 company of an evening."
19762
19763 "But as you are rich, Jane, you have now, no doubt, friends who will look
19764 after you, and not suffer you to devote yourself to a blind lameter like
19765 me?"
19766
19767 "I told you I am independent, sir, as well as rich: I am my own
19768 mistress."
19769
19770 "And you will stay with me?"
19771
19772 "Certainly--unless you object. I will be your neighbour, your nurse,
19773 your housekeeper. I find you lonely: I will be your companion--to read
19774 to you, to walk with you, to sit with you, to wait on you, to be eyes and
19775 hands to you. Cease to look so melancholy, my dear master; you shall not
19776 be left desolate, so long as I live."
19777
19778 He replied not: he seemed serious--abstracted; he sighed; he half-opened
19779 his lips as if to speak: he closed them again. I felt a little
19780 embarrassed. Perhaps I had too rashly over-leaped conventionalities; and
19781 he, like St. John, saw impropriety in my inconsiderateness. I had indeed
19782 made my proposal from the idea that he wished and would ask me to be his
19783 wife: an expectation, not the less certain because unexpressed, had
19784 buoyed me up, that he would claim me at once as his own. But no hint to
19785 that effect escaping him and his countenance becoming more overcast, I
19786 suddenly remembered that I might have been all wrong, and was perhaps
19787 playing the fool unwittingly; and I began gently to withdraw myself from
19788 his arms--but he eagerly snatched me closer.
19789
19790 "No--no--Jane; you must not go. No--I have touched you, heard you, felt
19791 the comfort of your presence--the sweetness of your consolation: I cannot
19792 give up these joys. I have little left in myself--I must have you. The
19793 world may laugh--may call me absurd, selfish--but it does not signify. My
19794 very soul demands you: it will be satisfied, or it will take deadly
19795 vengeance on its frame."
19796
19797 "Well, sir, I will stay with you: I have said so."
19798
19799 "Yes--but you understand one thing by staying with me; and I understand
19800 another. You, perhaps, could make up your mind to be about my hand and
19801 chair--to wait on me as a kind little nurse (for you have an affectionate
19802 heart and a generous spirit, which prompt you to make sacrifices for
19803 those you pity), and that ought to suffice for me no doubt. I suppose I
19804 should now entertain none but fatherly feelings for you: do you think so?
19805 Come--tell me."
19806
19807 "I will think what you like, sir: I am content to be only your nurse, if
19808 you think it better."
19809
19810 "But you cannot always be my nurse, Janet: you are young--you must marry
19811 one day."
19812
19813 "I don't care about being married."
19814
19815 "You should care, Janet: if I were what I once was, I would try to make
19816 you care--but--a sightless block!"
19817
19818 He relapsed again into gloom. I, on the contrary, became more cheerful,
19819 and took fresh courage: these last words gave me an insight as to where
19820 the difficulty lay; and as it was no difficulty with me, I felt quite
19821 relieved from my previous embarrassment. I resumed a livelier vein of
19822 conversation.
19823
19824 "It is time some one undertook to rehumanise you," said I, parting his
19825 thick and long uncut locks; "for I see you are being metamorphosed into a
19826 lion, or something of that sort. You have a 'faux air' of Nebuchadnezzar
19827 in the fields about you, that is certain: your hair reminds me of eagles'
19828 feathers; whether your nails are grown like birds' claws or not, I have
19829 not yet noticed."
19830
19831 "On this arm, I have neither hand nor nails," he said, drawing the
19832 mutilated limb from his breast, and showing it to me. "It is a mere
19833 stump--a ghastly sight! Don't you think so, Jane?"
19834
19835 "It is a pity to see it; and a pity to see your eyes--and the scar of
19836 fire on your forehead: and the worst of it is, one is in danger of loving
19837 you too well for all this; and making too much of you."
19838
19839 "I thought you would be revolted, Jane, when you saw my arm, and my
19840 cicatrised visage."
19841
19842 "Did you? Don't tell me so--lest I should say something disparaging to
19843 your judgment. Now, let me leave you an instant, to make a better fire,
19844 and have the hearth swept up. Can you tell when there is a good fire?"
19845
19846 "Yes; with the right eye I see a glow--a ruddy haze."
19847
19848 "And you see the candles?"
19849
19850 "Very dimly--each is a luminous cloud."
19851
19852 "Can you see me?"
19853
19854 "No, my fairy: but I am only too thankful to hear and feel you."
19855
19856 "When do you take supper?"
19857
19858 "I never take supper."
19859
19860 "But you shall have some to-night. I am hungry: so are you, I daresay,
19861 only you forget."
19862
19863 Summoning Mary, I soon had the room in more cheerful order: I prepared
19864 him, likewise, a comfortable repast. My spirits were excited, and with
19865 pleasure and ease I talked to him during supper, and for a long time
19866 after. There was no harassing restraint, no repressing of glee and
19867 vivacity with him; for with him I was at perfect ease, because I knew I
19868 suited him; all I said or did seemed either to console or revive him.
19869 Delightful consciousness! It brought to life and light my whole nature:
19870 in his presence I thoroughly lived; and he lived in mine. Blind as he
19871 was, smiles played over his face, joy dawned on his forehead: his
19872 lineaments softened and warmed.
19873
19874 After supper, he began to ask me many questions, of where I had been,
19875 what I had been doing, how I had found him out; but I gave him only very
19876 partial replies: it was too late to enter into particulars that night.
19877 Besides, I wished to touch no deep-thrilling chord--to open no fresh well
19878 of emotion in his heart: my sole present aim was to cheer him. Cheered,
19879 as I have said, he was: and yet but by fits. If a moment's silence broke
19880 the conversation, he would turn restless, touch me, then say, "Jane."
19881
19882 "You are altogether a human being, Jane? You are certain of that?"
19883
19884 {You are altogether a human being, Jane? You are certain of that?:
19885 p422.jpg}
19886
19887 "I conscientiously believe so, Mr. Rochester."
19888
19889 "Yet how, on this dark and doleful evening, could you so suddenly rise on
19890 my lone hearth? I stretched my hand to take a glass of water from a
19891 hireling, and it was given me by you: I asked a question, expecting
19892 John's wife to answer me, and your voice spoke at my ear."
19893
19894 "Because I had come in, in Mary's stead, with the tray."
19895
19896 "And there is enchantment in the very hour I am now spending with you.
19897 Who can tell what a dark, dreary, hopeless life I have dragged on for
19898 months past? Doing nothing, expecting nothing; merging night in day;
19899 feeling but the sensation of cold when I let the fire go out, of hunger
19900 when I forgot to eat: and then a ceaseless sorrow, and, at times, a very
19901 delirium of desire to behold my Jane again. Yes: for her restoration I
19902 longed, far more than for that of my lost sight. How can it be that Jane
19903 is with me, and says she loves me? Will she not depart as suddenly as
19904 she came? To-morrow, I fear I shall find her no more."
19905
19906 A commonplace, practical reply, out of the train of his own disturbed
19907 ideas, was, I was sure, the best and most reassuring for him in this
19908 frame of mind. I passed my finger over his eyebrows, and remarked that
19909 they were scorched, and that I would apply something which would make
19910 them grow as broad and black as ever.
19911
19912 "Where is the use of doing me good in any way, beneficent spirit, when,
19913 at some fatal moment, you will again desert me--passing like a shadow,
19914 whither and how to me unknown, and for me remaining afterwards
19915 undiscoverable?
19916
19917 "Have you a pocket-comb about you, sir?"
19918
19919 "What for, Jane?"
19920
19921 "Just to comb out this shaggy black mane. I find you rather alarming,
19922 when I examine you close at hand: you talk of my being a fairy, but I am
19923 sure, you are more like a brownie."
19924
19925 "Am I hideous, Jane?"
19926
19927 "Very, sir: you always were, you know."
19928
19929 "Humph! The wickedness has not been taken out of you, wherever you have
19930 sojourned."
19931
19932 "Yet I have been with good people; far better than you: a hundred times
19933 better people; possessed of ideas and views you never entertained in your
19934 life: quite more refined and exalted."
19935
19936 "Who the deuce have you been with?"
19937
19938 "If you twist in that way you will make me pull the hair out of your
19939 head; and then I think you will cease to entertain doubts of my
19940 substantiality."
19941
19942 "Who have you been with, Jane?"
19943
19944 "You shall not get it out of me to-night, sir; you must wait till
19945 to-morrow; to leave my tale half told, will, you know, be a sort of
19946 security that I shall appear at your breakfast table to finish it. By
19947 the bye, I must mind not to rise on your hearth with only a glass of
19948 water then: I must bring an egg at the least, to say nothing of fried
19949 ham."
19950
19951 "You mocking changeling--fairy-born and human-bred! You make me feel as
19952 I have not felt these twelve months. If Saul could have had you for his
19953 David, the evil spirit would have been exorcised without the aid of the
19954 harp."
19955
19956 "There, sir, you are redd up and made decent. Now I'll leave you: I have
19957 been travelling these last three days, and I believe I am tired. Good
19958 night."
19959
19960 "Just one word, Jane: were there only ladies in the house where you have
19961 been?"
19962
19963 I laughed and made my escape, still laughing as I ran upstairs. "A good
19964 idea!" I thought with glee. "I see I have the means of fretting him out
19965 of his melancholy for some time to come."
19966
19967 Very early the next morning I heard him up and astir, wandering from one
19968 room to another. As soon as Mary came down I heard the question: "Is
19969 Miss Eyre here?" Then: "Which room did you put her into? Was it dry? Is
19970 she up? Go and ask if she wants anything; and when she will come down."
19971
19972 I came down as soon as I thought there was a prospect of breakfast.
19973 Entering the room very softly, I had a view of him before he discovered
19974 my presence. It was mournful, indeed, to witness the subjugation of that
19975 vigorous spirit to a corporeal infirmity. He sat in his chair--still,
19976 but not at rest: expectant evidently; the lines of now habitual sadness
19977 marking his strong features. His countenance reminded one of a lamp
19978 quenched, waiting to be re-lit--and alas! it was not himself that could
19979 now kindle the lustre of animated expression: he was dependent on another
19980 for that office! I had meant to be gay and careless, but the
19981 powerlessness of the strong man touched my heart to the quick: still I
19982 accosted him with what vivacity I could.
19983
19984 "It is a bright, sunny morning, sir," I said. "The rain is over and
19985 gone, and there is a tender shining after it: you shall have a walk
19986 soon."
19987
19988 I had wakened the glow: his features beamed.
19989
19990 "Oh, you are indeed there, my skylark! Come to me. You are not gone:
19991 not vanished? I heard one of your kind an hour ago, singing high over
19992 the wood: but its song had no music for me, any more than the rising sun
19993 had rays. All the melody on earth is concentrated in my Jane's tongue to
19994 my ear (I am glad it is not naturally a silent one): all the sunshine I
19995 can feel is in her presence."
19996
19997 The water stood in my eyes to hear this avowal of his dependence; just as
19998 if a royal eagle, chained to a perch, should be forced to entreat a
19999 sparrow to become its purveyor. But I would not be lachrymose: I dashed
20000 off the salt drops, and busied myself with preparing breakfast.
20001
20002 Most of the morning was spent in the open air. I led him out of the wet
20003 and wild wood into some cheerful fields: I described to him how
20004 brilliantly green they were; how the flowers and hedges looked refreshed;
20005 how sparklingly blue was the sky. I sought a seat for him in a hidden
20006 and lovely spot, a dry stump of a tree; nor did I refuse to let him, when
20007 seated, place me on his knee. Why should I, when both he and I were
20008 happier near than apart? Pilot lay beside us: all was quiet. He broke
20009 out suddenly while clasping me in his arms--
20010
20011 "Cruel, cruel deserter! Oh, Jane, what did I feel when I discovered you
20012 had fled from Thornfield, and when I could nowhere find you; and, after
20013 examining your apartment, ascertained that you had taken no money, nor
20014 anything which could serve as an equivalent! A pearl necklace I had
20015 given you lay untouched in its little casket; your trunks were left
20016 corded and locked as they had been prepared for the bridal tour. What
20017 could my darling do, I asked, left destitute and penniless? And what did
20018 she do? Let me hear now."
20019
20020 Thus urged, I began the narrative of my experience for the last year. I
20021 softened considerably what related to the three days of wandering and
20022 starvation, because to have told him all would have been to inflict
20023 unnecessary pain: the little I did say lacerated his faithful heart
20024 deeper than I wished.
20025
20026 I should not have left him thus, he said, without any means of making my
20027 way: I should have told him my intention. I should have confided in him:
20028 he would never have forced me to be his mistress. Violent as he had
20029 seemed in his despair, he, in truth, loved me far too well and too
20030 tenderly to constitute himself my tyrant: he would have given me half his
20031 fortune, without demanding so much as a kiss in return, rather than I
20032 should have flung myself friendless on the wide world. I had endured, he
20033 was certain, more than I had confessed to him.
20034
20035 "Well, whatever my sufferings had been, they were very short," I
20036 answered: and then I proceeded to tell him how I had been received at
20037 Moor House; how I had obtained the office of schoolmistress, &c. The
20038 accession of fortune, the discovery of my relations, followed in due
20039 order. Of course, St. John Rivers' name came in frequently in the
20040 progress of my tale. When I had done, that name was immediately taken
20041 up.
20042
20043 "This St. John, then, is your cousin?"
20044
20045 "Yes."
20046
20047 "You have spoken of him often: do you like him?"
20048
20049 "He was a very good man, sir; I could not help liking him."
20050
20051 "A good man. Does that mean a respectable well-conducted man of fifty?
20052 Or what does it mean?"
20053
20054 "St John was only twenty-nine, sir."
20055
20056 "'_Jeune encore_,' as the French say. Is he a person of low stature,
20057 phlegmatic, and plain. A person whose goodness consists rather in his
20058 guiltlessness of vice, than in his prowess in virtue."
20059
20060 "He is untiringly active. Great and exalted deeds are what he lives to
20061 perform."
20062
20063 "But his brain? That is probably rather soft? He means well: but you
20064 shrug your shoulders to hear him talk?"
20065
20066 "He talks little, sir: what he does say is ever to the point. His brain
20067 is first-rate, I should think not impressible, but vigorous."
20068
20069 "Is he an able man, then?"
20070
20071 "Truly able."
20072
20073 "A thoroughly educated man?"
20074
20075 "St. John is an accomplished and profound scholar."
20076
20077 "His manners, I think, you said are not to your taste?--priggish and
20078 parsonic?"
20079
20080 "I never mentioned his manners; but, unless I had a very bad taste, they
20081 must suit it; they are polished, calm, and gentlemanlike."
20082
20083 "His appearance,--I forget what description you gave of his appearance;--a
20084 sort of raw curate, half strangled with his white neckcloth, and stilted
20085 up on his thick-soled high-lows, eh?"
20086
20087 "St. John dresses well. He is a handsome man: tall, fair, with blue
20088 eyes, and a Grecian profile."
20089
20090 (Aside.) "Damn him!"--(To me.) "Did you like him, Jane?"
20091
20092 "Yes, Mr. Rochester, I liked him: but you asked me that before."
20093
20094 I perceived, of course, the drift of my interlocutor. Jealousy had got
20095 hold of him: she stung him; but the sting was salutary: it gave him
20096 respite from the gnawing fang of melancholy. I would not, therefore,
20097 immediately charm the snake.
20098
20099 "Perhaps you would rather not sit any longer on my knee, Miss Eyre?" was
20100 the next somewhat unexpected observation.
20101
20102 "Why not, Mr. Rochester?"
20103
20104 "The picture you have just drawn is suggestive of a rather too
20105 overwhelming contrast. Your words have delineated very prettily a
20106 graceful Apollo: he is present to your imagination,--tall, fair, blue-
20107 eyed, and with a Grecian profile. Your eyes dwell on a Vulcan,--a real
20108 blacksmith, brown, broad-shouldered: and blind and lame into the
20109 bargain."
20110
20111 "I never thought of it, before; but you certainly are rather like Vulcan,
20112 sir."
20113
20114 "Well, you can leave me, ma'am: but before you go" (and he retained me by
20115 a firmer grasp than ever), "you will be pleased just to answer me a
20116 question or two." He paused.
20117
20118 "What questions, Mr. Rochester?"
20119
20120 Then followed this cross-examination.
20121
20122 "St. John made you schoolmistress of Morton before he knew you were his
20123 cousin?"
20124
20125 "Yes."
20126
20127 "You would often see him? He would visit the school sometimes?"
20128
20129 "Daily."
20130
20131 "He would approve of your plans, Jane? I know they would be clever, for
20132 you are a talented creature!"
20133
20134 "He approved of them--yes."
20135
20136 "He would discover many things in you he could not have expected to find?
20137 Some of your accomplishments are not ordinary."
20138
20139 "I don't know about that."
20140
20141 "You had a little cottage near the school, you say: did he ever come
20142 there to see you?"
20143
20144 "Now and then?"
20145
20146 "Of an evening?"
20147
20148 "Once or twice."
20149
20150 A pause.
20151
20152 "How long did you reside with him and his sisters after the cousinship
20153 was discovered?"
20154
20155 "Five months."
20156
20157 "Did Rivers spend much time with the ladies of his family?"
20158
20159 "Yes; the back parlour was both his study and ours: he sat near the
20160 window, and we by the table."
20161
20162 "Did he study much?"
20163
20164 "A good deal."
20165
20166 "What?"
20167
20168 "Hindostanee."
20169
20170 "And what did you do meantime?"
20171
20172 "I learnt German, at first."
20173
20174 "Did he teach you?"
20175
20176 "He did not understand German."
20177
20178 "Did he teach you nothing?"
20179
20180 "A little Hindostanee."
20181
20182 "Rivers taught you Hindostanee?"
20183
20184 "Yes, sir."
20185
20186 "And his sisters also?"
20187
20188 "No."
20189
20190 "Only you?"
20191
20192 "Only me."
20193
20194 "Did you ask to learn?"
20195
20196 "No."
20197
20198 "He wished to teach you?"
20199
20200 "Yes."
20201
20202 A second pause.
20203
20204 "Why did he wish it? Of what use could Hindostanee be to you?"
20205
20206 "He intended me to go with him to India."
20207
20208 "Ah! here I reach the root of the matter. He wanted you to marry him?"
20209
20210 "He asked me to marry him."
20211
20212 "That is a fiction--an impudent invention to vex me."
20213
20214 "I beg your pardon, it is the literal truth: he asked me more than once,
20215 and was as stiff about urging his point as ever you could be."
20216
20217 "Miss Eyre, I repeat it, you can leave me. How often am I to say the
20218 same thing? Why do you remain pertinaciously perched on my knee, when I
20219 have given you notice to quit?"
20220
20221 "Because I am comfortable there."
20222
20223 "No, Jane, you are not comfortable there, because your heart is not with
20224 me: it is with this cousin--this St. John. Oh, till this moment, I
20225 thought my little Jane was all mine! I had a belief she loved me even
20226 when she left me: that was an atom of sweet in much bitter. Long as we
20227 have been parted, hot tears as I have wept over our separation, I never
20228 thought that while I was mourning her, she was loving another! But it is
20229 useless grieving. Jane, leave me: go and marry Rivers."
20230
20231 "Shake me off, then, sir,--push me away, for I'll not leave you of my own
20232 accord."
20233
20234 "Jane, I ever like your tone of voice: it still renews hope, it sounds so
20235 truthful. When I hear it, it carries me back a year. I forget that you
20236 have formed a new tie. But I am not a fool--go--"
20237
20238 "Where must I go, sir?"
20239
20240 "Your own way--with the husband you have chosen."
20241
20242 "Who is that?"
20243
20244 "You know--this St. John Rivers."
20245
20246 "He is not my husband, nor ever will be. He does not love me: I do not
20247 love him. He loves (as he _can_ love, and that is not as you love) a
20248 beautiful young lady called Rosamond. He wanted to marry me only because
20249 he thought I should make a suitable missionary's wife, which she would
20250 not have done. He is good and great, but severe; and, for me, cold as an
20251 iceberg. He is not like you, sir: I am not happy at his side, nor near
20252 him, nor with him. He has no indulgence for me--no fondness. He sees
20253 nothing attractive in me; not even youth--only a few useful mental
20254 points.--Then I must leave you, sir, to go to him?"
20255
20256 I shuddered involuntarily, and clung instinctively closer to my blind but
20257 beloved master. He smiled.
20258
20259 "What, Jane! Is this true? Is such really the state of matters between
20260 you and Rivers?"
20261
20262 "Absolutely, sir! Oh, you need not be jealous! I wanted to tease you a
20263 little to make you less sad: I thought anger would be better than grief.
20264 But if you wish me to love you, could you but see how much I _do_ love
20265 you, you would be proud and content. All my heart is yours, sir: it
20266 belongs to you; and with you it would remain, were fate to exile the rest
20267 of me from your presence for ever."
20268
20269 Again, as he kissed me, painful thoughts darkened his aspect.
20270
20271 "My seared vision! My crippled strength!" he murmured regretfully.
20272
20273 I caressed, in order to soothe him. I knew of what he was thinking, and
20274 wanted to speak for him, but dared not. As he turned aside his face a
20275 minute, I saw a tear slide from under the sealed eyelid, and trickle down
20276 the manly cheek. My heart swelled.
20277
20278 "I am no better than the old lightning-struck chestnut-tree in Thornfield
20279 orchard," he remarked ere long. "And what right would that ruin have to
20280 bid a budding woodbine cover its decay with freshness?"
20281
20282 "You are no ruin, sir--no lightning-struck tree: you are green and
20283 vigorous. Plants will grow about your roots, whether you ask them or
20284 not, because they take delight in your bountiful shadow; and as they grow
20285 they will lean towards you, and wind round you, because your strength
20286 offers them so safe a prop."
20287
20288 Again he smiled: I gave him comfort.
20289
20290 "You speak of friends, Jane?" he asked.
20291
20292 "Yes, of friends," I answered rather hesitatingly: for I knew I meant
20293 more than friends, but could not tell what other word to employ. He
20294 helped me.
20295
20296 "Ah! Jane. But I want a wife."
20297
20298 "Do you, sir?"
20299
20300 "Yes: is it news to you?"
20301
20302 "Of course: you said nothing about it before."
20303
20304 "Is it unwelcome news?"
20305
20306 "That depends on circumstances, sir--on your choice."
20307
20308 "Which you shall make for me, Jane. I will abide by your decision."
20309
20310 "Choose then, sir--_her who loves you best_."
20311
20312 "I will at least choose--_her I love best_. Jane, will you marry me?"
20313
20314 "Yes, sir."
20315
20316 "A poor blind man, whom you will have to lead about by the hand?"
20317
20318 "Yes, sir."
20319
20320 "A crippled man, twenty years older than you, whom you will have to wait
20321 on?"
20322
20323 "Yes, sir."
20324
20325 "Truly, Jane?"
20326
20327 "Most truly, sir."
20328
20329 "Oh! my darling! God bless you and reward you!"
20330
20331 "Mr. Rochester, if ever I did a good deed in my life--if ever I thought a
20332 good thought--if ever I prayed a sincere and blameless prayer--if ever I
20333 wished a righteous wish,--I am rewarded now. To be your wife is, for me,
20334 to be as happy as I can be on earth."
20335
20336 "Because you delight in sacrifice."
20337
20338 "Sacrifice! What do I sacrifice? Famine for food, expectation for
20339 content. To be privileged to put my arms round what I value--to press my
20340 lips to what I love--to repose on what I trust: is that to make a
20341 sacrifice? If so, then certainly I delight in sacrifice."
20342
20343 "And to bear with my infirmities, Jane: to overlook my deficiencies."
20344
20345 "Which are none, sir, to me. I love you better now, when I can really be
20346 useful to you, than I did in your state of proud independence, when you
20347 disdained every part but that of the giver and protector."
20348
20349 "Hitherto I have hated to be helped--to be led: henceforth, I feel I
20350 shall hate it no more. I did not like to put my hand into a hireling's,
20351 but it is pleasant to feel it circled by Jane's little fingers. I
20352 preferred utter loneliness to the constant attendance of servants; but
20353 Jane's soft ministry will be a perpetual joy. Jane suits me: do I suit
20354 her?"
20355
20356 "To the finest fibre of my nature, sir."
20357
20358 "The case being so, we have nothing in the world to wait for: we must be
20359 married instantly."
20360
20361 He looked and spoke with eagerness: his old impetuosity was rising.
20362
20363 "We must become one flesh without any delay, Jane: there is but the
20364 licence to get--then we marry."
20365
20366 "Mr. Rochester, I have just discovered the sun is far declined from its
20367 meridian, and Pilot is actually gone home to his dinner. Let me look at
20368 your watch."
20369
20370 "Fasten it into your girdle, Janet, and keep it henceforward: I have no
20371 use for it."
20372
20373 "It is nearly four o'clock in the afternoon, sir. Don't you feel
20374 hungry?"
20375
20376 "The third day from this must be our wedding-day, Jane. Never mind fine
20377 clothes and jewels, now: all that is not worth a fillip."
20378
20379 "The sun has dried up all the rain-drops, sir. The breeze is still: it
20380 is quite hot."
20381
20382 "Do you know, Jane, I have your little pearl necklace at this moment
20383 fastened round my bronze scrag under my cravat? I have worn it since the
20384 day I lost my only treasure, as a memento of her."
20385
20386 "We will go home through the wood: that will be the shadiest way."
20387
20388 He pursued his own thoughts without heeding me.
20389
20390 "Jane! you think me, I daresay, an irreligious dog: but my heart swells
20391 with gratitude to the beneficent God of this earth just now. He sees not
20392 as man sees, but far clearer: judges not as man judges, but far more
20393 wisely. I did wrong: I would have sullied my innocent flower--breathed
20394 guilt on its purity: the Omnipotent snatched it from me. I, in my stiff-
20395 necked rebellion, almost cursed the dispensation: instead of bending to
20396 the decree, I defied it. Divine justice pursued its course; disasters
20397 came thick on me: I was forced to pass through the valley of the shadow
20398 of death. _His_ chastisements are mighty; and one smote me which has
20399 humbled me for ever. You know I was proud of my strength: but what is it
20400 now, when I must give it over to foreign guidance, as a child does its
20401 weakness? Of late, Jane--only--only of late--I began to see and
20402 acknowledge the hand of God in my doom. I began to experience remorse,
20403 repentance; the wish for reconcilement to my Maker. I began sometimes to
20404 pray: very brief prayers they were, but very sincere.
20405
20406 "Some days since: nay, I can number them--four; it was last Monday night,
20407 a singular mood came over me: one in which grief replaced frenzy--sorrow,
20408 sullenness. I had long had the impression that since I could nowhere
20409 find you, you must be dead. Late that night--perhaps it might be between
20410 eleven and twelve o'clock--ere I retired to my dreary rest, I supplicated
20411 God, that, if it seemed good to Him, I might soon be taken from this
20412 life, and admitted to that world to come, where there was still hope of
20413 rejoining Jane.
20414
20415 "I was in my own room, and sitting by the window, which was open: it
20416 soothed me to feel the balmy night-air; though I could see no stars and
20417 only by a vague, luminous haze, knew the presence of a moon. I longed
20418 for thee, Janet! Oh, I longed for thee both with soul and flesh! I
20419 asked of God, at once in anguish and humility, if I had not been long
20420 enough desolate, afflicted, tormented; and might not soon taste bliss and
20421 peace once more. That I merited all I endured, I acknowledged--that I
20422 could scarcely endure more, I pleaded; and the alpha and omega of my
20423 heart's wishes broke involuntarily from my lips in the words--'Jane!
20424 Jane! Jane!'"
20425
20426 "Did you speak these words aloud?"
20427
20428 "I did, Jane. If any listener had heard me, he would have thought me
20429 mad: I pronounced them with such frantic energy."
20430
20431 "And it was last Monday night, somewhere near midnight?"
20432
20433 "Yes; but the time is of no consequence: what followed is the strange
20434 point. You will think me superstitious,--some superstition I have in my
20435 blood, and always had: nevertheless, this is true--true at least it is
20436 that I heard what I now relate.
20437
20438 "As I exclaimed 'Jane! Jane! Jane!' a voice--I cannot tell whence the
20439 voice came, but I know whose voice it was--replied, 'I am coming: wait
20440 for me;' and a moment after, went whispering on the wind the words--'Where
20441 are you?'
20442
20443 "I'll tell you, if I can, the idea, the picture these words opened to my
20444 mind: yet it is difficult to express what I want to express. Ferndean is
20445 buried, as you see, in a heavy wood, where sound falls dull, and dies
20446 unreverberating. 'Where are you?' seemed spoken amongst mountains; for I
20447 heard a hill-sent echo repeat the words. Cooler and fresher at the
20448 moment the gale seemed to visit my brow: I could have deemed that in some
20449 wild, lone scene, I and Jane were meeting. In spirit, I believe we must
20450 have met. You no doubt were, at that hour, in unconscious sleep, Jane:
20451 perhaps your soul wandered from its cell to comfort mine; for those were
20452 your accents--as certain as I live--they were yours!"
20453
20454 Reader, it was on Monday night--near midnight--that I too had received
20455 the mysterious summons: those were the very words by which I replied to
20456 it. I listened to Mr. Rochester's narrative, but made no disclosure in
20457 return. The coincidence struck me as too awful and inexplicable to be
20458 communicated or discussed. If I told anything, my tale would be such as
20459 must necessarily make a profound impression on the mind of my hearer: and
20460 that mind, yet from its sufferings too prone to gloom, needed not the
20461 deeper shade of the supernatural. I kept these things then, and pondered
20462 them in my heart.
20463
20464 "You cannot now wonder," continued my master, "that when you rose upon me
20465 so unexpectedly last night, I had difficulty in believing you any other
20466 than a mere voice and vision, something that would melt to silence and
20467 annihilation, as the midnight whisper and mountain echo had melted
20468 before. Now, I thank God! I know it to be otherwise. Yes, I thank
20469 God!"
20470
20471 He put me off his knee, rose, and reverently lifting his hat from his
20472 brow, and bending his sightless eyes to the earth, he stood in mute
20473 devotion. Only the last words of the worship were audible.
20474
20475 "I thank my Maker, that, in the midst of judgment, he has remembered
20476 mercy. I humbly entreat my Redeemer to give me strength to lead
20477 henceforth a purer life than I have done hitherto!"
20478
20479 Then he stretched his hand out to be led. I took that dear hand, held it
20480 a moment to my lips, then let it pass round my shoulder: being so much
20481 lower of stature than he, I served both for his prop and guide. We
20482 entered the wood, and wended homeward.
20483
20484
20485
20486
20487 CHAPTER XXXVIII--CONCLUSION
20488
20489
20490 Reader, I married him. A quiet wedding we had: he and I, the parson and
20491 clerk, were alone present. When we got back from church, I went into the
20492 kitchen of the manor-house, where Mary was cooking the dinner and John
20493 cleaning the knives, and I said--
20494
20495 "Mary, I have been married to Mr. Rochester this morning." The
20496 housekeeper and her husband were both of that decent phlegmatic order of
20497 people, to whom one may at any time safely communicate a remarkable piece
20498 of news without incurring the danger of having one's ears pierced by some
20499 shrill ejaculation, and subsequently stunned by a torrent of wordy
20500 wonderment. Mary did look up, and she did stare at me: the ladle with
20501 which she was basting a pair of chickens roasting at the fire, did for
20502 some three minutes hang suspended in air; and for the same space of time
20503 John's knives also had rest from the polishing process: but Mary, bending
20504 again over the roast, said only--
20505
20506 "Have you, Miss? Well, for sure!"
20507
20508 A short time after she pursued--"I seed you go out with the master, but I
20509 didn't know you were gone to church to be wed;" and she basted away.
20510 John, when I turned to him, was grinning from ear to ear.
20511
20512 "I telled Mary how it would be," he said: "I knew what Mr. Edward" (John
20513 was an old servant, and had known his master when he was the cadet of the
20514 house, therefore, he often gave him his Christian name)--"I knew what Mr.
20515 Edward would do; and I was certain he would not wait long neither: and
20516 he's done right, for aught I know. I wish you joy, Miss!" and he
20517 politely pulled his forelock.
20518
20519 "Thank you, John. Mr. Rochester told me to give you and Mary this." I
20520 put into his hand a five-pound note. Without waiting to hear more, I
20521 left the kitchen. In passing the door of that sanctum some time after, I
20522 caught the words--
20523
20524 "She'll happen do better for him nor ony o't' grand ladies." And again,
20525 "If she ben't one o' th' handsomest, she's noan faal and varry
20526 good-natured; and i' his een she's fair beautiful, onybody may see that."
20527
20528 I wrote to Moor House and to Cambridge immediately, to say what I had
20529 done: fully explaining also why I had thus acted. Diana and Mary
20530 approved the step unreservedly. Diana announced that she would just give
20531 me time to get over the honeymoon, and then she would come and see me.
20532
20533 "She had better not wait till then, Jane," said Mr. Rochester, when I
20534 read her letter to him; "if she does, she will be too late, for our
20535 honeymoon will shine our life long: its beams will only fade over your
20536 grave or mine."
20537
20538 How St. John received the news, I don't know: he never answered the
20539 letter in which I communicated it: yet six months after he wrote to me,
20540 without, however, mentioning Mr. Rochester's name or alluding to my
20541 marriage. His letter was then calm, and, though very serious, kind. He
20542 has maintained a regular, though not frequent, correspondence ever since:
20543 he hopes I am happy, and trusts I am not of those who live without God in
20544 the world, and only mind earthly things.
20545
20546 You have not quite forgotten little Adele, have you, reader? I had not;
20547 I soon asked and obtained leave of Mr. Rochester, to go and see her at
20548 the school where he had placed her. Her frantic joy at beholding me
20549 again moved me much. She looked pale and thin: she said she was not
20550 happy. I found the rules of the establishment were too strict, its
20551 course of study too severe for a child of her age: I took her home with
20552 me. I meant to become her governess once more, but I soon found this
20553 impracticable; my time and cares were now required by another--my husband
20554 needed them all. So I sought out a school conducted on a more indulgent
20555 system, and near enough to permit of my visiting her often, and bringing
20556 her home sometimes. I took care she should never want for anything that
20557 could contribute to her comfort: she soon settled in her new abode,
20558 became very happy there, and made fair progress in her studies. As she
20559 grew up, a sound English education corrected in a great measure her
20560 French defects; and when she left school, I found in her a pleasing and
20561 obliging companion: docile, good-tempered, and well-principled. By her
20562 grateful attention to me and mine, she has long since well repaid any
20563 little kindness I ever had it in my power to offer her.
20564
20565 My tale draws to its close: one word respecting my experience of married
20566 life, and one brief glance at the fortunes of those whose names have most
20567 frequently recurred in this narrative, and I have done.
20568
20569 I have now been married ten years. I know what it is to live entirely
20570 for and with what I love best on earth. I hold myself supremely
20571 blest--blest beyond what language can express; because I am my husband's
20572 life as fully as he is mine. No woman was ever nearer to her mate than I
20573 am: ever more absolutely bone of his bone and flesh of his flesh. I know
20574 no weariness of my Edward's society: he knows none of mine, any more than
20575 we each do of the pulsation of the heart that beats in our separate
20576 bosoms; consequently, we are ever together. To be together is for us to
20577 be at once as free as in solitude, as gay as in company. We talk, I
20578 believe, all day long: to talk to each other is but a more animated and
20579 an audible thinking. All my confidence is bestowed on him, all his
20580 confidence is devoted to me; we are precisely suited in character--perfect
20581 concord is the result.
20582
20583 Mr. Rochester continued blind the first two years of our union; perhaps
20584 it was that circumstance that drew us so very near--that knit us so very
20585 close: for I was then his vision, as I am still his right hand.
20586 Literally, I was (what he often called me) the apple of his eye. He saw
20587 nature--he saw books through me; and never did I weary of gazing for his
20588 behalf, and of putting into words the effect of field, tree, town, river,
20589 cloud, sunbeam--of the landscape before us; of the weather round us--and
20590 impressing by sound on his ear what light could no longer stamp on his
20591 eye. Never did I weary of reading to him; never did I weary of
20592 conducting him where he wished to go: of doing for him what he wished to
20593 be done. And there was a pleasure in my services, most full, most
20594 exquisite, even though sad--because he claimed these services without
20595 painful shame or damping humiliation. He loved me so truly, that he knew
20596 no reluctance in profiting by my attendance: he felt I loved him so
20597 fondly, that to yield that attendance was to indulge my sweetest wishes.
20598
20599 One morning at the end of the two years, as I was writing a letter to his
20600 dictation, he came and bent over me, and said--"Jane, have you a
20601 glittering ornament round your neck?"
20602
20603 I had a gold watch-chain: I answered "Yes."
20604
20605 "And have you a pale blue dress on?"
20606
20607 {And have you a pale blue dress on?: p435.jpg}
20608
20609 I had. He informed me then, that for some time he had fancied the
20610 obscurity clouding one eye was becoming less dense; and that now he was
20611 sure of it.
20612
20613 He and I went up to London. He had the advice of an eminent oculist; and
20614 he eventually recovered the sight of that one eye. He cannot now see
20615 very distinctly: he cannot read or write much; but he can find his way
20616 without being led by the hand: the sky is no longer a blank to him--the
20617 earth no longer a void. When his first-born was put into his arms, he
20618 could see that the boy had inherited his own eyes, as they once
20619 were--large, brilliant, and black. On that occasion, he again, with a
20620 full heart, acknowledged that God had tempered judgment with mercy.
20621
20622 My Edward and I, then, are happy: and the more so, because those we most
20623 love are happy likewise. Diana and Mary Rivers are both married:
20624 alternately, once every year, they come to see us, and we go to see them.
20625 Diana's husband is a captain in the navy, a gallant officer and a good
20626 man. Mary's is a clergyman, a college friend of her brother's, and, from
20627 his attainments and principles, worthy of the connection. Both Captain
20628 Fitzjames and Mr. Wharton love their wives, and are loved by them.
20629
20630 As to St. John Rivers, he left England: he went to India. He entered on
20631 the path he had marked for himself; he pursues it still. A more
20632 resolute, indefatigable pioneer never wrought amidst rocks and dangers.
20633 Firm, faithful, and devoted, full of energy, and zeal, and truth, he
20634 labours for his race; he clears their painful way to improvement; he hews
20635 down like a giant the prejudices of creed and caste that encumber it. He
20636 may be stern; he may be exacting; he may be ambitious yet; but his is the
20637 sternness of the warrior Greatheart, who guards his pilgrim convoy from
20638 the onslaught of Apollyon. His is the exaction of the apostle, who
20639 speaks but for Christ, when he says--"Whosoever will come after me, let
20640 him deny himself, and take up his cross and follow me." His is the
20641 ambition of the high master-spirit, which aims to fill a place in the
20642 first rank of those who are redeemed from the earth--who stand without
20643 fault before the throne of God, who share the last mighty victories of
20644 the Lamb, who are called, and chosen, and faithful.
20645
20646 St. John is unmarried: he never will marry now. Himself has hitherto
20647 sufficed to the toil, and the toil draws near its close: his glorious sun
20648 hastens to its setting. The last letter I received from him drew from my
20649 eyes human tears, and yet filled my heart with divine joy: he anticipated
20650 his sure reward, his incorruptible crown. I know that a stranger's hand
20651 will write to me next, to say that the good and faithful servant has been
20652 called at length into the joy of his Lord. And why weep for this? No
20653 fear of death will darken St. John's last hour: his mind will be
20654 unclouded, his heart will be undaunted, his hope will be sure, his faith
20655 steadfast. His own words are a pledge of this--
20656
20657 "My Master," he says, "has forewarned me. Daily He announces more
20658 distinctly,--'Surely I come quickly!' and hourly I more eagerly
20659 respond,--'Amen; even so come, Lord Jesus!'"